SPECIAL AND CHOSEN SERMONS OF D. MARTIN LUTHER, COLLECTED OUT OF HIS writings and preachings for the necessary instruction and edification of such, as hunger and seek after the perfect knowledge and inestimable glory which is in Christ jesus, to the comfort and salvation of their souls. Englished by W. G. Philip. 3.8.9. I think all things but loss for the excellency of the knowledge of Christ jesus my Lord, for whom I have counted all things loss, and do judge them but vile, that I may win Christ, and be found in him, not having mine own righteousness, which is of the law, but that which is through the faith of Christ, even the righteousness which is of God through faith. printer's or publisher's device of Thomas Vautroullier ANCHORA SPEI Imprinted at London by Thomas Vautroullier dwelling in the Black Friars by Ludgate. cum PRIVILEGIO. 1578. A catalogue OR Rehearsal of the Sermons contained in this book. 1 A Sermon of the nativity of Christ. pag. 1. 2 A Sermon of the epiphany or Appearing of Christ. 19 3 A Sermon of the Genealogy or pedigree of Christ. 35. 4 A Sermon of the Hymn of Zacharias commonly called Benedictus. 45. 5 A Sermon of the Meditation of Christ's passion. 67. 6 A Sermon of the fruit and virtue of Christ his resurrection. 74. 7 A Sermon of the good shepherd. 79. 8 A Sermon of the lost sheep. 92. 9 A Sermon of the woman of Canaan. 122. 10 A Sermon of salvation freely by grace without the works and merits of men. 129. 11 A Sermon of the kingdom of God. 153. 12 A Sermon of Prayer. 161. 13 A Sermon concerning the bidding of Guests to the great supper. 164. 14 A Sermon of the works of charity. 170. 15 A Sermon of the sum of Christian life. 182. 16 A Sermon of the question of the Pharisees and answer of Christ concerning giving tribute to Cesar. 213. 17 A Sermon of salvation by Christ alone. 225. 18 A Sermon of good works the fruits of faith. 234. 19 A Sermon of joy in God, and a patiented mind toward men. 254. 20 A Sermon of them that be under the law, and them that be under grace. 274. 21 A Sermon of faith and diffidence in danger & trouble. 316. 22 A Sermon of the life of a Christian. 324. 23 A Sermon of tentation. 336. 24 A Sermon of the leading of a godly life. 351. 25 A Sermon of God's providence and care for his children. 463. 26 A Sermon of trust in God in penury and distress. 371. 27 A Sermon against the contempt of God's word. 379. 28 A Sermon of the Law and the Gospel. 391. 29 A Sermon of the exercise and increasing of faith. 406. 30 A Sermon of remission of sins to the contrite and broken in heart, & terrible judgement to the indurate and obstinate. 418. 31 A Sermon of trust and hope in Christ, that by him we shall obtain all good things. 431. 32 A Sermon of the works which Christ hath wrought for us, wherein is contained a most sweet consolation against the Law, Sin, Death and Satan. 446. 33 A Sermon upon the Gospel on S. Mathias day. 456. 34 A Sermon upon the Gospel on the feast of S. Philip and james. 469. TO THE RIGHT WORSHIPFUL SIR THOMAS HENNEAGE KNIGHT, TREASURER OF HER majesties privy chamber, W. GACE wisheth peace and salvation in Christ. considering (right Worshipful) that saying of David alleged by the Apostle Paul, that there is none that understandeth, none that seeketh after God, that all are gone out of the way and become unprofitable: me thinks it doth lively set forth the blindness of man's understanding, the wickedness of his will, and his perverseness and unability unto that which is good. Whereof if we had not many testimonies of Scripture, yet common experience were able to confirm the same, when we daily see men so careful to live, and so careless to live well. Howbeit this is no marvel: for as a tree whose root is rotten and infected with venomous sap, bringeth forth none but corrupt and naughty fruit: so from man's heart which is corrupt and infected with the venom of sin, can proceed nothing that is good. Now man's understanding being blind, he is not able of himself to attain to the knowledge of God, and consequently without some other means or help can not be saved: for this, as our Saviour in the Gospel saith, is life everlasting, to know one only true God, and him whom he hath sent jesus Christ. Again, man's will being corrupt, he is not able to serve God as his duty requireth, as to honour him as his Lord, to obey him as his father, to trust in him as his Protector and preserver, to be thankful to him for his infinite benefits, etc. Wherefore lest man being ignorant of God should be excluded from salvation, or lest through the wickedness of his will and inclination to evil, he should dishonour so high a Lord, disobey so good a father, distrust so careful a preserver, and be unthankful to so gracious a giver, who doth not see how requisite and needful it is, that he should by good instructions be brought to the knowledge of the Lord God, and by godly exhortations and admonitions be reclaimed from his wicked ways to the performance of his duty? Now forasmuch as God hath in his word revealed so much of himself as is expedient for man to know, & hath therein also prescribed that manner of serving him whereof be accepteth, man must out of it learn the true knowledge and right service of God, and therefore most necessary it is that this word be preached & taught, that thereby man may learn to know God, and truly to worship & serve him being known. So shall his mind be enlightened with divine knowledge, and his will reform according to Gods will, so shall this word be a lantern unto his feet, and a light unto his paths, whereby he may be directed in all his ways. But (alas) this is a thing to be lamented, that the harvest is great, but the labourers are few. For among them which supply the places of labourers in the lords harvest, some there be who do with diligence discharge their duty, many more there are, who albeit they be able, yet do either quite neglect it, or very sclenderly execute it, but greatest is the number of them, who for lack of skill & knowledge are not able at all to perform it. Wherefore there is great need to pray the Lord of the harvest, that he will send forth labourers into his harvest, whereby many more than do may receive the Gospel of Christ jesus even to the salvation of their souls. The premises well weighed, I think (right Worshipful) there may a sufficient reason be gathered, why I did purpose the publishing of these Sermons of D. Martin Luther in our vulgar tongue, and why at the last I have by some labour and pains brought the said purposed publishing to pass. I was in deed at the first procured thereunto by a learned Father of this land, whose words and judgement I make no small account of, but afterwards entering into deeper consideration of the matter, and weighing on the one side the great ignorance of many even in matters of salvation, together with the daily dishonouring of God by ungodly life: and on the other side the divine doctrine and most wholesome exhortations which these Sermons contain, I was more forcibly stirred up thereunto, and thought that the painful perusing of them, and fruitful following of that whereof they entreat, would be a sovereign salve to help to cure such dangerous diseases. For by them may they learn to know one only true God, and whom he hath sent jesus Christ, and the infinite riches which are comprised in him, and offered unto us through him of God his Father: that he humbled himself to exalt us, that he became a servant to set us at liberty, that he was impoverished to make us rich, that he died for our sins, & rose again for our justification, that through his means mercy hath swallowed up misery, and bounty hath overcome all evil, finally that without him there is no joy nor consolation, no peace nor quietness, no felicity nor salvation, but that he is the only means by which all good things are attained: so that they which enjoy him receive not one gift alone, as with Solomon wisdom, with Samson strength, with job patience, with Paul zeal, &c: but for poverty they receive riches, for weakness strength, for folly wisdom, for servitude freedom, for grief joy, for sin righteousness, for death life, yea all good things whatsoever. Wherefore if the faithful man be pressed with poverty, he may here learn that by Christ he is adopted to be the Son of God, and so may be comforted, saying to himself: How can he be poor which hath God to his Father? who both is able to give all things necessary, for his is the earth and all that therein is, and also will give the same, because he is most loving and gracious to his children. Again, if he feel in himself weakness, he may learn here that he is not able of himself to attain unto strength, but that it is the gift of Christ, who strengtheneth such as believe in him, & so may be stirred up by hearty prayer to ask the same of him, that he will vouchsafe by his holy spirit to strengthen and confirm him, that he may be able to perform that by grace, which by nature and of himself he shall never be able to do: as mightily to subdue the rebellious flesh, strongly to resist, and at the last valiantly to overcome the temptations of Satan, patiently to bear the troubles of the world, and constantly to contemn the allurements of the same. Moreover, if he thirst after divine and heavenly wisdom, (which is to know God aright, and those things that are necessary to be known to the attaining of salvation) he may find here largely and lively set forth, that Christ came his Father's Ambassador and Messenger to men, that by him they might be brought to the right knowledge of God, and into all truth, so that by him we are enlightened with the knowledge of God, by him we are instructed in all truth, and consequently by him we obtain divine and heavenly wisdom. Here also shall he learn that Christ was made under the law, that he might redeem them which were in bondage under the law, & of servile bondmen make them free sons, even the children of God. Furthermore, if grief and heaviness come upon him, he is here taught where true joy may be had, even in Christ jesus alone, that in him only he may find sure comfort, sovereign medicines, present remedy, true joy of heart and quietness of conscience. Finally, whereas we are sinful, and have by our sins justly deserved Gods eternal wrath and most heavy vengeance, he shall here learn that Christ hath paid the ransom for our sins, and pacified Gods most grievous wrath and displeasure justly conceived against us. And because it is not sufficient that due satisfaction be made for sins, and God's wrath appeased, but we must also appear righteous before God, it is here showed, that as by one man's disobedience many were made sinners, so by the obedience of one, namely of jesus Christ, as many as believe in him shallbe made righteous, inasmuch as his righteousness is imputed to them as their own, whereby they appear perfectly righteous before God, and are accepted of him: so that whereas they had of themselves deserved eternal death, they are through Christ accounted worthy of everlasting life. But what do I go about to rehearse the infinite treasures which the faithful enjoy through Christ? it shall be sufficient to conclude with the Apostle Paul, and say: If God spared not his own Son, but gave him for us all to death, how shall he not with him give us all things also? Now forasmuch as these things, and the right means to attain unto them, are in these Sermons of that most learned Divine Martin Luther most learnedly, yea even divinely set forth, they may undoubtedly be a singular mean, not only to instruct them which be ignorant in matters of salvation, but also to increase and confirm the knowledge of such, as have already well profited in Christian religion. Howbeit there is annexed hereunto sound and absolute doctrine concerning good works and godly conversation, as being most necessary to be of all Christians perfectly known, and effectually followed. For Christians through Christ being become the Sons of God, how unmeet, yea how abominable a thing is it that they should resemble Satan in their doings? being now made the members of Christ, how detestable a thing is it that they should be instruments of iniquity? being now the temple of the holy Ghost, how beastly a thing were it to defile the same with the filthiness of sin? Finally having received so many and so great benefits of God through Christ, how wicked and shameful a thing should it be, to be unthankful to so gracious a God, to be disobedient to so loving a Father, in any wise to displease so merciful a Saviour? But it shallbe needless much to stand upon this point, seeing it is not unknown to the faithful with how great endeavour they ought to avoid that which is evil, and embrace that which is good, and therefore shall sincere & perfect doctrine concerning good works be unto them no less commodious and profitable, then needful and necessary. For the causes above specified especially among other, I have (right Worshipful) though not finely, yet faithfully translated these Sermons into our vulgar tongue, and have done mine endeavour for the publishing of the same, which I do humbly dedicate to your Worship's protection, by your zealous godliness and godly zeal chief moved thereunto, whereby I am induced to think that you will well accept of them. For as the godly do with David delight in the Ark of the Covenant, in the Tabernacle of the Lord, in the holy Mount Zion, that is, in the Church of God: so do they with the same David desire the building of this house of God, the flourishing of this vine, the peace and prosperity of this heavenly jerusalem, and therefore that which is a mean and furtherance hereunto they do not only love and like, but also highly esteem, and heartily pray for. Wherefore (right Worshipful) I think it altogether superfluous to go about with words to procure your well liking and accepting of these Sermons, forasmuch as they tend only to this end, that the Church of God may by them be edified, as in the premises is of me declared. Whereas in translating them I have used a plain kind of style (yet such as sufficiently expresseth the meaning of the author) and not studied for curious words & eloquent phrases, the cause thereof is, for that I prefer plainness with profit, before much curiosity with smaller commodity, so that I nothing at all fear that in this respect they shallbe misliked of the godly, whose misliking only I endeavour to avoid. Thus (as it seems unto me) having entreated sufficiently of those things which I thought pertinent to my present purpose, I do here conclude, desiring the Lord God, that he will by his holy Spirit always govern and direct you in the true obedience of his blessed word, to the glory of his divine Name, to the profit of your neighbours, and comfort of your conscience, so shall you assuredly have prosperous success in all your affairs, and at the last obtain everlasting joys and endless felicity, by the only means of Christ jesus our Saviour. Your Worships humbly at commandment W. GACE. AN ADMONITION TO THE CHRISTIAN READER. FOR the commendation of this work, and the Author thereof, there shall not need I trust at this present any great discourse to be made, forasmuch as so many good books of the same writer be already set abroad, whereby may sufficiently be conjectured what is to be thought of this also. Again because the work itself is such, containing such matter of heavenly consolation, that without any further commendation of other, it yieldeth cause sufficient to commend itself. Only this than remaineth, to entreat and exhort the reader, but to peruse & read the same, who in so doing shall find I doubt not, neither to lack great cause in us to set forth these Sermons, nor less necessity in the readers to bestow pains in perusing and reading them, for the dignity of the matter, and singular fruit therein to be found. For what more worthy matter can be, than to set forth Christ in his right glory, in his full riches and royal estate to the hearts and souls of men, especially such as are heavy laden and distressed in spirit? what more comfortable hearing, or doctrine more true, then of forgiveness and remission of sins, so graciously purchased, so freely offered by our Saviour, so clearly preached by his ministers? or what riches more excellent, than faith fixed in Christ, and hope established in the promises of life? or what study more fruitful, then to seek the kingdom of God? For where the fruit of all other studies decayeth and hath his end, the fruit of this study abideth for ever. And therefore not without cause we be so willed by our Saviour himself, first to seek for this kingdom and righteousness thereof, promising withal in an other place, that he which seeketh shall find. In the seeking of which kingdom two special notes we have to learn and search, first the glory & grace of the King, secondly the wealth and felicity of the subjects. In which two parts as the whole sum of all our spiritual comfort most principally consisteth, grounded in the holy Scriptures: so of all expositors of the same Scriptures, I know none or few, in these our days, more lively to open these comforts unto us out of God's word, than this Doctor and Preacher of these Sermons here following: which as he hath done most effectually first in his own tongue to his country people, then in Latin to the learned: so this translator hath no less plainly and faithfully englished the same for the commodity and use of our contryfolke of England. By whose means and industry this vantage we have now gained, that we have gotten unto us one good preacher in England more than we had before, to the comfort and edification of all such as be disposed to read and learn. So that in such towns and villages, wherein before were mute ministers, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, this Preacher now may supply the lack, and there be received as their person, if they please, preaching now in their own speech unto them, and putting them to no charges of any tithes. And in other places where more plenty of learned teachers is, yet notwithstanding no hurt shall come to admit this stranger as a coadjutor, or fellow helper unto them. Whereby I nothing doubt, but in so doing, all such as shallbe willing to give ear to this Preacher, as well they that be learned, shall find wherein to grow in more perfection, as also the unlearned wherein to be instructed sufficiently to their soul's health in Christ jesus. In whom I wish to thee and to all true Christian readers all spiritual grace and heavenly wisdom, to bless thy studies, to prosper thy labours, to establish thy faith, to multiply thy consolations, to direct thy ways, and finally to glorify thee both body and soul in his blessed kingdom for ever. Amen. I. FOX. T. V. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER, OF THE NATIVITY OF CHRIST. Luke 2. Verse. 1. ANd it came to pass in those days, that there came a decree from Augustus Caesar, that all the world should be taxed. 2. (This first taxing was made, when Cyrenius was governor of Syria.) 3. Therefore went all to be taxed every man to his own city. 4. And joseph also went up from Galilee out of a city called Nazareth, into judea, unto the city of David, which is called Bethlehem (because he was of the house and lineage of David,) 5. To be taxed with Marie, that was given him to wife, which was with child. 6. And so it was, that while they were there, the days were accomplished that she should be delivered, 7. And she brought forth her first begotten son, and wrapped him in swaddling clothes, & laid him in a manger, because there was no room for them in the Inn. 8. And there were in the same country shepherds, abiding in the field, and watching their flock by night. 9 And lo, the Angel of the Lord came upon them, and the glory of the Lord shone about them, and they were sore afraid. 10. Then the Angel said unto them, Be not afraid: for behold, I bring you glad tidings of great joy, that shall be to all people. 11. That is, that unto you is borne this day in the city of David, a Saviour, which is Christ the Lord. 12. And this shall be a sign to you: ye shall find the babe swaddled and laid in a manger. 13. And strait way there was with the Angella multitude of heavenly soldiers praising God, and saying: 14. Glory be to God on high, and peace in earth, and towards men goodwill. The sum of this text. 1 WHereas the Evangelist here describeth the time and place of the nativity of Christ, first herein is required faith of us, to wit, that we believe this to be the same Christ, of whom these things be recorded. Moreover the house and stock of David is here notified and showed forth, whereof our Messiah should rise. 2 The shepherds which are here mentioned, are the first fruits of those jews, which come unto Christ, as the Wisemen from the East are the first fruits of the Gentiles, and the innocent infants of all them, which must bear the cross for Christ's sake. 3 Whereas the Angel of the Lord appeareth to the shepherds in great glory, it signifieth, that the Gospel cometh unto men with the glory of God. First in deed it maketh us afraid, for it condemneth our darkness and whatsoever is in us, until we hear the comfort, which is here declared unto the shepherds in these comfortable words: Be not afraid, behold, I bring you tidings of great joy, which shall be to all people, because unto you is borne this day a Saviour, which is Christ the Lord. 4 Moreover, whereas one Angel first preacheth unto the shepherds, that noteth to us the Prince of all preachers Christ himself. Secondly, whereas many Angels are gathered together, it signifieth the multitude of preachers, who all say with one mouth: Glory be to God, and peace unto men. 5 The fruit and profit wherefore Christ took flesh upon him, is here expressed to be evangelical peace & good will to men, whereof the hymn of the Angels maketh mention: Glory be to God on high, and in earth peace, good will towards men. The exposition of the text. YE have often times heard this history before, and must hear it still both this year, and every year, though to sluggish & drowsy Christians, that are soon weary and cloyed with good things, the same peradventure may seem tedious. But to them that are endued with true faith, it always cometh again as new. For the holy Ghost can speak so diversly of one thing, that to them which be his, it always seemeth new. Moreover we might speak at large of this history, for it is very full of matter, if we should not want time, and if it were not perilous lest we should somewhere stray from the purpose: Nevertheless we will entreat somewhat thereof, as God shall permit. Ye have already heard in the text, how the Angel himself expresseth all this history, giving us to understand, that the same is published for our cause: and that the fruit thereof doth redound and appertain to us only, and is wrought to our salvation. And therefore the Angel speaking to the shepherds, saith in these words: Be not afraid, behold, I bring you tidings of great joy which shall be unto all people, that is, that unto you is borne this day in the city of David a Saviour, which is Christ the Lord. Christ came not for his own cause, but to work our salvation Here is declared first, that his nativity doth pertain unto us, when he saith: unto you is borne a Saviour. For the Lord Christ came not for his own cause only, but that he might help and secure us. Wherefore let us most diligently endeavour, that we believe the Angel, and we shall enjoy the whole benefit. I have heretofore oftentimes said, that the Gospel preacheth nothing else but faith, that the Angel also here doth, and this must all preachers do, otherwise they be not true ministers. For the Angel was here a beginning and example to all preachers. Now we must in this place speak of a double nativity, namely of our own and of Christ's. But before I begin to entreat hereof, I will handle the history briefly, that ye may lay it up in your heart, and may be partakers of the joy which the Angel here bringeth. First therefore the Evangelist saith: And it came to pass in those days, that there came a decree from Augustus Caesar, that all the world should be taxed. This first taxing was made when Cyrenius was governor of Syria. Therefore went all to be taxed every man to his own city. The time of the coming of the Messiah foretold by the Patriarch jacob. Gen. 49.10. Ye know right well, that the jews had a promise made of the Patriarch jacob, that a Prince, lawgiver or ruler, of the house of juda, should not be wanting in judea, until the Messiah which was promised them did come. For the words of jacob to juda are plain after this sort: The sceptre shall not departed from juda, & a lawgiver from between his feet, until Silo come. Now at this time the case was so, that the Romans possessed judea, and had set a Lieutenant over it, whom the Evangelist here calleth Cyrenius. The jews before for a long time had used priests for Kings, when as the Maccabees had obtained the kingdom, so that the dominion of the house of juda was already taken away and suppressed, neither was there any Prince or ruler, of the stock and blood of juda, governor over the people. But that Christ or the Messiah should now come, that was a great sign, that the prophecy at that time especially might be fulfilled. Wherefore the Evangelist saith here, that at the time when Christ was borne, Augustus Cesar had set a lieutenant over judea, under whom the jews should offer themselves to be taxed. As if he said: Even at that time at which he should be borne, he is borne. All that lived under the Roman Emperor were compelled to pay tax, for a testimony that they were subject unto him. This the jews knew, but they did not understand the Prophecy. jacob had said thus: The sceptre shall not departed from juda, and a lawgiver from between his feet, until Silo come: That is, a Prince and ruler of the stock of juda shall not be wanting in judea, until Christ come. jacob did sufficiently show in these words, The jews misinterpret the prophecy of jacob concerning the coming of the Messiah. that he should be wanting at the coming of Christ. Moreover, whereas they understood it so, as though such a Silo should come, as should bear rule with the sword, it is a false understanding thereof, neither can it be gathered out of that text. For he saith thus, that at the coming of Christ the temporal kingdom of the jews should end. So Luke also here showeth that very time, when it behoved this to be done. It followeth moreover in the text: And joseph also went up from Galilee out of a city called Nazareth, into judea, unto the city of David, which is called Bethlehem, (because he was of the house and lineage of David) to be taxed with Marie that was given him to wife, which was with child. joseph also and Marie obeyed this commandment of Cesar, and submitted themselves as other honest and obedient men, and went to Bethlehem, which was the chief and head city of the house of juda, and suffered themselves to be taxed. Marry, inasmuch as she was with child, & near her delivery, might have excused herself, that she should not take this journey upon her, but she doth not so, they will not be an offence to others. Moreover it ought thus to be that they should come to Bethlehem, because of the prophecy of the Prophet Micheas chap. 5. which foretold that Christ should be borne in Bethlehem of juda. Mark I pray you, how that tax must serve hereunto, which neither Cesar nor his Lieutenant did know. Thus God dealeth in his works, in which he useth the means of heathen and evil men, whereby he may make us, which are miserable & wretched men, and so deeply drowned in flesh and blood, certain of our faith, which the Evangelist Luke here specially setteth forth, inasmuch as he eftsoons declareth in the history, the places and times, lest that we should be deceived concerning this Christ. The manner of his birth the Evangelist showeth moreover, saying: And so it was, that while they were there, the days were accomplished, that she should be delivered: and she brought forth her first begotten son, and wrapped him in swaddling clothes, & laid him in a manger, because there was no room for them in the Inn. Let it nothing move us, or be any offence unto us, that the Lord cometh into the world in so great poverty and misery. For it ought to be a great joy and comfort unto us, rather than in any wise to discomfort & discourage us. It may seem a strange thing, and hard and straight dealing, that a Virgin which was new married, and that year joined to her husband, might not be permitted to bring forth her child at Nazareth in her own house, but was enforced in poor estate to go almost three days journey being great with child? And when she came at her journeys end, she had not so much place in the Inn, as that she might be delivered in some parlour or chamber. The Inn being full, there was none that would vouchsafe to give place to this woman being great with child, that she might have the use of their chamber, but she was enforced to go into a stable, that there she might bring forth the Creator of all creatures. Here may be plainly perceived what is the knowledge and wisdom of the world concerning divine matters, namely, that it is blind, and vain in understanding, that it seeth not the works of God, and if it be so that it seeth them, that it knoweth not what they mean. Comfort against worldly misery & contempt. Hereof let us learn, not to be moved or discouraged, if we be poor and miserable, and forsaken of the world, for we have here great comfort. If Christ the maker of all things, with his beloved mother, was cast into so great misery, and so contemned of the world, why may not the same also come unto us? or why should not we being in misery, and compassed about with all calamities, bear them patiently, yea if God will at any time kill us with adversity and distress? But this thing is to be lamented, that we do exclude such an example from our eyes, but much farther from our heart. We should easily suffer adversity and contempt, if so be that we believed, and had a sure trust and confidence in God, when as we see that the Lord Christ suffered this misery, poverty, and calamity. Wherefore this is first thoroughly to be marked and considered of us, how Christ came into the world in so great poverty, and found not so much as one in so great a city, which was dutiful and beneficial toward him. Thus this nativity was received in the earth, over which notwithstanding all the heavenly soldiers did exceedingly rejoice, as it followeth: And there were in the same country shepherds, abiding in the field and watching their flock by night. And lo, the Angel of the Lord came upon them, and the glory of the Lord shone about them, and they were sore afraid. Here is declared, How God setteth forth the nativity of his son. how God in heaven setteth forth this nativity, which the world contemneth, yea knoweth not, neither seeth. This joy is so great in heaven, that it can not be contained therein, but bursteth forth, that it may be declared and communicated to the world. For the Angel here bringeth tidings of great joy to the shepherds, which to them is great comfort, which the world notwithstanding contemneth and rejecteth, but is of the Angels had in great admiration, yea and if they might, they would with greater praises, and more goodly pomp have set forth so wonderful a thing. But it was not meet it should be so. For God would set forth an example in this his Son, that the ostentation & glorying of the world might at the last be neglected, and that it might be known what the world is. Man's reason seemeth always very wise unto itself, it always looketh unto things that are aloft, it considereth only high matters, it humbleth not itself to those things that are below. This now is an excellent comfort, that the Angels and all the heavenly soldiers do esteem him so much, whom the world contemneth, whereby we may learn that albeit we be outcasts in the world, there be notwithstanding that have regard and care of us. Howbeit we do hardly believe this, we do not fasten our eyes thereupon, but look unto great, precious, and high things, according to the example of the world, and are dismayed, as soon as a little misfortune cometh, neither thinking nor knowing, if any adversity assaileth us, that it is done by the will of God. Believe thou this undoubtedly, if it had not so pleased God, he would not have suffered this his beloved son to be laid in a manger, he would not have permitted him to be borne in so great poverty, misery, and contempt. But the poorer and more despised that he is before the world, so much greater care and regard God and all the heavenly soldiers have of him, so that we may conceive comfort hereby, and believe assuredly, that the more we are rejected of the world, the more we are esteemed before God. The blind & vain devotion of many Thou mayst find many which do here think thus, and are touched with such devotion as this: O, if I had been there then, with how great diligence would I have served this child and done for him? yea I would have washed even his swaddling clothes. O, if I had been so happy as the shepherds, that I also might have seen the Lord lying in a manger. Now in deed thou wouldst be ready to do those duties, when thou knowest Christ to be so high and noble. Surely thou wouldst have been as slack in thy duty at that time as the Citizens of Bethlehem were. Thou revoluest in thy mind childish and altogether foolish cogitations. Why dost thou not perform the like duties now? Behold Christ walking before thee in thy neighbour, do for him, & bestow benefits upon him, whatsoever thou shalt bestow upon thy neighbour which is needy and destitute of help, that thou shalt bestow upon Christ himself, as he shall say in the last day to the elect: Matth. 25.40 Whatsoever ye have done to one of the least of these my brethren, ye have done it to me. Wherefore it is a vain and very foolish thing to admit such childish cogitations. Let us therefore at the last open our eyes, let us not hear examples of so great importance in vain, otherwise the time will come when we shall be grievously punished. But with what words did the Angel speak unto the shepherds? the Evangelist saith after this sort: Then the Angel said unto them: Be not afraid: for behold, I bring you glad tidings of great joy, that shall be to all people, that is, that unto you is borne this day in the city of David, a Saviour, which is Christ the Lord. And this shall be a sign to you: Ye shall find the babe swaddled, and laid in a manger. Learn by these words of the Angel, how to use rightly the nativity of the Lord Christ, neither let it suffice you to hear them only. A great treasure hidden in the earth or some other where, is to no use, but if it be opened, and occupied, then is it profitable and precious. Wherefore give heed hereunto, that thou mayst use this nativity, otherwise it shall be no commodity and comfort unto thee. For whereas thou knowest the bare history only, to wit, what came to pass in his nativity, and that he was borne needy and poor, thou shalt take no greater commodity hereby, then if thou hear a history written of the king of France, or of some other puissant Prince, whereby no commodity or comfort should come unto thee. But how must we use this nativity rightly and with fruit? What it is to use the nativity of christ aright. Our own nativity of what sort it is. Even as I have said, if we be thus persuaded that he was borne for us, that his nativity is ours. Our nativity is such, that it altogether aboundeth with sin, as David saith Psal. 51: Behold I was shapen in wickedness, & in sin hath my mother conceived me. As if he would say: here is nothing but sin, as well in the conception as in the birth, whatsoever I bring with me from my mother's womb, it is wholly damnable, it is due to death, Satan, & hell. Forasmuch then as our nativity, skin & hear are defiled, what good can come thereof? This is our title which we have received from Adam, in this one thing we may glory and in nothing else at all, namely, that every infant that is borne into this world, is wholly in the power of sin, death, Satan, hell, and eternal damnation: our nativity is altogether miserable, and on every side to be lamented. To deliver us from this nativity, God sent an other nativity, which it behoved to be pure & without all spot, that it might make this unclean & sinful nativity pure. This is that nativity of the Lord Christ his only begotten son. The nativity of Christ. Wherefore he would not have him borne of flesh & blood infected with sin, but it behoved that he should be borne of a pure Virgin. He suffered no spot at all or sin in his flesh, but replenished it with the holy Ghost, & permitted nothing to stick therein, but those miseries which proceed of flesh and blood, as hunger, thirst, adversity, and death, sin excepted, as the Epistle to the Heb. chap. 4. witnesseth, that he was in all things tempted in like sort, yet without sin. This is that most excellent thing, which the Lord our God hath done for us, whereof none taketh any fruit, but he that believeth. And none will easily believe this, but he that feeleth of what sort his own nativity is. He that hath no feeling of his own misery, tasteth not of this nativity of Christ. But if we feel our misery, it followeth forthwith that we cry with the Prophet David and say: Behold I was shapen in wickedness, and in sin hath my mother conceived me: for we feel our sin and our evil nativity. When death shall come upon us, and our heart shallbe touched with anguish & grief, them at the last it may be, that we would cast of this happy & pure nativity, and will exceedingly thirst after it to enjoy it. But now when as we feel not our sins, neither do as yet taste of the bitterness of sin, it stideth coldly to the heart, we hear it in deed, but truly it doth not thoroughly enter unto the heart. For if a man did believe, that this nativity was for his commodity, he would fear neither sin, nor death. Wherefore I have said that a Christian must believe, and doubt nothing, that the nativity of Christ is as well his, as it is the Lord Christ's. And as he hath of the virgin pure blood and flesh, so that he himself also is pure, and that this virgin is his mother spiritually, as she was the mother of Christ carnally. Let the heart have sure confidence in this persuasion, otherwise it will be in an evil case. This the Angel signifieth in these words when he saith: Unto you he is borne, Christ is borne unto us, and is made wholly ours. as if he said, what soever he is and hath, ye may challenge it to yourselves. Also he is your Saviour, not that ye should only look upon him, but which is able to deliver you from the tyranny of sin, death, Satan, and all evil: yea and how great soever he be, he is borne unto you, and is yours with all that he hath. Now forasmuch as he is mine, and hath changed his nativity into mine, his flesh & blood also is mine, he himself is mine with all wherewith he is endued, so that I dare say unto his mother: Behold, that child which thou hast brought forth, is mine, his flesh and blood are my flesh and blood, yea and thou art my mother, and I will be counted of thee for thy son, for whatsoever Christ bringeth with him, it must be mine, even as he himself is mine. If so be that his nativity be mine, being of a virgin, and without sin, replenished with the holy Ghost, my nativity also must be of a virgin, and pure from sin. Here now Eve the first mother is no more my mother, for it must needs be that that nativity do utterly die and perish, that there may be no sin remaining. Here this mother Marie is to be set against that mother, of whom I was borne in sin. And thus the Angel bringeth with him great joy, for it can not be, but that the heart should be made glad, when it enjoyeth this Saviour as his own. When we come to hand strokes, that is, when we feel our misery and calamity, there remaineth no comfort or help, than my heart can not lift itself above the heavy burden, wherewith it is pressed down, but it must needs faint and be discouraged. But if I conceive a trust, and doubt nothing that Christ's nativity is mine, that my sins be taken away by him. I become exceeding joyful, & am confirmed with comfort, whereby all heaviness and sorrow is shaken of. True comfort and joy. This only is that comfort, and no other, which maketh a good conscience, which feareth neither death nor hell, for it always resteth upon the word of God, which giveth Christ unto us. Wherefore it is a thing altogether miserable and lamentable, if such a good conscience be sought in any other things then here. Thou shalt find no joy, no peace of conscience, neither in heaven, nor in earth, but in this Christ, be thou certain and sure thereof. Wherefore let all other things pass, and cleave unto him only, if thou desire to be bold and courageous against sin, death, the devil, hell, & all things that are against thee. He is the Lord & Saviour. Ye understand I trust, this right well, forasmuch as ye have now heard it so often. But I do with so great earnestness as it were beat it into your minds, that ye may see, that there is but one thing taught in the whole Scripture, which I would have to stick firmly and undoubtedly in you, this is that which I have said, that the use of this nativity be known. They which seek any other thing, and use not this nativity, are in a desperate case, as ye have heard. Which ye have very well expressed in this song, the author whereof whosoever he was, did nothing err from the purpose, to wit, that the only child Christ is our comfort. Which words surely are of very great importance, and deserve most diligently to be weighed. For ye did sing after this sort: A child highly to be praised is borne unto us this day of a chaste virgin, to the comfort of us wretches. If that child had not been borne, we had perished all. Is it not said here, that there is no comfort beside only Christ? which in deed is most true. Without doubt the holy Ghost taught him that made this song to sing after this sort. If the case stand thus, it followeth that Monks, Nuns, Sacrificing Priests, and all which leave this child, and seek to come to heaven by other ways and works, be condemned. For such say that they need not this child, otherwise they would confess, that their own works be nothing worth. These therefore do nothing but deceive and seduce, of whom men's hearts are procured to departed from Christ, and are led away unto Satan. In the aforesaid song is contained moreover: He is the salvation of us all, oh sweet jesus Christ, forasmuch as thou art borne man, defend us from hell. I greatly desire that ye did well understand this. It is song abroad every where, but there is none that thoroughly believeth it. Whereupon it cometh that some do oppugn these things, especially they, which know, sing, and babble very much of them, that truly I fear, that Christ is never more blasphemed, then at this feast of his nativity, and at other great feasts, that it should be no marvel, if, when he is so blasphemed, he should suffer the whole world to be swallowed up: but the last day is at hand. Wherefore endeavour that ye may sound this excellent song in your heart, and as ye sing it in mouth, so ye may also believe it. If the case stand thus, that all things without this child are vain, No means but by Christ to come unto heaven. what need is there then of much business? why dost thou run this way & that way, and endeavourest to do works, whereby thou mayst prepare thee a seat in heaven? which they especially do, that murmur up many Rosaries, and do continually extol the mother of God in mouth only, but in heart think more evil of her then of all others: & not only of her, but of Christ himself also the Lord and Saviour. Wherefore commit this so to memory, that ye may be certainly persuaded, that whatsoever dependeth of any other then of that child, it is all damnable, otherwise the Angel had lied. This must be counted for most certain without any addition, neither are these trifles to be weighed, to wit, that this sufficeth not that thou dost believe, more things are to be added. Forasmuch then as the Angel saith, that this child doth all, and that he is the Saviour, and if he be not, that all labour is lost, tell me, how can it follow, that some thing is to be done of thee, when it is already done before? Dost thou go about to do any thing that thou mayst obtain him? That child suffereth not himself to be apprehended and obtained by works, for albeit thou heap together works, notwithstanding thou dost not yet enjoy the child. Moreover thy works be unclean, by which such a great treasure can not be gotten, no though they were even holy. But he is to be apprehended in heart, so that thou believe, and say to the Angel: I believe that it is true which thou sayest, and nothing at all doubting I count this child for a Saviour borne unto me. And this part whereof we have now spoken, pertaineth to faith. Now we have here also an other part pertaining to Christian life, namely charity, that works may not be rejected. If thou wilt do works, do them not in that respect, that thou persuade thyself that thou dost obtain any thing of God by them. A most excellent example to be followed of all Christians in doing of good works. But follow this example: such a one as Christ hath showed himself to thee be thou also toward thy neighbour. If thou do more nearly consider the example of Christ, thou shalt find nothing but mere love. Whereas he humbleth himself and is borne in so great poverty, that declareth nothing, but love toward thee, which moved him to become a servant for thy sake, as Paul Philip. 2. saith, who knew that he might remain in divine glory. Now this he did for thy commodity, he bowed his eyes to thy misery and calamity, which art so miserable a man, wholly damnable & abounding with sin, thy nativity is unclean, thy misery is on every side most great, thou hast deserved nothing but the wrath of God & eternal damnation. If thou hadst been a Carthusian Monk a thousand years, thou couldst not deliver thyself from this misery and damnation. But Christ is able to help thee, he is rich and hath strength sufficient: seeing therefore he can do such things, he doth them willingly and with pleasure. Love enforceth him so far, that he employeth all things for thy sake, and bestoweth whatsoever he hath for thee. Forasmuch then as Christ showeth so great love toward thee, and giveth unto thee whatsoever he is able, do thou likewise to thy neighbour. Wilt thou work works? derive them to thy neighbour, who is compassed with troubles & miseries. Thou must do nothing for this cause, that Christ hath need thereof, whereby thou mayst enrich him, for neither was he bountiful to this end, that he might any thing profit his father thereby, or that he might receive any commodity of him, but he did it only for this cause, that therein the father might be well pleased, inasmuch as he submitteth himself wholly to his father's will, and loveth us with so great affection? After the same sort we also must do in our works toward our neighbour, which we ought therefore only to do, that we may give thanks to the father, that he showeth his favour unto us, for that he hath given his beloved son unto me, to bestow upon me whatsoever he hath. When I believe this undoubtedly, I burst forth and say: If God showeth unto me so great benefits and favour in his beloved son, that he suffereth him to bestow all things upon me, I also will do the like again, and bestow all things whereby I may do good to my neighbour and love him. And so I do not lift up mine eyes unto heaven, but I go thither, where my neighbour is oppressed with adversity, poverty, sickness, sin, or error, and I help him wherein soever I am able. Thus do thou whosoever thou art, which mindest to do true good works: as thou wouldst have done to thyself, if thou were troubled with poverty, so do thou to thy neighbour being poor. Again, if thy neighbour be a sinner, and thou seest it, but thou thyself art without sin, and hast a holy nativity, go, preach unto him, whereby he also may be delivered. But thou must do all these things freely in every respect, as Christ hath done for thee without all works and merits, of pure grace, love, and mercy. Such works see thou do, if thou wilt do good and Christian works in deed. God hath no need of them, nevertheless thou must do them in respect of him, inasmuch as it so pleaseth him, and he will have it to be so. This only is rightly to do good works, which those hypocrites do not, which will merit heaven by their chastity, poverty, & obedience. Unto whom I pray you are such works of theirs good? I myself need them not, neither do they profit my neighbour, wherefore it is mere deceit, whereas a name is given to works as though they did merit heaven, when as they are nothing worth, neither profitable to others. Say up these things in your hearts, and do also according to them. In all this text being discussed from the beginning to the ending, ye have these two things, namely faith and love. If ye shall keep these, than both the holy nativity of Christ shall be a help, commodity, and comfort unto you, and also ye shall be spiritually the children of his mother, as Christ jesus is her child carnally. An exposition of the song of the Angels, Glory be to God on high, etc. Glory be to God on high, and in earth peace, good will towards men. Forasmuch as this song is very common, and there be few that rightly understand it, when as notwithstanding it containeth many things in it, I think good to handle it somewhat at large. The Angels in this hymn apply three things to three: glory to God, peace to the earth, and good will unto men. The first is the honour or glory of God, Glory due to God alone. with which we must begin, that in all things praise and glory may be ascribe to God, as to him which doth, giveth, and hath all things, so that none may challenge any good thing at all unto himself, neither aught to count it his own. Glory is so due to God only, that no part thereof may be derived to any other. Adam being persuaded of Satan, went about to take this glory to himself, whereby all men fell into the displeasure of God, & have that vice so thoroughly fixed in their mind, that no other thing can be so hardly plucked away from them. Every man pleaseth himself, no man can abide to seem that he is nothing, or is able to do nothing, whereof come almost all evils, so many contentions, wars, and innumerable other discommodities. This glory Christ gave to God his father, teaching that all our things are nothing before God but sins, which deserve his wrath and indignation, and nothing less than glory. Wherefore there is no cause, that we should even never so little please ourselves or glory in them, but rather that we should be ashamed and fear, being set in so great peril and confusion, that so all our glory and pleasing of ourselves may pass away and come to nothing, and we may rejoice being destitute of our own glory, that we may be found & saved in Christ alone. The second is peace in earth. For, Where true peace is, and where it is not. as where the glory of God is not, and where every one seeketh his own glory, there can not be peace, according as Solomon saith Proverb. 13. Among the proud there is ever strife: so contrariwise, where the glory of God is known, there true peace also must needs be. For why should they contend? why should they disagree, which do know every one of them, that they have no good thing of their own, but that all things which are, which they have, and which they are able to do, come from God, to whose power also they commit all things, they in the mean season being very well content, that they have God favourable unto them? How also can it be, that when one counteth nothing of himself and the things that be his, he should be so careful of himself and his things, that he should move contention with any because of them? Such believe that Christ only is made all things unto them, him they think on, and for him alone they contend. Hereupon it certainly followeth, that there can be no contention or discord at all among true Christians: The peace of Christians described by isaiah. isaiah. 11.9. which manner of peace of Christians Esay declareth, & saith: No man shall do evil unto an other, no man shall destroy an other in my holy hill, that is, in the Church of Christ. The cause hereof he addeth next after: The earth is full of the knowledge of God, that is, for all know God, as to whom all good things do belong, and all their own things they confess to be nothing but sins, they may easily therefore have peace among themselves. isaiah. 2.4. Wherefore the same Esay saith in an other place: They shall break their sword into mattocks, & their spears to make scythes, and one shall not lift up a weapon against an other, neither shall they learn ro fight from thence forth. Hereupon Christ is called the king of peace, or the prince of peace, of whom Solomon was a figure, who is called peaceable. For Christ is truly called our king Solomon, that is, peaceable, which hath restored peace unto us inwardly with God through faith in him, and outwardly with our neighbours through love, whereby we live friendly with all men: and so by him we have peace every where both inwardly, and outwardly in the earth. Good will. The third is good will of men. Not that good will, whereby we work good works, but whereby we take in good part all things that happen, whether they be good or evil, sweet or sour, and do receive them with a quiet heart. The Angels knew that the peace which they did sing of, should be only among Christians, which in all things do depend upon Christ, and usurp nothing to themselves as their own. But in the mean season the world and Satan, which do exceedingly envy them, do on every side procure trouble unto them, and persecute them even unto the death, so that they may look for no peace or quietness at all of these, for Christ saith joh. 16. In me ye shall have peace, but in the world ye shall have affliction. Therefore it was not enough for the Angels to have song, peace in earth, but it was to be added: and good will towards men, that when they, as much as they are able, have peace with all men, and nevertheless are continually hated of all men, and do suffer persecution, they may always keep a good will, whereby they may take all things in good part, and give thanks to God, Christian's must bear persecution and trouble patiently. howsoever he dealeth with them, or suffereth them to be dealt with, they may not murmur, but resign and commit themselves wholly to the will of God, yea (forasmuch as they know that God doth dispose & govern all things, whom they are sure, that they have a merciful and most favourable father unto them through Christ) they may even rejoice & be glad in persecutions, according to that saying of Paul in the Epistle to the Romans: We rejoice in afflictions and persecutions. For inasmuch as they have a joyful conscience and a sure trust of the favour of God, they can not but count all things for the best, whatsoever happen. Behold what kind of good will it is in all things, whether they be prosperous or unprosperous, which the Angels do here wish unto men, & sing to be proper to the believers. Where good will is not, there peace can not continue. Where such good will is wanting, there peace can not long be. Men take all things in the worse part, they take nothing in good part, but do always increase and double the evil. Hereupon howsoever God dealeth with them, they like it not, but require that they may be dealt otherwise with, and so it falleth out as it is in Psal. 18. with the pure thou shalt be pure, and with the froward thou shalt be froward, that is, with him that counteth all things pure to himself, and hath that good will in all things, whereof we have spoken, thou also dost well agree, inasmuch as he pleaseth thee and all good men. But he that is froward, so that neither thou, nor those things that are thine do like him, can not but displease both thee and all good men. Of this well pleasing one an other Paul speaketh 1. Cor. 10. Endeavour to please all men, even as I please all. By what means shall this be done? If thou take all things in good part, and suffer others to please thee, thou also again shalt please others. The matter may be comprehended in one word: If thou wilt be liked of none, nothing shall be liked of thee: If thou wilt be liked of all, How far we may please men and submit ourselves unto them. suffer that all things may be also liked of thee, but so, that thou do not neglect the word of the Lord. For that aught to be preferred before all, without any regard had of all men, what pleaseth them, or what displeaseth them. But whatsoever may be done without transgressing the word of God, give place to all, & submit thy judgement to the judgement of others, that thou mayst take every thing in good part, which shall chance unto thee, & so thou shalt have the good will, whereof the Angels did sing. By this song it may be understood, what nature the Angels have. I omit those things which the Philosophers have dreamt hereof: here is so described what the Angels are, that it can not be more fully done, their heart and cogitations being declared. The first thing to be considered in the Angels. First with great joy they sing praises to God, acknowledging all things to be due unto him, and therefore do with an ardent mind, and singing glorify him. As therefore thou wouldst think of a right lowly, pure, and obedient heart, praising God, and always enjoying perpetual gladness in him, so think also of the Angels: and thou hast now the nature of Angels, as much as they have to do with God. The second thing which we ought to mark in the Angels. The second thing to be considered in them is their love towards us. Think that they are most loving toward us, which desire that it may go as well with us as with themselves, they do no less rejoice for our safety then for their own, & even in this hymn full of love to us ward, they declare themselves so affected toward us, that surely, we may think and rejoice of them, as of most loving friends. This is to know the Angels truly, not according to their essence, whereof the Philosophers do foolishly & without fruit babble many things, but according to their heart and mind, so that albeit I know not, what their nature is in itself, yet I know what is their chief desire, and their continual work. Thus much shall suffice at this time concerning the song of the Angels, and the fruit of the nativity of the child jesus Christ. God grant us his grace, that we may print these things in our heart, & according unto them also amend our life. Amen. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER, OF THE epiphany OR APPEARING OF CHRIST. Matth. 2. Verse. 1. WHen jesus then was borne at Bethlehem in judea, in the days of Herod the King, behold there came wise men from the East to jerusalem, 2. Saying, where is that king of the jews that is borne? for we have seen his star in the East, and are come to worship him. 3. When king Herod heard this, he was troubled, and all jerusalem with him: 4. And gathering together all the chief Priests and Scribes of the people, he asked of them, where Christ should be borne. 5. And they said unto him, at Bethlehem in judea: for so it is written by the Prophet, 6. And thou Bethlehem in the land of juda, art not the least among the Princes of juda: For out of thee shall come the governor, that shall feed that my people Israel. 7. Then Herod privily called the wise men, and diligently inquired of them the time of the star that appeared. 8. And sent them to Bethlehem, saying: Go and search diligently for the child, & when ye have found him, bring me word again, that I may come also and worship him. 9 So when they had heard the king, they departed: and lo, the star which they had seen in the East, went before them, till it came & stood over the place, where the child was. 10. And when they saw the star, they rejoiced with an exceeding great joy. 11. And went into the house, and found the child with Marie his mother, and fell down, & worshipped him, and opened their treasures and presented unto him gifts, even gold, & frankincense, and myrrh. WE celebrate this day a noble, and most comfortable feast, concerning the appearing of the Lord jesus, who appeared, a special comfort to all them which seek him with a strong faith: first to the wise men which came from the East: secondly to john the Baptist, when being about thirty years of age he was baptised of him in jordane, and the holy Ghost and voice of the father gave testimony of him, that he is the son of God: thirdly, when he showed his glory and power in a miracle, wherein he turned water into wine at a marriage, whereby he would procure reverence and estimation to matrimony, which now (Alas) is after a shameful sort torn, contemned, and rejected of the Pope & his adherents as a certain miserable and wretched state. For whatsoever God hath ordained, that of the world is contemned: whereof at convenient time we will speak more, and we have already as I think written sufficient thereof. Now we will speak in few words of the first appearance. The wise men of Arabia, which were industrious men, and without all doubt governors of that country (as it was at that time the manner in those parts) when they had seen the star in the East, breaking of all delay, made haste to jerusalem, diligently seeking for the king of the jews being new borne. Where we ought to mark, that they could neither seek nor find out this king, the Lord Christ, but by the star going before them, which at the last led them so far, that by the word of God they were certified, where this king was to be found. Without the word of God received by faith, we can not find Christ. So also is it with us: we can not find Christ without the Gospel, without the word of God. That must show him unto us, & bring us thither, where we may find him: which then only is done, when we receive the same Gospel by faith, otherwise, although we have it, hear it, and know it, it profiteth us nothing at all, we shall not therefore find him, no more surely than the Scribes found him, who notwithstanding had the Scriptures readily, and showed the way to other, not coming into it themselves, for the thing did not touch their hearts. They did drousily neglect that king, whom with great sighs they had looked for many ages. Wherefore it is not enough that we have the Gospel, or that we hear it, but we must believe it, and lay it up in the secrets of our heart, otherwise we shall never find Christ. Here also you see, that it doth not skill, whether one be learned or unlearned, instructed in many places of Scripture, or in few, unto whom God giveth the grace, he enjoyeth Christ. He respecteth not the person, but whom he draweth he is drawn, although in the mean season he provideth that the Gospel be always preached. After therefore that these wise men had found the child Christ, the king of the jews at Bethlehem, together with joseph and Marie, by the showing of the Scripture & guiding of the star, The wise men are not offended at the poor & miserable estate of Christ. they were nothing offended at the poor estate of the child, but being taught by the word, acknowledged that Child for the Messiah and king of the jews, whom the jews had looked for so many years, & opened their treasures before him, offering unto him gold, frankincense and myrrh. Wherein again we ought to mark the nature of faith, that it is offended at nothing, but cleaveth to the word only, and nothing esteemeth those things that shine outwardly. These wise men do not therefore disdain neither turn back, because the child together with his parents were without all pomp in poverty and misery, and nothing less than a kingly child appeareth unto them, but they go on, and undoubtedly acknowledge him for a king, as they had learned concerning him out of the Scriptures. Moreover they give unto him the honour meet for a king, they offer most precious gifts, which they had brought, being even of the best sort, out of their own country. Now the world would have done no such thing, but according to the manner thereof, would have looked for garments of purple, and resort of servants, and handmaidens. In such places it is wont to bestow his gifts, to wit, where there is great plenty and abundance of things before: yea it is of that quality, How the world dealeth with the poor and afflicted. that it depriveth the poor and afflicted of those things that they have, it taketh bread out of the mouth of the hungry & needy, which have nothing, but as they get it hardly, by labouring sore all that they are able. Whereof we have to learn, that if we will honour Christ with these wise men, We must not esteem those things which seem precious to the world, but those which to the world seem contemptible and of no value. we must shut our eyes, and turn them from all that which seemeth fair, goodly and noble before the world: Neither must thou be offended or abhor it, if any thing seem vile, contemptible and ridiculous unto the world: let this suffice thee, that thou knowest that it pleaseth God, which is in heaven. Take heed unto thyself concerning those things, which shine before the world, exercise thyself in those works, which seem unto reason foolish and light, as are, to help the needy, to comfort the afflicted, & to count the calamity of thy neighbour, thine own. If thou shalt be diligently exercised in these, and faith being thy guide, shalt endeavour rightly to apply thyself unto them, than other works which have a fair show, as to institute masses, to be occupied in vigils and years minds, to build temples, and such like follies, shall by themselves be plucked out of thy heart & vanish away, unto which works, surely now almost the whole world is addicted: they are in deed fair in the very outward show, and seem to be very precious, when as notwithstanding they are an abomination unto God. But whatsoever God hath commanded, as to do good to our neighbour, and to be touched with his adversities no less then with our own, to bear a friendly and well willing mind toward him, these are neglected, and in the eyes of the world appear trifling and foolish: whereupon we do greatly abhor them. How cometh this to pass? Even therefore, because they have no goodly show outwardly. And the common people of Germany are wont to say: That which shineth not, or hath not a fair show, is nothing set by. Moreover God doth sooner suffer himself to lack his own honour and due service, then that he would have us to leave of from doing our duty toward our neighbour, as Christ witnesseth Matth. 5. If thou bring thy gift to the altar, God doth not accept the service which we offer him, if we neglect charity toward our neighbour. and there remember'st that thy brother hath aught against thee, leave there thine offering before the altar, and go thy way: first be reconciled to thy brother, and then come, and offer thy gift. Here ye do most plainly both hear and see, that God will not be served, unless we first go to our neighbour, and be reconciled to him. For the same cause also God rejecteth the sacrifices of the jews, as it is in the prophesy of Esay chap. 1 for that they did neglect those things which were more necessary, namely mercy and faith: for thus he saith: Why offer ye so many sacrifices unto me? I am full of the burnt offerings of weathers, & of the fat of fed beasts, I have no pleasure in the blood of bullocks, lambs, & goats. When ye come to appear before me treading in my courts, who hath required this at your hands? Offer me no more oblations, for it is but lost labour: incense is an abominable thing unto me. I may not away with your new moons, your sabbaths, & solemn meetings, your solemn assemblies are wicked. I hate your new moons and appointed feasts even from my very heart, they make me weary, I can not abide them. When ye hold out your hands, I will turn mine eyes from you: and though ye make many prayers, yet I will hear nothing at all, seeing your hands are full of blood. Wash you, make you clean, put away your evil thoughts out of my sight, cease from doing of evil. Learn to do well, apply yourselves to equity, deliver the oppressed, help the fatherless to his right, defend the widow, & so forth as is there rehearsed of Esay. By these words of Esay ye see what God requireth, & what he alloweth. When we neglect those works, by which our neighbour is served, he again will neglect us. For whatsoever benefit we bestow upon our neighbour, that we bestow upon God and Christ himself, as he shall pronounce in the last judgement: Matth. 25 40 Whatsoever ye have done to one of the least of these my brethren, ye have done it unto me. When thou hearest this, thou wilt not glory much, God will accept, not the works which we have invented, but which he himself hath commanded. of the temples which thou hast builded, or masses which thou hast founded. For than he will say: what have I to do with thy temples and Masses? what with thine altar and bells? thinkest thou that I am delighted with stones, and wood, with bells and banners? Are not all things mine first? Heaven is my seat, and the earth is my footstool. Who commanded thee to build temples? I have set living temples before thee, these are to be edified, nourished, & relieved, but thou hast been occupied with other trifles, which I have not commanded. I know thee not, away with thy temples and masses: ye ought to have put your trust in me only, but all your delight consisted in such works, as though it had been your purpose by so doing to wrest heaven from me, & that I may comprehend all in a brief sum: whatsoever I have commanded, that hath been of you neglected: and whatsoever I have detested and abhorred, that ye have diligently done: this therefore I will requite you with again, I know you not, ye may resort unto that god which hath commanded you to do these things. Here therefore let us learn, how the wise men did nothing abhor the poor & on every side miserable appearance of this infant and his parents, that we also may be so affected toward the miserable and pitiful estate of our neighbours, & may be persuaded that we do find Christ in them, & that whatsoever is bestowed upon them, Christ doth acknowledge it as bestowed upon himself. The kingdom of Christ wherein it consisteth. Psal. 44.20. 2. Cor. 4.11. 1. Cor. 4.13. His kingdom consisteth in the poor, despised & abjects, yea in the holy cross, in contempt, in persecution, in affliction & misery, as Paul saith out of the Psalm: for thy sake we are killed all the day long, and are counted as sheep appointed to be slain. In an other place also he saith: we are made as the filth of the world, the ofskowring of all things. Wherefore Christ said to his disciples, when he sent them forth to preach in judea: Behold I send you forth as sheep in the mids of the wolves. Matth. 10.16 They now that seek Christ any other where then in such a contemptible form, in the cross, & in persecution, do not find him. The wise men did find the king Christ being newly borne, not in Herod's court, not among the Princes & priests, not at Jerusalem, in so noble and famous a city, but at Bethlehem in a stable, with poor and despised creatures, namely joseph and Marie. In a sum, Christ will there be found, where a man would least seek for him. But we must diligently consider also, what these wise men signified by their gifts. What the wise men signified by their offering of gold. For assuredly they showed by them, that this child is a king, and not a king only, but also God, and man. In offering gold they acknowledged him for a king, as if they would say: We bring unto thee gold, not that we would thereby enrich thee. For gold, silver, and whatsoever is made is thine before, but hereby we acknowledge thee to be a most mighty king over all things. So we also offer gold unto Christ, How & when we offer gold unto Christ. when we acknowledge him for our king and Lord: but unto this is required a very strong faith. For if I ought to acknowledge him for my king and Lord, all mine own will must be extinguished, that it reign nothing at all in me: for Christ only must reign & rule in me, that he may do whatsoever it pleaseth him in me, and concerning me, all things must be committed unto him. So the leper in Matthew did, which said unto Christ: Lord, if thou wilt thou canst make me clean. Therefore my will must be utterly extinguished in me, if that I will have Christ to reign in me. Christ also suffered not his own will to rule, but he always submitted himself to the will of his father, which he testifieth in the sixth chapter of the Gospel by S. john: I came down from heaven, not to do mine own will, but his will which hath sent me. Yea he obeyed his father even unto death, and submitted himself wholly to his will. We imitating this example, which is written for our singular consolation, aught to submit our will to God and his Christ, and to rest confidently upon him. He knoweth how to bring the matter notably well to pass, as it is said Psal. 37. Commit thy way unto God, and put thy trust in him, and he shall bring it to pass. And a little after: Hold thee still in God, and suffer him to work with thee. Such sentences ought to provoke us, patiently to suffer the will of God in us, whether sweet things or sour, commodities or discommodities come unto us: for he knoweth with what temperature to lay them upon us. Blessed is he that believeth these things from his heart. Who being such a one, can be troubled with sorrow? Such a man howsoever he be handled, whether he be burned or drowned, cast into prison, or otherwise grievously dealt with, he taketh all in good part. For he knoweth that these things shall turn to his commodity. After this sort do we also offer gold with the wise men, when we take away rule from our own will, and do suffer Christ to work in us according to his will & pleasure. Wherefore they are hypocrites, which know not to suffer the will of God, but howsoever he dealeth with them, have always, whereof they do complain. They forsooth suppose, that whatsoever they think, it shall have success according to their thinking, If it fall out otherwise, they are angry, they do not patiently suffer persecution and contempt: they murmur, they find fault, and vex when those things happen, no otherwise then horses being stirred up with fury or rage. So therefore by resisting they stay the kingdom of Christ from them, and deprive Christ of gold, which notwithstanding they ought to offer and present unto him, that is, they themselves will bear rule, & do not vouchsafe to acknowledge Christ for their king and Lord. Frankincense what it signified, and when we offer the same unto Christ. By frankincense they resembled divine honour, which we then offer unto him, when we confess, that whatsoever we have, we must acknowledge it to have come from God, and that we have it freely, and without any merit of ours: Wherefore all these things are to be ascribed unto him, as to the true Lord, neither must we glory one whit in the good things received, but his glory is to be sought in them. And if he take them from us again, we ought to suffer him with quiet minds, and to bless him with the beloved job in these words: job. 1.21. Naked came I out of my mother's womb, and naked shall I return thither again: the Lord gave, and the Lord hath taken away, blessed be the name of the Lord. And so we ought to suffer all misfortunes and adversities, as if God himself did cast them upon our neck, so that none shall be able to offend us, unless he take away Christ from us. Not so much as a hear of our heads shall perish, as Christ saith to his Disciples Luke 21. Wherefore whatsoever shall molest us, what adversity soever shall come unto us, we ought never to seek any other God, we ought no where to seek any other help and comfort, then of Christ alone. This is he which is made unto us of God the father, wisdom, righteousness, sanctification and redemption. Then only we offer unto Christ that right frankincense of Arabia, when we fly unto him alone in our calamities, afflictions, and anguishs. But they that seek after strange helps and comforts, as of Sorcerers, Witches, and such like, they do not offer frankincense unto Christ, but stinking brimstone, wherein they shall be burned for ever, for that they have not believed and trusted in Christ. Myrrh what it signified. By myrrh they signified a mortal man: for with myrrh dead bodies were anointed, that for certain years they should not putrefy. Now myrrh is a strong and bitter juice, which distilleth from the trees of Arabia, like unto gum, or as with us rosin issueth out of the pine tree, the fir tree, etc. But then we offer myrrh unto Christ, When we offer myrrh unto Christ. when we firmly believe that he by his death hath overcome sin, Satan and hell. And this is a special faith. If we do but a little doubt here, it is not well with us. But if I believe from my heart, that death, sin, the devil, and hell are swallowed up in and by the death of Christ, I shall not be afraid of them all. I shall easily be preserved from rottenness which death bringeth, when I have myrrh, that is, the death of my Lord Christ in my body and soul, this will not suffer me to perish. So strong and valiant a thing is faith, unto which even all things are possible, as Christ saith Mar. 9 Here must we learn daily with our Lord Christ to bring under our old Adam, and to mortify his concupiscences, by the cross, and temptations, not that cross which we do chose, but which Christ layeth on us, let us bear it patiently and with a willing mind, that so our body may be subdued, and made subject to the spirit, that being so buried with Christ through baptism, we may be raised up again with him, and he alone may reign and live in us. Hereunto vehement sighing is required, which the holy Ghost doth make in us for our sake, as Paul saith Rom. 8. that Christ will help us, to keep under this unruly and obstinate flesh, that it presume not too licentiously, & thrust the noble soul into the mire. This our baptism doth signify, to wit, no other thing then that that old and stinking Adam be mortified, and buried, which we always ought to revolve in our mind, seeing that as long as we live here, sins do remain in us. Wherefore always some thing must be repaired in us without all intermission, through the cogitation of baptism, as it were in a house decayed through oldness, even until such time as we depart this life. Whereof S. Paul entreateth in very goodly words Rom. 6. which are diligently to be marked of us, now he saith thus: Know ye not that all we, which have been baptised into jesus Christ, have been baptised into his death? We are buried then with him by baptism into his death, that like as Christ was raised up from the dead to the glory of the Father, so we also should walk in newness of life. For if we be planted with him, to the similitude of his death: even so shall we be to the similitude of his resurrection, knowing this, that our old man is crucified with him, that the body of sin might be destroyed, that henceforth we should not serve sin. For he that is dead, is freed from sin. Wherefore, if we be dead with Christ, we believe that we shall live also with him, knowing that Christ being raised from the dead, dieth no more: death hath no more dominion over him. For in that he died, he died once to sin, but in that he liveth, he liveth to God. Likewise think ye also that ye are dead to sin, but are alive to God in jesus Christ our Lord. Thus much concerning the first appearance. Now we will speak somewhat of the second, that is of the baptism of Christ. Three things to be considered in Christ's Baptism. In the baptism of Christ three things are to be considered: The first, that the heavens were opened, when he was baptised. The second, that the holy Ghost was seen in the likeness of a dove. The third, that the voice of the father was heard, which said: This is my beloved son, in whom I am well pleased. Whereas Christ vouchsafed to be baptized with water, he hath hallowed baptism, & made the water thereof holy, that he which is baptised in his name, might become likewise holy and clean from sin, and might have the heavens open. Now Christ was not baptised for himself, for he was not infected with the spot of any sin, as S. Peter saith 1. Pet. 2. He behaved himself like unto a good Physician, which before the sick doth first drink some bitter potion, that the sick may more gladly and boldly do the same afterward. For we in baptism drink a bitter potion, namely, the mortification of the old Adam, which with the bitterness thereof doth greatly trouble us. For that dipping into the water or sprinkling with it doth signify nothing else, but that that old Adam should perish & die. This is greatly furthered by the cross, which God according to his divine will layeth upon us, which we ought not to cast from us, but bear it willingly & with a patiented mind. But that this might be easier for us to do, even Christ hath taken it upon himself, he suffered himself to be baptised, and took his cross and carried it nothing resisting or gainsaying, and so was obedient to his father unto the death, even the death of the cross, as Paul saith Philip. 2. that he might deliver us from sins, and might again appease his heavenvly father, which surely he did of his mere grace without any desert of ours: whereof we have baptism a sign & pledge, as Paul saith unto Titus: But when that bountifulness and that love of God our Saviour toward man appeared, not by the works of righteousness, which we had done, but according to his mercy he saved us, by the washing of the new birth, and the renewing of the holy Ghost, which he shed on us abundantly, through jesus Christ our Saviour, that we being justified by his grace, should be made heirs according to the hope of eternal life. Secondly the holy Ghost appeareth here in the likeness of a dove, when Christ is baptised, The second thing to be considered in the baptism of Christ. whereby is signified that we also do receive the holy Ghost in our baptism, which ruleth and guideth us according to the will of God, which is present with us, & helpeth us in bearing the burden of the holy cross, which exhorteth us, is instant upon us, enforceth us, and when we yield to the burden of the cross, is present and helpeth us: if we fall, raiseth us up again, and is with us as a certain faithful companion in our journey. He also maketh the burden of the cross light, which we were very unable to bear, if he did not put to his help. If so be that thou fall into sin, remember to go back unto thy Baptism, for this is the only ship, wherein we pass over. Wherefore take heed of them which make two tables, whereby we pass over the sea of sins, namely baptism and repentance. Believe them not, whatsoever they handle, it is mere delusion: baptism is the beginning of repentance. As often therefore as thou fallest into sin, have recourse unto thy baptism, there thou shalt again obtain the holy Ghost, who may be present with thee. For repentance is nothing else, but a displeasing of himself, a detesting of his wicked life, and a renewing of the man, which is represented in baptism. After such a renewing of the life, followeth the praise of God, and thanksgiving unto him for the grace received, than such a man bursteth forth, & behaveth himself friendly toward his neighbour, & doth good to him in all things. This is signified by that, that the holy Ghost appeared upon Christ in the likeness of a dove: for a dove wanteth the gall. Such they also become, which receive the holy Ghost in baptism, to wit, they are gentle and without all bitterness toward all. Thirdly, The third thing to be considered in the baptism of Christ. the voice of the father is heard in the baptism of Christ, which saith: This is my beloved Son, in whom I am well pleased. This is that Saviour, which delivereth us from the tyranny of sin, death, Satan, and hell. And here we must learn, how we must come unto God. He that desireth to be the grations & dear child of God the father, must attain unto this through Christ, through him alone the beloved son, who sitteth in the bosom of his father: unto whom alone the father looketh, without whom he alloweth nothing, and whatsoever pleaseth the father, it pleaseth him in respect of this his son. Wherefore he that desireth to go to the father, must cleave to this beloved son, must lay himself upon his back. For by this voice all titles albeit they seem very goodly and holy, are taken away, nothing is of value or estimation with the father but only this his beloved son, he is in his especial favour. Now he that desireth to be in favour with the father, and to be beloved of him, let him fly into the bosom of the son, by whom afterward he findeth access to the father, as Paul saith Ephe. 1. that through Christ we are adopted, without this Christ we are the enemies of God. Whosoever therefore cleaveth to Christ through faith, he abideth in the favour of God, he also shall be made beloved and acceptable, as Christ is, and shall have fellowship with the father and the son. But where this is not done, there is nothing but wrath, there no honesty, no virtue, no free will, neither prayer, nor fasting, nor other works shall profit, thou shalt but trifle with all these. For this is a most mighty, and most excellent voice: This is my beloved son, in whom all things consist and are comprehended, which are extant in the whole Scripture. Even as all things are delivered into the hands of Christ, and gathered into one, that they may obey him, as S. Paul saith. For when God saith: This is my beloved son, by showing Christ only, and showing and naming no other, he maketh it plain enough, that none is his beloved son beside him. If so be that other are not beloved sons, it is certain that they are the children of wrath and indignation. For if there were more beloved sons, he would not so set forth & show this son alone, saying: This is my beloved son, neither would turn his eyes unto him only, and glory of him alone, as though he knew no other. For the words seem to show, that he did diligently look about, & yet found none, beside him, of whom he saith: this is he, as if he said: Here at the last I have found such a one as pleaseth me, and is my beloved son, all other generally are not such. Moreover, these words are not so only to be understood, that it is showed by them that Christ is very God, as the Epistle to the Hebrews saith: Unto which of the Angels said he at any time, Thou art my Son, this day begat I thee? and again, I will be his father, and he shall be my son, etc. For it is most certain that Christ in these words is declared to be the true and natural son of God, seeing that this word was never said to any creature. Howbeit he had been as well the son of God, and had so remained for ever, as he hath been from everlasting, although this had not been spoken unto us from heaven, neither is any thing added or taken away from him by this name, but we must thus think & persuade ourselves, that so excellent a praise, and so noble honour of Christ was spoken for our cause. For he himself witnesseth in john, joh. 12.30. that this came not because of himself, but for our sakes. He hath no need that it should be said unto him, that he is the son of God. He knew this before, & hath from everlasting & by his nature, that which he heareth. Wherefore when that is conceived by voice and word, it pertaineth to us, and not unto Christ. Christ without the word, is such as he is said to be. We have the word without him, of whom it is spoken. Wherefore we must lay fast hold upon the word without the essence, even as he hath the essence without the word. But what doth this word? it teacheth us to know Christ, in which knowledge our salvation consisteth, as Esay, Paul, and Peter do witness. But how doth it teach us to know him? so, that he is the son of God, and doth especially please God his father, by which words God cheereth the hearts of all the faithful, and greatly delighteth them with mere comfort, and heavenly sweetness. How is this done? When I know, and am sure, that this man Christ is the son of God, and doth in all things please the father, whereof I must be most fully persuaded: forasmuch as the divine majesty doth confirm this by his voice from heaven, which can not lie, whereby I am certain, that whatsoever that man doth speak and work, they are the mere words & works of the beloved son, which are above measure approved of God. This therefore I do singularly well mark, and lay up in the bottom of my heart. When as therefore I do hereafter hear Christ speak, or see him do any thing, and that for my commodity, which surely he every where doth, (for he saith, that he doth and suffereth all things for us, that he came to serve and not that he should be served,) than I remember these words of the father, that he is the beloved son, than I am enforced to think, that all that Christ speaketh, doth, and suffereth, and that for my sake, doth singularly well please God. Now how can God pour out himself more liberally, or show himself more lovingly and sweetly, then by saying, that it doth please him from the heart, that Christ his son doth speak so gently with me, doth with so great affection look unto my commodity, and with such unusual love suffer, die, and do whatsoever for my sake. Dost thou doubt, that if man's heart did with due sense feel such favour of God in Christ, to wit that he doth so much for our sakes, it would not for joy burst into most small pieces? for than it would look into the depth of the divine breast, yea and into the exceeding and eternal goodness and love of God, which he beareth toward us, and hath borne toward us from everlasting. But we are too hard hearted and cold, the flesh doth lie more heavy upon us, then that we are able to comprehend such words, we do not well consider of them with ourselves, neither doth our heart come near to feel how marvelous and unspeakable love and joy they contain in them, otherwise without doubt we should perceive, that heaven and earth are full of the fire of the divine love, of life and righteousness, full of honour and praise, whereunto the fire of hell, whereunto sin, & death being compared, are nothing but as it were a thing painted or pictured. But we are cold, sluggish, & unthankful wretches, for we pass over such precious words, as things of no importance, & as uttered of man, as being contained in a book, or written in paper, as things utterly decayed, and now long since grown out of use by long custom, as though they pertain only to Christ, and to us nothing at all: And being dull and senseless, we do not see that they belong nothing to Christ, but were committed to writing and are extant only for our sake. Seeing therefore that Christ the beloved son, being in so great favour with God in all things that he doth, is thine, and doth in the same, serve thee, as he himself witnesseth, without doubt thou art in the same favour and love of God that Christ himself is in. And again, the favour and love of God are insinuated to thee as deeply, as to Christ, that now God together with his beloved son, doth wholly possess thee, and thou hast him again wholly, that so God, Christ, and thou do become as one certain thing. Hereunto make many sentences of the Gospel, but especially in john, as this: If any man love me, john 14.23. my father will love him, and we will come unto him, and will dwell with him. Also: Where I am, there shall also my servant be. Again: john 12.26. john 17. I pray that they may be one in us as thou and I are one, I in thee, and thou in me, and they in me. But where is Christ? In the favour of God, in the depth of his heart, there also are we, if so be that we know and love Christ, there I think we are sure enough, there our refuge is placed high enough, whither no evil can come, as it is in the 91. Psalm. But thou seest that faith is required hereunto, and that unto these things no law, no work, no merit doth prevail. Hereupon it cometh to pass, that so precious words are so abstruse and unknown to reason. For it hath been governed of Satan from the creation of the world, when as in Paradise it would be as God, & presumed after honour, which God here attributeth to Christ alone, forasmuch as he is his son, whereunto it is yet also prone and inclined, and setteth itself against these words, & the words again are against it. For because Christ is here declared the only son of God, it is mightily overthrown, whatsoever maketh itself god. But who be they that make themselves god? surely Satan and man, which please themselves, and love themselves, they seek not after God, but strive to attain unto this, that they also may become gods. But what will God say unto these: Truly a certain contrary thing to that which he said unto Christ: Christ is my beloved son, in whom I am well pleased, seeing that he glorifieth not himself, and maketh not himself God, although he be God. But ye are wretches, in whom I allow nothing, seeing that ye glorify yourselves, and make yourselves gods, albeit ye be creatures and men, and not God. So this sentence given of Christ doth humble the whole world, doth show them to be all void of divinity, and ascribeth it to Christ, and that all for our commodity, if we will, and do admit this sentence: or to our condemnation, if we will not, and do contemn this sentence, so that I may say at once: without Christ there is no favour, nor any beloved son, but very wrath and sore displeasure of God. Certain sentences out of the Scripture concerning Christ, whereby is declared that through him we are loved of the Father, and without him are refused. joh. 1.16.17. Of his fullness, (to wit Christ's) have all we received, and grace for grace. For the law was given by Moses, but grace and truth came by jesus Christ. joh. 3.13. No man ascendeth up to heaven, but he that hath descended from heaven, even the Son of man which is in heaven. joh. 3.16.17.18. God so loved the world, that he hath given his only begotten son, that whosoever believeth in him, should not perish, but have everlasting life. For God sent not his son into the world, that he should condemn the world, but that the world through him might be saved. He that believeth in him, is not condemned, but he that believeth not, is condemned already, because he hath not believed in the name of that only begotten Son of God. joh. 3.35.36. The Father loveth the Son, and hath given all things into his hand. He that believeth in the Son, hath everlasting life, & he that obeyeth not the Son, shall not see life, but the wrath of God abideth on him. joh. 6.40. This is the will of him that sent me, that every man which seeth the Son, & believeth in him, should have everlasting life, and I will raise him up at the last day. joh. 7.37.38. Now in the last great day of the feast, jesus stood & cried, saying: If any man thirst, let him come unto me, and drink. He that believeth in me, as saith the Scripture, out of his belly shall flow rivers of water of life. Tit. 3.4.5.6.7. But when that bountifulness and that love of God our Saviour toward man appeared, not by the works of righteousness, which we had done, but according to his mercy he saved us, by the washing of the new birth, and the renewing of the holy Ghost, which he shed on us abundantly, through jesus Christ our Saviour, that we being justified by his grace, should be made heirs according to the hope of eternal life. Many other such sentences there be, especially out of the Epistles of Paul, which every one may gather by himself. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER, OF THE GENEALOGY OR PEDIGREE OF CHRIST. Matth. 1. Verse 1. THis is the book of the generation of jesus Christ the son of David, the son of Abraham. 2. Abraham begat Isaac, Isaac begat jacob, jacob begat judas and his brethren. 3. judas begat Phares and Zara of Thamar, Phares begat Esrom, Esrom begat Aram. 4. Aram begat Aminadab, Aminadab begat Naasson, Naasson begat Salmon. 5. Salmon begat Booz of Rachab, Booz begat Obed of Ruth, Obed begat jesse. 6. jesse begat David the king, David the king begat Solomon of her that was the wife of Urias. 7. Solomon begat Roboam, Roboam begat Abia, Abia begat Asa. 8. Asa begat josaphat, josaphat begat joram, joram begat Hozias. 9 Hozias begat joatham, joatham begat Achaz, Achaz begat Ezekias. 10. Ezekias begat Manasses, Manasses begat Amon, Amon begat josias. 11. josias begat jechonias and his brethren, about the time they were carried away to Babylon. 12. And after they were brought to Babylon, jechonias begat Salathiel, Salathiel begat Zorobabel. 13. Zorobabel begat Abiud, Abiud begat Eliacim, Eliacim begat Azor. 14. Azor begat Sadoc, Sadoc begat Achim, Achim begat Eliud. 15. Eliud begat Eleazar, Eleazar begat Matthan Matthan begat jacob. 16. jacob begat joseph the husband of Marie, of whom was borne jesus that is called Christ. The sum of this text. 1 MAtthew beginneth his book with a title or inscription, by which the believer is provoked with greater pleasure to hear and read it. For he saith thus much in effect: Whom the Law and Prophets have hitherto promised & preached, jesus, that is, a Saviour, and Christ, that is an eternal king, that he according to the promise of God, should springe and come of the seed of Abraham and David, even him do I describe in this book, to wit, that he is now borne, and made man, and already come into the world. This I handle through this whole book. 2 Three lines or degrees are here rehearsed. In the first is contained the stock of the fathers, in the second of the kings, in the third is contained the decaying stock of David: after the decay whereof it behoved that Christ should come. For so the goodness of God is wont to do, when all things seem even past hope and recovery, then at the last he cometh. 3 Matthew omitteth one in his rehearsal, but that maketh no matter, seeing that he observeth this one thing, that he counteth by the right line from David by Solomon to joseph the husband of Marie. Luke counteth otherwise, and useth an other order. The exposition of the text. WHen Adam our first father having fallen by a notable offence, was guilty of death with all his children, as well in body as in soul, it was notwithstanding promised unto him, although obscurely, that both he and his posterity should be delivered, in those words which God spoke to the Serpent: Gen. 3.15. I will put enmity between thee and the woman, between thy seed & her seed, and it shall tread down thy head. Of these words Adam took comfort, that a woman should come, by whose fruit such guile and subtlety of the Serpent should be again amended, and Adam redeemed. This comfort did uphold Adam with his posterity until Noe. For then the promise was renewed, when God made a covenant with the sons of Noah, and set the rainbow for a sign of the covenant, whereby men might conceive a trust and confidence, that God is yet favourable unto them, and doth not purpose their destruction: whereby mankind was again upheld and comforted even until Abraham. In the time of Abraham God did somewhat show forth his mercy, he declared that he would send a Saviour, who should deliver us again from death both of body and soul: for albeit the body should die, yet it should not always remain in death, but rise again with the Lord Christ: The words which God spoke to Abraham Gen. 22. are thus: In thy seed shall all the nations of the earth be blessed. Here miserable men had a cause to hope and look for a Saviour which should deliver them. From that time all the Prophets did diversly foretell of this above measure flowing fountain of all mercy, that is, of this seed, of the Lord Christ, how that he at the last should come, that all which believed in him, might obtain salvation by that promise which can not be revoked. If so be that men would now open their eyes, they must needs confess and say, that a strange and incredible thing is done with us, that man being in the state of damnation, cursed, & desperate, should be restored by the nativity of one man. Hereupon the Prophets cried out with ardent prayers and unspeakable groaning, that God would vouchsafe to send the Saviour whom he had promised. By faith in this Saviour the Israelites afterward obtained the law, and this honour before all people, that they were called the elect people of God. By which ordinances written of Moses the anointed was plainly figured and signified, whom this text which we have now in hand setteth forth, what he is, from whence he is, and by the afore said faith all obtained salvation from Abraham unto David, even as many as were saved. In the time of David God made the coming of the Messiah to be more manifestly declared, that it might be certainly known of what stock he should come: namely, of the stock of David, as when God said unto David: 2. Sam. 7.12. When thy days be fulfilled, thou shalt sleep with thy fathers, and I will set up thy seed after thee, which shall proceed out of thy body, and will establish his kingdom. He shall build an house for my name, and I will establish the throne of his kingdom for ever. I will be his father, and he shall be my son. And yet more plainly in the Psalm: The Lord hath made a faithful oath unto David, Psal. 132.11. and he shall not shrink from it: Of the fruit of thy body shall I set upon thy seat. Here Christ is described, that he shall be a king, and an eternal king, Psal. 45.6. as it is mentioned of him in an other Psalm: Thy throne, O Lord endureth for ever, the sceptre of righteousness is the sceptre of thy kingdom. Who pertaineth to the kingdom of Christ, and who to the kingdom of Satan. Howbeit he is a spiritual king, which ruleth the world by his word: and whosoever receiveth his word, pertaineth to his kingdom. But he that is not under this sceptre, neither heareth his word, is not of God, neither pertaineth to his kingdom, but is subject to the kingdom of Satan, under whose tyranny we all are, until the Lord doth deliver us from it, & defend us with his sceptre, which is then done when we believe in him. Forasmuch therefore as our salvation doth come merely by the promise of God, let every one assuredly persuade himself, that he shall never obtain salvation without this promise: although he should do the works of all Saints, yet they should profit him nothing hereunto. Contrariwise, if we lay hold on the sceptre of this king, that is, of the promise of God, we shall not perish, although the sins of the whole world should lie upon us, they shall be all swallowed up in him, albeit no good work be done of us. As we see in the thief, which hung by the Lord on the cross, who laid hold on the word of God, & believed in Christ, and therefore he obtained the promised Paradise. Here is no doubt left, let us only believe that it is so, and it is so in deed, all things which men teach, or which we have done or can do, being set aside. Here all things must give place, at the coming of this new king, that he alone may rule & reign in us. Let a man intermeddle with those things that are written of this king, as being his own matters, and as pertaining all unto him. Whatsoever is written of Christ, it is written for our comfort. For whatsoever is written any where of Christ, it is written for our comfort, that we may thereby feed and cherish our faith. To the establishing of such faith God hath mercifully left unto us his promise written, and hath suffered to be published, that he will perform that which he hath promised. Whosoever apprehendeth this in his heart, it must needs be that with sighing he thirst for such Scripture and promise of God, who of his grace being not provoked of us, offereth unto us and bestoweth upon us such goodness and mercy. But let us now come to our present text, which not with words only, but also with a certain force pierceth the heart, and poureth into it love, pleasure, joy, gladness, etc. As if an Angel should now come from heaven, and say unto us miserable and condemned wretches, after this sort: Behold O man, thou hast sinned, wherefore thou hast deserved to be condemned for ever. (This being heard the heart must needs tremble.) Now although all this be true, yet nevertheless God of his grace hath mercy upon thee, & sendeth to thee a Saviour, as he promised to Abraham and his seed. Be of a good cheer, and give thanks to God. Lo, here is the book of the generation of jesus Christ, who is the son of David, the son of Abraham, so that this is not only done, but also written, that thou mayst be certain thereof: Neither will he, neither can he deceive: believe only, and thou shalt have all things. Now it is to be noted that Matthew setteth David before Abraham, although the promise was first made to Abraham, and came afterward to David, which promise made to David the Prophets did afterward publish more abroad, and did by it comfort the people. As in the 11. chapter of isaiah, where the Prophet saith thus: There shall come a rod forth of the stock of jesse, and a graff shall grow out of his root. jeremy likewise saith thus chap. 23. Behold the time cometh, saith the Lord, that I will raise up the righteous branch of David, which king shall bear rule, and he shall prosper with wisdom, and shall set up equity & righteousness again in the earth. And many other such prophecies there are to be found in the writings of the Prophets, which they foretold of David, that his kingdom should be raised up, as that Angel also declared unto Marie, when he said: Luke 1.32. The Lord God shall give unto him the throne of his father David, Why Matthew setteth David before Abraham. Luke. 1.54. & he shall reign over the house of jacob for ever, and of his kingdom shall be none end. Wherefore Matthew thought good here to set David first as the better known, & next unto him, Abraham, unto whom the promise was first made, as Marie in her song saith: He remembering his mercy hath helped his servant Israel, as he promised to our fathers, Abraham & his seed for ever. And that promise is now performed, and in this our text described, as we shall see hereafter. S. Matthew maketh a triple difference of fathers, of whom Christ came, fourteen patriarchs, fourteen Kings, & fourteen Princes. For it behoved that the sceptre & kingdom should be taken from juda, Gen. 49.10. according to the prophesy of jacob, which is thus: The sceptre shall not departed from juda, and a lawgiver from between his feet, until Silo come: and unto him shall the gathering of the people be. Here all things must be fulfilled: and there are thrice fourteen generations, even as Matthew rehearseth them: from Abraham to David fourteen generations, from David till they were carried away into Babylon likewise fourteen generations. Howbeit there is a person omitted in Matthew, that is jakim, & it ought thus to be written: josias begat jakim, & jakim begat jechonias and his brethren, this the Chronicles witness. And after they were carried away into Babylon until Christ, fourteen generations. Which triple distinction hath a great mystery as we shall see. The jews among other laws were commanded to observe these three precepts, namely, to worship that God whom their fathers had worshipped. Secondly to choose no Priest of any other stock then of their own, that is, of the tribe of Levi. Thirdly to choose no king but of their own people. These three precepts did very well agree in our Lord Christ, to wit, that he is that one God, that he is an eternal Priest, of our flesh & blood, & a King, our brother, who hath taken our nature upon him: Who by his divine power is able to help & save us, & being an eternal Priest, continually maketh intercession for us. He is a King also, that he may defend & preserve us, who is not to be feared of us, seeing that he is a man as we are, yea & was made a most contemptible man, that our heart might be wholly quieted & appeased in him our Saviour, who can never forsake us. Who were able to stand in the sight of God, & not be terrified, if that Priest did not stand before God? Who should defend us, if he were not a King? Who should save us, if he were not God? How should he have care of us, if he were not a man, and our brother? with whom we may speak as well as we may one with an other among ourselves. O most gracious Saviour, how wisely hast thou done all things? I know that thou art my brother, as it is in the Psalm: Psal. 22.21. I will declare thy name unto my brethren, as it is alleged in the Epistle to the Hebr. Albeit thou art God, my Lord Christ, and king of heaven and earth, yet I can not be afraid of thee: for thou art my friend and brother. This is no hindrance unto me, that I am a sinner, and thou holy. For if I had not been a sinner, there had been no need that thou shouldest suffer punishment for me. Why both good and evil are rehearsed in the genealogy of Christ. I see also in thy genealogy that both good and evil are rehearsed, of whose posterity thou wouldst come, that thou mightest comfort timorous and weak consciences, that they should confidently & cheerfully put their trust in thee, which hast taken away our sins. And that we might be certain hereof, thou hast left unto us thy word, which assuredly declareth it unto us. Among the Kings & Princes which Matthew rehearseth, some were exceeding evil, as we may read in the books of the Kings. Yet God suffereth them to be rehearsed in his genealogy, as if they were worthy, that he should come of them. But he suffered not so much as one honest woman to be rehearsed therein. Four women are named, which all had an evil report, and were counted lewd. Gen. 38. As Thamar, of whom judas the father of her husband, begat Phares and Zara, Ios. 2.1. as in the first book of Moses it is mentioned. Rahab is called an harlot in the book of josua. Ruth was a heathen woman, of whom although we read no evil written, yet forasmuch as she was a heathen, she was despised of the jews as a dog, and was detested of them. Bethsabe the wife of Urias was an adulteress before she was married to David, & of her he begat Solomon. Which women are undoubtedly therefore rehearsed, that we may see how God hath set forth as it were a certain glass unto all sinners, wherein they may see that he would be borne of the posterity of sinners, that the greater sinners we be, so much more certain and greater refuge we might have to so gracious a God, Priest, & King, who is our brother, in whom only and in none other we are able to fulfil the law, & obtain the grace of God: he came down from heaven therefore, neither doth he require any thing of us, but that we assuredly believe that he is our God, By faith in Christ we become the sons of God, and heirs of the heavenly kingdom. Gal. 3.26. Priest & King, and then all things shall be well with us. By him alone we become the sons of God, & heirs of the heavenly kingdom, as S. Paul saith to the Galathians: Ye are all the sons of God by faith in Christ jesus. Here the hearts of all sinners may leap for joy, that they are counted worthy of such a Saviour. Must not he needs be regenerate, whose heart understandeth and feeleth this? yea he is carried with a most ardent love to lead a new life, for he is inspired with the grace of God, inasmuch as he layeth hold of the promise of remission of all his sins. If we will count upon our fingers the persons rehearsed in this text, we shall find them to be forty and two, which were in time passed figured by the two and forty mansion places, which the children of Israel had, before they came into the promised land, as it is written in the fourth book of Moses. If we also will come into the promised land, which our Lord jesus Christ hath prepared for us by his nativity, we must also occupy two and forty mansion places, that is, we must cease from our own purpose, & be regenerate man by man, until we come to Marie and jesus, there at the last we shall find rest unto our souls. But this nativity is hard: for our evil & corrupt nature is very loath to leave her own will and purpose. And again the case of nature is such, that no nativity can be without grief, yet one hath more grief, tentation and affliction than an other. The thief on the cross leapt at one leap two and forty degrees, and came suddenly to Christ. So did many Martyrs also, and other holy men. Notwithstanding none can go so great a journey with small grief, unless he be carried with a great wind, that is by the holy Ghost. We must go fair and softly from Abraham to Isaac, from Isaac to jacob, and so forth. But we must begin at Abraham, that we may be found endued with like faith as he was, and obtain the blessing promised unto him, than we shall more easily and cheerfully go from one Patriarch to an other. That is, we shall pass over one affliction after an other, until we be called out of this travel and journey unto our rest. Why the godly must suffer afflictions in this world. For a man must be so long exercised with afflictions, and so oft renounce his own will, until at the last he be brought under, and his flesh by this means be subdued, that it may obey the spirit, and walk joyfully in the will and obedience of God. Wherefore let no man purpose with himself to come unto heaven by leading a quiet life, Luk. 18.25. and following pleasure, thus Christ saith in Luke: It is easier for a camel to go through a needle's eye, Act. 14.22. then for a rich man to enter into the kingdom of God. And in the Acts of the Apostles Paul teacheth that we must through many tribulations enter into the kingdom of God. Again, Luk. 16.25. in Luke Abraham said to the rich glutton: Son, remember that thou in thy life time receivedst thy pleasures, and likewise Lazarus pains: now therefore he is comforted, and thou art tormented. So it behoved Christ also to suffer & by the cross to enter into his glory. 2. Tim. 3.12. And S. Paul saith: All that will live godly in Christ jesus, shall suffer persecution. Hereupon we may learn, that all that is poison which is according to the lust of the flesh. Rom. 8.13. Wherefore Paul saith to the Rom. If ye live after the flesh, ye shall die, but if ye mortify the deeds of the body by the spirit, ye shall live. The flesh striveth against the spirit. The spirit which is of God, is ready to suffer, but the flesh resisteth. This jesus signified by his answer unto Peter: when he showed unto his Disciples, that he must go unto jerusalem, Matth. 16.21 and suffer many things of the jews, and be slain also, Peter took him aside, and said unto him: Master, pity thyself, this shall not be unto thee. But Christ turned him back, and said unto Peter: Get thee behind me, Satan: for thou savourest not the things that are of God, but the things that are of men. Here it is manifest that the reason of man doth flatly strive against the will of God. God will have us enter into glory by the cross and persecution, but the flesh resisteth, and is troubled in afflictions. Moreover they that are endued with the spirit of God, do rejoice, if they be afflicted for God his sake, Act. 5.41. as it is written of the Apostles: They departed, as Luke saith, from the council, rejoicing that they were counted worthy to suffer rebuke for his name. jam. 1.2. Wherefore james saith in his Epistle: My brethren, count it exceeding joy, when ye fall into diverse temptations, knowing that the trying of your faith bringeth forth patience: And let patience have her perfect work, that ye may be perfect and entire, lacking nothing. O how necessary is patience for a Christian man? that we may possess our souls by patience, Luk. 21.19. as Christ saith in Luke, otherwise we shall lose them. Wherefore we must enter into a new kind of life, and if at any time calamity cometh, we must not by and by burst forth into evil speeches, & take it unpatiently, but we must always lift up our heart to God, and bear his will with a patiented mind, he will well deliver us in his time, when it seemeth good to him, God even when he chasteneth and correcteth us, doth love us, and care for us. Heb. 12.5. and we must always think, that he beareth a fatherly affection toward us, even when he sendeth persecutions, anguishes, afflictions, and adversities, as the Epistle to the Hebrews saith: Ye have forgotten the exhortation, which speaketh unto you as unto children: My son, despise not the chastening of the Lord, neither faint when thou art rebuked of him. For whom the Lord loveth, he chasteneth: and he scourgeth every son that he receiveth. If ye endure chastening, God offereth himself unto you as unto sons: for what son is it, whom the father chasteneth not? If therefore ye be without correction, whereof all are partakers, then are ye bastards and not sons. God give us his divine grace, that we may courageously pass these two and forty degrees, & with the Lord Christ be regenerate into a new life. Amen. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER UPON THE HYMN OF ZACHARIAS, COMMONLY CALLED BENEDICTUS. Luke 1. Verse 68 BLessed be the Lord God of Israel, because he hath visited and redeemed his people. THat godly man Zacharias speaketh here of things as already done, when he saith: he hath visited and redeemed his people, etc. For he was certain of them: now the child john was come, being about to begin to preach of our redemption, as the Angel had foretold of him, that he should go before the Lord in the spirit and power of Elias, to turn the hearts of the fathers to the children, and the disobedient to the wisdom of the just men, to make ready a people prepared for the Lord: this promise he knew should assuredly come to pass. Wherein this redemption consisteth, I think it is already sufficiently known unto you, namely in this, that God visiteth and delivereth us. Which visitation and deliverance is accomplished neither by sword nor violence, but by the word alone wherein consisteth more, then in the blood and death on the cross. * That the word & promises of God might be accomplished and fulfilled. For because of the word Christ shed his blood on the cross. It was the word that john preached, when he showed the Lamb of God which taketh away the sins of the world, that is, when he declared our visitation and redemption, which Christ hath purchased with his blood. This john was the first Messenger which preached the Gospel. Wherefore to us, to whom the Gospel was not before preached, it is, as if john himself did now preach it, for now is first set forth unto us redemption, sweet consolation, deliverance from sins, death, hell, and all evil. To visit is nothing else, then to come unto us, to bring and declare unto us the word of salvation, by which we are saved. Zacharias conceived so great joy and pleasure in his heart, that he could not contain himself, but he must needs burst forth into those words which in this Hymn he uttereth, not only because of the infant newly borne, although even this brought great joy unto him, but also for that by the birth of this child he beholdeth a far greater joy, forasmuch as he was a Messenger sent of God to preach his word to the world. He rejoiceth therefore because of such a word which he should hear, and for that he should be as it were altered from an old man to a young man, and should become a scholar of an infant now lying in the cradle, whom he confesseth to be a Prophet better learned than himself. Zacharias conceived both natural and spiritual joy at the birth of his son john. Manifest natural joy is here, for that that infant was borne after a marvelous sort. Moreover here is joy of the spirit, inasmuch as that infant should become a Preacher of the word of God. And I am of that mind that I think that there was never any father, which conceived so great joy of his child, as this Zacharias did of his son being so marvelously borne by the power of God, and for that especially in the time of old age, when he was now near unto death, he is made a father of so great a Saint, which should be a master and teacher of the world. It is a delight and pleasure unto us, if we beget a child that is sound, fair, and well proportioned in body, that I may say nothing, what joy it would bring, if our child should be an Apostle and Preacher of the word of God to the world. Whatsoever ignominy therefore and contempt he did suffer before when he was barren together with his wife Elisabet, he is now most abundantly recompensed with plentiful honour and joy, so great blessings doth God bestow, if we patiently abide his leisure. For if he at any time come, he cometh very rich and plentiful in gifts, and doth give much more than we ever either wished or hoped for. Verse 69. And hath raised up the horn of salvation unto us, in the house of his servant David. These words are not spoken of john, for that he is not an horn raised up in the house of David, for he was borne of the tribe of Levi: but Christ our Lord is of the house, and of the royal stock and blood of David. Wherefore Zacharias doth not sing here, in the house of Levi, but that in the house of David an horn is raised and lifted up: and when Christ was not yet borne, he nevertheless singeth so, as if he were borne, neither was the horn of salvation yet come, notwithstanding he knew by the revelation of the holy Ghost, that it should forthwith come. An horn what it signifieth among the Hebrews. An horn among the Hebrews signifieth pour, confidence, dominion, and that whatsoever, wherein any man may trust, etc. As we read in Daniel chap. 7. where the Prophet first seeth kingdoms, then beholdeth beasts, some having one horn, some two horns. And he afterward interpreting himself, expoundeth them for kingdoms and Kings: and this is a phrase and manner of speaking peculiar to this language. Now Zacharias signifieth that Christ is our head, yea our God, whose kingdom is his horn. He addeth: the horn of salvation, or blessedness. What difference there is between other kingdoms & the kingdom of salvation which God hath raised up. Some kingdoms are famous in name and power, other are large, abounding with plenty of great treasures, much people, honours, and all temporal things: But this is called a kingdom of salvation, grace, life, righteousness, truth, and of every thing that pertaineth to salvation, whereby it differeth from all other kingdoms. For albeit they be large, rich or mighty, yet are they counted the kingdoms of death, for they that govern them must at the last fall, die, perish, and leave their power and riches behind them. Neither was there ever any worldly kingdom which might be called a kingdom of life, wherein is life, peace, and salvation, for only the kingdom of Christ doth glory and triumph in this title, inasmuch as God hath raised it up, that there may be nothing in it but salvation and felicity. Moreover I find nothing here spoken of manners and trades of life, or of works: For this kingdom consisteth neither in outward life nor works, but in the horn, in Christ, and his Gospel. This kingdom is ours, whereof ye have heard, that it is a kingdom of grace, life, righteousness, salvation and mercy, so that whosoever is in it, although he be inferior to john in holiness, and far unlike Christ in perfection, yet he liveth in a kingdom wherein is nothing but salvation and blessedness, whereof also it hath and reserveth the name. It is said moreover that this kingdom is raised up in the house of David: but by what means was it raised up? even by the holy Ghost, and by his word. He saith, in the house of David. for it must be a kingdom in the earth, and yet a kingdom of salvation. Now confer these two one with an other. The house of David is the tribe and stock of David, who was a man, as the subjects of his kingdom. So that thou canst not say, that he doth here make mention of an heavenly kingdom among the Angels, when as he doth nothing less, but he speaketh of a certain kingdom which is among men, which live clothed with flesh. David was a man, the subjects of his kingdom also were men, subject to death. For as the Scripture witnesseth, man that is borne of a woman liveth but a small time, he can not pass the bounds appointed him. How is it then that honour and dishonour come together in this kingdom? What agreement and consent appeareth here, where mortal men are delivered from the power of death, where they that are worthy of death, enjoy life, the unhappy are happy, and they that are subject to Satan, become the sons of God? In the reason hereof I hope that ye are sufficiently instructed, yea I think that ye understand it as well as I myself. But because the text so requireth, it must be eftsoons repeated. A Christian is delivered from death, sin, & Satan. We have affirmed therefore, that a Christian which liveth in this kingdom, shall never die, forasmuch as he can not die. For Christ hath therefore suffered death, that he might overcome death, and deliver us from it. He took our sins also upon himself, that we might not need to bear them. Moreover he subdued and overthrew Satan, that we might not be subject unto him. Wherefore it is given to a Christian that he can never die, he can never be subject to sin and the devil. For that must needs be true which he saith, that he hath raised up an horn of blessedness or salvation. And in whatsoever place that horn shall be, there is no access neither for death, neither for sin, nor the devil. And that in the house of David. Wherefore a Christian is both defiled and yet without sin, A Christian after a sort subject to death, sin, and Satan, & why. and free from Satan. How cometh this to pass? After this sort. Your brotherly charity hath oftentimes heard heretofore, that God leaveth in us an appearance and feeling of death and the devil, so that my sin disquieteth me and troubleth my conscience, and would drive me unto desperation. Moreover the judgement of God terrifieth me, death assaileth me, as if it would devour me. Satan is at hand and seeketh to suppress me. God suffereth these to remain & taketh them not quite away. For this appearance must continue, that we may perceive and feel that we are nothing else of ourselves but sinners, subject to sin and Satan. And yet under this appearance lieth hid, life, innocency, and dominion and victory over sin, Satan, hell, etc., as Christ himself saith Matth. 16. Thou art Peter, and upon this rock will I build my Church, & the gates of hell shall not prevail against it, he saith not, they shall not assail it, nor fight against it: for these two remain to sin and death. Now it is also expedient that I feel the biting of sin, the terror of the wrath of God, the horror of death, yea and death itself. But all this is a certain outward appearance before my sight and the sight of the world, The comfort of Christians against sin death, and Satan. which know and judge none otherwise, but that sin, death, and Satan are present. Notwithstanding in the mean season under that assault and terror the word and spirit are, encouraging me, preserving me, & assuring me, that God is not angry with me, that my sin is forgiven me, that I shall neither die, nor be forsaken: Upon this foundation & hope my heart doth wholly rest. And no man having such a confidence in God, remaineth under sin, neither is drowned in death, but is made a conqueror of sin and death. This is, not to prevail or overcome, for that albeit Satan attempteth, yet he doth not get the victory. We call the house of David, a mortal house, sinful, and subject to the devil, according to the manner of all flesh and blood, and yet notwithstanding the horn of salvation is raised up in the same, The kingdom of faith that men of that kingdom may enjoy salvation and felicity. Hereby ye see that this kingdom is the kingdom of faith, which can not be touched nor outwardly perceived of any, which one can not show to an other, but every one must have it in himself, that when he shall draw near unto death, shall feel sin, or even see death before him, he may then in faith lay hold on this kingdom, & believe that his sins are forgiven him. For Christ therefore died, that thou mightest be in this kingdom of faith. Wherefore sin shall encounter with thee in vain, death is taken away, Christ is with thee, who can hurt thee, who can do any evil unto thee? Here life and death, sin and innocency, Christ and Satan do fight one with an other, but Christ, life, & innocency do overcome and conquer. This is soon spoken, but not so easily felt, yea the contrary surely is rather felt. Wherefore if thou wilt esteem and consider this kingdom according to the judgement of the world, thou shalt utterly err and be deceived. The world calleth that a good & peaceable kingdom, where all things are quiet, prosperous and go well forward, where is safety, peace, and innocency outwardly. But here is the kingdom of salvation and grace, although it always appear otherwise. Wherefore all these things are to be understood in spirit and faith, & not to be judged according to the person or outward appearance. Neither ought it to seem strange that this kingdom doth flourish in the mids of sins, the force of Satan & death, whereof Zacharias here singeth even from the bottom of his heart, and knoweth well how it cometh to pass, faith and the spirit revealing it. Concerning sin I have seen or known none in whom it is not. Even the most holy are not free from sin. Rom. 7.18. Whomsoever thou settest before thee, sin will by and by appear. Paul a most holy Apostle affirmeth of himself, that he feeleth sin in his members. Will, saith he, is present with me, but I find no means to perform that which is good. For I do not the good thing which I would, but the evil which I would not, that do I. He wished in deed to be free from sins, but yet he could not but live in them. And I and such like are also desirous to be exempted from sins: but that can by no means be brought to pass, we do only repress and keep them under: when we have fallen into sin, we rise again. But as long as we are clothed with this flesh, and bear the burden thereof about with us, so long sin is not extinguished nor can be wholly subdued. We may well go about and endeavour to subdue it, notwithstanding old Adam will lead his life also, until he shall die and come unto the grave. What shall I need to say any more? The kingdom of Christ is a certain special kingdom, wherein every one of the Saints is compelled to make this confession: Almighty God, unto whose power all things acknowledge themselves subject, I confess myself to be a miserable sinner, revenge not, I beseech thee my old iniquities. Al also must sing this song: Our father, etc. forgive us our trespasses, as we forgive them that trespass against us. Other righteous & holy ones, which know no measure or end of their righteousness and holiness, do understand nothing hereof, and therefore this Gospel is not preached unto them, seeing that they think the kingdom of Christ to be such, that there is no sin at all in it, but that all things in it are clean & pure: they require such a Christian as is wholly clean from all filth of sin, and without sin as Christ himself, such a one they shall never be able to find. Now he is a Christian, who being a sinner, confesseth himself a sinner, who hateth the feeling of sin, striving against it from his heart. He is not a Christian which thinketh that he hath no sin, neither feeleth any. But if thou knowest any such, he is an Antichristian, and not a true Christian. The kingdom of Christ therefore consisteth among sins, it is established there where he hath set it, that is, in the house of David. Yea set David himself before your eyes, and ye shall find him to have been a sinner: who notwithstanding is bold to glory, that he is a servant acceptable to his Lord. There is none of the faithful which ought to be ashamed of this manner of praying unto God, or of any other not much unlike unto it: Lord forgive us our sin: is it therefore true that they have sin, because they say so? yea truly, for if they should lie, they should be the children of Satan. But godly Christians are weary of this life, greatly desiring the life to come. Now it is not given unto them in this earth to go so far, that they may say: We are subject to no vices, we are clean from all sin: if they shall go so far, it is Satan that deceiveth them. Notwithstanding they are sorry for their sins, and do lament them, yea it grieveth them to the heart, that they must bear the miserable burden of this flesh, and they cry out together with S. Paul Rom. 7. O wretched man that I am, who shall deliver me from the body of this death? This shrite & cry all the faithful do give, for that feeling sin, they do most earnestly desire to be delivered from it. And in this feeling & knowledge of sin, the kingdom of Christ consisteth, so, that even in sin there is no sin. That is, albeit I do both acknowledge and feel sin, Though the godly have sin in them and feel the grievousness thereof, yet it doth not hurt them. yet salvation and the kingdom do so firmly abide in my conscience, that God saith unto me: I will forgive thee thy sin, for that thou hast faith, and believest in Christ my especially beloved son, who was delivered to death for thee, neither shall thy sins hurt thee. Others, which feel not their sins, but trust in their works, and complain nothing of their faults and offences, thinking themselves clean: such are given to Satan, & not received or admitted into the kingdom of Christ: for they which are partakers of this kingdom can not be without conflicts and tribulation. Death, Satan and the world do somewhat trouble the godly, but the godly at the last overcome them. Psal. 118.18. And that I may speak more plainly, reckon I pray thee, any of the Saints, whom death doth not trouble: yea I know thou shalt not find one, which is not afraid, and trembleth not at the horrible sight of death. But the conscience taketh comfort here by the Prophet David, who saith: The Lord hath chastened and corrected me, but he hath not given me over unto death: it fighteth against us in deed, but it prevaileth not. Thus a Christian wrapped in sins, is both under sins and above sins, & at the last notwithstanding obtaineth the victory. After the same sort also must he have to do with Satan, with whom he must wrestle all his life, and at the last overcome him. So in the world also he must suffer many conflicts and troubles, and yet at length become victor. For although it be a kingdom of salvation, which hath neither rest nor quietness, but suffereth the force of hell, death, the devil, sin, and all manner of adversity and tribulation, yet they which be in it, do with an invincible courage endure, and at length overcome all evils. But God therefore permitteth these things, that our faith may be exercised, and show forth itself. Moreover that is a pleasure to the conscience, and bringeth unto it comfort and joy, that it hath such a kingdom, that it may say: Blessed be the Lord God, who hath visited and redeemed us, and hath raised up a kingdom in the house of David. That is, for that he visiteth us by his word, delivereth us from sins, and maketh us conquerors over death and Satan. Thus he have heard both that a kingdom is raised up in the house of David, and also that a Christian is both dead and yet alive, is innocent in the mids of sins, and although he be subject to Satan, yet notwithstanding hath dominion over Satan. For both are true, for that sin, death, hell do assail the flesh, but do not overcome, forasmuch as this kingdom of salvation triumpheth over them all. Wherefore as it were with a certain great boldness or confidence he calleth it a horn, that is a strong and puissant kingdom: Which hath no rest or truce, but being assailed of many and strong enemies, is always diligently occupied in defence of itself, and doth notably repel the force of the enemy. So a Christian laying hold on this horn, overthroweth sin, death, and Satan. Neither consisteth this horn in our strength, neither are we makers thereof: for God hath made and raised it up by the ministery of his word, whereby we are saved. Wherefore Zacharias so singeth, that his song hath respect not to his own son, but to Christ. Yea he celebrateth this kingdom as pertaining to the jews only, and declareth that it shall be glorious, and maketh no mention of the Gentiles, how they also should come unto it, as beside others, Simeon in his song, the beginning whereof is, Lord now lettest thou, etc. did prophecy, that we Gentiles also are chosen into that kingdom. But here he foretelleth of a kingdom raised up of God to the jews, even a kingdom of salvation and blessedness, and that in the house of his servant David. Wherefore he saith moreover: Verse 70. As he spoke by the mouth of his holy Prophets: which have been since the world began. Therefore he hath raised up this kingdom, that he might confirm his promise, whereby he had foretold that he would sometime raise up a kingdom, etc. And now that time is come, wherein he will fulfil that his promise. So Zacharias reduceth the horn of salvation, the kingdom of Christ, to the old Testament, that out of it he may bring witnesses of so strong and puissant a kingdom. The Prophets foretold of the kingdom that should be raised up in the house of David. For the Prophets from the time of David did all prophesy, that the seed of David should have a kingdom in the earth, yet a spiritual kingdom: and above the rest isaiah and jeremy foretold, that it should be such a kingdom, that the government thereof should consist in the spirit & word, to these especially Zacharias hath here respect. The other as Osee, Micheas, and the rest, do speak of the same kingdom, but not so manifestly. Verse 71. That he would deliver us from our enemies, and from the hands of all that hate us. The Evangelist hath hitherto generally rehearsed, what that kingdom of Christ is, whereof the Prophets prophesied. Wherein this kingdom of salvation consisteth. Now he speaketh of it also, but particularly, declaring wherein it consisteth. First in this, that he delivereth us from the hands of our enemies, yea and from all them that hate us. Ye see here and understand, most dearly beloved, that this verse doth witness & most plainly declare, that we which are his people and kingdom, do live amongst enemies, and that no other is to be looked for of us but to be hated of them: That also the force, quality, and nature of this kingdom consisteth in this, that it delivereth us out of the hands of all them that hate us, as the Prophet David saith Psal. 110. The Lord shall send the rod of thy power out of Zion: be thou ruler in the mids of thine enemies. And Psal. 45. Thine arrows are very sharp, even in the mids of the King's enemies. It is a delight unto Christ that his kingdom is set in the mids of the fight, yea and in the mids of the haters thereof. These things are written for our comfort, that we which mind to serve under the Prince of this kingdom, be so instructed, that we look for no other than is here prescribed and set forth unto us: The godly must look for no peace or quietness in the world. that we seek not here to get unto us the favour of the world, neither that we serve the world, and labour to have no enemies therein. For the words of Zacharias declare that it is the quality of this kingdom to deliver from enemies. Now if it delivereth us from enemies, and as it were draweth us out of the hands of them that hate us, surely it can not be a kingdom of peace, but such a kingdom as is subject to the hatred and malice of the world. As ye see at this day, that our enemies bear a deadly hatred unto the light, which hath a little shined forth, thanks be to Christ therefore. No man is any where so hated as a Christian. Both the Pope, and the furious Bishops with their false Apostles, also the raging Princes, moreover the holy, learned, and wise of the world, all at this day do most bitterly hate Christians. Neither are they content, that they be killed & slain, but they would have them extinguished and utterly rooted out, that there may be no memory of them, as they think, left among men. And this is the state, these are the badges, and cognisances of Christians: that when Satan by his ministers persecuteth us, he thinketh quite to root us out. This verse also giveth us to understand, that Christ is our King, that he may save and deliver us out of the hands of our enemies: which he notably performeth, and showeth his power in the mids of the world, in the mids of the force of flesh and Satan, when as peace and quietness is no where left to a Christian, but in his Christ alone. This also we must mark, that there is not one but many, which assail & persecute Christians: but yet that we shall not therefore be destroyed, forasmuch as we have one, which is stronger both than the world and the Prince thereof as john saith. Now whereas he promiseth us, we know certainly, that he both will and is able to perform: we shall in deed feel the assault, but he will not suffer us to be destroyed or overcome, so that we hope and trust in him. It followeth moreover: Verse 72. That he might show mercy towards our fathers, and remember his holy covenant. Verse 73. That is, the oath which he swore to our father Abraham that he would give us. He will deliver us, not only from all evil both of body and especially of soul, but also from our enemies, Satan, and men, & as a Christian must be as it were overwhelmed with all evils together, so also he shall be again wholly delivered from all evils. And he showeth that this grace and blessing was promised to their fathers. Such is the manner of the Apostles also, that they often times have recourse to the old Testament, as I have said before, that God spoke and promised by the mouth of the Prophets, etc. even as Zacharias doth in this place. An objection. Some man may now say: They are dead, how therefore will he show mercy unto them? Again, what need is there to rehearse, that he would show mercy to the fathers, when as it is declared in the Prophets? But this is therefore done, The answer. that the truth of God may be showed forth, and may be also approved unto us, that we should not be ignorant, that those things are not due to our merits. In the first book of Moses is mentioned, how God promised to Abraham, Gen. 22.18. that in his seed all the nations of the earth should be blessed. That is, that by Christ should come peace, grace, and blessing to all nations. Which promise was differred so long a time, that it appeared, that it was in vain and abolished. So unwise, as it seemeth to the world, doth God show himself in his matters, as though all things went backward. Notwithstanding howsoever it was delayed and seemed, yet it is fulfilled and performed whatsoever was promised to Abraham, and God hath not only delivered him from his enemies, but hath bestowed upon him all good things, yea hath given himself unto him, and all that he hath. And all this is therefore done, for that (as Zacharias here saith) this mercy and goodness was before promised and confirmed by an oath unto them, which are long since dead, when as we yet were not. He is merciful therefore and favourable, not because of our merits, as though he did owe it unto our righteousness, but of his only grace, favour, and mercy. God both promised, & fulfilled his promise, not moved through any works or merits of men, but of his mere grace and mercy. These are horrible thunderings against our merits & works, that we can not glory, that we have delivered ourselves from sins, or that we have deserved his goodness, and the preaching of the Gospel. No, it is not so. Here is no place for boasting: but this text saith, that thou, O Lord, didst promise certain thousands of years before I was borne, that thou wouldst do it. Who did then desire him, that he would give us those things, when he had determined with himself to give them? And upon this promise the Prophets are bold and do stay themselves, for by it we attain unto true goodness, that the mouth of every one may be stopped, that he that will glory, may glory in the Lord. For thus the Lord may say: that thou livest in my kingdom, that thou enjoyest my goodness & grace, it is not to be imputed to thee, but unto me: I promised, and determined with myself to fulfil my promises, thou being ignorant thereof. And here the mouth of every one is stopped. So at this day also none of us, unto whom, thanks be to God, the Gospel hath shined, can glory that we obtained it by our own means, labour, endeavour, or good conversation. For those which were counted the best works, and the most excellent studies are disallowed and overthrown, as to celebrate Mass, to join himself to this or that hypocritical sect, which they call an order, etc. These the Gospel condemneth and rejecteth, and how can I attain to the Gospel by that which it rejecteth? Wherefore this standeth sure and certain, that all that we have, is of the mere grace and goodness of God, so that with his honour and praise we may confess, that we have deserved far otherwise, namely hell fire, if besides this he bestoweth any thing upon us, it is the gift of his grace and goodness. And this is that which Zacharias saith, that is was foretold by the Prophets, and both promised and confirmed by an oath to the fathers, Gen. 22.16. that he would perform unto us the covenant made to Abraham. Thus he saith to Abraham: By myself have I sworn, saith the Lord, that in blessing I will bless thee. And in thy seed, etc. Which words the Prophets diligently held, marked, handled, & always trusted unto them, for that he doth here solemnly swear, that he might wholly assure us, that he would pour forth his blessing upon us. And now the time is present, the hour is come, wherein, he hath sworn, that salvation should come unto us, as it is declared Mar. 16. Go ye into all the world & preach the Gospel to every creature: he that shall believe & be baptized, shall be saved: but he that will not believe, Abraham merited not the promise. shall be damned. Men surely have not merited it, no not Abraham himself, who was not made partaker of the promise, seeing that he died long before the fulfilling thereof. In spirit in deed and faith he was partaker of it, but he lived not so long, till the Gospel was revealed to the whole world The promise therefore was made unto him, although, as I have said, he looked not for the fulfilling thereof in this life. That is, his life was not prolonged until the preaching of the Gospel in the whole world, although in faith he obtained the Gospel for himself. Wherefore it can not be said, that that promise was due to his merits, otherwise he must have lived in the earth until the fulfilling thereof, and a due price or reward must have been paid unto him. But now the performing of the promise was after his death, so that every one must needs confess, that that promise was not made to Abraham because of his merits. Again, it can not be said, The Gentiles merited not the enjoying of the promise. that the Gentiles which enjoy this promise, have obtained it by their merits, which then were not. God promiseth to the fathers and performeth not, he performeth to the Gentiles, to whom notwithstanding no promise was made, who all at that time were not. God will always retain to himself his honour, and be the same God, although the wicked world can not be so persuaded. He chasteneth, reproveth, rebuketh, provoketh, stirreth, allureth, doth whatsoever is to be done, but the worldlings rob him of his honour, and attribute it to themselves, that is, they will not acknowledge, that whatsoever they possess or have, it cometh unto them by the only grace of God. When therefore we glory of such good things, & acknowledge not God to be the author and giver of them, we make ourselves as God, and him as our servant. So he is dishonoured, and the honour attributed unto us. But albeit we make merchandise of his honour, yet he hath affirmed in the Scriptures, that he will keep his honour and glory only to himself, that so he may be acknowledged to give all things of his mere and only grace. These things he that believeth, doth also receive them: he that doth not believe, shall at the length receive his due reward. Zacharias saith moreover: Verse 74. That we being delivered out of the hands of our enemies, might serve him without fear, Verse 75. All the days of our life, in holiness and righteousness before him. He hath defined the nature and property of this kingdom: that is, the covenant made with Abraham, that in his seed all the nations of the earth should be blessed, etc. Which words of blessing, thus saith he, I will interpret unto you, that being delivered out of the hands of our enemies, we may serve him without fear all our life long in holiness and righteousness before him. Which to the world and our flesh savoureth not well. For the world thus murmureth here: I had thought that he would have given us some precious thing, as a purse well stuffed with money, a rich wife, fair and beautiful children, goodly houses, and whatsoever the world is delighted in. But now I perceive it to be otherwise, I hear that we must without fear serve him in holiness & righteousness, and so please him. Wherefore it shall be meet that we apply hereunto spiritual eyes and ears, that we may more rightly consider and understand the words. Whereas he saith, that he will deliver us from all our enemies, it is again thus to be understood, that this kingdom is placed in the mids of enemies, and notwithstanding that it is not therefore destroyed, but that always all the enemies and adversaries thereof are overcome. We must understand also that the deliverance from our enemies tendeth hereunto, that we should always obey him that delivereth us, without any fear. And this is a Christian thing, & an amiable kingdom, that a Christian shall lead his life without fear. Howbeit God hath bestowed this upon us, that we should hereafter serve him alone. The words without fear, include in them, that we shall quietly enjoy the good things of this present world, A Christian how he liveth without fear. & of the world to come. For a Christian is sure and certain of the forgiveness of his sins, although he as yet feeleth them, as we have said a little before. He is certain that death hath no power in him: that Satan doth not overcome him: that the world can not prevail against him. Such a heart is without all peril and fear, & plainly free from them. Which do not thou so understand, as though we do not feel sin at all, but that we are greatly grieved when sins trouble us, when the image or sight of death terrifieth us, when as being reproached and slandered of the world, we stand as destitute, and have none in this earth, to whom we may turn us or resort for succour, but God alone. These things in deed are felt, but they do not prevail nor overcome us: for the heart notwithstanding remaineth safe and quiet in God. So poverty also is felt, when thou art pinched with hunger, & hast not wherewithal to fill thy belly, to maintain thy wife and bring up thy children, nor any certain place where to dwell and abide, but all these things shall not hurt thee: thou must ask of God whatsoever thou needest, & serve him without fear, as our present text declareth. But herein we do for the most part behave ourselves not as Christians, we judge after our own affection and sense, according as the world doth blame us, or report evil of us. Also when our fields have no corn, no money is in our purse, we think ourselves utterly destitute and forsaken. But a true Christian with shut eyes and ears saith with Paul speaking to the Galathians: O flesh, sin, death, ye are dead unto me: Gal. 2. & 6. and I again am dead unto you, that Christ may live in me. The world is crucified unto me, and I unto the world. That is, the world hath no care or regard of me, and my preaching and life is mocked and scorned of it. But with the same measure that thou measurest unto me, I will measure to thee again: if thou despisest me, I also will despise thee: if thou makest no account of me, I again will make small account of thee. What care I, if the world hate me, when as I displease not him that dwelleth in heaven? if this hatred continue even daily, if sin rage, and the world talk and prate many things, what then? let it do so until it be weary, I will pass over these things as if I heard them not. This is in deed to forsake the world, and to die unto it, to live without fear, to be occupied about no other thing, but that which is according to Gods will, to speak nothing at all but that which shall please him, and which I shall know to be agreeable to his word: that I may live so, and do those works, which I know certainly are acceptable before him, that in my whole life whatsoever I do either outwardly, or inwardly, I may be certain that I seek his glory, and endeavour to fulfil his will. So I am separated from the world, and notwithstanding do still live in the world. No man is less in the world than a sincere Christian: and again, no man is more occupied and hath to do with the world than an entire Christian. That is, the world doth more intentively look unto him, and Satan more often and vehemently assaileth him, then him that is ignorant of Christ, of grace, and of faith. Christ and Paul had experience hereof: they had combats & conflicts with the world: they were troubled and molested, yea the whole world was against them. Again, a true Christian is not in the world, albeit the world rage & fret cruelly against him: for he always trusteth in God, and saith: Lord, I am thine, thou shalt deal well with me, grant thou that my matters may go forward according to thy will, only be thou on my side, and I shall be in safety. All the days of our life. All our life long, that is continually, without ceasing. In holiness and righteousness before him. Here S. Luke divideth righteousness and holiness into two sorts: of which one is acceptable before God: the other before him is of no value: whereby we have to understand, that both the righteousness & holiness of God are in no estimation before the world, even as the world is wont nothing to esteem God, and again God little to esteem the world. For that which God calleth just, the world calleth unjust: and that which it calleth right, God calleth crooked: and so these two Champions are continually at variance between themselves. That which God calleth holy, seemeth to the world devilish and unrighteous. Wherefore he comforteth us here, declaring that there be two sorts of righteousness and holiness: One, which we ought to observe diligently: An other which we ought to avoid. Hypocritical holiness and righteousness Hitherto it hath been the chief holiness and righteousness of all, which could be invented, to run into Monasteries, to put on monkish apparel, to be shaven, to wear a hempen girdle, to give himself to fasting and prayer, to be clothed with hear cloth, to lie in woollen garments, to observe an austere manner of living: and in a sum, to take upon him monkish holiness and religion. And thus sticking in a colourable show of good works, we knew none other but that we were holy from top to toe: having regard only to works and the body, and not to the heart, where we were full of hatred, fear, & incredulity, troubled with an evil conscience, knowing almost nothing rightly of God. Then the world cried openly: O that holy man: O holy and chaste woman, which have included themselves within the walls of Monasteries, which day & night kneeling upon their knees say many rosaries, as they call them. O, what holiness is there, where even God himself dwelleth, where the holy Ghost the comforter abideth present? These things the world boasteth of, and greatly esteemeth. But beside these they do not mark, how they pray with no earnestness of heart, how they teach and instruct no man, how they give nothing to any, but catch unto themselves both the blood and sweat of the poor, and leave true sincere works undone. This righteousness & holiness the world extolleth, which notwithstanding stinketh and is wholly unclean before God, which he will have even to be unknown unto us, yet the world refuseth to admit any other. But there is an other manner of righteousness than this whereof God esteemeth & accepteth, which also we must consider, The righteousness whereof God accepteth, of what sort it is. now it is of this sort: It consisteth not in a grey garment, not in a black or white cowl, but in a pure conscience. To wit, when I believe, that Christ is my salvation, and that my works can prevail nothing hereunto: but that he doth all things which God hath regard unto. Then I say no more: a grey garment is holy, a red garment is profane, forasmuch as I know, that not in a grey or any other garment, but in Christ all things consist. For no man can attain to this, that a grey garment may cleanse his heart from filth, or that a monastery may purify it: for it is necessary that God only purify the heart by faith, and the holy Ghost, as Peter witnesseth Act. 15. When the heart is now pure, the house is unto it as the field, and the field as the house: The market is as much esteemed of it as the Monastery, and contrariwise. Neither remaineth there unto me any work, place, or garment, which I count profane: for all things are alike unto me, after that holiness hath fully possessed my heart. That even God saith unto me: Thou art godly, I am thy father, thou art my son. And herein we ought to persist, that we be holy, and without fear do obey and serve him. Here the title and badges of a Christian are seen, & this is his cognisance, to wit, that being holy, he is the Minister of God without fear. But what sinner is there which dareth challenge to himself this title? Let one come forth, which dareth avouch himself to be godly, righteous, holy, and the servant of God, destitute of no good things either of mind or body. Now he that can not glory of these things, is not a Christian. For of these things must a sincere Christian be partaker. But what letteth that one dareth not challenge to himself this title? Even a timorous conscience: for we always feel sin, and our life is ever frail. I see nothing but an honest life, although God require this also of us, yet he will not be content therewith, but there is need that there be yet a certain higher thing, that I dare be bold to say: Lord God maker of the whole word, I am certain that I am holy before thee, and am thy servant, not for mine own sake, who do as yet feel sins in myself, but through Christ, who hath taken away my sin, and made satisfaction for me. These things surely I ought to glory of, if I be a true Christian. But this seemeth difficult and hard: God admitteth no sin, my fearful and weak conscience is against me. How am I his servant, when as notwithstanding I feel in myself, that I serve the devil, and do not know that I am holy? I speak not here of the common sort of Christians, such as I, and such like are: but of sincere Christians, which have a good conscience, and in whose hearts the spirit of God abideth, whose conscience albeit it be frail and weak, and they feel their sins, yet they are enforced to say: Howsoever sin is, yet I know no sin by myself, neither am I subject to death and hell, and for this cause they strive, and at the last overcome, that therefore they would even die, in that confidence. But I find it far otherwise, if I set my life before my sight. Here life and the word must be separated far asunder. If thou wilt consider life, I will set also before thee the lives of S. Peter, Paul, or john, thou shalt find even them not to have lived without sin. When thou desirest to be holy before God, We must trust, not to our life and works, but to the mere mercy and grace of God trust not to thy life, unless thou wilt perish for ever. For thou must trust to only mercy and grace, and not to life or works, otherwise thy case will be very ill. Wherefore our heart must be so affected that it say: Lord, if thou shouldest call me to an account, I should not be able either by life or works to stand in thy sight, no although I were even john the Baptist. Nevertheless therefore I glory that I am godly, & thy servant, for that thou dost give unto me continually, and also for that, as thou hast promised to Abraham, thou dost for thy Christ's sake, vouchsafe to show thy mercy unto me: if so be that I of myself be not godly and righteous, yet he is godly and righteous for me: If I be profane, he is holy: if I be not the servant of God, he is the servant of God: if I be not without fear and carefulness, yet he is void of all fear and carefulness: that so I may as it were transfer myself from myself, and pierce into him, & glory, that in Christ & by Christ I am good. Thus he will have us to glory, that we are godly and holy, but not by our own merit: for we must glory of ourselves, as of most desperate wretches. And that this may be plain, mark our life, consider our good conversation and manners, weigh how foolishly men apply themselves to the Gospel, that I am almost in doubt, whether I should preach any more or no. For as soon as these things are taught in a sermon, that salvation consisteth not in our works or life, but in the gifts of God, every one is slow to do good, no man will live an honest life, and be any more obedient, they falsely affirm every where, that good works are inhibited. Nevertheless God requireth of us, that we lead an honest life outwardly, and he that doth not so, shall at length find his due punishment. Now if it happen that we live godlily and honestly outwardly, Satan by and by frameth his wickedness. Neither do I know at this day how to order myself in this matter, not because of my own person, but because of life. For if we preach of an honest and godly life, the world by & by furiously attempteth without judgement, * They endeavour by their good works to attain to salvation. We must neither presume of good works, nor neglect to lead a godly life. to build ladders to heaven: which God neither can, neither will by any means suffer: Again, a dishonest and ignominious life doth not become Christians, neither doth a delicate life become them. What therefore must we then do? They which have respect only to an honest and fair life, it were better for them to be adulterers and adulteresses, and altogether to wallow in the mire. And yet notwithstanding God will not have us to lead our life filthily and dishonestly. For neither can he suffer that, adjudging thee even unto hell therefore, if thou so do. And if thou lead an honest life, thou wilt stick in it, and arrogate unto thyself, which again he can not suffer. Thou must therefore so provide that thou remain in the middle path, declining neither to the right hand, nor to the left, and that thou lead a quiet, fair, and amiable life in the sight of the world: which also may be acceptable before God, and yet that thou do not therefore so greatly esteem it, nor count so of it, as though thou dost merit any thing of God thereby. Thus a Christian continueth the holy servant of God without fear, not by his good works and holy life, but by the grace of Christ. Blasphemous to affirm ourselves holy by our works But he that affirmeth that he is holy by his works, is blasphemous against God, robbeth God of his honour, and denieth Christ, for whom it were better, that he were ten times an homicide, or an adulterer, then that he should thereby affirm himself to be a Christian, yea godly and holy: for he doth plainly dishonour Christ, and it is as much as to affirm that there is no Christ: for he is therefore called Christ, for that he is our grace, mercy, redemption, and holiness. If I should not attribute to the divine mercy, that God himself doth save me, what should this be else, but to say, that he is neither holy nor blessed? Wherefore if I be a Christian, I must confess, that I am holy and a Christian for this cause, for that Christ himself is holy. And albeit my conscience doth reprove me of sin, yet I must still persever in this, that his holiness is greater than my sins. Thus I must live honestly outwardly, but inwardly rest and trust in him alone. It followeth moreover how Zacharias turneth his speech to the child, and saith: Verse 76. And thou child shalt be called the Prophet of the most High: for thou shalt go before the face of the Lord to prepare his ways. This shall be thy office: Thou shalt be the first, and shalt first begin: that is, thou shalt be the Prophet of the most High: But what manner of prophecy shall that be, how shall it be done: After this sort: john the forerunner of Christ. Thou shalt be the forerunner of the Lord, & shalt prepare his ways. When any Prince cometh, certain go before him, to prepare way and place for him, and say: Give place, depart out of the way: john doing the like, runneth before and crieth unto the people: Go aside, turn out of the way, give place, the Lord himself cometh. Such a servant is john, whom the Lord by and by followeth. Such things no Prophet at any time hath spoken, but they have prophesied of these things, that a Prophet should sometime come, which should erect a kingdom that should continue for ever, etc. But all died, not one remained, which did behold this being alive. But this Prophet doth live even at that time, when the Lord himself cometh, and by and by followeth him. For the Gospel was begun to be preached, Baptism was begun to be ministered, by the coming and ministry of john, who ceasing, Christ began, both almost in the same year. Now what shall be his office? This truly, The office of john. to prepare a way for the Lord. Which preparation is nothing else, but to bring people to the Lord the Saviour. Christ is the grace, gift, King and horn of our salvation. This Lord and King no man receiveth, unless he be first humbled, that he think nothing of himself. For he can not otherwise attain unto Christ, neither can stand together, to receive the grace of God by gift, and also to merit the same. john therefore in this part teacheth men nothing else, but that they are sinners and altogether nothing. He now which acknowledgeth himself, and feeleth himself a sinner before, yea and to be nothing, well understandeth the voice of john, which is, prepare ye a way for the Lord: Give place to him: He is at hand that followeth me, who is greater than I, him ye shall hear, him ye shall obey. The other office of john which followeth, is, that he bringeth men to the knowledge of salvation, and showeth with his finger that paschal Lamb, that taketh away our sins, that he may fasten them to the cross with himself and abolish them. Whereof Zacharias now goeth on to speak. Verse 77. To give knowledge of salvation unto his people, by the remission of their sins. That is, thou shalt begin the office and ministry of the word, whereby is taught and learned how one is saved. Wherein blessedness consisteth. Which salvation or blessedness consisteth in this, not how we may be famous through great abundance of riches, glory, and power in earth, as the jews have hitherto understood it: but that we may obtain remission of sins, and be made partakers of the grace of God. Now where remission of sins is, there is no merit, no reward or satisfaction, otherwise it could not be called remission of sins. So that this knowledge is, to understand, how God forgiveth us our sins without works and merits, and saveth us by mere grace and mercy, as it followeth: Verse 78. Through the tender mercy of our God, whereby the day springe from an high hath visited us. Here it appeareth that they which teach and observe laws, works, and merits, do strive against both the mercy of God & knowledge of salvation. Forgiveness of sins cometh not by any merit or work of ours, but through the tender mercy of God. For he saith not that forgiveness of sins hath come by the prayers or works of the fathers, or of any of the Saints, but through the bottomless mercy of God, which Luke calleth the tender mercy, and such mercy as cometh from the most inward affection and bowels. Notwithstanding this forgiveness of sin, which cometh unto us by mercy, is not without merit, although it cometh to pass without our merit: but a Mediator cometh between, who hath in our steed deserved it for us, which is Christ our Lord. For God would that satisfaction should be made unto him for our sins, and that his honour and law should be performed, here we were able to do nothing. But Christ alone both was able, and satisfied for us who of the infinite mercy of the father, was sent for the same cause, and that to us, that he might dispatch it. Therefore he saith, Through which infinite & bottomless mercy the day springe from an high hath visited us. Without all doubt it was no merit, but only unmeasurable mercy, that Christ came to us, and merited and obtained for us such remission of sins unto eternal salvation. Now he calleth him, the day springe from an high, which signifieth unto us his divinity. And this is his meaning: on high, that is, above all creatures, where nothing is higher, but height alone, there is Christ in his divinity, as the morning or day springe. For he proceedeth from the father, as the beams do from the sun, whereof we have elsewhere spoken at large. Verse 79. To give light to them that sit in darkness, & in the shadow of death, & to guide our feet into the way of peace. Many of the fathers understood this of Lymbus, as they call it: but Luke agreeth here with the saying of isaiah, where he saith: The people that walked in darkness, have seen a great light, isaiah. 9.1. How Christ is the light of the world. etc. His meaning therefore is this: Christ therefore came, that he might be the light of the world, and by the Gospel might enlighten men's hearts, and allure them to himself, which were held captive under Satan in the blindness and darkness of incredulity, that so he might guide our feet into the way of peace, How Christ guideth our feet into the way of peace. that is, he might govern our conscience well, quietly and cheerfully in the kingdom of grace, that we may be afraid neither of Satan, neither of sin, death, hell, nor of any adversity, who heretofore have rested, part of us in filthy vices, part in good works, notwithstanding we could on neither side enjoy any quietness or peace, but were compelled to despair under Satan, and the fear of death, neither did we know how to find that way which leadeth unto peace, according to the saying of the fourteenth Psalm: The way of peace have they not known, etc. Thus ye have heard how Zacharias doth in most goodly and fit words most lively paint out the Gospel and kingdom of Christ, with all the fruits, colours & conditions thereof, that it is a word and kingdom of grace, of forgiveness of sins, also a kingdom of peace, joy, quietness, salvation and all goodness. God grant, that we may thoroughly know and feel the same. Amen. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER OF THE MEDITATION OF CHRIST HIS PASSION. FIrst, some do so think upon the passion of Christ, that they are incensed with anger against the jews, and do inveigh against wretched judas in songs and reproachful words: and thus they are content, and think this to be sufficient, even as they are wont in lamenting the case of other, to take pity on them, and to accuse and condemn their adversaries. But that can not be called a remembering of the passion of Christ, but rather of judas and judas his wickedness. Secondly, some have noted in their minds diverse commodities and fruits proceeding of the meditation of Christ's passion, that saying which is ascribed to Albertus being commonly in their remembrance, that it is better to think upon the passion of Christ superficially or once, then if one should fast the space of a whole year, and daily in praying go over the whole Psalter, etc. That they follow hitherto, being blind and justly stumbling, contrary to the true fruit of the lords passion. Moreover they seek their own things therein, and therefore they bring with them images, books, letters and crosses. Some also go so far, that they think they shall make themselves safe from waters, terrors, fire, and from all danger, as though the Lords suffering should be without suffering in them, contrary to the quality and nature thereof. Thirdly, some have compassion of Christ, lamenting & weeping for him as being an innocent man, like unto the women which followed Christ from jerusalem, who were reprehended and admonished of him, that they should weep for themselves & for their children. Fourthly, some so call to mind the passion of the Lord, and so consider Christ, that inwardly they are sore afraid, yea their reason also or understanding is turned into a certain astoniednes or bashfulness. How the passion of Christ ought to terrify us. Which fear notwithstanding aught to proceed from hence especially, in that we should be put in mind thereby of the wrath and immutable severity of God prepared for sins & sinners, forasmuch as he would not grant to his only begotten and beloved son that sinners should be absolved and pardoned, vules he did make so great a satisfaction for them, as he speaketh by Esay chap. 53: For the transgression of my people have I smitten him. What shall come unto the sinner, when a son so exceedingly beloved is smitten? It must needs be that there is an unspeakable and a most serious and earnest matter, where so great and excellent a person doth descend to do good unto him, & suffereth and dieth for him. Fiftly, revolve deeply in thy mind, and doubt not a whit, that thou art he which so tormented Christ, forasmuch as thy sins were most certainly the cause thereof. Thus S. Peter in the second of the Acts, did strike & terrify the jews as it were with a certain lightning, when as he said unto them generally: whom you have crucified, so that the very same day three thousand men were greatly terrified, and being pricked in their hearts said unto the Apostles: Men and brethren, what shall we do? Wherefore when thou considerest that his hands were pierced with nails, think that it was thy work: when thou remember'st his crown of thorns, persuade thyself that it was thy wicked cogitations, which caused it, etc. Sixtly, think with thyself, that whereas one thorn pricked Christ, thou oughtest worthily to be pricked with an hundred thousand thorns, & that without intermission, yea & much more grievously: and that whereas one nail pierced the hands and feet of Christ, thou oughtest to be grieved & molested with many more and far more sharp nails continually, even as it shall come at the last unto those, in whom the passion of Christ hath not been effectual but frustrate. For Christ who is the truth itself, will lie to no man, will delude no man, and that which he attempteth must needs be a matter of exceeding great importance and wonderful high. Seventhly, such fear Bernard had conceived hereof when he said: I did play abroad in the street, and in the kings privy chamber sentence of death was given upon me. The Kings only begotten son hearing this, laid of his diadem & came forth, clothed in sackcloth, his head sprinkled with ashes, & bare foot, weeping and crying out that his servant was condemned to death. I beholding him suddenly coming forth, am amazed at the strangeness thereof, I ask and hearken after the cause. What shall I do? shall I play still and delude his tears? Alas (saith he) it is no time now to play, it is no time to be secure, when so weighty a matter is in hand. So he bade the women that they should not weep for him, but for themselves and for their children, and he adjoineth the cause: For if they do these things to a green tree, what shall be done to the dry? as if he said: learn what ye obtain by my passion, and howsoever things fall out, yet this is true and known among you, that the whelp is sometime smitten, that the bandog or mastiff may be terrified. So also the Prophet hath spoken: All kindreds of the earth shall wail before him. He said not, they shall bewail him, but, they shall wail before him. Moreover they were sore afraid, of whom it is before spoken, so that they said unto the Apostles Act. 2: Men and brethren, what shall we do? Eightly, that this affection may be wrought in us, the Lords passion is very diligently to be considered of and meditated upon, By consideration of Christ's passion we ought to come to the knowledge of ourselves forasmuch as the most certain profit thereof doth much consist herein, that a man may come to the knowledge of himself, and tremble and be troubled before himself: whereunto he that doth not come, hath not yet attained unto the due profit of the lords passion. For the passion of Christ hath this proper and natural virtue, to make a man like unto him, that even as he was grievously tormented both in body and mind for our sins: so we also to imitat him must be afflicted in the knowledge of our sins. Howbeit the matter is not here done in many words, but in depecogitation and earnest weighing of sins. A similitude. Take a similitude: as thou hast great cause to fear and tremble, if, when some malefactor is condemned, for that he hath killed the son of the King or Prince, thou in the mean season, singing and playing securely as being innocent, art terribly apprehended and convicted, that thou diddest suborn the homicide: So thou oughtest to become much more fearful when thou dost revolve in thy mind the passion of Christ. For albeit the wicked jews be now judged of God and dispersed, yet were they Ministers of thy transgressions, and thou for a certainty art he, which with thy sins hast crucified and slain the son of God, as it hath been said. ninthly, he that feeleth himself so hardened and dull, that the passion of Christ doth not terrify him, neither bring him unto the knowledge of himself, is in an ill and lamentable case: for Christ's passion is not effectual in him. But now it is a hard thing for thee to be occupied in these things, What we must do that our meditation upon Christ's passion may be fruitful. and earnestly bend to the meditation of them: wherefore thou shalt pray God that he will mollify thy heart, and give thee grace profitably to meditate upon the passion of Christ, because it can not in any wise be, that the passion of Christ should be inwardly and rightly thought upon and considered of us, unless God inspire it into our hearts. Yea, neither this meditation nor any other doctrine is therefore set forth unto thee, that thou shouldest boldly rush upon it of thyself to fulfil it, but that thou shouldest first ask and desire the grace of God, that thou mayst fulfil it, not by thine own strength, but by God's grace. For hereof it cometh, that they of whom it is before spoken, do not meditate on the passion of Christ aright, because they desire not help of God thereunto, but rather trusting unto their own strength, and following their own invention, meditate upon it altogether after the fashion of men, and after a slender and unfruitful manner. Tenthly, if one should through the grace of God meditate rightly upon the passion of Christ, by the space of one day, or of one hour, yea or the space of a quarter of an hour, we would faithfully pronounce of him, that he hath done better, then if he had pined himself with fasting the space of a whole year, or had run over the Psalter every day. For this manner of meditation doth as it were change a man, and almost regenerate him a new like unto baptism. Then in deed the lords passion doth his natural, due and noble office, it killeth the old Adam, it driveth away all pleasure, joy and confidence, which may be had of creatures, even as Christ was forsaken of all, yea even of his father. eleventhly, We must not despair or cease, though at the first we obtain not that we pray for. seeing that such a thing is not in our own power, it cometh to pass that we do often times ask it, and yet do not by and by obtain it, notwithstanding we must not therefore despair or cease. For that is sometimes given for which we have not prayed, and that sometimes is not granted for which we have prayed, even as it is the pleasure of God, and as he knoweth to be best for us, for God will have this gift to be free & without constraint. Twelfthly, when as a man thus knowing his sin doth wholly tremble in himself, he must especially endeavour, that sins do not still remain in his conscience, otherwise mere desperation will come thereupon, but he must shake them of and cast them upon Christ, and so unburden his conscience. Therefore see again and again that thou do not that which perverse men do, which within the secrets of their heart do vex & disquiet themselves because of their sins, & strive with them, that by good works or satisfactions, by far going on pilgrimage, or else by pardons they may become safe, and may be made free from sins, which can not be. And (alas) such a false confidence in satisfactions and pardons hath prevailed very far. Moreover, than thou dost cast thy sins from thee upon Christ, What it is to cast our sins upon Christ. when thou firmly believest that he suffered & was wounded for thy sins, and that he hath paid the full ransom and satisfaction for them, as Esaias saith chap. 53. The Lord hath thrown upon him all our sins. 1. Pet. 2.24. 2. Cor. 5.21. And S. Peter saith: who his own self bore our sins in his body on the tree. S. Paul saith: He hath made him to be sin for us, which knew no sin, that we should be made the righteousness of God in him. In these and such like authorities thou must repose thy hope with all boldness, and that so much the more, as thy conscience doth more grievously vex and trouble thee. But if thou shalt not do this, but presumest that thou shalt be quiet by thy contrition and satisfaction, than thou shalt never come unto quietness, but at the last shalt fall even into desperation. For our sins kept and meddled with within our conscience, and set before the eyes of our heart, are far stronger than we, and do live immortally. But when as we see them laid upon Christ, and to be victoriously conquered of him by his resurrection, and do confidently believe this, than they are dead and brought unto nothing. And yet being laid upon Christ, they must not remain so: for they are swallowed up in the triumph of his resurrection. So sayeth Saint Paul: Christ was delivered to death for our sins, and is risen again for our justification, that is, he hath taken upon him our sins in his passion, and hath thereby paid the ransom for them, but by his resurrection he justifieth us, and maketh us free from all sin, if so be that we do believe this. If thou canst not attain unto this faith, thou must as it is a little before said, What we must do when we can not attain unto this faith, to believe that Christ died for our sins and rose again for our justification. resort unto God by prayer, forasmuch as this gift is in the hand of God only, who bestoweth it when & upon whom it pleaseth him. Thou mayst also stir up thyself hereunto: first, not now considering the passion of Christ outwardly, (for that hath now fulfilled his function and hath terrified thee) but rather by piercing inwardly and contemplating his most loving heart, with how great love towards thee it is replenished, which brought him hereunto, that he did bear thy conscience together with thy sins with so great and painful difficulty. So thy heart shall wax sweet towards him, and the strength & boldness of thy faith shall be increased. Then having entered unto the heart of Christ, ascend higher even unto the heart of God, and consider that the love of Christ could not have been showed unto thee, except the will of God by his eternal love had so appointed, whereunto Christ by his love toward thee did obey. There thou shalt find a divine heart, a good heart, a fatherly heart, and (as Christ saith) thou shalt be drawn unto the father by Christ. There thou shalt understand this saying of Christ: john. 3.16. So God loved the world that he gave his only begotten Son, that whosoever believeth in him, should not perish, but have everlasting life. For this is to know God aright, when he is understood of us, not under the name of power or wisdom (which is a terror unto us) but under the name of goodness & love. Then faith & confidence may stand constantly, & man himself is as it were regenerate a new in God. When thy heart is thus established in Christ, so that thou art now become an enemy of sin, and that by love and not through fear of punishment, than afterward the passion of Christ ought to be an example unto thee in thy whole life, and is now to be considered of in thy mind after a far other manner then before. For hitherto we have considered it as an outward thing which should work in us, but now we will weigh it so, that something is to be done of us also. For example's sake: In the meditation of Christ's passion we may find remedy against grief, pride, lust, anger, envy, sorrow, trouble, etc. when grief or infirmity doth molest thee, think how light these are being compared to the crown of thorns and the nails of Christ. When thou must either do or leave of that which is grievous unto thee to do or leave of, think how Christ was taken and bound, and led up & down. When pride tempteth thee, consider with thyself how thy Lord was mocked, and reputed among thieves. When lust & pleasure prick thee, think with how great sharpness the tender flesh of Christ was torn with whips, and pierced through. When anger, envy, desire of revenge move thee, think with how great tears and cries Christ did pray even for his enemies, toward whom he might more justly have showed himself sharp and rigorous. When sadness or any adversity whatsoever either corporal or spiritual troubleth thee, strengthen thy heart, & say: well, why should not I also suffer a little sorrowfulness, when as my Lord did sweat blood in the garden for anguish & heaviness. Surely he were a sluggish and an ignominious servant, who, his master lying at the point of death, would be held from him with a soft and easy bed. Lo, thus a man may find strength & remedy in Christ against all crimes and offences. This is truly in deed to meditate upon the passion of Christ: these are the fruits of the lords passion, in which he that doth after this sort exercise himself, doth surely without comparison better than if he heard all passions or all superstitious Masses. Such also are called true Christians, which do so represent the life and name of Christ in their life, as S. Paul saith: Gal. 5.24. They that are Christ's, have crucified the flesh with the affections and lusts with Christ. For the passion of Christ is not to be handled in words and outward show, but in deed and verity. Heb. 12.3. So S. Paul admonisheth us: Consider him that endured such speaking against of sinners, lest ye should be wearied and faint in your minds. And S. Peter saith: 1. Pet. 4.1. Forasmuch then as Christ hath suffered for us in the flesh, arm yourselves likewise with the same mind. But such meditation is now grown out of use and begun to wax rare, wherewith notwithstanding the Epistles of Peter and Paul are most abundantly replenished. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER OF THE FRUTE AND VIRTUE OF CHRIST HIS RESURRECTION. WE have heard in the treatise of the lords passion, It is not enough to know the history of Christ's passion and resurrection, but the use and fruit of them must be preached and known that it is not sufficient to know only the bare history thereof. After the same manner it is not enough here to know, how and when Christ rose again, but both the use and the profit as well of his passion as of his resurrection must be preached and known, to wit, what Christ obtained for us by them. For where the only deed of the history is preached, it is a frivolous preaching and without all fruit, which both Satan and the wicked do as well know, read, and understand, as we do. But when as the use of them is preached, and whereunto they profit, that in deed is a fruitful and wholesome Sermon, and full of sweet consolation. Wherefore Christ himself hath declared the use and profit of his passion and resurrection, when he thus talked with the women Matth. 28: Be not afraid: Go and tell my brethren that they go into Galilee, and there shall they see me. And this is the first word, which they hear of Christ after his resurrection from the dead, whereby he confirmeth all his sayings, also all his benefits showed unto them before, to wit that they should come unto us also that should believe in him, and pertain only to the believers, for that here he calleth not only the Apostles his brethren, but also all them which believe in him, although they do not see him visibly as the Apostles did. He doth not differre until we pray unto him and call upon him, that we may be made his brethren. Let any of us now come forth, and boast of his merit, or of the strength, whereby he is able to merit any thing. The Apostles merited nothing at all, that Christ should call them his brethren. What had the Apostles merited? Peter denied Christ thrice. All the rest of the Disciples did fly away from him, they did persever and stand by him, even as the hare tarrieth with her young ones, he might have called them runaways, and forsakers of their standing in the midst of their conflict, yea traitors and wicked men, rather than brethren. Wherefore of mere grace and mercy this word was brought unto them of the Matrons, which the Apostles themselves did then well perceive, and we also do thoroughly feel, when we are set in the mids of sins, and are overcome of damnation. This word therefore is full of all consolation and comfort, that Christ careth for such wretched men as we are, yea and that he doth call us his brethren. If so be that Christ be our brother, surely I would fain know what good thing we shall want. As therefore the case standeth among carnal brethren, so doth it stand here. They that are german brethren by consanguinity, do use goods common among themselves, having the same father, the same inheritance, otherwise they were not brethren. So we also possess common good things with Christ, enjoying the same father, the same inheritance, which inheritance is not diminished by parting it, as worldly inheritances are, but is always made more abundant: for it is a spiritual inheritance. A corporal inheritance, when it is distributed into divers parts, is made smaller, but in this portion of the spirit, the case is such, that he that hath gotten part thereof hath obtained the whole. The inheritance of Christ. What is therefore the inheritance of Christ? In his power are life and death, sin and grace, and whatsoever is contained in heaven and in earth, his are eternal verity, strength, wisdom, righteousness. All power is given unto him, he hath rule over all things, over hunger and thirst, prosperity and adversity, etc. he reigneth over all things that can be thought, whether they be in heaven or in earth, spiritual or corporal, and that I may speak at once: all things are in his power, as well eternal things as temporal. Now if I shall cleave unto him by faith, What they enjoy that cleave to Christ by faith. I shall be made partaker of all his good things, and shall not obtain a part of the inheritance only, but I shall possess even with him everlasting wisdom, eternal strength. My belly shall not be grieved with hunger, sins shall not oppress me, neither shall I be afraid of the face of death, neither shall I dread the sight of Satan, neither shall I want the plenty of any thing that is good, even as he wanteth it not. Hereby now we may easily understand the sayings uttered commonly in the Prophets, & especially in the Psalms, as where David saith Psal. 34: The Lions do lack and suffer hunger, but they that fear the Lord shall want no manner of thing that is good: and where he saith in an other place: The Lord knoweth the ways of the righteous, and their inheritance shall endure for ever. They shall not be confounded in the perilous time, and in the days of dearth they shall have enough. And again: I have been young and now am old, and yet saw I never the righteous forsaken, nor his seed begging bread. All which things Christ bringeth with him, for that we are, and are called his brethren, not because of any merit but of mere grace. If we would print these things in our heart, that we might thoroughly feel them, it should go well with us, but they go in at one ear and out at an other. This is that whereof S. Paul so greatly glorieth Rom. 8. As many as are led by the spirit of God, they are the sons of God. For ye have not received the spirit of bondage to fear again: but ye have received the spirit of adoption, whereby we cry Abba, Father: The same spirit beareth witness with our spirit, that we are the children of God: if we be children, we are also heirs, even the heirs of God, and heirs annexed with Christ, if so be that we suffer with him, that we may also be glorified with him. Moreover this title ascendeth so high, that man's mind is not able to comprehend it. For unless the spirit the comforter did impart this grace unto us, no man should ever be able to say: Christ is my brother. For reason can not be bold so to say, albeit one repeat it in words very often, as the new spirits do. It is a higher thing then that it can be so spoken, for except the heart feel it, as it is requisite it should, it shall be nothing but only flattery. But if thou feel it inwardly in thy heart, it will be so excellent a thing unto thee, that thou wilt much rather say nothing of it, then speak and talk of it, yea by reason of the greatness of so good a thing, thou wilt perhaps doubt as yet and be in an uncertainty whether it be so or not. They which only cry out thus: Christ is my brother, are fanatical spirits, who vainly pronounce words without any fruit. The case standeth far otherwise and far more marvelously with a true Christian, so that he is thereby enforced to be amazed, neither dareth he either say or confess any thing sufficiently thereof. Wherefore we must endeavour, that we do not hear this only with fleshly ears, but that we feel it in our heart, for than we will not be so rash, but we shall be forthwith carried into an admiration thereof. True and sincere Christians enter into the viewing and fear of themselves, thinking thus: O wretched and defiled creature, which am drowned in sins, am I now made worthy, that the son of God should be my brother? how do I miserable wretch attain to such a thing? Thus he is by and by astonished, and doth not well understand the thing. But a great study and endeavour surely is required, that a man may believe this, yea if it were felt, as it ought in very deed, a man should forthwith die thereupon. For he can not understand it according to his flesh and blood, and the heart of man in this life is more narrow and strait, then that it is able to comprehend so great things. But in death, when the heart shall be stretched out, than I say we shall try what we have heard by the word. In the Gospel of john chap. 20. Christ doth far more plainly declare unto Marie Magdalen this use and fruit both of his death and also of his resurrection, when he saith: Go unto my brethren and tell them: I ascend unto my father and your father, unto my God & your God, this is one of the most comfortable places whereof we may glory and boast. As though Christ should say: Marry, get thee hence and declare unto my Disciples which did flee from me, which have thoroughly deserved punishment and eternal condemnation, that this resurrection of mine is for their good, that is, that I have by my resurrection brought the matter to that pass, that my father is their father, and my God is their God. They are but a few & very short words in deed but they contain great matter in them, namely, that we have as great hope & confidence reposed in God, as his own son himself. Who can comprehend such exceeding joy, I will not say, utter it? that a wretched and defiled sinner may be bold to call God his father & his God even as Christ himself. The author of the Epistle to the hebrews chap. 2. did well remember the words of the Psalm, and weighed with himself how it speaketh of Christ, who, as he saith, is not ashamed to call the believers, brethren, saying: I will declare thy name unto my brethren, in the midst of the Church or congregation will I sing praises to thee. If any worldly Prince or noble man should humble himself so low, that he would say to a thief or robber, or to one that is infected with the french pocks: thou art my brother, it would be a certain notable thing which every one would marvel at. But whereas this king which sitteth in glory at the right hand of his father, saith of some poor man: this is my brother, that no man layeth up in the bosom of his breast, neither doth any man consider of it in his mind, wherein notwithstanding our chief comfort and confidence consisteth against sin, death, the devils, hell, the law, and against all sinister success of things as well of the body as of the mind. Moreover, forasmuch as we are flesh & blood, and therefore subject to all kinds of adversity, it followeth, that the case should stand so also with our brother, otherwise he should not be like unto us in all things. Wherefore, that he might be made conformable and like unto us, Christ like unto us in all things except sin he tasted and had experience of all things even as we have, sin only excepted, that he might be our true brother, and exhibit himself openly unto us. Which the Epistle to the hebrews doth lively set forth chap. 2. where it saith: Forasmuch then as the children are partakers of flesh & blood, he also himself likewise took part with them, that he might destroy through death, him that had the power of death, that is, the devil, & that he might deliver all them, which for fear of death were all their life time subject to bondage. For he took not on him the angels nature, but he took on him the seed of Abraham. Wherefore in all things it behoved him, to be made like unto his brethren, that he might be merciful, & a faithful high Priest in things concerning God, that he might make reconciliation for the sins of the people. For in that he suffered and was tempted, he is able to secure them that are tempted. The profit, The fruit of Christ's passion and resurrection. use and fruit of the lords passion & resurrection S. Paul hath gathered very briefly and as it were into one short sum, when he saith Rom. 4: Christ was delivered to death for our sins, and is risen again for our justification. Whereof thus much at this time shall suffice. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER OF THE GOOD shepherd. john 10. Verse 11. Jesus said unto the jews: I am that good shepherd: that good shepherd giveth his life for his sheep. 12. But an hireling, & he which is not the shepherd, neither the sheep are his own, seeth the wolf coming, and leaveth the sheep, and fleeth, and the wolf catcheth them, and scattereth the sheep. 13. So the hireling fleeth, because he is an hireling, and careth not for the sheep. 14. I am that good shepherd, and know mine, and am known of mine. 15. As the Father knoweth me, so know I the Father: and I lay down my life for my sheep. 16. Other sheep I have also which are not of this fold: them also must I bring, and they shall hear my voice, and there shall be one sheepfold, and one shepherd. THis text is full of consolation, which in a goodly parable setteth forth Christ our Lord, & teacheth what manner of person he is, what be his works, and of what affection he is toward men. Nevertheless it can not be understood, but by comparing together light and darkness, day and night, that is, a good and an evil shepherd, as the Lord also doth in this place. Ye have now oftentimes heard, that God hath instituted and ordained in the world two manner of preachings: The preaching of the law. One is, when the word of God is preached, which saith Exod. 20: Thou shalt have none other gods before me. Also: Thou shalt not kill, Thou shalt not commit adultery, Thou shalt not steal, & doth also threaten, that he which doth not keep those precepts shall die. But that preaching doth justify no man. For although a man be thereby compelled to show himself godly outwardly before men, notwithstanding inwardly his heart is offended at the law, The preaching of the Gospel. and had liefer there were no law. The other ministery of the word is the Gospel, which showeth where that is to be received, which the law requireth, it neither urgeth nor threateneth, but allureth men gently, it saith not: do this or that, but it saith thus: Go too, I will show where thou mayst receive and take, whereby thou mayst become righteous: Behold, here is jesus Christ, he will give it thee. Wherefore these two disagree one with an other, as much as to receive and give, to exact and reward. And this difference is to be well understood and marked. To hardened and untractable men, To whom the law must be preached which feel not the Gospel, the law is to be preached, and they are so long to be urged, till they begin to be mollified and humbled, and do acknowledge their disease, which when it is done, there is then place to begin to preach the Gospel. These two sorts of preachings were instituted and ordained of God, besides these there are other which were not ordained of God, but are traditions invented by men, ordained of the Pope and his Prelates, wherewith they have perverted the Gospel. These are not worthy to be called either shepherds or hirelings, but they are those which Christ calleth thieves, robbers and wolves. For if we will rule and guide men rightly and well, that must needs be done by the word of God: whereby if it be not done, we surely labour in vain. Furthermore Christ entreateth here of that second ministery of the word, and describeth of what sort it is: he maketh himself the chief, yea the only shepherd, for that which he doth not feed, doth surely remain unfed. Ye have heard that our Lord jesus Christ after his passion and death was raised from the dead, is entered into, and placed in immortality, not that he might sit idle in heaven, and rejoice with himself, but that he might receive a kingdom, might execute the function of a governor and king, of whom all the Prophets, yea & the whole Scripture do speak very much. Wherefore he is to be acknowledged to be unto us continually a present governor and ruler, neither must we think that he is idle in heaven, but that he doth from above both fill and govern all things as Paul saith Ephes. 4. who hath an especial care of his kingdom, which is the Christian faith, hereupon it must needs be, that his kingdom do flourish among us here in earth. Of this kingdom we have elsewhere said, that it is so ordained, The kingdom of Christ increaseth, not by force and power, but by preaching of the Gospel. that we all increase every day and become purer, and that it is not governed at all by any force or power, but by outward preaching alone, that is, by the Gospel. And this Gospel cometh not from man, but jesus Christ himself brought it, and afterward put it into the hearts of the Apostles, and their successors, that they might comprehend it, and into their mouths that they might speak and publish it. Hereby is his kingdom governed, wherein he so reigneth, that all the power thereof consisteth in the word of God. Now whosoever shall hear & believe this, The force & efficacy of the word of God. do pertain to this kingdom. Moreover this word is afterward made so effectual, that it giveth all things which are necessary to man, & bringeth a certain abundance of all good things which may be had. For it is the power of God which is able to save every one that believeth, as Paul witnesseth Rom. 1: When thou believest that Christ died for thee, to deliver thee from all evil, & so cleavest unto the word, it is sure and certain that no creature is able to overthrow thee. For as none is able to overthrow the word, so none is able to hurt thee, when thou stickest unto it. By the word therefore thou dost overcome sin, death, Satan, hell, and thither thou must resort and fly, where the word is, that is, to eternal peace, joy, and life, and briefly, thou shalt be made partaker of all such good things as are promised in the word. Wherefore the government of this kingdom is marvelous: the word is published & preached through the whole world, but the power thereof is very secret, neither doth any man mark that it is so effectual, & that it so much profiteth them that believe: howbeit it must be felt and tasted in the heart. We therefore of the ministery are able to perform no more, then that we are the mouth of our Lord Christ, and the instrument whereby he openly preacheth the word. For he suffereth the word to be published abroad, that every one may hear it. But faith maketh that it is felt inwardly in the heart, yea and it is the secret work of Christ, whensoever any knoweth that it is his duty, and is also willing to do according to his divine will and good pleasure. But that this may be the better perceived, we will now entreat of our text, wherein Christ first saith: I am the good shepherd. And what is a good shepherd? A good shepherd, saith Christ, giveth his life for his sheep. And I leave my life for my sheep. Here the Lord declareth what his kingdom is, bringing a goodly parable of the sheep. Ye know that it is a beast of all living creatures most foolish and most simple, so that thereupon it is commonly spoken as a proverb, if we have to speak of a simple one: He is a sheep. Nevertheless it is of that nature more than other living creatures, that it quickly knoweth the voice of his shepherd, neither followeth it any beside his own shepherd, being always of that quality that it cleaveth to him, and seeketh for help of him alone, being not able to help itself, neither to feed itself, neither to heal itself, nor keep itself from the wolves, but doth wholly consist in the help of an other. Christ therefore bringeth the quality and nature of the sheep in manner of a parable, and transformeth himself into a shepherd, whereby he doth very well show, what his kingdom is, and wherein it consisteth, and his meaning is this: My kingdom is nothing else, but that I may feed sheep, that is, miserable, needy, and wretched men in the earth, which do well perceive and feel, that they have no help or counsel any other where, but in me alone. But that we may declare this more plainly, we will add hereunto a place out of Ezechiel chap. 34. which speaketh of evil shepherds that do contrary unto Christ, & saith: Ought not the flocks suffer themselves to be fed of the shepherds? Why therefore do you feed yourselves? Evil shepherds how they behave themselves and govern their flock. Ye have eaten the milk of the sheep, ye have clothed yourselves with the will, the best fed ye have slain, but my flock have ye not fed. The weak have ye not strengthened, the sick have ye not healed, the broken have ye not bound together, the driven away have ye not brought again, the lost have ye not sought, but with force and cruelty have ye ruled them. And now my sheep are scattered, for that they are destitute of shepherds, yea all the beasts of the field devour them, and they are dispersed over all mountains, and over the whole earth. That which he here saith is well to be marked: his very meaning in this place is, that he will have the weak, sick, broken, abjects, and lost, to be strengthened, healed, cured, sought, not spoiled and destroyed. These things ye ought to do, saith he to the shepherds, but ye have do●● none of them. Wherefore I myself (as he afterward saith) will deal thus with my sheep: That which is lost will I seek again, that which is driven away will I bring again, and to that which is not well will I give a remedy and heal it. Here thou seest that the kingdom of Christ is such as hath to do with those that be weak, diseased and broken, & hath care of them to help them. The preaching whereof in deed is very full of comfort, but this is wanting in us, that we do not thoroughly feel our misery and weakness, which if we felt, we would forthwith run unto him. But how did those shepherds behave themselves? They ruled in rigour and straightly exacted obedience of the law. Moreover, they added their own traditions, as they do also at this day, which if they be not kept, they cry out, and condemn him that transgresseth them, so that they do nothing else, but urge more and more and command their own inventions. But this is not to feed well or to govern a soul, as Christ saith, who himself is not such a shepherd, for by such manner of feeding none is helped, but the sheep are utterly lost as we shall understand. Now we will handle the place of the Prophet in order. First he saith that the weak sheep are to be strengthened, Weak consciences how they must be handled. that is, the consciences which are weak in faith, and have a sorrowful spirit, and are of a faint courage, are not to be enforced, that it should be said unto them: This thou must do, thou must be strong. For if thou be so weak, thou art ordained to eternal punishment: This is not to strengthen the weak. Thus saith Paul Rom. 14: Him that is weak in the faith receive unto you, & entangle not consciences. And by & by after he addeth Rom. 15: We which are strong aught to bear the infirmities of the weak. Wherefore they are not to be severely compelled, but to be comforted, that although they be weak, they may not therefore despair, for afterwards they shall become stronger. Esaias the Prophet did thus forespeak of Christ cap. 42: A bruised reed shall he not break, & the smoking flax shall he not quench. The bruised reed signifieth miserable, weak, and bruised consciences, which are easily so shaken, that they tremble, and lose hope and trust in God. With these God doth not forthwith deal rigorously and after a violent manner, but he dealeth gently with them, lest he break them. Moreover the smoking flax, which doth as yet burn a little, & nourisheth more smoke than fire, ●●e the same consciences, which ought not again to despair, for he will not utterly extinguish them, but always kindle them, and more and more strengthen them. Which truly to him that knoweth it, is a great comfort. Wherefore he which doth not gently handle weak consciences after this sort, doth not without doubt execute the office of a true shepherd. Afterward the Prophet saith: That which was diseased, ye ought to have succoured. Who are those diseased ones? They which in their manner of living, and in their outward works have certain diseases, and vices. The first pertaineth to the conscience when as it is weak: the other to the manners or conditions of life, when as any being carried with a wilful mind and wayward brain, doth offend here and there, to wit by wrath & other foolish doings, as even the Apostles fell sometimes grievously. Such as are so vicious in the sight of men, that they are an offence to others, and are judged obstinate and wayward, God will not have to be rejected and despaired of. For his kingdom is not ordered after such a manner, that the strong and whole only should live therein (which pertaineth to the life to come) but Christ is therefore set in it, that he may have a care of such & help them. Wherefore albeit we are so weak and sick, notwithstanding we must not so despair, that we should say, that we are not in the kingdom of Christ, but the more we feel our disease, The more we feel ourselves diseased, the greater cause we have to fly unto Christ. so much the more we must come unto him, for he therefore is at hand that he may remedy and heal us. Now if thou be weak and oppressed with faintness, feeling great affliction, hereby thou hast gotten a greater occasion to go unto him, & to say on this manner: Most sweet Christ, I therefore come unto thee because I am a sinner, that thou mayst help and justify me: yea very necessity doth compel thee hereunto. For the greater thy disease is, so much more needful is it for thee to be healed. And Christ himself requireth the same of us, and doth allure us to come unto him boldly and cheerfully. But others which are not such shepherds, do think that they shall make men righteous, if they exact much of them and urge them much, whereby they only make that which is evil worse, as we see it to be done at this day, whereas it is come to that disorder, that all things are most miserably brought out of course, as in this place the Prophet saith. The broken have ye not bound together. To be broken is, as when ones leg is broken, or a wound some where else given him. That is, when as a Christian is not only weak and diseased, that he stumbleth sometime, but also runneth into so great temptations, that he breaketh some part, They which fall so grievously that they even deny the Gospel, must not be utterly despaired of. and so is brought to that pass, that he falleth and denieth the Gospel, after the manner of Peter, who did forswear Christ. Now if any should so stumble, that he should be compelled to go back, & be utterly cast down in mind, nevertheless we must not as yet cast him of, as though he did never any more pertain to the kingdom of Christ: for we must leave Christ's property to himself, that his kingdom may remain unto himself mere grace and mercy, whose desire is to help them only, which are grieved with their calamity and misery, and do greatly desire to be delivered from it. That his kingdom may altogether abound with comfort, and he himself be the comfortable and gentle shepherd, which provoketh and allureth every one to come unto him. And all this is done by the Gospel, whereby the weak are to be strengthened, the sick to be healed. For it is such a word as is fit for all distress of consciences, giving abundant comfort to all, that none despair although he be a great sinner. Christ therefore alone is that good shepherd, which healeth all sorts of diseases, and helpeth them that are fallen: which he that doth not, is not a shepherd. The Prophet thus goeth forward: That which was driven away, ye have not brought again. What is that that is driven away? The despised soul, which is so scorned and contemned, that it is thought to be done in vain, whatsoever Christian doctrine is bestowed upon it. Notwithstanding Christ doth not yet suffer, that it should be dealt roughly with. His kingdom is not compassed with so strait bounds, that only the strong, whole and perfect do flourish therein, for this pertaineth to the heavenly life to come, now in this his kingdom only grace and sweetness must abound. As God promised to the children of Israel Exod. 3. that that appointed land of Canaan should flow only with milk & honey, even as Paul 1. Cor. 12. affirmeth, that upon those members of the body, which we think more unhonest, we put more honesty on. He concludeth: The lost have ye not sought. That is lost which seemeth to be condemned, They which seem even past hope must not be quite cast of. of the return whereof there is scarce any hope. Of which sort in the Gospel were Publicans & harlots, and at this day they, who have not so much as a spark of godliness, but are untractable and unruly. Neither are they notwithstanding to be left, but all means are to be assayed that at the last they may be reclaimed and brought again into the right way. Which S. Paul eftsoons did, as when he delivered two of this sort unto Satan, 1. Tim. 1. I have delivered them unto Satan that they might learn not to blaspheme. And 1. Cor. 5. I have determined, saith he, to deliver them to Satan for the destruction of the flesh, that the spirit may be saved in the day of the Lord jesus. Them he cast of as condemned, and yet notwithstanding did not despair of them. Christ therefore is so to be preached, that he rejecteth no man although he be weak, but that he willingly receiveth, comforteth and strengtheneth every man, so that he always appeareth to be the good shepherd. Hereupon it cometh to pass, that men willingly resort unto him, and that it is no need any more to compel them. The Gospel so allureth, and maketh them willing, The Gospel allureth us with love & pleasure to come unto Christ. that they come with a certain love and pleasure, and with all boldness, Whereupon a desire and love unto Christ is increased in them, so that they do any thing willingly, who before were to be urged and compelled. If we be constrained, we do grudgingly & unwillingly, which God plainly abhorreth. But when as I shall perceive that God dealeth so lovingly and gently with me, my heart is as it were ravished, so that I can not stay myself, but I must even run unto him, leaving all other things, whereupon afterward all pleasure and joy ensueth unto me. Now consider how great an evil it is, when one judgeth an other. The kingdom of Christ, as we have heard, is so ordained, that it healeth and justifieth only sick and miserable consciences, wherefore all they are far deceived, which have regard only to the strong and whole. It is great therefore and very effectual knowledge whereby Christ is well known. It is graffed in us by nature to be altogether evil and wicked, & yet notwithstanding we would have every one to be honest, we earnestly regard strong Christians, not looking therewithal to the sick and weak, thinking them not to be Christians, if they are not strong, and judge others evil, if they be not altogether holy, when as we ourselves in the mean season exceed the rest in naughtiness. Now the cause hereof is our most corrupt nature, Our corrupt nature and blind reason cause us to err & judge amiss. & our blind reason, which will measure the kingdom of God according to her own opinion, whereby it thinketh that those things are unclean before God, which seem unclean unto itself, wherefore that opinion must be removed out of our mind. For if thou hast very much regard thereunto, thou shalt at the last come into the mind to think: alas, what shall become of me, if all Christians must be such, namely, strong, whole, and godly? When shall I once attain so far? And so thou shalt bring thyself into such a perplexity, that thou shalt hardly ever attain unto true comfort and joy. Thou therefore must be so affected, that thou say: Most gracious jesus, although I find myself altogether weak, diseased, and in a wretched state, yet I will not therefore cast of all hope, but will fly unto thee, that thou mayst secure me, For thou only art the shepherd, & the good shepherd, such a one I am persuaded that thou art, wherefore I will not despair or be discouraged, although I come unto thee being void of works. We must therefore bestow our diligence that we may wisely & well know Christ, that in his kingdom only the weak and diseased are conversant, and that it is nothing else, but as it were an hospital, wherein only the sick and feeble do lie, of whom a care must be had. But few men have this knowledge, for this wisdom is exceeding hard to be attained unto, so that it is wanting even unto them sometime, who have the Gospel and the spirit, neither can any wisdom come unto men which is greater than it. Wherefore, albeit men look into the Scripture, which setteth forth the kingdom of Christ, affirming it to be most precious, nevertheless they have not such a care what the words signify, neither do they mark that true wisdom is hidden therein, which excelleth our wisdom by many degrees. For it is not Christian wisdom to have to do with men which are accounted wise, and skilful, and to make mention, and talk of them, Christian wisdom is occupied among the unwise. but to be occupied among the unwise and them that lack understanding, not that delight & pleasure should be taken thereof, but that they may come from sin and foolishness to righteousness and sound understanding. Hereof it appeareth that Christian wisdom doth consist in this, not that we look aloft, & consider those things which are high and wise, and behold and see ourselves in them as it were in a glass, but that we look to those things that are below, & mark that which is humble & foolish. He which knoweth this, let him give thanks unto God. For by this knowledge he becometh such a one as is able to prepare and apply himself to every thing which is in the world. But ye shall find many, yea even among them that preach the Gospel, which are not yet come thus far. Hitherto we have been so instructed & accustomed, that none must come unto Christ, before he be altogether clean, thou must therefore forsake that opinion, that thou mayst attain to true understanding, that thou mayst know Christ aright, how he is the true and good shepherd, whereof we have heard sufficient. Now he compareth the good shepherd with the evil, or hireling, and saith: A good shepherd giveth his life for the sheep: but an hireling, & he which is not the shepherd, neither the sheep are his own, seeth the wolf coming, & leaveth the sheep, & the wolf catcheth & scattereth the sheep. So the hireling fleeth because he is an hireling, & careth not for the sheep. It is true in deed that Christ is properly the only shepherd, even as the name of Christ doth belong to him alone. yet he communicateth the same unto us, that we also may be called Christians. So although he be the only shepherd, yet he imparteth the same name to them that be of the ministery. After the same manner Matth. 23. he forbiddeth, that we call no man father upon the earth, forasmuch as there is one only our father, which is in heaven, notwithstanding Paul calleth himself the father of the Corinthians 1. Cor. 4. when he saith: In Christ jesus I have begotten you through the Gospel. So therefore it seemeth as though God alone would have the name of a father, and in the mean season notwithstanding he granteth the same name to men, that they also may be fathers, howbeit that they have not of themselves but by Christ. Even as we are called Christians, because we have nothing of ourselves, but for that all things are given unto us through Christ. Moreover, the hireling, saith Christ, which is not the shepherd, neither the sheep are his own, when he seeth the wolf coming, leaveth the sheep & fleth, etc. The hireling when the wolf cometh leaveth the sheep. This surely is a hard saying, that they which truly preach the Gospel, and strengthen & heal the sheep, nevertheless at the last do suffer the sheep to be caught and torn in pieces, and do then fly away, when the sheep have need of greatest help. As long as the wolves do not appear, they do their duty carefully & diligently, but as soon as they see the wolf break in, they forthwith leave the sheep. If they then have fed them well, that they be fat, strong, & whole, they are the better liked of the wolves, for whom they have fed them. But what is the hidden meaning of this parable? The meaning of Christ is this: In my kingdom (which consisteth in nothing else, but that the weak be strengthened, the sick healed, the faint hearted encouraged) the holy cross shall not be wanting. The cross accompanieth the preaching of the Gospel. For when it is preached, that Christ only, whose silly sheep we are, hath care of us, strengtheneth, healeth, and helpeth us, & that our own strength and our own works are of no importance at all, (whereby all works of the world, and the diverse sorts of worshipping God which it inventeth are utterly disallowed) the world can not abide such manner of preaching, so that it is a natural property of the Gospel, to bring the cross with it as unseparably accompanying it, & he that will unfeignedly profess it before the world, must needs yield himself to bear persecution. Forasmuch as the case standeth thus, it is not hard to perceive how great difference there is between the true shepherds and the hirelings. He that is an hireling preacheth the Gospel as long as he is reported among men to be a learned, The hireling how he behaveth himself. godly & holy man. But when as he is reproved or set upon as an heretic and wicked fellow, or moved to make a recantation, than he either recanteth, or taketh himself to his feet, leaving the miserable sheep alone without a shepherd, than their case becometh worse than it was before. What doth it then avail the sheep if they were well fed before? What the true shepherd doth, If they were true shepherds, they would spend their life before they would so leave the sheep to the jaws of the wolves, and would be ready always to offer their neck to the axe for the gospels sake. They therefore are never good shepherds, which so preach the Gospel, that they may thereby get unto themselves honour, riches, and profit, without all doubt they are hirelings, who seek after their own things even in sound doctrine, yea and in the word of God. Wherefore they abide no longer, then while they may have honour, praise & commiditie thereby, but as soon as the wolf cometh, go back, deny the word, and get themselves away, leaving the sheep, which very earnestly seek for pasture and their shepherd, who may keep them from the injury of the wolves, but that good shepherd can no where be found, who flieth away even at that time, when the sheep have most need of a defender and strengthener. The same shall happen to us in time to come, when we shall once begin to be touched in deed. Then the Preachers will shut their mouths, and provide for their safety by flying, and the sheep shall be miserably dispersed, so that one shall be carried this way, an other that way. God grant that some of them may stand valiantly in defence of the Gospel, and spend their blood, if the case so require in delivering their sheep. Thus Christ hath painted forth the hirelings in their colours, who thus saith moreover: I am that good shepherd, and know mine, and am known of mine. These words do contain much, I should spend over much time, if I should handle them severally. He speaketh here of the peculiar duty that belongeth to himself. I know my sheep, saith he, and they again know me. Now the sum is this: Christ knoweth us to be his sheep, & we again know him to be our shepherd. He knoweth us to be such sheep as are weak and diseased, which he doth not cast of, but hath a care of them, and healeth them, although they be so diseased, that all the world thinketh that they are not his sheep, and this in deed is the knowledge of the world. But Christ doth not so know them, neither doth he greatly regard what manner of ones they be, but considereth whether they be sheep. They therefore are the true shepherds, who following Christ, do so know their sheep, that they look unto the persons, not to the disease. My father knoweth me, saith Christ, The world knoweth not Christ. but the world knoweth me not. When as therefore the hour shall come, that I shall die an ignominious death upon the cross, all with one voice will cry out: was this the son of God? he must needs be a condemned man, and given up unto Satan, both in soul and also in body. So the world will consider and know me. But my father will say in this sort: this is my well-beloved son, my king and Saviour. He beholdeth not my affliction, my wounds, my cross & death, but he considereth my person, that is, me very self. Wherefore if I were in the midst of hell, or in the jaws of Satan, yet I should come out again, for the father will not forsake me. Likewise I know my sheep, and they know me. They are certain that I am a good shepherd, they know me, therefore they come to me for succour, and cleave unto me, neither doth it any thing fear them, that they are subject to manifold infirmities and diseases, they know very well that I would have such manner of sheep to resort unto me. Other sheep I have also, which are not of this fold: them also must I bring and they shall hear my voice, and there shall be one sheepfold, & one shepherd. Some have so handled this place, that they affirm it shall be fulfilled before the latter day, when Antichrist, john, and Helias shall come. Which is flatly against the truth, and forged of Satan, that men might believe, that the whole world shall at the last become Christian. Which Satan therefore did that he might darken the sound doctrine, that we might never rightly understand it. Beware therefore of this delusion. For by and by after the ascension of Christ this was done and fulfilled, and is yet at this day fulfilled. As soon as the Gospel was published, it was preached to the jews, and this people was the sheepfold. Now he saith, that he hath certain other sheep also, which are not of this fold, which also he must gather together, whereby he showeth, that the Gospel must be preached to the Gentiles that they also may believe in Christ, that of the jews and Gentiles may be made one Church. Which he performed afterward by the Apostles, who preached the Gospel to the Gentiles, and brought them to the faith. So there is now one body, one Church, one faith, one hope, one love, one baptism, and so of the like, which continueth at this day, and shall so continue even to the end of the world. Wherefore do not so understand it as though all men shall believe in Christ, for the cross must always be borne of us, forasmuch as the greatest part is always of that faction, which persecuteth Christians. The Gospel also must be continually preached, that always some may be brought to Christianity. And thus much for a compendious exposition of this text. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER OF THE LOST SHEEP. Luke 15. Verse 1. THen resorted unto him all the Publicans and sinners to hear him. 2. Therefore the Pharisees and Scribes murmured, saying: He receiveth sinners and eateth with them. 3. Then spoke he this parable to them saying: 4. What man of you having an hundred sheep, if he lose one of them, doth not leave ninety and nine in the wilderness, and go after that which is lost, until he find it? 5. And when he hath found it, he layeth it on his shoulders with joy. 6. And when he cometh home, he calleth together his friends and neighbours, saying unto them: Rejoice with me: for I have found my sheep which was lost. 7. I say unto you, that likewise joy shall be in heaven for one sinner that repenteth, more than for ninety & nine just men, which need none amendment of life. IN this text, dearly beloved, What kind of doctrine this text containeth. even that doctrine is contained, which we are persuaded, and glory to be our chief doctrine, and which by best right deserveth to be called christian doctrine, to wit of grace and forgiveness of sins, set down against the doctrine of the law, and of works. But it is a very shameful thing, that a sermon so excellent, and replenished with so great comfort and joy, should be heard of a man that is wicked & a contemner of the word of God. This is much more miserable, that all think they have so soon thoroughly learned it, to the knowledge whereof every one will seem to have attained, thinking that there is nothing in it, which he doth not perfectly understand, and that there is no need to spend any more study in learning it. Although it be not grievous to God himself, neither doth it irk or weary him, every year repeating it, or rather every day exercising it, as though he knew to preach nothing else, being unskilful and ignorant of all other kind of doctrine. And we miserable and wretched men do so soon as we think attain to the knowledge of the chiefest doctrine, that forthwith it is wearisome and tedious unto us to repeat it, whereby all pleasure and love of the word of God dieth and is extinguished in us. But before I declare the article or chief point here taught, I think it good, that the beginning of this chapter be diligently considered, which S. Luke setteth in steed of a preface, & showeth what gave Christ cause to make this sermon, where he saith: Then resorted unto him all the Publicans and sinners to hear him. In which words he plainly signifieth with what men Christ kept company, With what kind of men Christ was conversant. namely with them, which in the sight of all men lived as it did not become them, and were openly called sinners and evil persons. Whereby it appeareth that the Pharisees seemed to have sufficient cause to find fault with Christ, for that he, which would be counted holy, did familiarly keep company with such men. Publicans what they were. For they were commonly called Publicans at that time, to whom the Romans did let out some city or custom, or some charge or oversight in matters, for a certain sum of money: as the Turk or Venetians do now commit to some one some city or office, for which a certain sum of money is yearly to be paid, and what soever they shall scrape together by unjust exactions above this sum, that is their own. So also the aforesaid Publicans did, which so gathered those tributes and money wherewith they were charged, that they themselves also might have some gain thereby. And seeing that a sum of money to be paid for some city or office was not small, they desirous to gain thereby, did by all means deal unjustly, and used extortion in all things, in all places, and with all persons. For the Lords and masters held them so hardly and straightly, that they could not get much thereby, if they would deal rightly and justly, and oppress no man with unjust exactions. Whereupon they had a very evil report abroad, that they were most unjust exactors, and endued with small honesty and integrity of life. Likewise the rest in general were called sinners, which otherwise lived dishonestly and wretchedly, & were defiled with filthy offences, as with covetousness, with whoredom, with surfeiting and drunkenness, and such like. Such resort here unto Christ, and come to hear him, when as before they had known him by report to be excellent and famous both in words and deeds. Howbeit it is certain that in them although they seemed even desperate, there was a spark of virtue and honesty, in as much as they longed after Christ, both covering to hear his doctrine, and also earnestly desiring to see the works which he did, when before they knew him to be a good man, and heard no ill report either of his doctrine or works, so that their life did far differ from his. Nevertheless they are so well disposed, that they are not his enemies, neither refuse or fly his company, but run unto him, not of any evil purpose or intent, but to see and hear some good thing, whereby they may amend their life. The malicious dealing of the Scribes & Pharisees. Contrariwise the Pharisees and Scribes, which were counted most righteous and holy, are such poisonful beasts, that they are not only sore displeased at Christ, whom they can abide neither to see nor hear, but also they can not be content, that miserable sinners should come unto him, and hear him, whereby they being led by repentance might amend: Yea they do also beside this, murmur, and reprove Christ, for that he admitted unto him, and received Publicans and sinners, saying: Behold, is this that holy and famous man? Who will now say that he is of God, when as he hath society with so wicked wretches? yea rather he is a drinker of wine and a glutton, as they say elsewhere, Luke 7.34. a friend to Publicans and sinners. Such a report he is constrained to bear of the holy Pharisees, not for that he giving himself to gluttony and surfeiting, accustomed to feed excessively and follow riotous pleasure together with them, but only because he admitted such into his company, and did not contemptuously reject them. For in their opinion he should have gone with a sad and austere countenance, in base apparel, & have remained severed from the conversation and company of men, and refused their fellowship, lest that by familiar custom with them, he should be defiled, and should have done as they were accustomed to do after the manner of holy men. Of whom isaiah writeth, that they studied for such purity, that they did fear and suffer against their will even the touching of a sinner. Which in deed plainly appeareth Luke 7. in the Pharisee murmuring against Christ, because he suffered himself to be touched of the sinful woman. And it was they, that would always be his masters, & prescribe unto him rules whereby to live, and behave himself in this life. Therefore in this place they murmur, for that he did not apply himself unto them, neither did disdain the company & conversation of such sinners according to their example. Now Christ also is somewhat stout, plainly showing here, The stoutne of Christ. that he can suffer the mastership of none, but that he is altogether free & exempt from the commandments of all, as commonly in the Gospels we see him to be at his own will & pleasure, who nevertheless otherwise was both gentler and also more serviceable than all the rest. But when as they would deal with him by laws, & be his masters, them all friendship ceased, for he did not otherwise leap back, than the adamant laid upon the anvil & stricken, speaking and doing only the contrary of that which they require of him, although they seem to speak even rightly and well, alleging thereunto also the word of God. As they do here, where they come and say: thou must do thus, thou must follow the conversation of honest men, thou must flee the company of wicked men. This truly is a substantial doctrine, and confirmed by testimony of the Scripture. For Moses himself commandeth the jews, to avoid evil men, & take away evil from among them. By this text they confirm their sayings, & come with their Moses, Christ compared to the Unicorn. and would make Christ subject to their laws, and have him ruled by them. But Christ nevertheless will be at his own liberty. And he is not unlike the Unicorn, which beast men deny that he can be taken alive, with what kind of hunting soever he be assailed. He suffereth himself to be wounded, to be stricken with darts, and to be slain, Christ is impatient of laws. to be taken he doth not suffer himself. No otherwise doth Christ also, who although he be set upon by laws, yet doth he not suffer them, but breaketh through as through a spider's web, rebuking them most sharply. As Matth. 12. where they found fault with his Disciples, because they had plucked the ears of corn on the Sabbath day, alleging the commandment of God that the Sabbath was to be kept holy, etc. he avoucheth the clean contrary, tearing in sunder the commandment, affirming the contrary both in words, and also by examples. Also Matth. 16, where he declareth to his Apostles that he shall suffer and be crucified, but Peter admonisheth him to be of a good there, and setteth before him the precept of charity, saying: Master, pity thyself, there again he doth earnestly and sharply blame and rebuke his admonisher, and saith: Get thee behind me, Satan: thou understandest not the things that are of God, but the things that are of men. And in a sum, he is most impatient of all laws wherewith they deal with him, he will be most free from all commandments, and acknowledged to be the Lord of them. He always giveth such answers, as with which he represseth the exactors, neither will he keep any law as though he were compelled to do it. Contrariwise, when he doth any thing of his own accord, than no law is so little or so light, whereunto he doth not willingly obey, and doth much more than it requireth. Wherefore there can none be found more gentle and serviceable than he, if he be urged with the controlment or exaction of none. Moreover he doth so far humble himself, Christ humble and serviceable. Matth. 20.28 that he washeth the feet of judas which betrayed him, according as he himself speaketh of himself: I came not to be served, but to serve others, etc. which is manifest to them that consider his life, how he walked abroad in judea, Samaria, Galilee, and in the night stepped on the ground, fasted forty days, and took no rest at all, but patiently sustained so much labour, that they feared lest he should be ravished in mind, or finally bring some hurt to his body. He doth all things that he can, but that he refuseth to be compelled, and suffereth no laws to be prescribed unto him, which if any set before him, he most stoutly resisteth and striveth against them. So he is both of a most stout and of a most mild spirit, Christ both of a most stout and also of a most mild spirit. neither is there any more stout, nor more serviceable than he, who can abide to do none of those things that are exacted of him, and nevertheless doth all things even most abundantly, and as it were overfloweth with a flood of good works, and watereth all things, no man commanding him, or by way of controlment exacting and requiring any thing of him, but he being permitted to do voluntarily and of his own accord. These things are done for our example, that we may learn what a true Christian man is after the spirit, lest we judge him according to the law, and according to our own wisdom and understanding. For Christ is therefore our Lord, that he may make such men of us, as he is himself. And as he can not suffer himself to be tied and bound with laws, but will be Lord of laws, yea and of all things, so also ought not the conscience of a Christian to suffer them. For we are so much made free by Christ, The conscience of a Christian must not be bound with laws. that our conscience may know nothing concerning any law, whose judgement & controlment it may abide to suffer. Neither ought we any otherwise to be affected according to the state of the inward conscience, then if no law had been given or made: yea as if neither x. commandments, nor one, either of God, or of Bishop, or of Cesar were given to us, that we may plainly say: I know nothing of any law, neither will I know any thing. For in that state and condition, wherein we Christians are, our works, & the works of all men do cease, yea and all laws also. For where there is no work, neither can there be any law, requiring a work and saying: this thing was to be done of thee, this to be left undone. But we through Christ are wholly free from all works, and righteous by mere grace and mercy, whereby we live only before God. And this is our treasure, whereby we are Christians, and live and stand before God. For how we ought to live in outward conversation, to wit in flesh and blood before the world, it doth nothing pertain unto this place. A Christian must not suffer his conscience to be held captive of any law. Wherefore a Christian must learn so to rule his conscience, that he suffer it not to be held captive or entangled with any law. But whosoever will bind and hold it with any law, let him stoutly and boldly strive there against, and do as he seeth Christ do here and else where, where he useth so great stoutness and earnestness of mind, that no Moses or Exactor of the law can prevail any thing with him, although otherwise he be most humble, most sweet and gentle of all men. Howbeit this art is above measure high and excellent, which none but he understandeth, whereof he is the Master, who knoweth how to appease all laws and teachers of laws. We of ourselves are not able to pacify and appease the law. We are not able to do so: For the Devil mightily assaileth us, and as often as he setteth upon the conscience of man, he driveth him to that point, that he entereth disputation with him, what he hath done or not done. Then such a disputation beginneth, as wherein is debated of our sin and righteousness, even then man is brought into a dangerous case and into the mire, where be sticketh, neither can he escape or rid himself out, but is forthwith deeper and deeper plunged in. For he is laden with a heavy burden, which he is not able to bear, wherefore he walketh musing, gnawing & consuming his mind, neither can he get any quietness thereof. Which I do plainly feel in myself, neither can I wrestle out, and deliver myself by any travel, although I labour always, assaying all means to escape out of this gulf, that I may answer the law, and obtain so much, that it may keep silence, and say, now at length thou hast done so much, wherewith I am constrained to be content. But all endeavour and study is in vain: for such a deep pit and dangerous gulf it is, out of which no man is able to escape, although he join the helps of all men to himself, as they can bear me witness which have made trial hereof, and do as yet daily try it. The cause is our nature, which will have to do with works and laws, and hear what they say, and follow them that say: Why doth he eat with Publicans and sinners? if he did eat and drink with us, he should do well. Also: why do thy Disciples pluck the ears of corn on the Sabbath day? etc. with whom it will have to do so long, till the law saith: now thou art righteous. For it can attain to no higher understanding, then that the doctrine of the law is the chiefest doctrine, and that the righteousness thereof is the best life before God. In it it continually remaineth so captive yea and bound, neither can it by any means deliver itself out of this prison, being not able to pacify and appease the law, that it do not exact any thing of it, or reprehend it in any thing, but it is compelled to be captive therein as in a perpetual prison, and the longer it striveth and fighteth with the law, into so much worse case doth it always come, until at the last it be wholly subdued. What therefore must I do, What a Christian must do when the law urgeth his conscience. the law assailing & urging my conscience, especially when I perceive myself not to do that which it requireth? I answer, even that which Christ doth here, who admitteth or acknowledgeth no law, although brought out of the law of God. So learn thou also to do, that thou mayest boldly say to the law, leave of law to dispute with me, I have nothing to do with thee. And for that very same cause, for which thou comest to dispute with me, and to inquire of me, how good and righteous I am, I will not hear thee. For it here maketh no matter, what I am, or what I ought to do, and what not to do, but what Christ himself is, aught to do, and doth. For now we are in the bride-chamber, where only the bridegroom and the bride must have to do, and it behoveth not thee to come thither, nor to intermeddle any thing there. But nevertheless it now and then knocketh and saith: in the mean season notwithstanding good works must be done of thee, the commandments of God must be kept, How we must answer the law when it is instant upon us. if thou wilt obtain salvation. Answer again: but thou hearest that it is not now time to speak of them: for now I have obtained my righteousness and the sum of all my salvation without my works in Christ my Lord, and am already saved before thou camest, therefore I have no need of thy presence. For as I have said, where works prevail nothing, neither is the law there of any importance or weight, and where there is no law, neither is there any sin. The bride therefore alone, all the rest being excluded, must reign in the bride-chamber with Christ, in whom she hath all things at once, neither needeth she any thing more, which is necessary to salvation. Wherefore the law must be excluded and utterly rejected, yea and cast of, as often as it will invade and set upon the conscience. For surely it ought not to meddle therewith, neither cometh it in time, when it will have much to do there, where it ought to have nothing to do, and whither it ought in no wise to come. For the conscience resteth in this article of our Christian faith, I believe in jesus Christ my Lord, which suffered, died, & was buried for me, etc. unto whom both Moses law, & Caesar's, & divine laws ought to give place. All that therefore is boldly to be chased from me, whatsoever will dispute with me of sins, righteousness, and such like things. Behold, Christ would in this place resemble this liberty unto us, that as Christians we suffer no master in our conscience, trusting most constantly to this one thing, that we are baptized, and called unto Christ, and by him justified and sanctified, whereupon we may say: He is my righteousness, my treasure, my work, and in a sum, what not? against sin and unrighteousness (whereof the law endeavoureth to accuse me) If it please you to have other righteousness, works, law, etc. then may ye take them from whence ye will, surely ye shall find no place for them in me. Thus may a man defend himself, and stand against the suggestions and temptations of the Devil, and of sins either past or present. Wherefore Moses and Christ are far to be separated asunder, as also works and faith, the conscience and the outward life, so that if the law will set upon me, and make my heart afraid, then is it time to send it away, and if it will not give place, to thrust it out by force, and to say: I will willingly do good works, and will go forward as much as I am able for that time that I live among men, but here I will know nothing at all of them in my conscience, & therefore let me alone, & prate nothing of them. For here I will vouchsafe to hear neither Moses nor the Pharisees, but Christ alone doth obtain place to reign here. I will like unto Marie, sit at his feet to hear his word, but let Martha carry abroad, and busy herself in the kitchen and about the household affairs. And in a sum, I will not trouble the quietness of my conscience. But what shall I say, An objection whereas in the mean season I do daily sin, which surely is evil? I answer, in deed it is true, The answer I am a sinner, and I do unjustly, but I must not therefore despair, as though I were subject to condemnation, yea or tremble because of the rigour of the law. For by faith I apprehend him, which hath apprehended me, and apply myself unto him, which hath embraced me in baptism, and hath put me in his bosom, and by the preaching of the Gospel hath called me to the communion of all his good things, bidding me to believe in him. Now when as I have apprehended him by faith, then may I be bold to bid the Pharisees, and Moses with his tables, all Lawyers with their books, all men with their works hold their peace and give place. No law hath then any power to convince or accuse me: for in this Christ I have all things abundantly, whatsoever can be required in me. This, I say, is the doctrine and art of Christians, the scope and end whereof is this, even to reign with Christ. But blockish men do not understand it, taking hereupon occasion to live more freely, as they list, saying: what need is there that I should do good works, forasmuch as Christ hath abrogated the law, etc. Albeit we be free from the law, we must nevertheless do good works after the example of Christ. There foolish babbling is in no wise to be borne, for Christ is on the other part also to be considered of thee, and thou must mark what he doth more. For here he himself saith: that he is that man which seeketh the miserable and lost sheep, which also he witnesseth by his present deed, by receiving sinners and Publicans, and by preaching unto them. Whereby thou seest that he doth fulfil much more than the law commandeth to be done, and teacheth thee to do the same by his example. He is of such an heroical stomach, that he will not be under the law, yet doth he of his own accord more things than the law requireth. Do thou so also, neither look when thou shalt be forced and driven on by the law, but without the law and of thine own accord do that which is needful to be done, as Peter 1. Pet. 2 admonisheth saying: as free, and not as having the liberty for a cloak of maliciousness, but as the servants of God. And Paul Rom. 6: Being made free from sin, ye are made the servants of righteousness. These are they, which do all things with a free conscience without the law, and unconstrained. For where the Gospel is truly in the heart, it maketh a man to be such a one, as doth not look while the law cometh, but is so full of joy in Christ, that he is with speed carried unto good works, doing well to all men, as much as he is able, & that of his own accord, before the law cometh into his mind. Moreover he bestoweth both body and life, having no regard, what he must therefore suffer, and so he is full of good works which voluntarily flowing as it were out of a continual fountain are derived unto many: As Christ being compelled, doth not abide to take up so much as a straw, but uncompelled giveth himself to be crucified for me, and for the whole world, dying for the lost sheep. Howbeit it is very necessary to discern these things well, when it is come to hand strokes and within the throwing of the dart, as it is said, the law and sins disputing now with thy conscience, then see that thou do boldly repress Moses, and bid him keep silence, The old man must be driven into Moses school. sending him abroad to the old man. drive him into Moses school, that he may dispute with him and say: Dost thou hear? thou art too slow and sluggish in giving and serving thy neighbour. When Christ is to be served of thee, thou wilt more willingly serve thy belly: thou wilt come in no peril for Christ's sake, thou dost deceitfully rob thy neighbour circumventing him by what means soever thou canst. For that sluggish ass flying labour, and following only idleness and wantonness, use the tables of stone, whom even against his will, constrain to go on in his duty. Wherefore when thou shalt set upon me, in that thing which is right and meet (thou must say unto Moses) I will willingly hear thee, We must admit Moses to deal with the outward man, but not with the conscience. and follow thy admonitions, namely according to the outward man, and in outward life, where thou mayst bear rule like a schoolmaster, & as one governing a family: Where thou hast power to command me, to be obedient, modest, patiented, good to my neighbour, dutiful and liberal toward the poor, & to celebrate God with praises poured forth to his glory: moreover to be content for his words sake to abide the contumelies & slanders of all persons, & to suffer every kind of injury of the world. With all which I am not greatly moved, yea I would do more things than I am able to do according to the outward man. For the spirit, by the testimony of Christ, is willing, and ready, although the flesh be weak. But if thou wilt go so far, whither it is unlawful for thee to come, that is, into my heart and conscience, there will I neither see thee, nor vouchsafe to hear thee. For there I have an other both great & unspeakable treasure, whose name is Christ. And in a sum, whatsoever pertaineth to bridle the outward man, thou canst not lay on a sufficient burden thereof: but thou must burden the conscience nothing at all. For he that enjoyeth Christ, is above all laws, as Paul saith: the law is not given for the just, who notwithstanding in the mean time doth more things, than he is able to fulfil in the flesh. For according to the law we are sinners, and concerning our person we must abide under it. But through Christ we are far above the law. So Moses without Christ must exercise his gross works, whereby he may compel men which are not yet Christians, to be honest cively before the world: for he doth not make Christians righteous & honest. Howbeit I will not deny that he doth this, that he showeth unto them their duties, which otherwise they would willingly fulfil & satisfy, yea & do more things also, but that the flesh doth not so willingly & with that readiness wherewith it ought, follow the spirit. In which respect they are to be admonished and urged, the conscience nevertheless remaining free, so that the law have no power to accuse them. Wherefore such doctrine & admonition ought to be among Christians (as it is certain that among the Apostles there was) whereby every man may be admonished of his state & office. As for the rest which are not Christians, Who they be which must be under the discipline of Moses. they must be ruled by Moses laws, & burdened with them both outwardly & inwardly, whereby they may be forced and afflicted, that they may do that which is right, forsaking that which is evil, although they do it not with a patiented and willing mind. Of which kind the rash multitude of the unruly common sort & the obstinate people is, who do not regard or understand the liberty of Christ, although they can babble & glory of many things concerning the Gospel, & they notwithstanding do abuse it only to the lust of their mind: let them know that they are under the discipline and correction of Moses. For they are not such men, as are capable of this doctrine, which live with such a secure mind, that they think, they have no need of the Gospel, or that they otherwise do sufficiently know it. But they only are capable hereof, which are busied with the disputation of the conscience & the law, of sins & of the wrath of God, by consideration whereof they become astonished, feeling the words of the heart speaking thus: Alas, how wretchedly have I led my life? what account shall I make unto God? & so they be too much fearful & amazed, the rest being more than is meet secure and presumptuous, feeling no law nor sin, no nor any trouble at all. And the case standeth very unequally with both, for they which should have nothing to do with the law, do most of all wrestle with it, & alone feel it. But others of whom only the law should be felt, are nothing moved with it: yea the more grievously they are terrified by the law & the wrath of God, by so much they become more indurate. There must therefore be an other master to amend these, namely, the slayer & tormentor, who may teach them, being unwilling to do well in the name of the Lord & with favour, in the name of an other to do that that becometh them, with no favour, the reward also of hell fire and of all miseries being set before them. Howbeit Christ both here and every where else (as it is said) both by doctrine & also by his own example teacheth us, which feel our sins and the burden of the law, and would willingly be Christians, to accustom ourselves to fight against it, & drive it from us unto others, to give no place to the Devil, who would by the law break up the bride-chamber of Christ, and thrust himself into his place, that is, take away from the conscience her joy and comfort, whereby he may draw man into desperation, that he may not be able cheerfully to lift up his heart and head before God. For this is the art of Christians whom it behoveth to know and learn more things, Christian's must know how to fight against the devil and to bear his assaults. than that profane and blockish common sort knoweth and understandeth, that we may know well the manner how to fight with the devil, and to bear his assault, as often as he shall set upon us, & dispute with us out of Moses. With whom when he goeth about such things, we must not dispute in many words, but must forthwith appeal from Moses to Christ, and cleave to him. For all his travaills & deceits tend unto this end, that he may craftily pluck us from Christ, and draw us unto Moses. For he knoweth full well, the matter being brought to that point, the victory shallbe on his side. Wherefore thou must again and again take heed that thou suffer not thyself to be plucked out of this haven, We must take most diligent heed that the devil pluck us not from Christ to Moses. neither to be enticed out of this circle. And although he shall lay many things against thee out of the law, even inasmuch as it is the word of God, whereunto it is meet that thou do obey, yet mayst thou answer him and say: dost thou not hear, that I will now know or hear nothing concerning the law? for we are now in that circle and haven, wherein it is not inquired what I must do; or leave undone, but by what means we obtain to have God gentle and favourable unto us, and how we get remission of sins. Here I will abide in the arms of Christ, cleaving unseparably about his neck, and creeping into his bosom, whatsoever the law shall say, and my heart shall feel: nevertheless, so that we keep the principal part of our faith sincere, and the chief point safe, outwardly I will willingly do and suffer, what burden soever it shall lay upon me. Behold, he that understood this art well, should be a right and perfect man, as Christ was, so far above all laws, that he might be bold to call Peter Satan, and the Pharisees fools, and leaders of the blind, and put Moses himself to silence, and so live altogether without the law, and yet in the mean season fulfil all laws: furthermore be obstinate and stout against all that will enforce and constrain him, and yet notwithstanding of his own accord profit and obey all. But truly herein consisteth all the defect, that we do never fully and perfectly learn this art, the devil so letting and hindering us, that we go preposterously to work, being too ready and willing to hear all things whatsoever the law saith. At whose threatenings also we are not a little astonished, which it had been better for us not to have heard. Again in outward things also we give ourselves to liberty more than is convenient, whereas the body should be kept under & bridled with works, whereby it might be compelled to bear what soever should be grievous unto it, when as yet it oftentimes sinneth, yet so, that sin abide without, where it must abide, & have his Moses, who always may be near unto it with his exactions. Howbeit inwardly let no sin or law bear rule, or reign, but let Christ alone rule and reign by mere grace, joy and comfort. So all things should be done rightly, and man should be apt and fit to all good things, both to do, and also to suffer, with a glad and obedient heart by faith not feigned in the grace of God through Christ. Wherefore let the conscience bear rule over all laws, let the flesh be subject to every law. Now he that is skilful of this art, let him give thanks to God, and take heed that he be not too wise in it, and that he conceive not a false persuasion of knowledge. For I and my like do not yet understand it, as we ought to understand it, although we be most expert of all, and have been longest exercised therein. For (as I have said) it is such an art, as no man knoweth, but they which are Christians, to the learning whereof notwithstanding they are compelled to be scholars all there life long. Wherefore most far of from the knowing hereof are those secure spirits, who alone know all things, but who in very deed beside that false persuasion of knowledge, know nothing at all, and by this very persuasion they are farthest of all drawn from this art and from the whole Gospel. Neither is there any thing more grievous, no nor a greater hurt can be brought unto Christianity, then by these petty doctors and masters, which seem unto themselves to have some wisdom. For they fill all corners of the world with sects and factions, being such men, as serve neither God nor men, hear neither the law nor the Gospel, but contemn the law with a secure mind, and loath the Gospel with hearing it, always seeking after new doctrine. But truly we teach nothing for their sakes, inasmuch as they are not worthy of our doctrine, and are so punished of God, that they can never learn it, & bring forth any fruit thereby, although they hear it. Therefore let us only keep it, whereof they do take away nothing at all from us, but that they hear a vain noise and sound of it. And thus much for the first part of this sermon, in which Christ teacheth by his own example, how every man ought to keep his conscience free from all disputation of the law, and terror of the wrath of God and of sins. Now consequently I think it good diligently to consider this excellent and goodly parable of Christ, Luke 15.3. where he beginneth and saith: What man of you having an hundredth sheep, if he lose one of them, doth not leave ninety and nine in the wilderness, and go after that which is lost until he find it? Christ is not only of a stout mind, who will not follow the words and mastership of them, but he bringeth probable causes also of his stoutness, with great cunning refelling their objections, and stopping their mouths, so, that they can murmur nothing against him. Moreover he convinceth them by their own example and deed, and concludeth, that they ought for good cause to be utterly ashamed, being bold to speak unto him, & reprehend that in him in so great a matter, which they themselves do in a much less. For by what means could he better and more readily answer them, then if he should say: How Christ answered the Scribes and Pharisees when they murmured for that he received sinners unto him. Will you, O excellent and most wise masters, command this thing, and teach me to drive away and alienate from me miserable sinners, which long after me, and come to hear me, when as there is nothing that you yourselves do not for one lost sheeps sake, who leaving ninety and nine in the wilderness (that is in the field and at the fold) do run to seek that which is lost, neither do ye leave of seeking, until such time, as ye have found it, and brought it home? And you count it to be well and commendably done, for which if any should find fault with you, without doubt ye would reprove him as mad and beside himself. And should not I as a Saviour of souls do likewise with men, as you do with a lost sheep? seeing there is no comparison even of one soul to all the creatures living & breathing in the earth. Why therefore are you not utterly ashamed of your doings, presuming to reprehend me in this work, which you yourselves commend, and are forced to commend? Wherefore if ye reprove and find fault with me, you yourselves are first to be reproved and found fault with. This is rightly to have answered, and with honour to have stopped the mouths of these controllers & fault finders, the causes being sufficiently showed, why they ought not here to find fault with him or control him. They have well surely yielded unto him with shame enough, as it is meet, and have gained nothing else by their mastership and controllement then utter shame and ignominy. For it is a shame to such masters, yea and an exceeding great abomination, that they stick not to arrogate so much unto themselves, as to teach that man, and admonish him of his duty, who of God is appointed a master over all. But it ought so to fall out, as I have said, that he which will rule and judge a Christian by his mastership, and endeavoureth to bring him from his baptism and the article of Christ, to be ruled by his wisdom or law, doth not only become a fool, but is also the author of extreme abomination and homicide. For he worketh shame to the temple and sanctuary of God, and with devilish rashness invadeth his kingdom, where he alone with the holy Ghost must reign. Wherefore he very well deserveth, that God again bring him to shame and ignominy before the whole world, seeing that he taketh to himself mastership in that place, where only Christ ought to be master, and not unworthily to his great evil he kicketh against the prick. Wherefore it is not good to jest with Christians, for they are Sainces, and let him that is wise, not be too busy with that man, whose name is Christ, for he can get no gain thereby, for Christ is most impatient of all their mastership and doctrine. So also a Christian must by no means suffer them, or if he suffer them, giving place to such suggestions, to wit, thou oughtest to have done this or that, or as yet thou oughtest to do it, then is his case become exceeding ill, We must in any wise cleave fast unto Christ. inasmuch as he hath fallen from Christ. Therefore we must endeavour, to hold Christ fast, having no regard, although all the world shall teach us. For if we shall abide with him, and hold the true understanding of the article concerning him, we shall easily overcome all such masters and teachers. For this Christ willbe most free from all controlment & mastership, contending to be the only master and controller of all men, that either in favour they may reverently acknowledge him for the Lord and master, and themselves for fools, or in fury and indignation being subject to the reproach of all men, may utterly perish. But I have said before, that the present doctrine for the very exceeding goodness, sweetness and consolation thereof, is not to be set forth to the rude, blockish, and unrulely common sort, to whom we do not preach it, but to those only, which strive with terror and anguish of conscience, or stand in peril and danger of death, and dispute with the devil concerning their sins committed, whereby he would drive them unto desperation. Before these this amiable image is to be set, whereby they may receive comfort and cheerfulness of mind. As for others which live with a secure mind, and do little know what anguish and spiritual sorowfulness is, they are to be led to Moses to the tormentor. For it is an image most pleasant and amiable, and more artificially painted, than any Apelles is able to paint with his pencil. Neither doth any man excel in such eloquence of speech, that he is able sufficiently to declare & comprehend it in words. Wherefore it is to be apprehended in the heart by faith, as much as may be. Nevertheless we must speak something of it, that we may give cause and occasion to other to think and consider more earnestly thereof. I also, saith he, have an hundred sheep, that is, that little flock of all Christiandom, of which number one is lost, and fallen from the communion of Christians. Now therefore dost thou desire to know the affection of my mind? then must thou bestow thy diligence, to paint out well and cunningly both the shepherd and the lost sheep. For that shepherd, which is but a man, and guideth the flock, which is created to be slain, hath great regard to preserve it in safety, and is not a little careful, how he may find the sheep when it is lost, and bring it home again, How the sheep is affected toward his shepherd. and with no less desire the sheep longeth after the shepherd. Whom if it understand to be his own shepherd (as by nature it doth understand) it feareth him not, but runneth unto him with great confidence, and being full of good hope, goeth before him, Yea as soon as ever it heareth his voice, it answereth by bleating. The affection of the shepherd toward his sheep. On the otherside also the shepherd hath great care and desire to find again the lost sheep, which hath strayed from him. Both he himself seeketh, & sendeth forth servants to seek there, whithersoever he thinketh it is strayed, neither doth he leave seeking, until having found it, he hath brought it home. For he is not ignorant how miserable a living creature a solitary sheep is, whose life consisteth only in the help and safe keeping of the shepherd, inasmuch as it can nothing at all help itself, but being destitute of a shepherd, is constrained to perish. Moreover, it is also fearful and ready to go stray, and as soon as it hath wandered out of the way, and from the shepherd, forthwith cometh into peril of life, & can not tarry, although being brought, it cometh to an other flock, and a strange shepherd calleth it, nevertheless it goeth on through thorny and sedgy places, through waters and fens, until it come in danger of the wolf, or wasted by some other mischief utterly perisheth. And although it be brought into by ways and deserts, and is now thought to be lost, notwithstanding it hath this hope, as much as nature hath put into it, that if it might hear his shepherd, it should forthwith exceedingly rejoice being delivered from all evil. Moreover neither doth the shepherd therefore seek it, that when he hath found it, he may wrathfully fight with it, or handle it ill for that it hath gone astray, or cast it to the wolf to be torn in pieces, but all his care and thought is, that he may most gently allure it to himself, and may deal with it most lovingly, to wit, lay it on his shoulders and carry it, until he hath brought it unto the rest of the flock. This is that picture, resembled in this creature & silly beast, whereby Christ showeth unto us, what affection of mind he beareth, and what he doth toward us, and also what we ought to promise ourselves concerning him. For seeing this is manifestly true in nature, the same is much more true in the kingdom of Christ, which is the kingdom of grace, love, and consolation. Therefore see that thou also do set before thyself the sheep pertaining to this shepherd, then shalt thou truly understand, how much greater and vehementer care he hath taken to preserve it, also with how great study and diligence, yea and from the heart he is careful for it, that he may find it and bring it home again. For he will have his marvelous and continual kindness, and the unspeakable flames of his most fervent love to be showed, or rather poured forth upon miserable, fearful and trembling consciences, which unfeignedly lament their sins, and desire to be delivered from them, and such are his true sheep. The parable of the shepherd & the lost sheep resembleth Christ, & the Christian that is strayed out of the way. For with a man that hath lost this shepherd, and heareth him not, the case standeth as with the lost sheep, which being estranged from his shepherd, strayeth more and more from him. And although it be called by the voices of others, and runneth unto them, thinking that it shall find his own shepherd, yet failing of his purpose it findeth him not, but always runneth from corner to corner, straying up and down, and still wandereth farther out of the way. Neither it is succoured with any comfort or help, before it hear the voice of the true shepherd sounding again in his ears: even as we learn the same to be true by daily experience, and every man trieth it in his own heart. For the Gospel of Christ being taken away or not exercised, here some false master, or author of some sect, in an other place some fanatical fellow thrusteth in himself, one perverteth the Supper of the Lord, the other baptism, one teacheth this, the other that, of a singular holiness of life, both which allureth to himself the miserable and straying sheep, and showeth himself so, as though he were he true shepherd. But by the means of these the sheep is entangled only with greater errors, until it wandereth quite and altogether out of the way. To these cometh the devil also with his cogitations, which he craftily putteth into the heart: Alas, if thou hadst done this or that, or hadst not done, etc. with all which he practiseth nothing else, but that he may make it fall into greater errors, that it may not know where to abide. And this truly falleth out, Christ being removed out of sight, and the article of him being extinguished. Whatsoever moreover shallbe taught, counseled, & showed, by what means soever, all things nevertheless become worse and draw near unto destruction, unless the true shepherd come with his voice, and call back and bring again the straying sheep. Hereupon it appeareth that it is exceeding necessary & convenient, that we learn to know Christ well, It is very necessary to learn to know Christ a right. that we do not behold him as a cruel tyrant or as an angry judge (as the preachers hitherto have set him forth to the people, and the devil himself showeth him to the hearts of men no otherwise to be thought upon and considered) who hath drawn his sword already against us: But as the sheep doth naturally look on the shepherd, not as on him, of whom it shall be terrified, chased, and slain, but so soon as it beholdeth him, is cheered and put in hope of help, & is no more in fear or solitariness, but forthwith speedily goeth to him with all boldness: So also when we desire to conceive a trust and hope of help, and to be strengthened and eased with comfort, than the voice of our shepherd, that is of Christ, must be known and learned well of us, all voices of other shepherds not regarded, which draw us only into errors, and toss us up and down, and that only article must be heard and comprehended in mind, which Christ so lovingly and comfortably painteth in our heart, as by any means it can be painted, that I may with all confidence and boldness say: The Lord jesus Christ is my only shepherd, and I (alas) the lost sheep, which hath strayed in the desert, but am troubled with no small anguish of mind for my wretched life, desiring with most fervent affection, both to have God favourable unto me, & also to have peace in my conscience. But truly I understand here, that he is no less desirous of me, than I am of him. I labour with great carefulness to come unto him, and he is careful and desireth greatly that he may bring me again unto himself. If we were certainly thus persuaded of his affection toward us, and did grave in our mind that it so greatly desireth after us, and is so sweetly poured forth upon us, it can not be, that we should abhor and fear him, but we would with a cheerful mind run unto him, and tarry only with him, abiding to hear the doctrine or voice of no other. For the doctrine of an other coming between, either of Moses or of any one what soever, doth nothing else but trouble and disquiet the conscience, No peace or quietness but in Christ alone. so that it can never find any peace or quietness. Therefore Christ saith Matth. 11. Come unto me all ye that are weary and laden, and I will ease you. Take my yoke on you, and ye shall find rest unto your souls, etc. As though he said: run and seek in what places soever ye will, hear and learn what soever can be preached unto you, yet shall ye find no quietness of heart, ye shall find no peace but in me alone. We will easily permit good works to be preached, a righteous life to be taught, the ten commandments to be delivered by instruction, and all things else which serve to the amendment of life, but so far only, as they are taught to the unrulely and untractable common sort, also to force and bridle the wantonness of our old Adam. But they which preach to the conscience wrapped in anguishes and terrors because of sin, aught to preach no other word then of Christ. For this is that lost and miserable sheep, of whom no other master is to be borne or had, but that only shepherd Christ, who neither urgeth it with the law, nor is eager upon it, but most sweetly and gently handleth it, and layeth the miserable and sinful sheep upon his shoulders, doing that of his own accord, which was to be done of the sheep, as we shall hear by and by more at large. But surely in this place the doctrine of both (as is before also said at large) or the voice of Moses and of Christ, must be well discerned. The difference between the doctrine of Moses and of Christ must be thoroughly known of Christians. For Moses ought to have no entrance to the lost sheep, no nor by any means is to be admitted to it, although he preach best of all other. For if confounding these, we will comfort and erect the troubled conscience by the law after this sort: be of a good cheer, for thou hast not committed homicide, neither haste thou defiled thyself with adultery, neither haste thou perpetrated any other heinous offence, or done it with a good will, etc. This also is a comfort, but which can endure a very small time, neither can it sustain the assaults and violence of the enemy, neither bringeth it or containeth any thing else but confidence of itself, wherewith the miserable sheep is helped nothing. For it remaineth as much wandering and lost as before, neither can it help itself, or come to his own shepherd. But if we will help & secure it, we must show unto it the true shepherd, who cometh to seek it, that having found it he may bring it home again, and exhibit his voice unto it to be heard. Hereby it may obtain true and effectual consolation, and be bold to answer Moses, and say: Now truly I have not any care either of thy comfort or terror, and if it please thee, amplify my sins as much as possibly thou canst, make me a manslayer and parricide, or the worst man of all men. For now I will neither hear thee with an astonished mind, nor follow thee. But this is the sum of my comfort and salvation, whereunto also I do confidently trust, that I have such a shepherd as seeketh me of his own accord, and having laid me on his shoulders carrieth me. Let us enter disputation hereof if thou art so disposed, not how righteous or unrighteous I am, but how I have come unto Christ. Wherefore we must always preach according to the capacity and quality of the hearers. For I have said that this doctrine is not fit for a blockish and untractable man. As it is not meet that a laborious thresher should be fed with delicates, wherewith the sick are to be strengthened and refreshed, but the hireling is to be fed with brown bread and cheese, & with water. The other dainty meats and easy of digestion thou must reserve for the sick or children, which are able to digest no gross meat: Unto whom Moses law must be preached. So in this thing also thou must observe the same difference, that thou do rightly distribute these things, and give unto every one his portion as a prudent householder. For thou must keep the doctrine of Moses and of the Law, until thou light upon unruly, hardened, and untractable men, which lead their life securely and without fear, set before these only strong and common meats of threshers to be eaten, that is, offer angry Moses unto them to be heard, who lighteneth and thundereth from the mount Sina, who terrifieth the people of Israel, bringeth them into the desert, and drowneth king Pharaoh in the red sea. How weak and afflicted consciences must be preached unto. But when thou shalt light upon troubled hearts, and weak and afflicted consciences, which are now become lost sheep, then speak not a word concerning Moses and all the works of God done in the law, but let thy talk be only of the works done by Christ in the time of grace, & well and diligently repeat to the miserable conscience, how he showeth himself toward the lost sheep, to wit, that he is the gentle & good shepherd, which is exceeding careful for the lost sheep, so that leaving all the rest, he traveleth to find that one, and to bring it again into the way, neither doth he leave of till he hath brought it home. For it is a very great grief unto him, that any man should be in sin, and therefore be troubled and fear, neither would he that any should remain therein, and so perish. Wherefore he doth most lovingly allure & provoke thee by his sweet Gospel to come unto him, & suffer thyself to be laid upon his shoulders and carried, and to be called his well-beloved sheep. As for them that live securely and pleasantly, & have no regard whether God be angry or pleased, they are not to be called lost sheep, The lost sheep. but rather wild goats, which suffer not themselves either to be fed or ruled. But he, to whom his sins are a burden, & who fighteth in the fight of faith, where he is not in danger to lose Moses, but Christ himself, and the principal article, that is, where the conscience is in anguish, and fear, whether it hath God gentle and favourable, this is that very man, who with groaning and sighs seeketh out and crieth for his shepherd, & desireth to be holpen, as David doth Psal. 119. I have gone astray like a sheep that is lost: oh seek thy servant, etc. In the mouth of these this sugar & these pleasant delicates have a good taste, with which the heart is refreshed, that it fall not into desperation, but being again recreated with such a consolation, is lifted up, not by Moses but by Christ. Not that it hath Moses a friend or is able to pacify him, but because it hath God favourable through Christ, wheresoever Moses remaineth with his comfort. Although it be very well, as also it is meet, that we do not contrary to the law practise theverie, that we steal not, that we commit not homicide, or otherwise do injury and hurt to our neighbour. Howbeit that is not the right comfort of the heart, No true comfort of conscience to be had by the law. but only a momentane tickling of the utmost skin, not during & piercing. For the devil coming & setting upon the heart, all comfort is utterly taken away. And although in some point thou hast done well and rightly, he nevertheless again bringeth ten fold more, wherein thou hast done amiss, yea even in the most pure works he can find much impurity, and turn all into sin. Wherefore we must in no wise trust unto such comfort, We must not trust to the comfort of the law, but must resort and cleave fast unto Christ. but must rather refuse it and say: whether I be good or evil at this present I do not dispute, but will reserve it rather unto that place, where it shallbe taught and entreated concerning works. But in this circle wherein I now stand, there is no place to entreat of works and integrity of life, but of Christ and his works, which he doth toward me a lost sheep. Wherefore if thou demand whether I be good or honest, I answer plainly, no, but if thou demand whether Christ be good and righteous, that undoubtedly I am able to confirm, and him I set for my goodness and righteousness, unto whom also alone I courageously appeal. For in his name I am baptised, of which thing I have a seal and testimony, to wit, that I am his sheep, & that he is that good shepherd, seeking his lost sheep, & dealing with me without all law, exacting nothing of me, neither as Moses urgeth, troubleth, and forceth me, but showeth unto me his mere & most sweet grace, while he submitteth himself to me, & layeth me on his shoulders, and carrieth me. Why therefore should I fear the thunderings of Moses and of the devil, when as I rest in his safe custody, which hath given unto me his righteousness and all other things, which holdeth and carrieth me, so that there is now no more danger lest I perish, I remaining a sheep and denying not my shepherd, but reposing myself wholly in him? Thus hast thou Christ most lovingly set forth, unto thee. Now only faith is required, whereof there is great need. A hard thing to feel true comfort of conscience. For this doctrine is excellent, & replenished with most sweet consolation and comfort, but this is wanting, that the use thereof is not felt, where it ought to be felt. For when the sheep goeth astray, that is, when a man feeleth himself grieved with his sins, and can not tell where to abide, and is cast of the devil into a great fear of mind, than he always runneth unto the contrary, neither can he comprehend or conceive in mind, that this is true, all things falling out of his mind, which he heard here, because of the present feeling and fear. For the devil hath dazzled his eyes, neither can he perceive any thing else but the wrath and indignation of God. Wherewith his heart is so burdened, that he is not able to raise up himself in mind, and to turn his eyes any other where. Nay he lieth so drowned in it, that Christ appeareth no otherwise unto him but as an angry judge, as he hath hitherto been painted out, and is so beaten into the hearts of all by the wicked Papists, sitting on the rain bow, with a sword coming out of his mouth. For this is one of the most decietfull crafts of the devil, yea and of his mischiefs which he practiseth against the miserable sheep, to dasle his eyes, that he may not know any more his own shepherd, & under a pretence of Christ to lead a man to Moses, disputing as much of Christ, as he had accustomed to do before of Moses. Wherefore we have need of a strong & firm faith, that we may believe these things to be true, when a man himself must dispute even against himself. For the sense is vehement of itself, whereunto the devil also cometh marvelously amplifying sin & terror, the greatness and anguish whereof is able to consume even the marrow in the bones, yea and the heart in the body. It can not therefore be perfectly learned so soon as some think. In prosperity it is easily believed that Christ is sweet and amiable, but anguish and terror coming upon & over whelming the mind, man is blind and without good understanding, and will judge only according to the sense and understanding of his own heart, which he followeth, and confirmeth himself in his own error. For he is taken therein, and can think no otherwise, but that it is true, and nevertheless it is not true. Now it were a point of this art, for a man thus to say unto his heart, How a Christian must speak unto his own heart. if thou confess thyself to be a lost sheep, thou sayest right: but that thou wilt therefore run from Christ, and so think of him in thy mind, as though he were a man, which would chase and terrify thee, it is a suggestion and tentation of the devil. For if thou didst rightly consider him, and confess him as thy true shepherd, then wouldst thou not fly from his sight, neither wouldst conceive terror in thy mind, but with all cheerfulness and boldness wouldst run unto him. For surely he is not therefore ready at hand that he may condemn thee, but he cometh to thee, seeking thee, that having laid thee on his shoulders, he may carry thee, and exempt & deliver thee from sins, errors, the devil and his power, yea and from all peril. Thou perceivest therefore that thou art a sinner, and hast deserved indignation, so much more earnestly is that shepherd to be sought and called for of thee, that he may deliver thee from it: of whom consider no otherwise in thy mind, than the sheep doth of his own shepherd, whom it can not fear, but seeing and hearing him becometh glad and cheerful, although it hath run from him, so that for this deed it hath a sufficient cause to fear. The whole matter therefore consisteth only in this, that thou do perfectly learn Christ aright, We must consider Christ according to the word of God. & consider him according to the word of God, and not according to the proper cogitations of thy mind, and thine own senses. For the cogitations of men are false and lying, but his words are true and can not deceive. Wherefore the word alone is to be engraven in our heart, and we must cleave unto it with a constant mind, whereby we may reprove our own heart of lying. For it alone must be true, and all things else that are contrary to it, false and vain. But truly this is an art, whereof I am ignorant, but much more those other light spirits, who boast many things of it, as they that know all things, when as they have even once heard any thing thereof, and nevertheless they do not a little perceive or try so much as any whit of it. For it is an easy thing to speak and preach of it, but how hard a thing it is to prove it in deed, they only have experience, who earnestly make trial thereof. This is a most amiable demonstration of our Christ, described by himself in this Gospel, wherein he hath most abundantly poured forth the flames of his most fervent heart, and affection toward us, showing that he hath exceeding great care and regard to recover his sheep, which alone leaving ninety and nine he seeketh and inquireth diligently for, not to terrify it and beat it, but that he may help it, and having found it, may bring it home, and with his loving and sweet voice and speaking unto it may cheer it being miserable and afflicted in conscience. By all which thou seest, how acceptable a thing thou shalt do unto him, if thou trust and cleave unto him with thy whole heart, and promise to thyself from him all goodness and love. Secondly thou plainly seest this also, how by all manner of outward signs & means he poureth forth his joy and unspeakable goodness, and also having found his sheep how loving he showeth himself. For surely he dealeth not with it by any law, as by his right he might deal, and drive it before him as he doth the rest, or suffer it to go by him. Howbeit he doth none of these, but layeth it upon his shoulders, and all the journey carrieth it through the desert, taking all the labour and trouble upon himself, that at the lest wise the sheep may rest. Neither doth he it grudginly but willingly, for he is full of joy for his sheep recovered. Now mark this also, how well it goeth with the sheep, with how great quietness and ease it lieth on his shepherds shoulders, neither doth it unwillingly see itself resting so sweetly being delivered from the difficulty of the journey, as also void of all fear both of dogs and wolves, that is, of all errors and lies, yea and of all perils and mischiefs. And this surely deserveth to be called a very pleasant picture, exceeding amiable and comfortable to be looked upon. No otherwise doth our Lord jesus Christ deal with us, whiles he delivereth us, which he hath once done corporally by his passion and death, but now doth eftsoons the same by his power, and spiritually by the preaching of his word. Wherefore he layeth us upon his shoulders, carrieth, and defendeth us, so that we are safe from all perils of death and the devil, which albeit they terrify us, and show themselves so, as though they would denour us, yet prevail they nothing. For whereas we are carried, it is a safeguard unto us, and the same exempteth us from all dangers, and putteth away all fear. As the sheep lying upon the shepherds shoulders is little careful, though the dog's bark much, and the wolf craftily goeth up and down, but rather hanging down the head is quiet and sleepeth sound. If we believe assuredly in Christ jesus, we need not fear the devil, rage he never so sore. So we also, if we stand and abide unmovably in this article, I believe in jesus Christ our Lord, who suffered, died, rose again for us, etc. there is no cause why we should be careful lest we perish, or be devoured of the devil, though he open his jaws never so wide. For we are not then in our own way, neither walk we upon our own feet, but we hang upon the neck of our shepherd, and lie upon his shoulders, where we are safe enough. For sin, death, and hell, although in deed they be terrible, yet dare they not set upon him, otherwise if it were not for this, we should be miserable sheep, which should forthwith be brought into a lamentable and wretched case. For even as a sheep can not take heed and foresee to itself, that it stray not out of the way, unless it be led of the shepherd, & when it hath strayed and is lost, can not by itself come again to the shepherd, but must be sought and inquired for of him, until he hath found it, and so must be laid upon his shoulders and brought home again, lest that it be again frayed and chased from him, or catched of the wolf and rent in pieces: So we also ourselves can profit ourselves neither by help, nor counsel, that we might obtain peace and quietness of conscience, and escape out of the hands of the devil, death, and hell, except Christ himself repeat his word unto us, and call us again unto him. And although we come unto him, and now stand in faith, yet is it not in our power to keep ourselves therein, or to stand by our own strength, unless he eftsoons by the power of his Word, hold, lift up, and carry us, for that the devil always imagineth and purposeth deceit and destruction toward us, and goeth about like a roaring lion, seeking whom he may devour, as S. Peter witnesseth. Wherefore here is no place to boast of free will, or of our own strength, which is none, neither in beginning any thing, neither in going forward therein, much less in persevering or continuing in it, but Christ our shepherd alone doth all things. Howbeit we are sure hereof, that whiles we lie upon the shoulders of Christ, we shall remain safe from all terror and misfortune. For he will not suffer us to be plucked or taken from his neck, neither will he himself cast us of, being so glad and joyful, that he hath found his lost sheep, and brought it again to the rest of the flock. And in a sum, here is no terror, or trouble, or exaction, but mere life and grace, whereby he handleth his sheep most lovingly and gently. But on the contrary Moses, not as a shepherd of miserable and weak sheep, but as a master of stronger cattle, driveth his herds with a staff and a rod three days journey through the desert, until they be tired and weary with walking: of this shepherd those hardedened and wild ones are to be tamed and bridled. And we also, when we shallbe under Moses, to wit, according to the flesh and the outward life, must go, and do that which the law requireth. But in that we are, and are called Christians, we must by no means suffer, that any work be laid upon us, yea or exacted of us, but must give ourselves only to Christ to be carried and gently lifted up, not upon horses and charets, but even upon his only shoulders. When Christ carrieth us upon his shoulders. Which cometh to pass, as I have said, when he suffereth the word to be preached unto us, and we also believe the same, that he died for us, that on the cross he bore our sins in his body, that he hath overthrown the devil, death, and sins, and put them under his feet, and hath made and opened unto us entrance to eternal life. Wherefore we must not have respect to our own life, how righteous and strong we are, but we must study upon his one thing, that we may rest lying upon his shoulders. In this circle we must have no care of sin, death, life, or pensiveness, inasmuch as we have all things to the full in Christ, who beareth and keepeth us. Now he is not content with all these things, both that with such great travel he seeketh his sheep, and also that having found it, Exceeding joy because of the sheep which was lost and is found again. he carrieth it with incredible joy, but it being brought again, he maketh festival days, & exceedingly rejoiceth, calling together his neighbours and friends that they may rejoice with him. Yea he affirmeth, that God also in heaven with the whole heavenly host do rejoice over one sinner that repenteth. In which words he showeth and declareth, who he is, which deserveth to be called his lost sheep, namely such a sinner, as being led by repentance of his former life, doth amend, most fervently desiring to be delivered from sins, and earnestly endeavouring to come unto Christ: such a one hath a miserable and troubled, yea and a contrite and humbled heart, and an afflicted conscience, which the devil by all means fighteth against, and so presseth it, that it is almost overcome with distresses, etc. But Christ assisteth and comforteth him, for he is such a man, as seeketh no sheep but that which is lost, and can not help itself. How may Christ be preached with greater gentleness, and more effectual consolation of words? or what thinkest thou should he do more to cheer the mind of a sinner, and to confirm in him a sure confidence toward himself? For we see him set forth by himself to us miserable sinners as a most loving shepherd, who most sorrowfully seeketh his sheep being lost, and most joyfully bringeth them again being found, and taketh so great joy, that with him all the Angels also and Saints do rejoice over us. Now he that could firmly believe these things, should without doubt through Christ receive true comfort and joy, forasmuch as here he hath a certain promise, that if he surely cleave unto Christ, and rest upon his shoulders, he shall be an acceptable and welcome guest in the kingdom of heaven, and shall be received with exceeding great joy. But we being troubled with sorrow and anguish of conscience, have a far other feeling and affection, when as the heart can think nothing else, but that all the Angels do stand behind us with a drawn sword, which fear so troubleth us, that we can conceive no cheerfulness in our mind, neither of God, nor of the Angels. And there are some also, which can behold no creature with a glad mind, fearing the beholding of the sun, yea being sore afraid at the noise of a leaf. All which proceed from hence, for that they trouble and vex themselves with their own thoughts, out of which they would willingly wrestle, sparing no labour, that they might feel that uprightness and integrity in them, which would be abashed with no fear. But if thou be desirous to conceive true comfort and joy in thy heart, then see that thou do diligently and well print and fasten therein this amiable image of the most loving shepherd, and the word of the Gospel, and seek it, where it is to be sought, that is, in Christ and no where else: In Christ true joy is to be found, & without him can be found no true joy at all. for in this man thou shalt find all things, so that thou abide in his safe custody and upon his shoulders. But whatsoever comfort can be obtained without him, it cometh not from the heart, although thou call to help thee all the creatures, and shouldest also be partaker of the pleasure and joy of the whole world. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER OF THE WOMAN OF CANAAN. Matth. 15. Verse. 21. ANd jesus went thence, and departed into the parts of Tyrus and Sidon. 22. And behold, a woman a Cananite came out of the same coasts, and cried, saying unto him, Have mercy on me, O Lord, the son of David: my daughter is miserably vexed with a Devil. 23. But he answered her not a word. Then came to him his Disciples & besought him, saying: Send her away, for she crieth after us. 24. But he answered and said: I am not sent but unot the lost sheep of the house of Israel. 25. Yet she came & worshipped him, saying, Lord help me. 26. And he answered & said, it is not good to take the children's bread, and to cast it to whelps. 27. But she said, truth Lord: yet in deed the welps eat of the crumbs, which fall from their masters table. 28. Then jesus answered and said unto her, O woman, great is thy faith: be it to thee as thou desirest. And her daughter was made whole at that hour. IN this text is set forth unto us an example of a constant and steadfast faith. For this woman did so persever, that she overcame three most sharp conflicts, and notably teacheth us, what is the quality and proper virtue of a true & right faith. Faith what it is. Which in deed is a certain trust, and most deeply settled in the mind, of the divine goodness and grace, known and made manifest by the word of God. For Mark mentioneth that she heard the report of jesus, without doubt good and joyful, that he is a bountiful man, and marvelous ready to help every one. That report was good tidings & the word of grace unto her, whereupon also this her faith did begin. For unless she had believed that she also might be made partaker of Christ's bountifulness and goodness, she would not have so followed him, or cried after him. Which is that whereof we have often admonished, Faith cometh by hearing. & which we are taught Rom. 10. that faith is by hearing. Wherefore the word ought always to go before, and give the beginning of salvation. But how came it to pass, whereas many other also heard the same report of our Saviour jesus, yet they followed him not, yea they quite despised that report? I answer. They that are not sick, as they have no need of the Physician, so neither are they desirous of him. But this woman was afflicted and felt her necessity, yea that report was so joyful unto her, that she being stirred up thereby, did follow Christ, running after such a pleasant savour. Cant. 1. We must first by the law come to the knowledge & feeling of sin, before we can taste how sweet Christ is. Wherefore Moses must always go before, who may teach us to feel sin, whereby grace may be wished for and desired of us. It is in vain therefore, although Christ be preached to be loving, and to be desired and longed for, if a man be not before humbled through knowledge of himself, and made desirous of Christ, according to the song of Marie: The Lord hath filled the hungry with good things, and the rich he hath sent empty away. Now all these things are written for the consolation & lifting up of them which be miserable, poor, needy, oppressed with sins, and abjects, that they may know to whom they may fly in all distress, and where they may seek for help and safety. But see how Christ urgeth and inflameth faith in them that be his, whereby they may become stronger and more confirmed. For first, whereas this woman being encouraged with that alluring fame of his, goeth after him, and crieth for help, doubting nothing but she should try him to be such a one, as she had heard him reported to be, and that she should forthwith entreat him for the recovery of her daughter: Christ in all respects showeth himself unto her so, as though he would deceive all her trust, and make his report false so that she might think with herself: Is this that man which is so bountiful and ready to help all? Doth he so fulfil the most commendable report which goeth of him? Where doth there appear so much as any thing like unto those things, which men have told me of him? They were deceived themselves and deceived me also. He showeth himself an enemy rather than a friend. Why doth he not so much as speak a word, and friendly deny me help, if I be unworthy thereof? He holdeth his peace like unto a block, & vouchsafeth not to speak a word, neither offereth his help. Here surely Christ gave a grievous blow to the mind of the silly woman. So it is an incomparable torment to them that believe, being in distress, when God showeth himself such a one at their prayers, like unto one that is angry, and whom they pray unto in vain, hiding so deeply his grace, that they now perceive nothing else, but that he will not perform those things which he hath promised, and that so he will show his own words to be false. That truly happened to the Israelites at the red sea, and to many other excellent holy men. The constancy of this woman of Canaan. But what doth this woman to these things? She removeth out of her sight & mind, that Christ showed himself so ungentle and hard to be entreated, she being constant and nothing moved hereat, persevereth in the trust of his goodness, whereof she had heard, and which she had conceived in her mind, suffering herself in no wise to be turned from it. We must not cease to trust in God, though he seemeth at the first not to hear our prayers, nor to fulfil his promise. So also must we do, we must trust unto the word alone, although God himself and all creatures pretend otherwise then the word preacheth. But this is thrice most hard to nature & reason, to be so utterly destitute, and to depend on the word of God without any feeling of comfort, even when a man feeleth and trieth all things to be contrary. God give unto us such a mind and faith, that we may so do, especially at the point of death and in extreme necessities. Secondly, whereas the cry and faith of this woman seemeth to have suffered repulse, the disciples come with their faith, doubting not but that they shall entreat the Lord, but when they think that they shall make him more easy to be entreated, they find him to be much more hard, repelling as it appeared, and as they thought, the faith and prayers both of the woman & also of themselves. Neither doth Christ here hold his peace, and leave them in doubt, as before, but he seemeth plainly to deny that which they ask, saying: I am not sent but to the lost sheep of the house of Israel. This stroke is much more grievous than that former, where not only the person of the entreater is repelled, but all hope also which is wont to be left, is cut of, namely the comfort of the intercession of all the other Saints and elect. For it is almost the last refuge to them that suffer distress and feel the indignation of God, to get themselves to godly & holy men, seeking for comfort and help, whereunto, as charity requireth, they find them ready and willing, but even they also some time do in vain ask help and succour, for neither are they heard, and so the case of them that be in distress becometh worse and more lamentable. So the afflicted and desolate may truly object unto Christ all those words, wherein he hath promised that he will hear his Saints, as: Matth. 18.19 If two of you shall agree in earth upon any thing whatsoever they shall desire, it shall be given them of my Father which is in heaven. Again, Whatsoever ye shall ask, Mark 11.24 believe, and ye shall receive it. And many such like. But if to him that objecteth these things, and asketh him how he can go from his words and promises, he answer thus: I go not from my promises, I have not promised that I will hear all prayers, but the prayers of them that be mine, which are of the house of Israel, not of all whatsoever. What thinkest thou may the heart then think having taken such a repulse? Such an answer is as it were a flash of lightning, wherewith the heart and all trust is severed and broken in a thousand pieces. For what trust can there be left, when he heareth that that doth not pertain unto him, which because of the word of God he trusted to have obtained, but unto others. Here not so much as a word can be left, if one do according as he feeleth. But what doth this woman? She doth not so fall from hope, The great constancy & faith of this woman of Canaan. she still sticketh to the words which she had heard of Christ, albeit he went about by this other repulse as with a certain force to wrest them out of her heart, she suffereth not herself to be frayed away neither with that ungentle silence, neither with this hard answer, she continueth steadfastly in a sure confidence, believing that under this difficulty which Christ did pretend, that grace was as yet hidden and laid up for her, which she had heard reported of him, she can not be brought as yet to judge Christ not to be bountiful and gracious, and that he can deny the help which she desireth. This was to persever strongly in faith. Moreover she followeth jesus even into the house, as Mark writeth, she is instant upon him, falleth down before him, and saith: Lord help me. Here the Lord giveth a deadly & the last blow saying unto her face, that she is a dog, and unworthy to be partaker of the bread of the children. What may she answer hereunto? For he seemed to signify in these words that she is of the number of the damned and desperate, which can look for no part with the elect. This word seemeth eternal and that can not be gainsaid: For he which doth not pertain to the company of the elect by the ordinance of God, what may he hope to be left for him? This woman is not yet discouraged and passed hope, but yieldeth to this judgement of the Lord, she confesseth of her own accord, that she is a dog, neither desireth she any thing but that which is wont to be given to dogs, namely the crumbs which fall from their masters table. Seemeth she not to have used marvelous cunning? She taketh Christ in his own words. He had made her like unto a dog, she acknowledgeth it, and desireth that he will only suffer her to be a dog according to his own saying: what should he here do? how should he escape? he was now as it were even taken. For the crumbs under the table are granted to the dog, for unto dogs they are said to be due. The fruit of constant perseverance & trust in Christ. Here therefore Christ being as it were overcome, doth open himself wholly, and granteth the desires of the woman, and maketh that she is not now a dog, but a true Israelite. These things are written for the instruction and comfort of all us, whereby we ought to learn, how deeply sometime Christ hideth his grace from us, and how we must not judge of God according to our own sense and opinion, but only according to his words. For we see here, that albeit Christ showed himself very hard to this woman, yet he did not plainly deny to help her, but whatsoever he answered, howsoever it seemed to pretend a denial, yet was it not a denial, but did hang in doubt, and left an entrance for faith, although but small. For he said not at her first petition: I will not hear her, but he held his peace, neither promising nor denying help. So to the second petition, which the Apostles made, he saith not: she is not of the house of Israel, I can not therefore perform that which she desireth, but he only saith: I am not sent, but to the lost sheep of the house of Israel, leaving all things in doubt, and in the midst between a plain grant and a denial. So when she had the third time desired him, he saith not: thou art a dog, get thee hence, the bread of the children is not due unto thee, but he saith: It is not good to take the children's bread, etc. again leaving in doubt, whether she was a dog or no. Nevertheless all these sayings do pretend outwardly rather a denial of help, then provoke her to hope, but in very deed they did contain in them rather a promise and hope, than a denial. Yea there was nothing but a promise and a certain expectation of help, (howbeit most deeply hid and altogether secret) under that silence and answers, although they were hard, and a denial only sounded outwardly. By these it is showed how our heart is wont to be affected in tentation. For according as that feeleth in tentation, so Christ here behaveth himself. It feeleth all things to be denied, when as it is far otherwise. Wherefore it is requisite, that leaving it own feeling, by a sure faith in the word of God it conceive and hold fast the promise of help, deeply hidden under the denial, and yield unto the sentence of God toward us, as this woman did, so shall we overcome and take the Lord in his words, that he can not but help us. So that if we feel in our conscience at any time God rebuking us, pronouncing us sinners, and unworthy of the kingdom of heaven, than we feel as it were hell, and it seemeth unto us that we are passed all hope and recovery for ever: When God pronounceth us sinners, we ought to acknowledge and confess our sins, & pray former eye, which God hath promised to them that be penitent for their sins. then if any had the skill of this woman, that he could take the Lord in his own judgement and say: yea Lord, I am a sinner, and altogether unworthy of thy grace, but thou hast promised forgiveness to sinners, neither didst thou come to call the righteous, but as Paul saith, to save sinners: he truly should bring to pass that the Lord should be enforced, even by his own judgement to have mercy upon him. So did Manasses, when being penitent he prayed for pardon, as we read in his prayer: He yielded to the judgement of God, acknowledging himself a most grievous sinner, and so he bond God with his promise, which had promised forgiveness of sin to sinners, not to the righteous. The same also did David observe Psal. 51. Against thee only, saith he, have I sinned, and done this evil in thy sight, that thou mightest be justified in thy saying, and found pure when thou art judged. For that doth purchase unto us all displeasure, that we disdain to suffer the judgement of the Lord, and do against our wills yield unto his sentence, when he pronounceth us sinners. Such a great thing is it to acknowledge sins, and to embrace the judgement of God. We all confess ourselves sinners in words, but as soon as the Lord speaketh that in our heart, and pronounceth us sinners, we do not abide by that which before we confessed, we had liefer be counted righteous and free from that judgement. But it must needs be, if God must be just in his words, that thou be a sinner, than also mayst thou use the right of sinners, which God himself hath given unto them, namely to pray with a sure expectation of forgiveness of sins. Then is it not permitted unto thee only to feed under the table of crumbs after the manner of dogs, but being a child of the household, thou shalt sit at the very table, having God now how great soever he be, given unto thee according to thy desire. Hereof also we have an historical exposition of this text according to the allegories. For as it chanceth to this woman her daughter being sick, for whom through faith she obtained health by a miracle: so also falleth it out with us, when we are delivered from the spiritual sickness to wit sins, which truly are a most grievous and troublesome Devil unto us. For as she acknowledged herself a dog, so must we acknowledge ourselves sinners and judged unto hell, the Lord pronouncing it, which if we can do as she could, we shall be safe. We have already spoken elsewhere of other things, whereof there might be occasion to speak out of this text, as how one may obtain grace and safety by the faith of an other, as here it fell out to the daughter of this woman. Christ, the Disciples, & the woman in this place are examples of love. This thing also (that Christ, his Disciples, and the woman are here examples of love, forasmuch as none of them pray for, seek or do those things that are their own, but every one that which is an others) is very manifest by itself, and easily acknowledged of every one, especially seeing that we have so largely entreated hereof in an other place. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER, WHEREIN IS TAUGHT THAT WE ARE SAVED freely by grace, without the works and merits of men. Tit. 3. Verse. 4. WHen that bountifulness & that love of God our Saviour toward men appeared, 5. Not by the works of righteousness, which we had done, but according to his mercy he saved us, by the washing of the new birth, and the renewing of the holy Ghost, 6. Which he shed on us abundantly, through jesus Christ our Saviour, 7. That we, being justified by his grace, should be made heirs according to the hope of eternal life. PAUL having willed before that all should be put in mind to be obedient to such as be in authority, and ready to every good work, to speak evil of no man, to be no fighters, but gentle, showing all meekness unto all men, &c: these few words being put between, that we ourselves were in times past unwise, disobedient, deceived, serving divers lusts and voluptuousness, &c: he added those words which we have already mentioned, as if he should say: A most weighty cause to move us to do good to our neighbours. Wherefore should it grieve us to deserve so well of all men, when as God hath before dealt so bountifully, kindly, and gently with us, with whom without comparison, we are less, and have less of him deserved, than any being compared to us can be, or can deserve of us? As therefore God hath with exceeding bountifulness and kindness most gently behaved himself toward us, of his mercy granting and giving unto us all things: so ought we to do all things with all charity and good will toward our neighbours, albeit they have otherwise deserved, forasmuch as we were like unto them, subject to all sins and evil desires. Here we see how the Apostle will have us to be affected toward men: How we must behave ourselves toward men. He will have us subject to them that be in authority, kind unto others, and ready to do well unto them with all gentleness, although they be evil, blind, and in error, that we grudge not to bear these things, and as much as lieth in us, endeavour to do them good, taking all things in good part, considering that God hath so dealt with us, when we were evil and wicked, like unto them. This word, appeared, we have elsewhere declared to signify the revelation of the Gospel, whereby Christ appeared in the world: Albeit the unskilfulness of Ministers hath wrested it to the carnal nativity of Christ. He useth not here the word grace, which he used before, Tit. 2.11. but hath set in steed thereof two other words of marvelous comfort, [bountifulness, and love toward men] which he attributeth to our God. The first is called of the Grecians Chrestotes, Bountifulness and is that kindness, gentleness and sweetness of conditions, wherewith they that be endued, with them all of us are with pleasure conversant, & marvelously delighted with their company, so that they do with this their gentleness and kindness allure & greatly provoke all men to love them. For such can suffer all without grief: they contemn no man: they repel or put none from them with bitter, hard, and disordered conditions: access unto them is not hard, but they are so open, and ready for all, that every one dare resort unto them, and desire their help. And to conclude: they are such men as the Gospels describe Christ unto us, whom they declare to be gentle to all, a despiser of none, which denieth no benefit to any, pliant, prepared and ready to do good to all. So God also by the Gospel is preached and offered unto us wholly good, bountiful and sweet, open to all, rejecting none, bearing all our sins and offences, repelling no man from him with excessive severity. For we read and hear nothing to be declared in the Gospel but mere grace, and mere goodness, whereby he doth most mercifully bear us, & most gently handle us, and not any man according to his deserts. This is the time of grace, wherein it is granted to all to go with great boldness unto the throne of grace, as it is written Heb. 4. and Psal. 34: Come unto him, and be enlightened, and your faces shall not be ashamed, that is, he will not suffer you to pray and come in vain, neither to return with confusion being frustrate. The other word is Philanthropia, love of men, Love toward men. as covetousness may be called love of money, as David 2. Sam. 1. calleth the desire of women, the love of women. And the Philosophers call certain living creatures Philanthropa, that is loving toward men, as are horses, dogs, dolphin's. For these creatures are by nature delighted with man, they desire his company, & do willingly serve him, as though they were moved with some reason & sense of humanity. This name, & such love the Apostle here attributeth to our God, which Moses also did before him, Deut. 33: where he speaketh thus of God: The Lord appeared having in his right hand a law of fire, and he loved the people. The meaning therefore of the Apostle is this: Our God hath in the Gospel showed himself unto us not only bountiful, kind, gentle, and sweet, which can bear, and will receive all, but also he so loveth us, that of his own accord he adjoineth himself unto us, seeketh to have to do with us, voluntarily showeth and offereth his grace and bountifulness unto us, and most gently embraceth as many as only do not refuse his grace and love, and desire to draw nigh unto him. What should he do more? Who can not see hereby, why we count the Gospel a preaching, joyful and full of all consolation of God in Christ? For what can be spoken more lovingly and sweetly to a sinful and afflicted conscience, than these words? O lamentable case, how miserably hath Satan by the laws of his Pope oppressed and obscured this sovereign sincerity of the word of God. Now let no man restrain these two words [bountifulness, & love toward men] to the persons, No respect of persons with God. for God is plainly without respect of persons bountiful to all, and a lover of all, otherwise if we should here make a difference between men, we should acknowledge that some thing is received through our merits, and not all things through his mercy. Where it must be well marked, that God is said to be a lover of men, not of this or that nature only, not held with love of the person, and therefore these two, bountifulness, and love toward men, must be taken after a general sort, that in all things the chief praise may be attributed to his mercy, that no man trust in his own merits, neither be terrified with sins, but that all together do trust to his grace, which he voluntarily offereth unto us with so great kindness and love toward us. For if any respect of person might be had here, it should surely be had of them, which are rich in the works of righteousness, but Paul expressly rejecteth these, saying: Not by the works of righteousness, which we had done. How much less than shall this bountifulness and love of our God toward men appear, because of any man's wisdom, power, nobility, riches or any such thing, when as no respect is had of works of righteousness? Great is the grace of God toward us, which appeareth in the Gospel, yea and nothing but grace, which admitteth no merit at all of ours, utterly taketh away all boasting and glorying, and setteth forth the glory of God alone, who freely giveth it unto us being unworthy. So in this text these two, faith and love, are taught to receive benefits of God, and bestow them on our neighbours, which the Scripture doth very often repeat, so that even the doctrine of salvation consisteth wholly in them, The doctrine of our salvation consisteth in faith and love. neither can one be separated from the other. For he that doth not firmly trust in the divine grace, can not but be remiss and slow to do well to his neighbour, and so witness the faintness and weakness of faith, which is the fountain of all duties and benefits: As contrariwise the stronger faith that one is endued with, so much more dutifully and with readier mind he endeavoureth to deserve well of his neighbours. All both doctrine and life worthy of Christ, (that all things may be declared most briefly, manifestly and sufficiently) consist of these two, By faith and love man is made as it were a mean between God & his neighbours. faith and love. Whereby man is made as it were a mean between God and his neighbours, that he may receive of God from above, and may give to his neighbours beneath, & be as it were a conduit pipe, through which the fountain of the divine goodness doth continually flow to his neighbours. And such men are like unto God, which in Christ receive of God whatsoever he hath, and do again by their good deeds declare themselves as it were the gods of other, and fulfil the prophecy of the Prophet Psalm 82: I have said, ye are gods, and ye all are children of the most high. We are children of the most high by faith, whereby of nothing we are made the heirs of God. And we are gods by love, which maketh us beneficial to our neighbour: forasmuch as the nature of God is nothing but bountifulness, and Paul here saith: the bountifulness and love of God toward men, The means to be partaker of the bountifulness and love of God is to believe. which he doth with incomparable plenty daily pour forth upon every one, as we see. We must only endeavour, that every one do nothing doubt that these things are spoken to him, that the bountifulness and love of God to manward is revealed and offered to every one, that by these words he may establish, exercise, and strengthen his faith, being certain that they are most true, and that God both undoubtedly is, and always will be bountiful and loving toward him. If thou canst believe this, it will assuredly so come unto thee: thou mayst then with a full confidence pray and desire of him whatsoever thou wilt, and complain unto him of whatsoever doth grieve thee or other. But if thou want this faith, it had been better for thee never to have heard any thing hereof, for that by thy infidelity thou reprovest of falsehood these words so precious and full of consolation and grace, making so light account of them, as not believing that they be true. Which surely is a great contempt and dishonour of God, that scarce a more grievous sin can be committed of thee. Contrariwise if thou be endued with this faith, it can not be, but that thy heart being thereby cheered, should even as it were laugh and leap for holy joy in God, being void of all care and trouble, and be made above measure confident. For how can any discouragement, any whit of sorrow remain in that heart, which doubteth not that God is gracious and bountiful unto it, and beareth a singular affection of love toward it, that it is a delight and pleasure unto him to do it good, and enjoy it as a friend? Surely the heart is necessarily delighted with this spiritual joy and pleasure, or undoubtedly it wanteth faith. Paul in the Epistle to the Gal. calleth this, to receive the holy Ghost by the Gospel. For the Gospel is so pleasant a preaching of the grace and goodness of God, that while it is preached and heard, it bringeth the holy Ghost with it, no otherwise then the beams of the sun do naturally bring heat with them. How could the Apostle use more pleasant and sweet words? I dare say that I have in the whole Scripture red none more pleasant, and so sweet words of the grace of God, as these two, Chrestotes, & Philanthropia, that is, bountifulness, and love toward men, How loving God is toward us. in which the grace of God is so described, as whereby he doth not only forgive our sins, but doth also desire to be conversant with us, and is ready to do the part of a very friend toward us, voluntarily offering himself to help us in all things, also to bestow more benefits upon us than we can desire or ask, that we may presume of him no otherwise then of a most near & familiar friend, of whom we may obtain all things, in whose eyes we are most dear, and even delightful. Think in thy mind of a most perfect friend, which hath fulfilled all the parts of friendship toward thee, & thou shalt have after a sort a form, although yet far unlike, of the divine goodness and kindness, which is here attributed to our God, by the name of bountifulness and love toward men. But when thou hast a sound faith in this bountifulness and love to manward, and thereby dost live in thy God, so bountiful, gracious, and gentle to thee, rejoicest, and art full of all good things, being certain of his continual grace, what shouldest thou do any longer in earth? what in this life? He that is partaker of the bountifulness and love of God can not be idle. Thou canst not in this case be idle, as surely that love of God and pleasure which thou enjoyest in him will not suffer thee to be idle. Thou shalt be inflamed with a marvelous study and desire to do what things soever thou canst know will be an honour unto thy God, so loving and bountiful unto thee, and will turn to praise, glory, and thanks giving unto him. Thou shalt have no choice of works, thou shalt pass for no precept, thou shalt feel no compulsion of the law, having a most ready will and pleasure to do, whatsoever things thou shalt know to be acceptable unto God, whether they be contemptible or noble, small or great, thou shalt count them alike. But first of all it shall be thy desire, that this blessed knowledge of God may be common also to the rest, whereupon by and by thy love will here show itself, and will assay all means, to make this truth of salvation manifest unto all, it will publish and repeat it, wheresoever it shall be able, rejecting and condemning whatsoever other either teach or say, that agreeth not with this truth. Satan & the world can not abide falsehood to be reproved & the truth to be preached, & therefore they persecute them which preach the truth. Whereby it will come to pass, that Satan & the world, which hear nothing so unwillingly as this truth, & can not abide that their things should be condemned, will rise against thee with all their might, will by & by trouble thee, all the great, learned, rich & mighty of the world will condemn thee of heresy and madness, and will leave no mean unattempted until if they be able they have dispatched thee of thy life. Thus with Christ thy Lord thou shalt be persecuted, & suffer extreme ignominy, thy body, life, goods, name, friends, and all things being brought into peril, until they have thrust thee from them out of this life into the eternal & blessed life: In the mean season thou must suffer all these things with a patiented mind, and take them in good part, losing none of the spiritual joy, which thou hast of Christ in thy God, & for thy part showing to thy persecutors all kindness and love, being always mindful, that thou a little before waste not much unlike them before God. All which things thou shalt do through faith & love, albeit they exceed the strength of nature. And this in deed is a true Christian life, wherein thou dost endeavour to do so to other, as God hath done to thee. Not by the works of righteousness which we had done. In these words the Apostle signifieth that which we have now said, and proveth it as it were by rendering a reason. We must do well unto men, yea even though they have not so deserved of us. For if the bountifulness and love of God to manward hath appeared, & he hath saved us of his mercy, and not because of our own righteousness, yea we being by all means unworthy, and subject to innumerable sins, it is meet that we also do good to them that have not deserved so much of us, & are unworthy thereof. For we which are become the sons of God, must resemble God our father, and bestow benefits according to our ability as well upon our enemies and persecutors, as upon our friends and them that do good unto us. Whereof Christ also hath admonished us Matth. 5: Love your enemies, that ye may be the children of your Father which is in heaven, who maketh his sun to shine upon the good & evil, & sendeth rain on the just & unjust. For if ye love them which love you, what reward shall ye have? when as even the heathen & Publicans do the same. Now the Apostle doth not only expressly condemn us for evil works, but saith: Not by the works of righteousness, or, which we have done in righteousness. Where he also rejecteth those works, which we counted righteous, and were thought both of us & others to have been done in righteousness, when as they were so far from being righteous, that they made us more unworthy of the grace of God, and more unfit to receive it, for they are deceitful works, whereunto we add this sin, that we think them righteous, and trust in them, whereby God is provoked to anger more than can be said, even as our enemies are wont to move us to anger, when as they will avouch those things to be just, We ought to be beneficial to others of mere love, having no respect to good or evil deserts. wherein they sin and do unjustly. But even as God, when we being unwise, by error moved him to anger, counting our sins works of righteousness, did not therefore reject us, but of his mercy delivered us from this error and sins: so we neglecting the foolishness and dotage of our adversaries, whereby they contend that sins are to be counted for righteousness, ought nevertheless of mere love, having no respect of evil or good deserts, to be beneficial unto them, and endeavour to do them good in all things, looking for fruit of our benefits not of them, but of God alone. Let these things suffice to have been spoken for a compendious and general exposition of this text. Now let us also briefly weigh the words, wherein he setteth forth and commendeth the grace of God. First he so greatly extolleth it, The good works and righteousness of men how they are esteemed of. that in respect of it he condemneth all our good works and righteousness: neither doth he condemn a small thing, when he condemneth our righteousness or righteous works, the most excellent thing that man can have in earth. For if all men with all their might should labour and endeavour to attain to most exact prudence, wisdom, and liberty of mind and will, which we read that some Philosophers and Princes have done, as Socrates, Traianus, and many other, whose same the whole world hath long since spread abroad both by words and writings: nevertheless all such wisdom, and all such virtues are nothing but sins before God, forasmuch as they be not done in and by the grace of God. Doers of such virtues are ignorant of God, and therefore they can not honour him by their studies and endeavours, they think they have all thinks of themselves, when as no man can have any good thing at all, but of this grace alone, which the Gospel preacheth. So Paul glorieth, that he, before he knew Christ, lived a blameless life, and was more zealous toward the law than those of his age, that he also thought, that he did a thing acceptable to God by persecuting the Christians, which condemned that blameless life which he led, but afterward when he had learned Christ, he saith, that he counteth that righteousness to be but dung, that he might be found not in such righteousness, but in Christ by faith. Philip. 3. The same thing he witnesseth and entreateth of at large in the Epistles to the Galathians and Colossians. Here therefore is condemned all boasting of free will, man's strength, righteousness, and good works, and it is concluded, that they are all nothing but sins, and certain destruction, although they have a fair show: that we are saved by the only grace of God, as many of us as believe, and call for it, with acknowledging of our own vanity and perdition. Now we must accustom ourselves to the Scripture, Tow sorts of righteousness. which maketh mention of two sorts of righteousness, one human, which Paul here and in many other places hath mentioned, the other divine, even that grace of salvation, which justifieth us by faith, Divine righteousness whereby we are justified. whereof he speaketh in the end of this text: That being justified by grace, we should be heirs of eternal life. Here thou seest plainly that the grace of God is our true righteousness, whereby we are justified, which is therefore called the righteousness of God, for that it is given unto us of God, and is made ours, when we are made partakers thereof by faith. Of this he speaketh also Rom. 1: In the Gospel is revealed the righteousness of God from faith to faith, as it is written: The just shall live by faith. And Gen. 15: Abraham believed, and it was counted to him for righteousness. Whereupon the Scripture concludeth, that no man is counted righteous before God, but he that believeth, as the Apostle testifieth, where he reciteth that saying of Abacuc: The just shall live by faith. So it appeareth that faith, grace, mercy, truth, righteousness, that all these are that same which God worketh in us by Christ and the Gospel. Whereupon it is said Psal. 25: All the ways of the Lord are mercy and truth. For those are the ways of the Lord in which we observing his commandments, do walk, and he again in us, now those ways must be directed by his mercy and truth alone, not by our strength and industry, forasmuch as our ways being ordered hereby, are nothing but vanity before God, and do deserve his wrath. According to that which the Lord saith isaiah 55: As far as the heaven is higher than the earth, so far do my ways exceed yours. As if he should say: Your righteousness is earthly and of no value, wherefore ye must bid it farewell and walk in mine, if ye hope for salvation. But according to his mercy he saved us. It is marvel how the credit of these words can stand, wherein the Apostle affirmeth that we are already saved, although living yet in earth, and therefore in continual misery. But he did so speak, that he might more fully express the power of the divine grace, and the nature of faith against hypocrites, who as though salvation were yet far of, do in vain endeavour to get and obtain it by their works. We are already saved by Christ. For Christ hath already saved us: he hath performed all things which are required hereunto, that we may be saved: he hath overcome and subdued sin, death, hell, etc. so that he hath left nothing, for any man to care for, he hath also given all these things unto us in Baptism, that who soever believeth in Christ, that he hath performed them, hath them together in the same moment, so that he hath need of nothing more unto salvation, but faith alone, that he may firmly believe that these things are so performed. But mark how incomparable riches of his grace God hath poured upon us in Baptism, who hath delivered us even from those works, whereby those foolish holy ones go about to merit heaven, and to be saved. For we must have heaven, and be saved before we can do any good works, for that works can not merit heaven, but heaven being before given of mere grace; causeth us to do good works, and that for no hope of merit or reward, but only to the commodity of our neighbours, and the glory of God, until this body also be delivered from sin and death. What the life of a Christian is after baptism. Wherefore all the life of a Christian after Baptism is nothing else, but an expectation of salvation and felicity to be revealed, which they that believe in Christ do now possess, although hidden. They have all things now certainly, but they are yet hid in faith, which when as it is changed, knowledge being revealed, all things as they now have them, shall appear, which shall come to pass, when pleasant and wished death cometh, 1. joh. 3.2. according to that saying of john: dearly beloved, now are we the sons of God, and yet it doth not appear what we shall be: But we know that when he shall appear, we shallbe like him. And every man that hath this hope in him, purgeth himself, even as he is pure. Wherefore suffer not thyself to be deceived, and to be seduced from this truth by those hypocrites, which contemning faith, do falsely affirm that salvation is far from thee, and teach thee to endeavour in vain to attain unto it by thy works. It is in thyself, if thou believe that all things are performed by Christ, even as he himself witnesseth: The kingdom of God is within you, Luke 17. So that all our life after Baptism ought to be nothing else but an expectation, that that should be revealed which is already in us, and that we may comprehend, as we are comprehended, as Paul saith Philip. 3. I follow, if that I may comprehend that, for whose sake also I am comprehended of Christ, that is, that I may at length see those things which are given me, being as yet in the shut closet of faith. He coveteth, and burneth with desire to see the treasure which by faith he received both given and sealed in Baptism. Whereupon he addeth in the same place: Our conversation is in heaven, from whence also we look for our Saviour jesus Christ, who shall change our vile body, that it may be fashioned like unto his glorious body. Herewith also agreeth that which he saith Gal. 4: Ye know God, and by and by he doth as it were correct that which he had said, Yea, saith he, rather are ye known, both which are true, although not after the like sort: We are now known of God, so that he comprehendeth us, and we in deed know God, but we do not yet comprehend, for that our knowledge is as yet hidden and closed up in faith. He saith moreover Rom. 8: We are saved by hope, that is, we are saved, although we yet see it not, for that which one seeth, he hopeth not for, but if we hope for those things which we see not, we do with patience abide for them. Christ confirmeth this Luke 12: Let your loins be gird about, and your lights burning, and ye yourselves like unto men that wait for their master, when he will return from the wedding, that when he cometh, and knocketh, they may open unto him immediately. In which words he only biddeth them that be his to be ready to look for him the bridegroom, as which are already saved being admitted into the number of his ministers. Hereunto also pertaineth that which the Apostle saith Tit. 2: Let us live soberly, and righteously, and godly in this present world, looking for that blessed hope, and appearing of the glory of that mighty God, and of our Saviour jesus Christ. In these and such like places whereof thou mayst read many here and there in the holy Scriptures, he witnesseth that we are already saved, and that it doth not behove, that a Christian man should first seek to attain to salvation by his works. This opinion and devilish doctrine blindeth the eyes of Christians, extinguisheth the knowledge of faith, and carrieth men from the way of truth and salvation. We must cleave unto that which the Apostle here saith: He hath saved us according to his mercy, and that which he addeth in the end of this text, that we are heirs according to the hope of eternal life. We are now heirs, but that is hidden in faith, Why God will have us to look for the revelation of our inheritance a certain time. but we look with a certain hope, that hereafter it shallbe revealed. And God will have us so to look for the revelation of this inheritance, and to live a certain time after Baptism, that he may chastise our body by our ministry, and declare the power of his grace in fight against the flesh, the world and the devil, but especially for this cause, that by us he may help our neighbours, and both by doctrine, and also by our life which he liveth in us, may bring them to the communion of faith. And albeit he can do this by Angels, yet it pleaseth him rather that it should be done by us men, that both the manner of faith may be the better known, and that all things may be done sweetly and lovingly. For if Angels should always have to do with us, there should not be so much faith, neither should it be so pleasant, as when we are taught and guided by them that are partakers of our nature, whom we do better know, and with whom we do more familiarly associate ourselves. And so, that there may be some, by whom other also may be converted both by doctrine, and good examples, it is not meet that we should by and by after Baptism be taken into heaven, wherein notwithstanding we are already admitted citizens. A practise of Satan & Antichrist to delude men with Purgatory. Hereupon if one weigh all things rightly, it can not be doubted, that it is a practise and miracle of Satan and Antichrist, that so much is spent for Purgatories sake, such faith as this being put quite out of men's minds. For men are taught by their works to save themselves from Purgatory, or at the least to deliver themselves out from thence, as though salvation were not yet given us, and it were necessary to come unto it by other means then by faith alone, which how it disagreeth with the Scripture and a Christian life, there is no man that doth not see, but he that seeth nothing in the Scripture. For thus the holy Scriptures do teach every where, that who soever doth not receive salvation by mere grace, through faith before all works, he shall never be partaker thereof. And that who soever refer their good works, not to the profit of their neighbours, but to their own commodity, being more careful of their own salvation then of their neighbours, have no good works at all. All the works of these are void of faith, and infected with pernicious error. It had been greatly to be wished that Purgatory had never been invented, and never mention made thereof in the pulpit, for it hath been cause of such hindrance to Christian verity and sincere truth, as can not be recovered. For we see it now brought to pass by the means of Satan, that almost all prayers are directed to only Purgatory, with this ungodly and pestilent opinion, whereby miserable men think that they shallbe redeemed from thence, and obtain salvation by the works of men. Whereby the riches of Baptism and faith are had in no reputation, and they at the last of Christians become Heathen. O most pernicious abomination. Christian's should be taught as Christ and Paul teach them, that after Baptism and absolution from sins they should so live, that they should be ready every hour to receive death, with desire looking for the revelation of salvation already received. Now by the opinion of Purgatory they are made secure and slothful, so that they differre the study of godliness even to their death, and think by contrition and confession they shall amend all things, as though there were some sins remaining for which they must go into Purgatory, they hope that by Masses for the departed, and other bequests that they are persuaded to make in their testaments or last wills, they shallbe redeemed out of purgatory, but these miserable men are in these things utterly deceived, and shall at length try them to be far otherwise. By the washing of the new birth. He setteth forth the grace of God given to us in Baptism, with words very full of praise and commendation. He calleth Baptism a washing, whereby not the feet and hands, but the whole man is at once washed, purified and saved, so that to the sum and inheritance of salvation there is need of nothing but only faith in this grace of God, that it may remain and be acknowledged the work of grace alone, that we are saved without all our works and merits, and so also there may remain in us pure love, praise, giving of thanks, and glory of the divine mercy, without all glory and pleasing of ourselves in our own strength and endeavour, as it hath been already said often and at large. human righteousness is also a washing, but not whereby the whole man is so washed, but that Pharisaical washing, whereby only the apparel and vessels which are outward, are made clean, whereof it is spoken Matth. 23. Whereby it cometh to pass that men seem unto themselves pure, but inwardly nevertheless they remain full of filthiness. Baptism what manner of washing it is. Therefore he called Baptism not a corporal or outward washing, but the washing of regeneration or new birth, by which not those things that are outward, are washed, and only the outward man made clean, but the whole nature of man is altered and changed into an other nature, that is, the carnal nativity is thereby destroyed, with all the inheritance of sins and perdition. Salvation cometh not by works. Whereby he again witnesseth, that our salvation is given us at once, so that it is not to be gotten by works. For not one or two members are wont to be borne, as the hands or feet, but the whole man, which can not work this that he may be borne a man, but is first borne that he may work: Likewise our works do not purify or save us, but when as before we are pure, justified, and saved, we work freely those things, which may be profit to our neighbour, and honour to God. And this is the simple and pure knowledge of the divine grace, whereby a man learneth to know both God and himself: to praise God alone, to humble and cast down himself: to trust in God, to despair of himself. This doctrine of salvation they marvelously hinder, which urge men with laws, precepts, and works, and teach them to seek thereby to be saved. He that is truly baptised is become a new creature. And the renewing. That this washing and new birth may be more fully understood, he hath added, the renewing, that thou mayest understand, that he that is truly baptised, is become a new man, and a new creature, endued with a new disposition, which now is far otherwise affected, loveth, liveth, speaketh and doth far otherwise, them he was wont or could before. So the Apostle saith, Gal. 6: In Christ neither circumcision availeth any thing, nor uncircumcision, that is, no works of the Law are of any value or importance, but a new creature. As if he should say: Salvation can not be perfected by joining together certain good works, but the whole man must be at once renewed, and his nature changed, whereupon true good works will follow of themselves, not by piecemeal, but together with great plenty. Of this new birth, whereby the whole man is renewed, Christ speaketh joh. 3: He that is not borne again, can not see the kingdom of God. Here again it manifestly appeareth, that nothing is here done by our works, but that it behoveth, that man, how great soever he be, must die, and be changed into an other, which is done in Baptism, if we believe. The condemned shallbe borne again, but not renewed. The condemned also shallbe borne again in the last day, but they shall not be renewed, they shall remain unclean, as they were here, and as they were borne of Adam. Therefore that he might speak rightly of Baptism, he calleth it the washing of the new birth, whereby they that are borne again are also renewed. Of this new birth many things are to be found here and there in the Scripture, because of which also God calleth his word and Gospel a womb and matrix, as isaiah 46: Hearken all ye that remain of the house of Israel, whom I have borne in my womb, as mothers are wont to speak of their children. He therefore that believeth the Gospel, is as it were conceived in the womb of God, & from thence borne a new man, and like unto God: Whereof we will in an other place speak more. Now it shallbe sufficient, to have learned by these words, how our works are nothing in fulfilling the commandments of God, and that it is a mad thing to attribute here never so little to our own strength, seeing that it is faith alone, whereby man is at once borne again, & renewed. Wherefore understand this, that good works must follow a new creature, but to attain unto righteousness, & that new creature they are able to help nothing at all. No otherwise is the grace of God wont to renew man, How the grace of God reneweth man. then as if God should turn some dry and withered block into a new, green, and flourishing tree, which may afterward bring forth fruit plentifully. For the grace of God is a great, strong, very mighty, and marvelous effectual thing, it lieth not in the mind, The grace of God exceeding effectual and mighty in operation. as the Schoolmen dreamt: it sleepeth not, or is borne, as a painted table beareth a picture: itself beareth, guideth, urgeth, draweth, changeth, and worketh all things in men, so, that every one may feel and have experience of it. Itself in deed is hid, but the works of it can not be hid, but do witness of it, as the leaves and fruits do of the tree, of what nature it is. Wherefore the Schoolmen Thomas and Scotus do ungodly detract from it, who attribute no more unto it, then that it doth adorn the works of nature, and is a help that they be brought to perfection. For it doth not adorn or help only, but it alone worketh those things that be good, neither doth it work them only, but doth rather change and renew the person. For it exhibiteth the washing of the new birth, and of renewing, not of works only, but much rather of the whole man. He that shall preach these things of grace, shall truly and fully commend it. Which Paul endeavoured to do when he said: He hath saved us by the washing of the new birth, and renewing of the holy Ghost. Nothing can be done here by joining of works together, the nature must needs be changed, whereupon it cometh to pass, that they that truly believe must suffer many things: for grace worketh in them, & declareth itself present. Hereunto pertaineth that saying of the 111. Psal.. The works of the Lord are great, sought out of all them that have pleasure therein. What are these works? We are they, by grace in Baptism made the great, new, and regenerate works of God. Is it not a great thing for a man by and by to be saved, and delivered from sins, death, and hell? therefore he saith: sought out of all them that have pleasure therein. For by this new birth God hath found out, and done what soever men can desire. For what else do men covet and desire, but to obtain salvation, to be delivered from sin, death, and hell? Of the holy Ghost. Lastly, that he may the more express the greatness and virtue of grace, he attributeth this washing of the new birth, and renewing, to the holy Ghost. For this washing is so great, and of so weighty importance, that no creature but the holy Ghost alone is able to perform it. But how much, most excellent Paul, dost thou condemn free will, the great good works of the proud holy ones, that is, the merits of hypocrites? In how hie a place dost thou set our salvation, and again, how dost thou bring it down to us, and place● it near us, yea even within us? Only the washing of the new birth & renewing how purely & sincerely dost thou set forth grace in these words? Wherefore work what soever and how much soever thou wilt, it is unpossible for a man to be renewed, and the person changed (without which no works acceptable to God can be done) but by the washing of the new birth, and the renewing of the holy Ghost. That we may plainly see in those hypocritical counterfaitours of works. For thou shalt find none harder, none prouder, none so rash and hasty spirits. For they are broken, and not renewed, indurate, obstinate, confirmed by continuance, covering in deed and some what adorning that old Adam by those their counterfeit good works, but in the mean season there doth not any whit appear any change of nature in them, they continue still in the oldness of their corrupt flesh. O, what a pestilent people is this, and in how great indignation of God are they, when as in the mean time they think that they sit in God's lap? Washing of the new birth and renewing attributed to the holy Ghost. Now whereas the Apostle attributeth this washing of the new birth, and renewing to the holy Ghost, he saith the same which Christ doth john 3, where he saith: Except a man be borne again of water and of the Spirit, he can not enter into the kingdom of God. For that which Christ signified by water, the Apostle calleth the washing, so both made mention of new birth and of the holy Ghost. And we must mark that that which is spoken here of the holy Ghost both by Christ, and the Apostle, must not be referred to that Papistical confirmation, as they call it, for both of them referred to Baptism that which is here mentioned concerning the holy Ghost, who when the body is washed with water, doth himself work the new birth, and renewing by faith, which Christ called, to be borne again of the spirit. We read in the Acts of the Apostles, that the Apostles did eftsoons lay their hands on them that were baptized, and that so the holy Ghost came upon them by a visible sign, which the Papists also snatch to their confirmation. But as that was done, that the believers might by a visible sign be endued with the holy Ghost, to preach the Gospel in divers languages, so it continued only the time thereof, until the doctrine of the Gospel was commended to the world by sufficient signs, wherefore it is now long since worn out of use: but that a certain ceremony hath come from thence even unto us, of laying hands on them, which are ordained Ministers or Preachers, which is now brought into an ungodly and pernicious use: but of these things in an other place. Which he shed on us abundantly. See how notably the Apostle setteth forth grace. He saith not that the holy Ghost was given, but shed, and not that only, but shed abundantly. For he can not sufficiently extol and magnify grace, and the work thereof, and we, alas, count it so vile in respect of our works. The works of the divine grace sufficient for our salvation without any addition of our own works. It were a dishonour to God and to his holy Spirit, if when he hath plentifully shed it upon us, there should as yet be some thing wanting, necessary to righteousness and salvation, which we are able to perform, as though the works of so incomparable grace could not be sufficient. And Paul surely might be reproved of lying, which had not spoken all things whereby we must be justified and saved, when he affirmeth that he doth it. But as he writeth, so it is: no man can attribute so great things to this washing and regeneration, no man can so much presume of them, but greater things may be attributed unto them, and thou oughtest to promise to thyself more things of them: no man shall believe so great things, but he shall receive greater. Forasmuch as those good things which God hath given, are so great and so unspeakable, he would have them here come unto us being included and hid in his words and faith. For the nature of our present life can not bear them being manifest, and therefore it must perish, when they begin to be revealed, that man may by these inestimable riches, which he now possesseth by faith, be as it were swallowed up, and vanish away. We are already abundantly justified by faith without all our own merit, therefore Christ saith, joh. 3: God so loved the world, that he hath given his only begotten Son, that who soever believeth in him, should not perish, but have everlasting life. Behold, they that believe, have already everlasting life, and therefore undoubtedly are justified and holy without all their own labour or means: that thou mayest see, that nothing but grace and mercy is plentifully powered upon us, and that our works could avail nothing hereunto. Thou wilt perhaps say: Thou canst not preach sufficiently, that the grace and mercy of God doth work all things in us, An objection. and that no respect is to be had of our works, to the attaining of salvation, but how cometh it to pass then, that the Scripture so often witnesseth that they shallbe saved which have wrought good works? As john. 5: They shall come forth, that have done good, unto the resurrection of life, but they that have done evil unto the resurrection of condemnation. And Rom. 2: Honour and glory to them that do well, wrath and indignation to them that do ill. We read many sentences here and there in the Scripture like unto these. I answer: The answer. As the words sound, so take them without all gloss, for it is even so, they that do well shallbe saved, they which do otherwise, shallbe condemned. But herein many err from the truth of the Scripture, in that they judge works according the outward appearance, Works must not be judged good according to the outward appearance. contrary to the Scripture, which teacheth that no man can do good, who is not himself good before, and by works no man can become good, but works take their goodness of the worker, and he becometh good by the washing of the new birth, and by nothing else. This Christ meant Matth. 7. saying: A corrupt tree can not bring forth good fruit, neither a good tree evil fruit. Wherefore make the tree either good or evil, and it will bring forth like fruits. Hypocrites oftentimes do works like to the works of the Godly, yea sometime having a goodlier show, for they diligently pray, fast, give alms, and pretend a marvelous holiness, but Christ calleth these sheeps clothing, wherewith most hurtful wolves are clothed and hidden. For none of them is of a true humble, meek, and bountiful heart, which they chiefly declare when they are rebuked, when their holiness is reproved: for then bring they forth their natural fruits, whereby they are known. Those are, rash judgements, impatiency, stubbornness, obstinacy, slandering, and such like. It is true therefore, he that doth well, shallbe saved, that is, his salvation shallbe manifest, but he can do no good at all, if he be not before regenerate by the washing of the new birth. For what good works can one work in the oldness of the flesh, and by the strength proceeded from Adam, they are the good works which Paul here condemneth, saying: Not by the works of righteousness which we had done. They are in deed good works done in righteousness, but not before God, who first hath respect to the person, & then to the works, as we read Gen. 4. that he had respect first to Abel, then to his sacrifice, as he first turneth himself from Cain, and then from his sacrifice, although according to the outward appearance it was as good a sacrifice and work, as the sacrifice of Abel. Through jesus Christ our Saviour. This he added that he may keep us under the wings of Christ, as chickens are wont to be preserved under the wings of the hen: for thus Christ saith Matth. 23: jerusalem, jerusalem, how often would I have gathered thy children together, as the hen gathereth her chickens under her wings, and ye would not? And hereby the nature of a true and right faith is taught. For it is nothing which some say: I believe in God almighty, as the jews and many other are wont, and do therefore receive corporal benefits of God. It is a true and lively faith, What a true & lively faith believeth. whereby thou believest in God, howbeit by jesus Christ. First that thou doubt not that God is become a merciful father unto thee, which hath pardoned all thy sins, & in Baptism hath adopted thee for his son and heir, that thou mayest certainly know that thou art saved. Again, thou must also know this, that that was not done freely, neither without satisfaction made to the divine justice. For there can be no place in thee for the divine grace and mercy to work salvation, and to give thee eternal good things, unless the justice of God be before most fully satisfied. For Christ witnesseth Matth. 5: One jot, or one title of the Law shall not scape, till all things be fulfilled. That which is spoken of the grace and goodness of God, can not come but to them which do most purely and exactly observe his commandments, according to that saying Mich. 2: When as the jews did presume of the goodness of God toward them, and did always promise unto themselves peace, saying: How can God be always angry, is the spirit of the Lord shortened? It is answered them: Are not my words good unto him that walketh uprightly? Wherefore it shallbe lawful for none to attain unto the abundance of grace, unless he hath before most exactly satisfied the commandments of God. Though we could and should fulfil the commandments of God, yet should we merit nothing of him. Now it hath been spoken at large, that our works are nothing before God, whereby we can not fulfil so much as the least commandment of God, how much less shall we be able so to satisfy the justice of God, that we may become worthy of his grace? Moreover, if we were able to fulfil all the commandments of God, and in all things to satisfy his justice, notwithstanding we had not as yet deserved grace and salvation, neither should he therefore own it unto us, for that he may by the right of creation require as due service, all those things of us his creatures, created to live unto him. Wherefore it should yet come of grace and mercy, what soever should come from him to us. This Christ declared very well Luke 17. speaking in a parable: Which of you having a servant ploughing or feeding cattle, would say unto him by and by, when he were come from the field: Go, and sit down at the table? and would not rather say to him, dress wherewith I may sup, and gird thyself, and serve me, till I have eaten and drunken, and afterward eat thou and drink thou? Doth he thank that servant, because he did that which was commanded unto him? I trow not. So likewise ye, when ye have done all those things which are commanded you, say, We are unprofitable servants: we have done that which was our duty to do. Seeing then that heaven is given of grace, and for no merit, even unto those, if there were any such, which have done all things that were commanded them, according to that promise: If thou wilt enter into life, keep the commandments: what shall we boast of our good works, which although they were most absolute, yet should they be unworthy of heaven, but inasmuch as it is given us by the free and merciful promise? We had need of one who should satisfy the divine justice for us. Hereupon (for that we must so satisfy the divine justice, and yet notwithstanding our works are not able to attain thereunto, whereunto if they should attain, yet should they deserve no grace or salvation, for that they are before due) God first gave unto us a man, which should satisfy the divine justice for us in all things. Again, he hath by the same man bestowed this grace and bountifulness upon us, that albeit we without our own merit and worthiness, Not by our owen merit, but by the merit of Christ are we saved. yea having evil deserved and being unworthy, do receive grace, yet it cometh not unto us altogether freely and without all merit, for we have it through the merit and satisfaction of Christ. Whereupon Paul saith Rom. 5: As by the offence of one sin came on all men to condemnation: so by the justifying of one, that is, of jesus Christ, the benefit abounded toward all men to the justification of life. That is: As without all our merit, and own work we fell into sin, being borne sinners, so again without all our merit and means, we are redeemed from sins, by the washing of the spirit borne again the sons of God, partakers of grace and salvation. And this is the cause why the Apostle where he speaketh of faith and grace, is wont to add, by jesus Christ: whereby surely he would give us to understand, that none should count it sufficient, if he say: I believe in God, Christ being neglected. He that truly believeth, must acknowledge, that his faith can not be acceptable to God, yea that it can be no faith at all, if all the commandments of God be not before fulfilled, which seeing it is above thy ability, (and if it were not, yet notwithstanding thou hadst performed nothing, but that thou oughtest, and hadst as yet merited nothing, having fulfilled even all the commandments of God) thou hast need of an other, which in all things may satisfy the divine justice for thee, and may also merit heaven for thee. Now this other is our Lord and Saviour jesus Christ, who hath for thee fulfilled the whole Law, and merited for thee, that God now according to his justice can not but give heaven unto thee, and in all things acknowledge thee for his son and heir. And this is a true and sound faith, which trusteth in God by Christ, and is certain that by his merit it hath already received of God salvation, which shortly after shallbe revealed with blessed abundance of felicity. Christian faith. Neither can any other be called Christian faith, but that, whereby it is believed, that by Christ do come unto us both satisfaction, which we own to the justice of God, and the gift of salvation, which we ourselves by no means, if the Law could even be fulfilled of us, can merit. Whereupon Paul Rom. 4. saith: We have all things necessary to salvation, not by any merit of our owen, but by the merit and means of jesus Christ. Christ was delivered to death for our sins, and rose again for our justification. That is, by Christ we have received, not only remission of sins, but moreover also, that before God we are accounted righteous, & the sons of his grace. To the same effect also tendeth that which he saith Rom. 3: Whom God hath set forth to be a reconciliation through faith in his blood. Where again we learn, that it is true faith, which trusteth in the blood of Christ, and believeth that thereby it shall obtain grace. Whereas thou believest that he hath shed his blood for thee, thou receivest satisfaction: in that thou acknowledgest him the reconciliation, thou confessest that by his merit the divine grace and salvation do come unto thee. We have all things without our own merit and means, but not without the merit and means of Christ, who hath for this cause shed his blood. Wherefore that we may allude unto the parable of Christ, we must contain ourselves under his wings, and not upon trust in ourselves fly out, and contend to come unto God, otherwise we shallbe a pray to the hellish kite. For as it hath been often said, our righteousness, our merits, yea and our faith shall prevail nothing, without this our mediator Christ. And therefore he saith joh. 14: No man cometh unto the Father, but by me. And in the whole Gospel what other thing doth he, but endeavour to take us out of ourselves, and to transfer us to himself under his wings, that we may trust only in his satisfaction and merit? The same the Apostle also teacheth in the words following. That we being justified by his grace, should be made heirs according to the hope of eternal life. We are justified by the grace of Christ jesus. He saith that we are justified, not by our own works, but by the grace of the same jesus Christ. That is, we are therefore justified, for that Christ hath the grace of the Father, having fulfilled his will in all things, and thereby merited eternal life. For seeing that he hath no need of this merit, he giveth it unto us which believe in him, that before God all his things may be imputed to us, and by them we may receive salvation. See, how rich a thing sound faith is, and how great good things it bringeth with it. See also how precious a thing the Gospel is, and how great a treasure it is to have it purely preached: and contrariwise, how great a discommodity there is, where it is not preached, or not rightly preached, the inventions of men being mingled with it, or thrust in stead of it. Take heed therefore of such deceivers, and of their counterfeit faith, rest not in thyself, but get thee under the wings of Christ, keep thyself under his protection, trust that thou art heir of eternal life, not by thy own righteousness, or grace which thou hast received, but whereby he is righteous and acceptable before God. Hereunto pertaineth this saying Psal. 91. He will cover thee under his wings, and thou shalt be safe under his feathers. And in the Song of Solomon it is said: My spouse is a dove, building her nest in the caves of the rocks, and in the holes of the wall, that is, in the wounds of Christ. And this in deed is a true Christian faith, which resteth not in itself as the Schoolmen dreamt, but reposeth itself wholly in Christ, and as it trusteth in him, so it resteth in him, having received eternal salvation. Whereas he saith that we are made heirs of eternal life according to hope, beside that he proveth, that we without all our own merits, by only hope of grace are borne again heirs of eternal life, and do not become heirs by working, whereof we have already spoken at large, he also teacheth this, that our salvation and eternal life is as yet hid, although, if we believe, we do verily possess it, and this body being put of, and the kingdom of Christ revealed, all things shall appear manifestly. The weapons of this text. Our own righteousness and good works are of no power to save us. This text fighteth most mightily, and with most plain words against all righteousness and good works of man's reason and free will. For the words are plain. Not by the works of righteousness, which we had done, but according to his mercy he saved us, by the washing, etc. All which words do utterly overthrow our righteousness, attributing all things to the washing of the new birth, and the renewing of the holy Ghost, to Christ and his grace. How can there notwithstanding any presumption as yet remain in us? Wherefore let all sacred and profane laws have a fair show: let all sacrificing priests, monks, and nuns boast of themselves: let all religious and honest men and women seem goodly in outward appearance: let them even raise the dead: if faith in Christ be absent, whereof we have now spoken so much, all these things are to no purpose. These most false shows do as yet deceive the whole world, and seduce almost every one. They make the Gospel obscure, and extinguish the faith of Christ: All their works and orders, although they appear goodly, and they think them to have merited never so much, do avail no more unto salvation, than the works of beasts, or of artificers, whereby they do maintain themselves and theirs, yea they do most hurtfully hinder it. Therefore that I may conclude, take heed as much as thou art able, of these wolves, which under a fair pretence counterfeit themselves sheep, and learn and accustom thyself with a sound faith to cleave unto Christ alone. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER OF THE KINGDOM OF God. FOrasmuch as there is often mention made in the new Testament of these words, the kingdom of heaven, the kingdom of God, the kingdom of Christ, and it is very profitable and expedient for a Christian to know these, to wit, that they are nothing else, but remission of sins, and grace preached and offered by the Gospel. For in this kingdom thou shalt find nothing but grace and goodness, pardon and forgiveness of sins, love and gentleness: I therefore think it good to entreat somewhat at large of the state of this kingdom, and of forgiveness of sins. The kingdom of God, whereby he reigneth over all the faithful, and as a faithful king defendeth, punisheth, rewardeth, guideth, and directeth them, etc. they again from their heart trust in him, suffer his fatherly chastisement and correction with a patiented mind, and always serve him through obedience, is not worldly or temporal, but spiritual. Neither consisteth it in meat and drink, The kingdom of God wherein it consisteth. or in any outward thing, but only in justification, quieting and consolation of the heart and conscience of man. Wherefore it is nothing else, but forgiveness and taking away of sins, by which consciences are defiled, troubled, and disquieted. A similitude. For even as a worldly and temporal kingdom is ordained to this end, that men may live quietly & peaceably one with an other: So the kingdom of God giveth these things spiritually, and destroyeth the kingdom of sin, and is nothing else, but an abolishing and pardoning of offences. God reigneth in the hearts, inasmuch as he worketh in them by his word, peace quietness and consolation: even as sin worketh the contrary, namely, unquietness, anguish, and all kind of evils. Herein God showeth his majesty and grace in this life, that he taketh away and pardoneth men's sins: and this is the kingdom of grace. Now when as sin with his guard, that is Satan, death, and hell, shall trouble man no more, then at the last the kingdom of glory, and absolute felicity shall be. The kingdom of God is governed, not by the law, but by the Gospel. Hereupon it followeth: first, that the kingdom of God is ruled or governed by no law, no not by the law of God, much less by the laws of men, but only by the Gospel, and faith in God, by which hearts are purified, comforted, and quieted, whiles that the holy Ghost poureth love and the knowledge of God into them, & maketh man as it were one thing and one spirit with God: so that his affection is set upon the same thing, he willeth and desireth the same thing, he seeketh and loveth the same thing, that God doth. Neither standeth the case otherwise here, than it doth between two friends, which bear good will one to an other, and agree one with an other in all things. Hereof it cometh, that a man in this kingdom of God is perfect, merciful, pitiful and bountiful toward his neighbour, seeing that he knoweth by the instinct of the holy Ghost, that God is of the same affection toward him, and toward all men, and doth pour forth his goodness plentifully. Such affection of God no man can know by the law, but only by the spirit, and word of the Gospel. None therefore shall obtain quietness, comfort, and peace of the heart, or attain unto the kingdom of God by any law. And they which prescribe many laws, do withdraw men from the kingdom of God, to the kingdom of sin, wherein is nothing else, but unquietness, anguish, affliction, adversity, and all kind of evils tormenting the conscience. Like as on the contrary, in the kingdom and knowledge of God, there is mere joy, peace, and consolation of hearts. How Christ reigneth in the kingdom of God. Secondly: In this kingdom of God the Lord Christ reigneth no otherwise, then as a Master of an Hospital among the sick, poor, and diseased. For unto this kingdom none pertain, but sinful and miserable men, unto whom their sins are forgiven. Hereupon Christ saith in the Gospel Luke 6: Woe be to you that are rich, which have received your consolation. But contrariwise, the poor, miserable, and succourless receive comfort and joy by the Gospel: for Christ came to call sinners only, and not the righteous, that all glory may be referred to God alone, Christ putteth away sin after two sorts. for that he forgiveth sins of his grace and mere mercy. Such abolishing or putting away of sin, wherein Christ reigneth as King of the kingdom of God, is done of him after two sorts: first thus, in that he remitteth, pardoneth and covereth sins, so that God will not regard, remember or revenge them although they be in a man. As it is in the 32 Psalm: Blessed are they whose iniquities are forgiven, and whose sins are covered. Blessed is the man to whom the Lord will not impute sin, in whose spirit there is no guile. And in Esay cap. 43 God saith: I am, even I am he, that for mine own selfs' sake do away thine offences, and forget thy sins, so that I will never think upon them. secondly thus, in that he purgeth or rather scoureth sins by divers crosses and afflictions. For they are two things, to remit sins, and to weaken the body of sin that it may not reign in us. If a man believe, and is baptised, than all his sins are forgiven him. But afterward sin must be scoured or abated by manifold affliction and mortification, as long as he shall live. Sin sticketh in us, as long as the mortal body remaineth, but for Christ's sake it is not imputed in the wrath of God, but freely remitted, True Christians rejoice in affliction. and the force thereof diminished by his fatherly chastisement. In such chastisement for their amendment, true Christians have had great comfort, peace, and joy, as Paul saith Rom. 5: Then being justified by faith, we have peace toward God, through our Lord jesus Christ, by whom also through faith, we have had this access into this grace, wherein we stand, and rejoice under the hope of the glory of God. Neither that only, but also we rejoice in tribulations, knowing that tribulation bringeth forth patience, and patience experience, & experience hope. And hope maketh not ashamed, because the love of God is shed abroad in our hearts by the holy Ghost which is given unto us. So thou hast two things to be considered: The first, that in this kingdom of God we are justified. The second, that by tribulation and affliction we are glorified, without which we can not attain unto glory. Thirdly, good Christians are not known by this, when any suffer manifold tribulation & chastisement, that the body of sin may be weakened, and they brought to amendment. For herein they do altogether differ among themselves, one suffereth this, an other that: one is chastised thus, an other otherwise, so that even they very Apostles did not love and suffer alike: But they are known in forgiveness of sins, or justification by faith, wherein God turneth his anger from them, & receiveth them unto grace, and counteth them for his dear children, and imputeth no sin to them unto condemnation. Herein are all alike, even as all live under one heaven. Wherefore they do most grossly err & stumble, which measure Christians by manners, works, and the outward manner of living, even as the Pharisees were wont to do, and did therefore find fault with Christ, for that he did not observe their ceremonies, but was a friend of Publicans and sinners. As that Pharisee said within himself Luke 7: If this man were a Prophet, he would surely have known who, and what manner of woman this is, which toucheth him: for she is a sinner. A similitude Hear now an example of those things which are before said: A Physician which goeth about to cure the sick, doth first promise him health by the assistance and help of God, whereby he putteth him in great hope and comfort. Afterward he beginneth to purge, to cleanse and strengthen, and such like things, which make to the recovering of health: So God also, when he hath remitted sins, and received man into the bosom of grace, doth lay on him all kind of afflictions, and doth scour him, and renew him from day to day, in the knowledge and love of God, until he become safe, pure and renewed, which then at the last cometh to pass, when this mortal body dieth. Fourthly in these two partitions of the kingdom of God, two sorts of men are found, Two sorts of men abuse the kingdom of grace. which abuse the same kingdom of the grace of God, and the Gospel. Some become sluggish and slothful, saying: Well, if sins be pardoned freely of mere grace, and be washed away in baptism, there is no need that I should add any thing of mine own. Other think contrariwise, that they shall put away their sins by works, and so trusting to their own merits, they are proud and arrogant, and in respect of themselves contemn other, which do not so. The first of these contemn God's grace: the other oppugn it, as not sufficient, and so they represent swine and dogs. Now all this appeareth by the Gospel, by which Christ reigneth in the kingdom of God. For some abuse it unto carnal liberty: other contrariwise are persuaded, that it is not sufficient to salvation, but that their works also do help somewhat, and by this they deny and contemn the grace of God. Hereof thou mayst read more in the Epistle to the Romans, wherein these two sorts of men are plainly set forth. Fiftly, this kingdom of God, or remission of sins hath no bound or measure, Matth. 18.21.22. as that place of the Gospel doth very well show, where Peter asketh the Lord: Lord, how oft shall my brother sin against me, and I shall forgive him? unto seven times? jesus said unto him, I say not to thee, unto seven times, but unto seventy times seven times, that is, as often as shall be needful. After this followeth a parable, We must forgive our neighbour, if we will have God to forgive us. which the Lord there putteth forth, wherein he most severely admonisheth us, if we will not fall out of the favour of God, that we forgive our neighbour his offences without all delay or grudging. Forasmuch as God always forgiveth us innumerable sins. Our debt, whereby we are bound unto God, is ten thousand talents, that is, so unmeasurable and great, that we are not able to pay it with all our substance, all our strength and works. For we can put away no one sin, although it be even very little. Seeing therefore that God doth remit so many sins of his grace in his kingdom, it is meet, that we should forgive our neighbour a few offences. Of this kingdom of God, wherein sins are forgiven, the Scripture every where maketh mention, and saith, that the kingdom & dominion of Christ doth extend from one end of the land to the other. So saith David Psal. 72: His dominion shall be from the one sea to the other, and from the flood unto the end of the earth. And a little after he saith: All nations shall serve him. This also the Angel Gabriel declared to the Virgin Marie Luke 1. where he saith thus of Christ: The Lord shall give unto him the throne of his father David, and he shall reign over the house of jacob for ever, and of his kingdom shall be no end. These and such like places do show that the forgiveness of sins, wherein the kingdom of God doth especially consist, hath no measure or bond. Sixtly, hereof we may see, how unchristianly they do, An unchristian thing to prescribe a measure to forgiveness of sins. which bring forgiveness of sins to a certain measure, as they do, which measure out their indulgences for prescribed years, with forgiveness of the third, fourth, or half part. For hereby they bring the kingdom of God into a narrow and strait room, and are injurious to his mercy, forasmuch as there is no end of his kingdom, nor measure of his mercy. But whosoever shall in faith call upon the name of God, shall be saved, as often as he doth it. Moreover, when the sinner shall be sorry for his sins, the Lord will no more remember them, as it is in the Prophecy of Ezechiel, chap. 18. Seventhly, as this kingdom of God hath no measure or limits of forgiveness of sins, so also it hath no end, but endureth continually without ceasing: albeit the subjects of this kingdom do not abide in it continually, firmly and faithfully, but do often times forsake it. So the favour and grace of God were continually with Peter, although he denied the Lord, and revolted from him. To the same effect tendeth the parable in the Gospel whereof we have now spoken. For the servant, which would not have pity of his fellow servant, did make himself unworthy of the mercy of God, did deprive himself of the kingdom of God, which consisteth in pardoning of offences, as it is above mentioned. Here University Divines of a pregnant wit, as they seem unto themselves, and puffed up with knowledge, have disputed, whether, and how forgiveness of sins doth come again, when man iterateth or reneweth his sin, not knowing what they say. But follow thou the plain and simple words of the Gospel, to wit, that thy sins are so often forgiven thee, as thou dost forgive thy brother, whom thou must so often forgive as he shall offend against thee. We must forgive our brethren when they offend against us. Wherefore in this parable, whereof I have even now made mention, Christ doth admonish us all, that we pardon and forgive all them that have offended us. As if he would say: As in man's affairs, he which is beneficial to an other, hath other also beneficial unto him again, so saith Christ, in the kingdom of heaven, which consisteth specially in forgiveness of sins, that is in Christianity or among Christians, he which pardoneth an other his offences, I also will pardon him his. And on the contrary, he that is not merciful toward an other, to him I also will deny grace. I am over you as Lord and King, and ye are fellow servants and companions one with an other. Seeing therefore that I your Lord do readily forgive you, you also ought more readily to forgive one an other. After the same sort also he hath commanded us to pray in the Lord's prayer, Matth. 6: Forgive us our debts: which he would not have done, if he did not promise and would not mercifully forgive us. But nevertheless he added a condition or sign to this promise, when he saith: If ye forgive men their trespasses, your heavenly Father will also forgive you. The first is a sign, the other a promise. Mark that it is here enjoined us, to forgive one an other his sins and offences, so, that we must be merciful and bountiful toward our neighbours, if we will have the heavenly father gentle and appeased toward us. And let us be most certainly persuaded hereof, when we shall interpret at the best, and excuse, as much as equity doth suffer, the offences and trespasses of other, although they be even great and grievous, that we also shall have a bountiful and merciful father toward us in heaven. A most unchristian thing not to forgive our brethren, but to bear malice in our heart & seek to be revenged. Wherefore it is a thing most abhorring from Christianity, and even blasphemous, when it is said: I can not, neither will I forgive him that which he hath committed against me, I will be revenged, etc. Surely those blind men are ignorant, that they do take from God his glory, to whom alone vengeance belongeth, and challenge it to themselves, and so they give up to the devil their own souls, which they have received of God, & aught to render them unto him again, whereunto they are perhaps provoked even with some small or trifleling matter. Such kind of men as these aught to set before the eyes of their heart, these words of the Gospel, Matth. 18: O evil servant, I forgave thee all that debt, because thou prayedst me: oughtest not thou also to have had pity on thy fellow servant, even as I had pity on thee? So his Lord was wrath, & delivered him to the tormentors, till he should pay all that was due to him: So likewise shall mine heavenly Father do unto you, except ye forgive from your ha●● each one to his brother their trespasses. Neither is it sufficient, if in gestures, signs, mouth or tongue thou show thyself a friend unto him, and forgive him, but thou must do it from thy heart, otherwise God will not forgive thee, yea thou shalt be driven out of the kingdom of grace. Wherefore if at any time we have tried the mercy of God toward us, we must also readily pardon our fellow brethren, which have offended us. For in that respect the merciful Father forgiveth us our sins, that we also should forgive our brethren, & show mercy toward them, even as he is merciful toward us, and remitteth sin, death, the fault and the punishment. When we shall do this, then are we received into the kingdom of God. For the goodness of God liveth in our hearts, and maketh us also good. Christ sitteth at the right hand of the Father, yet nevertheless he reigneth in the hearts and consciences of the faithful, so that they love, fear, reverence, and diligently obey him, no otherwise then obedient subjects do their King, and in all their doings are made like to him, even as he himself saith, Matth. 5: Be ye perfect, as your Father which is in heaven, is perfect. Now God is perfect in this, that he taketh away and pardoneth our wickedness, defect, sin, and imperfection, that we also may do the like to our brethren. But when as we shall not do the like, we are driven out of his kingdom, & are made subject to the kingdom of sin, death, and the devil, as disloyal and disobedient inhabitants of some country, are thrust out. Which God of his mercy turn from us, Amen. All these things may be comprehended in the principal points following. 1 Christ reigneth, when by faith of the Gospel, he worketh the goodness and grace of God in our hearts, and maketh them like unto God. 2 In such a kingdom the conscience enjoyeth peace, consolation and rest, when it understandeth and knoweth that God is merciful unto it, and imputeth not sins. 3 Therefore man beareth all kind of tribulation and affliction, by which sin is scoured, and the force thereof abated. He also endeavoureth to be beneficial unto other, as he himself hath been as it were overwhelmed of the benefits of God. 4 And so the Lord reigneth after two sorts: First, for that he maketh the faithful certain of the grace of God, and remission of sins. Secondly, for that he layeth the cross upon them, that the body of sin may be weakened, and they brought to amendment. 5 He that forgiveth his debtors pertaineth to the kingdom of God, but he that doth not forgive them, remaineth under the kingdom of sin. These things I thought good to speak in this present place concerning the kingdom of heaven, the kingdom of God, or the kingdom of Christ, which is the same: to wit, that it is nothing else but a kingdom, in which thou shalt find nothing but forgiveness of sins. Which kingdom is preached and offered unto us by the Gospel, God grant that we may so receive it. Amen. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER OF PRAYER. THat prayer may be good in deed, and may also be heard, we must first consider that two things are necessary thereunto: one, The promise of God is first to be considered of in prayer. that we first meditate upon the promise of God, and do as it were advertise God thereof, and trusting unto it, be emboldened and made cheerful to pray: for unless God had commanded us to pray, and had promised also that he will hear us, even all creatures could not obtain so much as a grain by their petitions. Whereupon it followeth, that no man doth obtain any thing of God for his own worthiness, or the worthiness of his prayer, but by the only goodness of God, who preventing all our petitions and desires, provoketh us to pray and desire of him, by his gentle and bounteous promise and commandment, that we may learn how great care he hath over us, and is ready to give us more things, than we durst enterprise to ask, and that we may also learn to pray boldly, inasmuch as he giveth us all things even in more ample manner than we do ask them. We must no thing doubt of the promise of God in prayer. It is necessary that we do no whit doubt of the promise of the true and faithful God, for therefore he hath promised that he will hear us, yea and hath commanded us to pray, that we might have a sure and strong faith, that our prayer shall be so heard, as he saith Matth. 21. and Mark 11: Whatsoever ye shall ask in prayer, if ye believe, ye shall receive it. And in Luke chapt. 11: And I say unto you, Ask, and it shall be given you: seek, and ye shall find: knock, and it shall be opened unto you. For every one that asketh, receiveth: and he that seeketh, findeth: and to him that knocketh it shall be opened. If a son shall ask bread of any of you that is a father, will ye give him a stone? or if he ask a fish, will ye for a fish, give him a serpent? or if he ask an egg, will ye give him a scorpion? If ye then which are evil, can give good gifts unto your children, how much more shall your heavenly Father give the holy Ghost to them that desire him? We must boldly trust to these, and such like promises and commandments, and pray with true confidence. He that doubteth of the promises of God in prayer, committeth a double sin. If one so prayeth, that he doubt whether God hear him, and maketh his prayer only at adventure, caring not greatly whether it be heard or not heard: he committeth a double offence: One, for that he himself maketh his prayer frustrate, and laboureth in vain. For so james saith chap. 1: He that will ask of the Lord let him ask in faith, and waver not: for he that wavereth, is like a wave of the sea, tossed of the wind, and carried away, let not that man think that he shall receive any thing of the Lord. Such a man's heart is not quiet & settled, wherefore God can give him nothing. But faith maketh the heart quiet, and capable of the gifts of God. The other offence is, that he counteth the most faithful and true God, as a lying, vain, and unconstant man, as he which neither is able, neither will fulfil his promises, so by his doubting he robbeth God of his honour, & name of faithfulness, and truth. Whereby it is so grievously offended, that even that offence being committed, a Christian is plainly changed into an Heathen, and denieth and loseth his true God, so that if he continue therein, he is damned for ever without all comfort. And if any thing be given unto him, which he asketh, it is given him not to good, but to evil, as well temporal as eternal, not for his prayers sake, but from the wrath of God, that he may recompense those goodly words, which are uttered in sins, unbelief, and to the dishonour of God. We must not therefore doubt in our prayers for that we be unworthy. Some say: I would trust in deed that my prayers should be heard, if I were worthy, or if I could pray well. Then, say I, if thou wilt not pray, before thou shalt know and find thyself fit to pray, that thou shalt never pray. For as it is before said, our prayer must not rest upon our worthiness, or the worthiness of itself, or be grounded thereon, but upon the immutable truth of the promise of God. If so be that it trust to itself or any other thing, and ground itself thereon, it is false, and deceiveth thee, albeit thy heart should even be burst by reason of the ardent affection of godliness, and thou shouldest weep nothing but drops of blood. For therefore we pray, because we are unworthy to pray, and hereby surely we are made worthy to pray, and fit to be heard, inasmuch as we think that we are unworthy, How we are made worthy to be heard in prayer. and do boldly and cheerfully trust to the faithfulness and truth of God. Although thou be unworthy, yet have regard hereunto, and mark most diligently, that a thousand times more consisteth in this, that thou honour the truth of God, and not with thy doubtfulness accuse his faithful promise of falsehood. For thy own worthiness doth not further thee, neither thy unworthiness hinder thee: but infidelity doth condemn thee, trust and confidence maketh thee worthy & preserveth thee. Wherefore so behave thyself all thy life long, that thou do not at any time esteem thyself either worthy or fit to pray or receive, unless thou find thyself to be such a one, as dareth enterprise the matter freely, trusting to the true and certain promise of thy merciful God, which will so show both his mercy and goodness unto thee, that as he promised to hear thee being unworthy, and having not deserved it, of his mere grace, moved with no prayers: so he will hear thee being an unworthy asker, of his only grace, to the honour of his truth and promise, that so thou mayst give thanks, not to thy own worthiness, but to his truth, whereby he hath fulfilled his promise, and to his mercy, whereby he hath made and set forth his promise. And this the 25 Psalm confirmeth, where David saith: Gracious and righteous is the Lord, therefore will he teach sinners in the way. He will guide the meek in judgement, and teach the humble his way. All the paths of the Lord are mercy and truth, unto such as keep his covenant, and his testimonies. Grace and mercy are in his promise, faithfulness or truth in fulfilling and hearing. And in the 85 Psalm he saith: Mercy and truth are met together, righteousness and peace have kissed each other, that is, they come together in every work and gift, which we obtain of the Lord by praying. In this trust and confidence thou must so behave thyself, We must not appoint unto God how, when, or where he shall hear our prayers. that thou do not limit to the Lord any bound or end, day or place, neither appoint any manner or measure of hearing, but that thou do commit all those things to his divine will, wisdom, and omnipotency, that thou boldly and cheerfully look to be heard, and yet not desire to know, how, and where, how soon, and how long, and by what means. For his divine wisdom, shall find a better manner and measure, time and place, than we can think, even although that should be done by miracles. Even as in the old Testament, Exod. 14, when the children of Israel trusted that God would deliver them, and yet no possible means were before their eyes, or in all their thoughts, than the red sea opened itself, and gave them passage, drowning all their enemies at once. The holy woman judith, when she heard that the Citizens of Bethulia would after the space of five days give up the city, if God in the mean time did not help them, rebuked them saying: What are ye, that ye tempt the Lord? these are not devices and purposes, whereby we obtain mercy of God, but rather whereby we provoke him unto wrath and displeasure. Will ye set the mercy of the Lord a time, and appoint him a day after your will? Hereupon God did help her after a marvelous sort, that at the last she five Holofernes, and put the enemies to flight, judith 13: So S. Paul also saith, Ephes. 3: that the power of God is such and so great, that it doth far greater and better things than we either ask or think. Wherefore we ought to think ourselves more vile, then that we may name, appoint, or prescribe the time, place, manner, measure, and other circumstances of that which we ask of God, but we must leave all things wholly unto him, constantly and boldly believing that he will hear us. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER, CONCERNING THE BIDDING OF GVESTS TO THE great supper. Luke 14. Verse 16. A Certain man made a great supper, and bad many. 17. And sent his servant at supper time to say to them that were bidden: Come, for all things are now ready. 18. But they all with one mind began to make excuse: The first said unto him, I have bought a farm, and I must needs go out and see it: I pray thee have me excused. 19 And an other said, I have bought five yoke of oxen, and I go to prove them: I pray thee have me excused. 20. And an other said, I have married a wife, and therefore I can not come. 21. So that servant returned, & showed his master these things: Then was the good man of the house angry, and said to his servant: Go out quickly into the streets & lanes of the city, and bring in hither the poor, & the maimed, and the halt, and the blind. 22. And the servant said, Lord it is done as thou hast commanded, and yet there is room. 23. Then the master said to the servant: Go out into the high ways & hedges, & compel them to come in, that mine house may be filled. 24. For I say unto you, that none of those men which were bidden, shall taste of my supper. AS in the whole Scripture, so in this text also we must endeavour, that according to our ability (as ye have often times heard heretofore) we may understand the true and simple meaning, and thereupon settle our heart and conscience. For he that shall encounter with Satan, must not waver and stagger this way and that way, but must be certain of his cause, and instructed with manifest places of Scripture, otherwise when the Devil shall by an uncertain place of Scripture draw him to his fork, he will toss him this way and that way, as the wind doth a dry leaf. Wherefore out of this text we must gather a certain meaning, whereby we may persist and stand sure. Howbeit it is not to be understood of the reverend Eucharistie, or the bread of the lords table, although our Papists have miserably wrested it, as they have done many other authorities of Scripture. The sum of the text. But this is the scope, this is the sum of this text: that the Gospel is preached and published through the whole world, but few receive and embrace it. And it is therefore here called a supper, for that the Gospel must be the last word, which shall continue to the end of the world. Wherefore the supper here is nothing else, but a very rich & sumptuous feast, which God hath made through Christ by the Gospel, which setteth before us great good things and rich treasures. And he sent his servant to bid men to this sumptuous supper. That is: The Apostles were altogether sent with one word into the whole world, that they might bid and call men to this supper, with one voice, with one Gospel, with one ambassade: after such sort, that if S. Peter had come, and preached the Gospel of God in that place where Paul had preached it before, yet had it been one word, and the same preaching, that the hearers should have been compelled to say: Behold he preacheth the same that we heard before of the other, they wholly consent and agree, & the thing that they publish is all one. That the Evangelist might insinuate this consent and agreement in preaching, he saith: He sent his servant, he saith not, his servants, as of many. Now this message the servant must do to the bidden guests: The message which the servant doth to the guests bidden to the great supper. Come, for all things are now ready. For Christ had suffered death, & in his death had slain sin and death, also was risen again from death, the holy Ghost was given: & briefly all things were prepared which pertained unto that great supper. All things were ready without all our cost. For the Father by Christ hath paid the price of all things, that without all our merit and labour we might enjoy his goodness, and be nourished and enriched. He sendeth his servant therefore first to the jews, to bid them to this great supper, unto whom the promise was made of God. For the law and all the Prophets were directed hereunto, that they might prepare the people of God. As the Angel Gabriel declared of john the Baptist to his father Zacharias Luke 1: He shall be filled with the holy Ghost even from his mother's womb, and many of the children of Israel shall he turn to their Lord God. For he shall go before him in the spirit and power of Elias, to turn the hearts of the fathers to the children, & the disobedient to the wisdom of the just men, to make ready a people prepared for the Lord. But what did the guests answer to the message of the servant? the text following declareth. But they all with one mind began to make excuse. This is that whereof the Lord speaketh Matth. 10: He that loveth father or mother more than me, is not worthy of me. And he that loveth son or daughter more than me, is not worthy of me. And he that taketh not his cross, & followeth after me, What they must do that will be partakers of this great supper. is not worthy of me. For he that will be partaker of this supper, must put all things into danger for the gospels sake, body, goods, wife, children, friends, etc. Moreover he must leave all things whatsoever they be, that separate him from the Gospel, albeit they seem good, just, right, & holy. Neither think ye that these men which here excuse themselves, were guilty of grievous sins, or occupied about unjust matters and works. For it is not unjust to buy, to use trade of merchandise, to maintain himself honestly, to marry a wife, to be joined in matrimony. But therefore can they not come to this supper, for that they will not forsake these things, but will rather cleave to them in their heart. Now they must be utterly forsaken and left, when the Gospel so requireth. Thou wilt perhaps say: I would in deed willingly follow the Gospel, I would cleave unto it, & do all other things whatsoever, but to forsake goods, houses, family, wife, children, &c: surely this is a hard matter. God hath commanded me to labour, to maintain my wife and children, etc. Behold therefore this is the scope and sum, that the Gospel is the word of faith and offence, because of which every faithful man doth bear offence willingly. In deed God hath willed thee to do these things, howbeit he hath also commanded, that thou prefer him before all creatures, and love him above all things, and think him higher than all things which thou canst know, even as the chief and greatest commandment giveth us to understand: Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all thy heart, with all thy soul, with all thy mind, Deut. 6. Wherefore thou must forsake all things before thou suffer thyself to be plucked away from the love of him, or his word: although in deed he loseth nothing, which forsaketh any thing for the gospels sake. If for the gospels sake thou lose this temporal life, God will give thee an other far better, to wit, eternal life, as Christ saith Matth. 10: He that will find his life, shall lose it, and he that loseth his life for my sake, shall find it. If thou be compelled to forsake thy wife together with thy children, remember that God hath a care of them, he will be a better father unto them then thyself, which undoubtedly cometh to pass, if so be thou believe. For we have very great & rich promises that he will not suffer his word to fail, but will always fulfil it, if we can freely and confidently trust in him, and commit ourselves wholly unto him. Christ saith after this sort Matth. 19: Whosoever shall forsake houses, or brethren, or sisters, or father, or mother, or wife, or children, or lands, for my name's sake, he shall receive an hundredth fold more, and shall inherit everlasting life. We have here his words and promise: what would we have more? or what can we desire more? wherein therefore do we fail? only in our faith. Wherefore no man cometh to this supper, A sound faith required in the guests of this supper. but he that bringeth with him a sincere faith, which God preferreth and loveth above all creatures. But how doth the Lord recompense them which excused themselves that they could not come to the supper? The text itself declareth. Then was the good man of the house angry, and said to his servant: Go out quickly into the streets and lanes of the city, and bring in hither the poor, and the maimed, and the halt, and the blind. The Gospel was first to be preached to the jews who because they refused it, the Apostles turned to the Gentiles. To go into the streets and lanes is nothing else, but that whereas the jews made themselves unworthy of the Gospel, and did refuse it, the Disciples turned to the Gentiles. For it was enjoined them of Christ, that they should not turn themselves to the Gentiles, nor preach the kingdom of God in the cities of the Samaritans, but should go only to the sheep of the house of Israel, and should feed them only, as they did. Now the jews striving against this word, and by no means receiving it, the Disciples said, Act. 13: It was necessary that the word of God should first have been spoken unto you: but seeing ye put it from you and judge yourselves unworthy of everlasting life, lo, we turn to the Gentiles: for so hath the Lord commanded us, saying: I have made thee a light of the Gentiles, that thou shouldest be the salvation unto the end of the world. But what meaneth that which he saith moreover to the servant? Go out into the high ways and hedges, and compel them to come in, that mine house may be filled. This is to be understood of desperate and weak consciences, which also pertain unto this supper, and are compelled unto it, What it is to compel to come in. but this compulsion is not outward, but inward and spiritual, and is done after this sort. When the law is preached, sin is set before our eyes and revealed, that a man may come to knowledge of himself, so that to compel, to enter or come in, doth rightly signify, to drive sin into the conscience, whereby a man may know that he is nothing, that all his works are sins, and subject to damnation, and so suddenly his conscience may become desperate, and his heart faint and terrified, that all that confidence and opinion of help may departed, and man himself be able no where to comfort himself in any thing, and at the last be driven to despair of himself. If so be that one be once after this sort compelled, then do not long delay to let him come in, but deliver the man out of desperation. That cometh to pass, when thou comfortest him by the Gospel, and declarest that he is delivered from his sins, saying: Believe in Christ, that he hath made thee free from thy sins, then shalt thou be delivered and free from sin. And this is the meaning of that which he saith: Compel them to come in. It is not to be understood of outward compulsion, as some interpret it, that wicked and ungodly ones should be violently driven to the supper, for this prevaileth nothing, neither is it so meant in this place. Wherefore it is to be referred only to the conscience, and is inward and spiritual. Now he goeth on to speak to the servant and the rest. For I say unto you, that none of those men which were bidden, shall taste of my supper. This is the conclusion, that they which think themselves most certain that they shall come to the supper, and taste of it, shall not taste of it: The reason ye have heard. Now briefly the guests that are bidden and do not come, are they, which think that they shall obtain the supper by their own works, very much wearying themselves, thinking assuredly, that they shall taste of it. Why they that were bidden shall not taste of the supper. But the Lord mightily concludeth and saith: Not one of these men shall taste of my supper. Wherefore most gentle Lord? They have committed no wicked thing, neither have been occupied about unjust matters. Behold, this is the reason, for that they have forsaken faith, and have not confessed it freely before every one, neither have preferred that rich and sumptuous supper before all creatures. For seeing it is sumptuous, it requireth those men that do judge it to be so, and do put any thing in danger, what soever it be, that they may be partakers of it. Thus ye have the compendious meaning of this text, which I have only briefly run over, if any will expound it more at large, I am well content he so do. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER OF THE WORKS OF CHARITY. Luke 6. Verse. 36. Jesus said unto his disciples: Be ye merciful as your father also is merciful. 37. judge not, and ye shall not be judged: condemn not, and ye shall not be condemned: forgive, and ye shallbe forgiven. 38. Give & it shallbe given unto you: a good measure, pressed down, shaken together, and running over shall men give into your bosom: for with what measure ye meat, with the same shall men meat to you again. 39 And he spoke a parable unto them: Can the blind lead the blind? shall they not both fall into the ditch? 40. The disciple is not above his master: but whosoever willbe a perfect disciple, shallbe as his master. 41. And why seest thou a mote in thy brother's eye, and considerest not the beam that is in thine own eye? 42. Either how canst thou say to thy brother, Brother, let me pull out the mote that is in thine eye, when thou seest not the beam that is in thine own eye? Hypocrite, cast out the beam out of thine own eye first, and then shalt thou see perfectly to pull out the mote that is in thy brother's eye. THE works of charity which we must do to our neighbours in temporal things and in corporal necessity, are described unto us in this text: which the Lord then declared, when he said a little before in the same chapter, that we must do well unto our enemies, and bestow benefits upon them which hate us: that we must bless them that curse us: that we must pray for them which persecute us: if any man smite us on the one cheek, we must offer unto him also the other: and if any man take away our cloak, we must not forbid him to take away our coat also. etc. All which he comprehending in a brief sum, saith: Be ye merciful, as your Father also is merciful. Here ye see all good works summarily described which we must exercise among ourselves, as our heavenly father hath exercised them toward us. Ye have oftentimes heard, that it is not needful to do good works toward God, but toward our neighbour only. God can be made neither stronger nor richer by our works: but man may be strengthened and enriched by them, unto whom also they are necessary, unto whom only they are to be directed, and not unto God, which ye have very often heard, and which is now in your ears: but would to God it would at the last burst forth both into your hands and works. We must deal with God by faith and with our neighbours by good works. Mark therefore how perverse an order it is, when any deal with God by works, with whom notwithstanding they must deal by only faith, and when faith is directed unto man, whereas it is to be placed in God alone. Turn these contrariwise, and they shallbe right, after this sort: let us first repose faith in God alone, and let us then give our selves to serve our neighbours, and to direct all our works so, that they may turn to their commodity. We must deal before God by no other thing but by faith alone, because none is able to help us but God only, & whatsoever we possess either in mind or body, that cometh wholly to us from God alone, in whom we ought to trust, upon whom we ought to set our heart. Now some use such a preposterous order, that they repose faith, which ought to have respect unto God only, in themselves and others, they rest upon their traditions, and whatsoever their great masters have invented, in that they put their trust. Of such God saith in jeremy? jer. 2. My people hath done two evils: one, for that they have forsaken me the well of the water of life, and digged them pits, yea vile and broken pits that can hold no water: An other, for that thou darest say: I am without sin and guiltless, tush, his wrath can not come upon me: behold I will reason with thee, because thou darest say, I have not offended. First he saith, that his spouse is turned into an harlot, and hath estranged herself from God the fountain of life, from whom life, salvation & every good thing floweth, him they have forsaken. Secondly they set up their own traditions, and dig unto themselves a fountain of their own, which can hold no water. So our Papists trust to their own inventions, to their founding of Masses, to their fastings, prayers, and such like things. Which appear to be as a fountain, out of which they would draw life, and blessedness or salvation, when as notwithstanding it is able to hold no water: they forsake God the fountain of life. Afterward he saith: they dare rise against me, that I should not be angry with them, alleging that their works be just, and they will go to law with me. Behold this is an other sin, that they go about to defend their works. Whereupon God also saith: I will contend with thee in judgement, & will show how thou gaddest hither and thither to change thy ways. So faith pertaineth to God alone, Faith obtaineth all good things of God. whereunto it belongeth to obtain all whatsoever things are necessary, as well temporal things as eternal, and so to obtain them, that it think not that it hath merited in any thing. Also it must again apply itself downward toward our neighbour, with out looking for any recompense, not that blessedness consisteth in that deriving of faith, to wit charity, for neither doth God require that, who will have the conscience to rest only in him: even as the spouse must cleave only to her husband and to no other: so also God requireth of us that we trust in him alone. These things Christ declareth when he saith: Be ye merciful as your father is merciful. Wherefore I must so order my conscience toward God, that I undoubtedly believe, that I have him a bountiful and merciful father, as I will afterward declare, and that I also do show mercy toward my neighbour. Which faith must be inward, and carried upward unto God, but works must be without, and derived downward to our neighbour. After this sort Abraham did, when at the mountain in the country of Moria he ascended to God, he left his servants and asses below at the bottom of the mountain, taking only Isaac with him. The same must be done of us if we will ascend unto God, that we may come to him with Isaac only, that is, with faith, servants and asses, that is works, are to be left below. Thus much for the entrance of this text concerning faith and works, to wit that faith must pierce inward and upward, but works must go without and downward, whereby at the length it cometh to pass, that we are righteous before God and men, for that we give due honour unto God, and believe according to his word, and satisfy our neighbour in the duty of love. Now let us see the very words of the text in order. Be ye merciful as your Father is merciful. How our heavenly Father is merciful toward us. How therefore is our heavenly father merciful? after that sort, that he giveth us all good things, corporal and spiritual, transitory and eternal, freely and of his mercy. For if he should give unto us according to our desert, he should give unto us nothing but hell fire and eternal damnation. What soever therefore good things he bestoweth upon us, he bestoweth them of his mere mercy. He seeth us stick fast in death, therefore he hath mercy upon us and giveth us life: he seeth us to be the children of hell, therefore he taking pity upon us, giveth unto us heaven: He seeth us to be miserable and naked, hungry and thirsty, it pitying him hereof, he clotheth us, and refresheth us with meat & drink, & maketh us full of all good things: So what soever we have either in body or in spirit, he giveth it us of his mere mercy, without any merit or desert of ours. Whereupon Christ here saith: Imitate your father, & be ye merciful like unto him. This is not simple mercy, What kind of mercy reason teacheth us to use. such as reason teacheth, for that is greedy of her own commodity, which giveth only to great and learned men, and to them that deserve it: it loveth them that be fair and beautiful: it giveth unto them, of whom it looketh for profit and commodity again, which is a mercy divided, begging, and as it were torn and broken in pieces. For if I shall give to him that hath deserved, or if I shall regard fairness or friendship, it is a bargain or det, and not mercy. Hereof Christ speaketh in the same chapter before this text in this wise: Luke 6. If ye love them which love you, what thank shall ye have? and if ye do good for them which do good for you, what thank shall ye have? for even the sinners do the same: and if ye lend to them of whom ye hope to receive, what thank shall ye have? for even the sinners lend to sinners to receive the like. But the mercy of Christians must not seek her own, but so behave itself, that it be indifferent, that it regard all alike with open eyes, both friends and foes, even as our heavenly father doth. Where true mercy is not, neither is there any true faith. And where soever this mercy is not, neither is there faith also. For thy heart being settled in faith, so that thou knowest God to have showed himself thy God, so gentle and bountiful, without thy desert and of mere grace, when thou wast as yet his enemy, and the child of everlasting malediction, thy heart I say being settled in this faith, thou canst not contain thyself, but that thou show thyself again so to thy neighbour, & that wholly for the love of God, and for thy neighbour's commodities sake. Take heed therefore what difference thou make between a friend and an enemy, between the worthy and unworthy: for ye see all which are in this text rehearsed, to have otherwise deserved of us, then that we should love them, or do well unto them. And the same thing the Lord meaneth when he sayeth Luke 6: But love your enemies, do well unto them, lend, looking for nothing again, and your reward shallbe great, and ye shallbe the children of the most High: for he is kind unto the unkind, and to the evil. An objection. But how cometh it to pass that a certain contrary thing to that which we have taught seemeth to appear in this text, where he saith? Be ye merciful, as your heavenvly Father is merciful: again, judge not, and ye shall not be judged: condemn not, & ye shall not be condemned: forgive and it shallbe forgiven you. All which authorities sound so, that we must deal before God with our works, and by them deserve the mercy of God, when as notwithstanding ye have very often heard, that faith alone doth all? and both Paul and the whole Scripture do commonly say and affirm, that we must believe in God alone, and deal by only mere faith before him. The answer. It is requisite here to understand that good works are only a setting forth and commendation of faith, so that if I believe, I must be merciful, I must not judge nor condemn my neighbour, I must forgive, and give unto my neighbour. Whereof set an example before yourselves. What did Abraham being commanded to offer his son? Gen. 22. he obeyed the commandment, and drew forth the sword to kill his son: what ensued thereupon? the Angel of the Lord stayed him, saying: lay not thy hand upon the child, neither do any thing unto him: for now I know that thou fearest God, forasmuch as for my sake thou hast not spared thine only son. Howbeit this is here to be known and marked of us, We must receive mercy before we show mercy. that we must first receive, before we give: before we show mercy, we must receive mercy of God: we do not lay the first stone, neither doth the sheep seek the shepherd, but the shepherd the sheep. Wherefore so bestow thy works in every respect, that thou look for nothing at God's hand because of them: We obtain all good things of god through his mere mercy. for we obtain even every thing of God without merit or desert: so God saith Esay 65: I am found of them that seek not for me, I have appeared to them that ask not for me. And in the end of the same chapter: The time shall come (saith God) that or ever they call I will answer them, and while they are yet but thinking how to speak, I will hear them. For in deed before we seek him, he findeth us, before we ask him, he heareth us. Likewise S. Paul saith Rom. 3: There is no difference: for all have sinned, and are deprived of the glory of God, and are justified freely by his grace, through the redemption that is in Christ jesus: whom God hath set forth to be a reconciliation through faith in his blood, to declare his righteousness, in that he forgiveth the sins that are past, through the patience of God, to show at this time his righteousness, that he might be just, and a justifier of him which is of the faith of jesus. And in the chapter following he sayeth: Now to him that worketh the wages is not counted by favour but by debt: but to him that worketh not, but believeth in him that justifieth the ungodly, his faith is counted for righteousness. For if it be of Grace, it is no more of works, or else were grace no more grace, as he saith afterward in the eleventh chapter. Our good works must be signs and testimonies of our sincere faith. Again, I must bestow my works so, that they may be a certain sign, and as it were a seal graven with letters, whereby I may be assured that my faith is sincere. For if I feel in my heart, that my work proceedeth from love, I am sure concerning the integrity and soundness of my faith. If I forgive, the same forgiveness doth assure me concerning the sincerity of my faith, doth declare my faith, and certify me, that God hath also pardoned my sin, and doth daily more and more pardon me. So it fell out with Abraham, his work made his faith known unto him. God in deed knew that he did believe, but it behoved that Abraham also should know, and show forth his faith. Wherefore works following only freely as fruits of faith, are declarations of such a faith. For what should it profit me, if I had even a strong faith, but unknown unto me? even as if I should have a chest full of gold, yet I being ignorant thereof, should take no commodity thereby. But if any would show it unto me, he should do me as great a pleasure, as if he gave it me. So if I have faith and yet be ignorant thereof, it is no profit unto me. Wherefore it must burst forth, and be showed by the works that ensue, which are both signs and seals of the present faith. 2. Pet. 1.18.19 So Saint Peter meaneth, when speaking of the works of charity, and the virtues of faith, he concludeth thus: ●●●●●fore brethren, give rather diligence, to make your calling and election sure, which if ye do, ye shall not fall. For by this means an entering shallbe ministered unto you abundantly into the everlasting kingdom of our Lord and Saviour jesus Christ. He sayeth not, do good works, that by them ye may be called, but that ye may more assure yourselves of your calling. Accustom yourselves therefore well unto the phrases and manner of speakings used in the Scripture, that ye rush not upon them like blind moules, and confirm works in such places as this: for herein works are rejected if we think, that we are justified by them: but herein they are extolled and commended, in that they are profitable to our neighbour and fruits and signs of faith. Behold, it was meet that I should make this digression, lest I should confirm the meaning of the Papists. Now if it should be demanded why God oftentimes setteth down such contrary sentences, Why God will have sentences in the Scriptures which seem contrary. and disagreeing one with an other, as it seemeth to us & our reason, I answer, that he may exercise us in reading, and that we should not think that we understand the whole Scripture, when we scarce understand one place. Some sayings do guide the spirit, how we ought to behave ourselves toward God, only by faith, as this: Rom. 3.24. We are justified freely. Again lest the body should be sluggish outwardly, there are sentences also set forth unto us, which do guide and exercise the body, as these which we have heard here rehearsed: Forgive, and ye shallbe forgiven: also where as Christ affirmeth, that he will require works in the last day, and will say after this sort unto the condemned, Matthew 25: I was an hungered, and ye gave me no meat: I thirsted, & ye gave me no drink: I was astraunger, and ye took me not in unto you: I was naked and ye clothed me not, etc. Which sentences, whiles ignorant and light spirits labour to wrest and apply to works, they see not how great evil they commit. But spiritual men refer them to the very body only, they themselves standing naked before God in spirit, which is both just and necessary. For there are two things in man, the Spirit and the Flesh. Hereupon there are some places which do guide only faith in the spirit: some, which do direct only works in the body: for one place can not direct both the body and the spirit together. We must so do with our substance, that we be willing to part from it, to lend, and to give to our neighbour, when it shallbe requisite. And if we see any not to have, wherewith to make restitution, we must release him, and forgive the debt according to the example of Nehemias, as we read in Esdras. 1. Esd. 5. For God hath given many things unto us, who is able to give us more things also if we believe. And thus we hear that if we will be Christians, we ought to lend, give, and to be willing to part from that which we have, otherwise we shall not show the fruits of a lively faith. Wherefore lay up this text inwardly in your minds, that ye deal by no other thing before God, but by only faith, and refer and bestow your works to the only service and profit of your neighbour. Thus much shall suffice to have been spoken concerning the former part. Now what is to be said moreover of this text, or what doth follow we will afterward consider. In the words following the Lord interpreteth himself, what kind of mercy he understandeth, saying after this sort. judge not, and ye shall not be judged: condemn not, and ye shall not be condemned: forgive, and ye shallbe forgiven: Give, and it shallbe given unto you. In this place the Lord divideth mercy into three parts, Three parts of mercy. that we may not be ignorant, what manner of mercy that ought to be, which it behoveth us to show to our neighbours. First judgement and condemnation is taken from us. Then thou must forgive thy neighbour if he hath committed any thing against thee. Lastly thou must help the needy. These things this word (Mercy) signifieth, where soever it cometh in the Scriptures. And all these must proceed from a sincere heart, all colouring and flattery being taken away, that there be no respect had of the person. For if thou desirest to will well and to wish well to them, which will well to thee: or to do well to them, which do well to thee: or to hurt them, which hurt thee, thou art utterly deceived. But thou must do so, as Christ saith a little before: Imitate thy heavenly father, love thine enemy: do well to him, which doth evil to thee: forgive him that hurteth thee: The first part of mercy not to judge or condemn an other. lend to the needy, and so of the rest. That therefore we may speak of the former part, that we must not judge or condemn, we must mark, that God hath ordained the sword of the magistrate, to the punishing of public offences, so that it be provided that it be not done against the precept and commandment of God, as that the innocent be not executed: for whereas the judge dealeth unjustly, he is as well an homicide as an other, of which judgement Christ saith nothing here. Else where he maketh mention thereof, when as he said to him, which desired, that he would bid his brother divide the inheritance with him: Luk. 12.14. Who made me a judge or a divider over you? For the care & governing of outward things do not belong to the kingdom of Christ. Of what judgement Christ speaketh in this place. But Christ speaketh here of an other judgement, namely of that whereby one reputeth and counteth an other good or evil, when as notwithstanding he seeth no good or evil to be done of him. Which judgement belongeth only unto God. For it may be that thou see thy brother offend to day, whom notwithstanding to morrow God doth receive, them may he both be, and also seem unto thee to be good, neither must thou remember his sins, for that Christ hath forbidden. For there can not be either any love, or concord, where this judgement and condemnation is usual amongst men. To judge & condemn an other is nothing else, then to have a beam in his own eye, which all hypocrites do without doubt bear in their eyes. For they that judge themselves good, are offended at their brother, what soever others do, it displeaseth them, forasmuch as they will not acknowledge their own sin. But it cometh to pass, that when thou seest many sins in others, thou seest not the beam that is in thine own eye, and so fallest into the judgement of God. Hereof it cometh, that thou which judgest an other, are made worse than that most wicked bawd, or the most unchaste harlot, before God, who alone knoweth who is to be saved, and who to be condemned. judgers of other. Such hypocrites are of that nature, that it is a pleasure unto them, and they take no small delight thereof, if they reason and talk either of the adultery or fault of an other man, yea they increase a small thing or trifle in their neighbour, and what soever others do, they interpret it at the worst, so that no man is able to do that which pleaseth or liketh them. And although they themselves do not such things, yet they willingly here that other men do them, whereas a godly man helpeth as much as he is able, that these things may be covered and amended. But it many times falleth out that they are most filthy adulterers even according to the flesh, which do so judge and condemn others, howbeit they do not judge man only, but even God himself. Wherefore if thy brother be a sinner, conceal his sin, and pray for him to the Lord: if thou reveal his sin and rejoice thereat, surely thou art not the child of the merciful father, for if thou were, thou wouldst be merciful according as he is. This is a thing most certain, that we are not able to show so great mercy to our neighbour, as God both hath & doth show to us. But that is the practise of Satan, that we do those things which are quite contrary unto mercy, which is an undoubted sign, that there is no mercy at all in us. Of these judgers of other Christ speaketh in the Gospel when he saith: Can the blind lead the blind? Luke 6.39. shall they not both fall into the ditch? The disciple is not above his master: but who soever willbe a perfect disciple, shallbe as his master. And why seest thou a mote in thy brother's eye, and considerest not the beam, that is in thine own eye? either how canst thou say to thy brother, Brother, let me pull out the mote that is in thine eye, when thou seest not the beam that is in thine own eye? Hypocrite, cast out the beam that is in thine own eye first, & then shalt thou see perfectly to pull out the mote that is in thy brother's eye. As if he said: thou thinkest that thy brother is blind, and in thy mind dost find fault with an other, that is, thou wilt guide an other, when notwithstanding thou thyself art blind. Thou judgest him a sinner, & thyself an honest & just man. What other thing is this, than for thy heart to be so affected, that thou count thyself better? Which is nothing else, then that thou wilt lead & guide other, when thou thyself art blinder than a mole, so that he which followeth thee, doth fall with thee into the ditch. Of such as judge themselves to excel others, & think themselves to be followed more than the word of God, S. Paul speaketh Rom. 2: Behold (saith he) thou art called a jew, & restest in the law, & gloriest in God, & knowest his will, and triest the things that descent from it, in that thou art instructed by the law, & persuadest thyself, that thou art a guide of the blind, a light of them which are in darkness, an instructor of them which lack discretion, a teacher of the unlearned, which hast the form of knowledge, & of the truth in the law. Thou therefore which teachest an other teachest thou not thyself? thou that preachest, A man should not steal, dost thou steal? thou that sayest, A man should not commit adultery, dost thou commit adultery? thou that abhorrest idols, committest thou sacrilege? thou that gloriest in the law through breaking the law, dishonourest thou God? Whereupon he also saith in the beginning of the same chapter to hypocrites: Therefore thou art inexcusable, O man, who soever thou art, that condemnest: for in that that thou condemnest an other, thou condemnest thyself: for thou that condemnest dost the same things. But we know that the judgement of God is according to truth, against them which commit such things. And thinkest thou this, O thou man, that condemnest them which do such things, & dost the same, that thou shalt escape the judgement of God? Lo, this is to speak the truth to hypocrites, who go about to show the way to other, which they themselves know not, leading so other men into the ditch with them. Therefore the Lord saith: The disciple is not above his master, but who soever willbe a perfect disciple, shallbe as his master. This is a common proverb: I can learn no more of my master than he knoweth himself. Wherefore doth the Lord speak this proverb? because of two sorts of masters: the one is blind, whom if I shall follow, I also myself shall become blind: he himself falleth into the ditch, and I follow. The other master is the merciful father, of whom we must learn mercy: whom if we follow, we also do become merciful like as he is: if we were merciful daily, we should also become perfect, as he is perfect, but that cometh not to pass, as long as we are in this life. The second part of mercy is, The second part of mercy, to forgive. that we forgive them which have endamaged us, or hurt us by any means. A Christian can never be so hurt, but he ought to forgive, not only seven times, but seventy times seven times, as the Lord said unto Peter. Matth. 18. Wherefore God forgiveth a Christian his sin or infirmity, that he also may forgive other their infirmity: which Christ setteth forth else where in a most goodly parable, which he concludeth in these words: Matth. 18.35. So likewise shall mine heavenly Father do unto you, except ye forgive from your hearts, each one to his brother their trespasses. And so we pray daily in the Lord's prayer, with an addition saying: forgive us our trespasses, as we forgive them that trespass against us. Is this a hard matter, if I a wretched sinner, do forgive my neighbour his trespasses and his infirmity, whereas the Lord will forgive me my sins and my infirmities? If one had killed my father, what were this being compared to my sin, wherewith I have offended God, and provoked him to anger? The third part of mercy is, The third part of mercy, to give to the poor & needy. that we give to them that be in misery and need, and that we help them. Whereof john speaketh thus 1. john 3: Whosoever hath this worlds good, and seeth his brother have need, and shutteth up his compassion from him, how dwelleth the love of God in him? For where the love of God is, it is moved to show itself even in outward works. Hereunto also pertaineth the saying of Christ Matth. 5: Blessed are the merciful, for they shall obtain mercy. Wherefore the Lord addeth a promise in the Gospel, saying: Give and it shallbe given unto you: a good measure, pressed down, shaken together, & running over shall men give into your bosom. And continuing on his speech he saith: For with what measure ye meat, with the same shall men meat to you again. Thus much shall suffice concerning the parts of mercy which we ought to show to our neighbours. Matth. 7.12. Unto which the special words of Christ ought to exhort us, who when in the Gospel of Matthew he had spoken much of a Christian life, and of love to be showed to our brethren, thus concludeth saying: What soever ye would that men should do to you, even so do ye to them: for this is the Law and the Prophets. Now every one is so affected, that being cast down, and in distress, he would wish all the world to help him. If I be a miserable sinner, drowned in sins, bearing a burdened and troubled conscience, I would that the whole world should comfort me, should help and secure me, should cover my sin and shame. So I also aught to behave myself toward my neighbour, not to judge him, not to condemn him, but to forgive him his offences, to help him, to provide for him, to lend unto him, & give him, even as I would wish to be done unto myself if I were driven into distress, necessity, exile, or poverty. And herein truly Christians are known, if they love one an other, if one do such works of mercy unto an other, as Christ said unto his disciples at his last Supper: I give you a new commandment, that ye love one an other, as I have loved you. By this shall all men know that ye are my disciples, if ye have love one to an other. Thus ye have the meaning of this text, it remaineth that we call upon God for grace. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER, OF THE SUM OF CHRISTIAN LIFE. 1. Tim. 1. Verse. 5. THE end of the commandment is love out of a pure heart, and of a good conscience, and of faith unfeigned. 6. From the which things some have erred, and have turned unto vain jangling. 7. They would be doctors of the Law, and yet understand not what they speak, neither whereof they affirm. IT is well known unto you dearly beloved brethren, God's word must be heard and learned. with how great severity God hath commanded his word to be heard and learned. For he most highly esteemeth it, and hath bestowed much labour in defending it, and publishing it to the world. He hath suffered all the Prophets to come into perils and dangers, at the last also he sent his own son because of his word, whom he suffered to die even the death of the cross. And what persecutions have not the Apostles themselves abode for the words sake? what afflictions have not all Christians suffered? unto some of which he hath committed the ministery of his word faithfully to be executed, and to other some hath enjoined the charge of hearing the same. If there were no other cause beside this, whereby we might be moved to hear & learn God's word, but for that it is the good pleasure, will, and commandment of God, yet this one ought to be sufficient great & weighty. For it is our duty as creatures to obey our Lord and Creator, and that with all readiness of mind, inasmuch as he hath given us so many good things, and doth as yet daily give us more, for which we shall never be able to give him sufficient worthy thanks. Howbeit he is not content, only to have commanded us to do this, or to require it of us as bounden duty, but promiseth also that great fruits and commodities shall redound to us thereby, affirming that by this means his greatest and highest worship is given unto him. For he is the great Lord, whom we serve, God is served divers ways, but especially by preaching & hearing his word. who hath many and divers kinds of service, and manifold manners of worship, and whom we may serve divers ways. But this only service which is given to him by hearing the word, doth excel all the rest. For if any where a faithful man of the country, or a citizen, or any which is otherwise in subjection doth serve his Lord or master, he doth by the same service also serve God. Likewise a child, a manservant or a maydseruaunt, if they be obedient, and do diligently that which belongeth to their duty: also a Prince and parents if they govern well, and do their duty faithfully: they all do serve God. For it is his will and commandment which he requireth to be fulfilled of us. Of such services and kinds of worship the world is full. For to every one in his state his works are committed and enjoined of God, whereby he daily both aught and may serve him: that there may be left no place for excuse unto any man, as though he were ignorant how, and wherefore he must serve God, neither that any seek after other things, and invent peculiar manners of serving God, which he hath neither ordained nor commanded, and in the mean season neglect that which he hath commanded, as we have hitherto done in our blindness. But before all other services and doings of duties, he hath most highly esteemed and extolled this service both of them that hear, God hath appointed time, place, person and what so ever is requisite that his word may be preached & heard. and them that preach his word: And therefore hath ordained also a special day thereunto every week, in which we must apply ourselves to no other business: Albeit we serve God also by other labours all the week, which he hath bound to no time or certain day. But he hath chosen this day specially, which he hath severely commanded to be kept, whereby men may have time and leisure to perform this service, lest any might fly unto this complaint, that he hath no leisure by reason of his labours and business. Moreover he hath appointed special places also for this service, as among us temples and houses, where we do come together. Yea he hath instituted and kept the whole order of ministers hereunto, giving also other things which pertain to the performing of the charge of this office, as the knowledge of many tongues, and divers gifts beside. And briefly he hath commanded the whole world by a certain special precept, that it think this worship or service holy, and far more excellent than the rest. Which he will have so to be delighted in of all Christians, that it may be manifest, how much he doth esteem it, and how acceptable unto him the exercise and handling of his word is. Most weighty causes which ought to me to hear God's word. These things I speak to stir you up, and to admonish you, why ye ought willingly to hear the word of God, because it is not only the commandment of God, whereunto we must obey, but we have also most ample promises, that it is a thing acceptable to God, and the greatest worship, whereby we can do honour unto him. And it so far exceedeth other kinds of worship, as the brightness of the sun exceedeth the brightness of the other stars, and the Sabbath day the other days, & in a sum, as much as the heavenly kingdom excelleth the kingdoms of the world. For here all things are holy and specially chosen, the time, place, person, and that because of the word, which sanctifieth all things unto us. Wherefore we must earnestly endeavour, that we take heed unto ourselves, that we fall not into sluggishness, & slothfulness, neither that we be carried away with contempt and loathsomeness of hearing the word, as those delicate and cloyed spirits, which seem unto themselves already to be Masters, and exactly to know all things, yea far more perfectly than any can teach them. Or as others also, which are soon cloyed with it, thinking, why I have heard this very often, wherefore should I eftsoons hear the same song? They know not how great & marvelous a thing it is, also how great worship of God, which they do so greatly contemn, & neglect with so great slothfulness. Wherefore they do after unspeakable means provoke God to wrath, having his commandment so in contempt, and suffering his promise to be made void in them, and as much as is in them impairing and hindering by their example so commendable a worship and service of God. But admit it to be true, which notwithstanding is not, that thou dost understand all things perfectly, and as cunningly and skilfully as Christ himself: yet thou seest how earnestly he performeth the office of preaching, and applieth himself unto this work, whereof notwithstanding he was most skilful before, and had not any whit need thereof, as we do greatly need it. So Paul also a Prince of Apostles, albeit he was exceedingly well learned, & so excellent a Doctor, yet going through many countries did eftsoons and every where preach, neither was he wearied or cloyed. We must not be weary of hearing the word of God. Wherefore it is meet that thou be nothing at all weary of hearing this word, inasmuch as the aid and help thereof is exceeding necessary for thee, both against the devil and all other temptations. And although for thy instruction thou shouldest not need it, yet oughtest thou not to be wearied or cloyed, that thou shouldest not bestow a few hours in a day every week upon this worship and service of God: seeing that before, applying thyself to false worship, when thou didst pass the whole day in temples, and didst run from temple to temple, from altar to altar, thou fellst no tediousness or weariness, neither didst say as thou dost at this day: O, I have heard no new thing, I have heard these things before: But didst think thus: this day and yesterday I went to hear Mass, and to morrow I mind to go to hear it again. How much more oughtest thou to do this now, knowing assuredly that this is the right service and worship of God, & to say? Albeit I knew most perfectly, as I do not know, yet to give honour and show obedience unto God, I will do this service, and because of his love and praise I will hear his word, that my Lord may see by this chief worship, wherewith I am especially delighted, that I am willing to serve him. For although no other fruit or profit come unto me thereby, yet I may rejoice that I have performed a most holy and acceptable work unto him, whereunto other kinds of worships and services being compared, are of small importance. Now, he that doth not care for these things, neither is moved with them, reverently to think and highly to esteem of the word of God, willingly and earnestly to hear and learn it, whensoever opportunity and means shall be offered, I will have nothing to do with him. For neither may I, neither will I draw any man hereunto violently. He that contemneth, let him contemn still, and remain a swine as he is, even until that day, when God will kill him, and throw him down headlong to hell. For such a one can not be a good man, neither is it a human sin, but a certain devilish obstinacy, A devilish obstinacy to contemn the hearing of God's word. so greatly to contemn that, whereunto God hath appointed a place, person, time, etc. Whereunto moreover he moveth us by his commandment, lovingly provoketh us by his promises, stirreth us up, and admonisheth us by words, and offereth all these of his own accord, and to be bought with no price or treasure, which is to be far fetched, or hardly come by, the excellency whereof can in deed be countervailed with no gold. Add hereunto moreover that it is a worship or service very easy to be done, which may be performed without all labour or grief, but that thou must attentively hear the Preacher, or apply thy mouth to speak and read, than which labour none surely is more easy. And albeit it is to be feared, that thou shalt therefore bear the cross, and suffer persecution, yet the work itself is so joined with no difficulty, as no other labour is, no not even that that is most easy. If so be that it be not grievous unto thee, to sit the whole day in a tavern or an alehouse, or otherwise with thy companions to trifle and sport thyself with filthy and unseemly gests and pastimes, also to sing and prate, and yet art not weary, neither feelest any labour: thou mayst with as little pain sit in the temple, and hear the Preacher, whereby thou servest God, and dost that which is acceptable unto him. What wouldst thou do, if thou shouldest at his commandment carry stones in quarries, or go armed on pilgrimage to S. james? or if some other laborious and painful work should be enjoined thee? as hitherto it hath been the custom among us, when as we would do all things willingly, whatsoever was enjoined us, when we were deceived with mere trifles, and most impudent delusions. But so doth the Devil blind men: in whom also he worketh a satiety and loathing of the word of God, whereby it cometh to pass that they have no regard, what a treasure the word of God is, but live after a beastly sort, contemning all good doctrine. Let us therefore at the last delight in these things, thinking thus with ourselves, that as often as we read or hear the word of God either privately or publicly, of whom soever it be preached, we apply ourselves to the chief service of God, which pleaseth God exceedingly well. After this sort thou mayst inflame thyself to hear, and God will inspire thee with his grace, God maketh the seed of his word fruitful in the diligent hearers thereof. that the seed of his word be not sown in vain, but may bring forth plentiful fruit. For the word is never taught without fruit, whensoever it shall be diligently and attentively heard, neither can it be, but that by eftsoons hearing it, thou shouldest become better. And albeit for the present time thou seest or feelest no fruit, yet in process of time thou shalt plainly perceive & feel it. But it were long here to rehearse the fruits proceeding of the word, nay, in deed they can not be all rehearsed. These things I thought good to speak in steed of a preface before the words of S. Paul, Exhortation to the hearing of God's word very needful. to the intent to stir us up more diligently to hear the word of God: and surely there is great need of such an exhortation daily in every sermon, which also is much pertinent unto the text which we presently have in hand. For Paul in this place reprehendeth curious spirits, which go about by their own wisdom to be masters of the word of God, and do by and by falsely persuade themselves, that they know it well, and that they need not any more the help of any teacher: but turn themselves to trifleling and vain jangling, that they may bring forth some new thing, which the common sort may be desirous to hear, presuming also to be Masters of the Scripture and of all men, labouring to teach every one, and yet not understanding what they speak, or whereof they affirm. For this is a plague and calamity that followeth, where the word of God is not handled diligently and seriously, the learners being weary of hearing, and the teachers slothful in preaching. Hereof it cometh that so great companies of hearers slide away, and Churches become desolate. Of which calamity vain talking spirits are the cause, which promise new things, that they may win the hearts of the multitude unto themselves, boasting that they are Masters of the Scripture, and yet are always such men, as are ignorant, forasmuch as they have never tried, what it is to teach other: which we do now plainly fee, and the wrath of God is at hand ready to punish our contempt and unthankfulness. Therefore Paul beginneth his Epistle to his Disciple Timothe so, Vain & curious teachers. that he should take heed, that such teachers do not arise, which can talk many things of the law, bringing many new questions and doctrines, what is to be done, how righteousness is to be obtained, all which they do for ostentations sake, that they may be seen and praised, and seem to be more learned than other, and yet they never came so far as to teach any certain thing, or that which might be counted to be of any importance, but do all things confusedly and out of good order. Such babblers use only these words, that we must be honest, that good works must be done, and God must be served, etc. but they understand not the sense of those words, what they mean. And being asked how we must do good works, now they teach this particular work to be done, an other time an other work, as, offer so much sacrifice at this altar, get thee into this or that Monastery, run unto this Saint, here erect a chapel to the honour of such a Saint, in an other place found a Mass, light tapers, eat fish, buy indulgences, etc. Which being done, they by and by bring an other work, and forthwith after that an other. So they know not how to instruct any after a constant & certain manner of teaching, much less can they say, this is, or in this doth the sum of Christian life consist, etc. And yet in the mean season those things must be counted very excellent that they teach, so much do they boast, and promise almost golden mountains, as though they alone were Doctors that might not be gainsaid, and controllers and Masters of all other. But he is to be counted an excellent Master, and highly to be esteemed, which teacheth the chief point and whole sum of doctrine, to wit, how the heart and conscience, yea and the whole man must live. They know nothing of that thing, although they be very full of words, but do altogether err from the sum & principal point of the law. In the mean season they entangle the minds of the hearers with such a confused company of words, that they know neither how to make a beginning nor end of speaking, and it is uncertain whereunto that disordered company of words doth serve, whereby no man can be made better, much less can he confirm his conscience thereby, as we hitherto have enough and too much seen and tried in the Papacy among our Preachers of dreams. What therefore is the sum of that doctrine, which is to be taught to the people? Saint Paul answereth: The end of the commandment is love out of a pure heart, and of a good conscience, and of faith unfeigned. This is that Helen, The sum of Christian life. here thou hast the sum of Christian life most excellently and fully comprehended, compendiously and briefly uttered, and which may be not unfitly printed in thy memory. Thou must endeavour, if thou wilt not err from the law, but attain to the chief point thereof (that thou mayst know what is to be done and what to be left undone) to have love proceeding out of a pure heart, from a good conscience, and faith unfeigned. If thy love be of this sort, them is it right, otherwise thou errest from the meaning of the whole law. Now these words are profound, and comprehend much matter in them: Wherefore we must partly expound them, that they may be the better understood, & that we may accustom ourselves to Paul's manner of speech. First he attributeth to love the sum of the whole law, wherein it wholly consisteth. What it is love. And to love is nothing else (as I think it is known to all) but to favour and embrace one from the heart, and to show and perform unto him all the duties of friendship and good will. Now those jangling Doctors also use such words, preaching and boasting many things of love, but all by piece-meal and particularly applied to their own trifles and follies. Even as heretics, wicked men, and ungracious wretches have love also, but that which consisteth only among themselves, & them that are of the same sort with them, in the mean season they hate and persecute all good Christians, whom they would willingly accuse of murder, if they could, etc. But this doth not yet deserve to be called true love, if I choose one or two, whose conditions like & please me, whom I do friendly & lovingly embrace, & no man beside them. It is called a particular love, which proceedeth not out of a pure heart, Love flowing out of a pure heart. but from an infected and filthy heart. For true love floweth out of a pure heart, when I endeavour as God hath commanded me, to pour forth my love toward my neighbour, and to favour all without difference, whether they be friends or enemies, even as our heavenly father himself doth, who suffereth his Sun to arise on the good and evil, and sendeth his rain to the thankful and unthankful, maketh the earth to bring forth many good things, giveth money, riches, fruits, cattle, and many times especially unto them that are the worst of all other. But from whence cometh that doing of these things? truly from pure love, whereof his heart is most full. This he poureth forth abundantly upon all, omitting no man, whether he be good or evil, worthy or unworthy. And this is called true, divine, entire, and perfect love, which loveth no one, neglecting the rest, neither cutteth or divideth itself, but embraceth all indifferently. Love that proceedeth not from a pure heart of what sort it is. The other is love of thieves and Publicans, if I love him, which is for my turn, and may do me a pleasure, and which esteemeth well of me, and despise him that contemneth me, and which is not on my side. For that doth not proceed from the heart which ought wholly to be good and pure, indifferently toward all, but he that is endued with such love, seeketh his own things, & is full of love of himself, and not of love toward others. Neither doth he love any man, but for his own commodities sake, regarding only that, which may serve for his own use, seeking his own profit by every man, and not the profit of his neighbour. If he be praised and honoured, he laugheth, but being looked upon with sour countenance, or an unthankful word being spoken unto him, he stomacketh, curseth & findeth fault, so that all friendship forthwith ceaseth. Contrariwise he that hath a pure heart must be so affected according to the word of God, and his example, that he favour every one, and bestow liberal and friendly benefits upon them, even as God hath favoured him, and of his divine love hath bestowed benefits upon him. But some man will say, he is mine enemy, We must not therefore abstain from doing well to any because he is our enemy or evil. and doth evil unto me. Surely he is an enemy also to God, unto whom he doth many more things displeasant unto him, than he can do either to me or thee. But therefore my love ought not to be extinguished or cease, because he is evil, and altogether unworthy thereof. If he be evil, he shall at the last suffer punishment according to his deeds, but his wickedness must not overcome me. But if I can through love rebuke and admonish him, or pray for him, that he may amend, and escape punishment, I must do it readily: I must not be an enemy unto him, or do evil unto him in any wise. For what profit should redound unto me thereby? neither am I made better thereby, and I make him so much the worse. This therefore ought to delight me, if I shall favour him, and bestow benefits upon him, if so be that he will suffer them to be bestowed on him, and pray unto God for him, so I may enjoy peace, and have no trouble or contention with any man, and perhaps I may so profit him, that he will change his life unto the better, and amend. Otherwise surely love being divided or separated, I have more bitterness and sorrow by them, whom I hate, than I have joy and profit by them, whom I love and keep company with. And this is said to trouble the fountain or water, from whence pure love can not flow. As it is certain that the jews also did, against whom Paul speaketh in this place: for they loved them only of whom they were loved, whereby they defiled the sincerity of love with man's affections, and therefore their heart could not be pure. But whereby is the heart purified? I answer, Whereby the heart is purified. it can not be purified by any other thing better, then by that sovereign purity, which is the word of God. Receive that into thy mind, and order thy life according to the rule thereof, and thy heart is purified. As in this place, see thou set the word before thee, Thou shalt love thy neighbour as thyself, & follow that which it commandeth, and by and by thou shalt see whether it purgeth & cleanseth whatsoever desire there is in thee of thine own profit, or whatsoever love of thyself. For commanding thee to love thy neighbour, it maketh exception of none, either friend, or foe. Albeit some man be evil, and hath been oftentimes injurious unto thee, notwithstanding he doth not therefore lose this name, that he is not to be called thy neighbour, but nevertheless remaineth thy flesh and blood, and is comprehended in these words, thou shalt love thy neighbour etc. Therefore I say, if thou shalt consider him and so behave thyself toward him, as the word teacheth thee, then is thy heart made pure, and love sincere, so that thou makest no false difference of persons, neither otherwise considerest him, than an other, which is good, and one of thy familiars. In deed we can not deny this to be true, that an honest man is more worthy to be loved, unto whom also every one doth more willingly apply himself by nature, then unto the conversation of wicked men, whose familiarity there is no good man that doth not abhor, howbeit flesh and blood is the cause that true and Christian love is not among us. For a Christian must not derive his love from the person, as the world doth: as some young man seeing a maid, is in love with her because of her fairness and beauty, and a covetous man taketh his love and desire of his money, a Lord or Prince of honour and power, etc. For all such love is said to be feigned and proceeding not from whence it ought, cleaving to the good things, wherewith he seeth the person adorned, neither doth it continue any longer, then that which he loveth, continueth, and as long as he may enjoy it. True love. But true love ought to be such as floweth out of a continual fountain, and proceedeth from the bottom of the heart, as a fresh and continual water always springing forth, which can not be stopped, and is never dried up. This love saith after this sort: I love thee, not for thy honesty or dishonesty, for I do not derive my love from thy honesty, as from a strange fountain, but out of mine own fountain, that is, out of the word of God which is planted in my heart, which commandeth me to love my neighbour. From hence love plentifully floweth, open to all, which have need thereof, watering all both friends and foes: yea chief prepared and ready for foes, inasmuch as they have more need, that they may by my means be brought to amendment, I praying for them, and doing according to my ability that which I am able, that they also leaving their evil ways, may be delivered from sins, and the snares of the Devil. And this is said to be love flowing from the heart, and not derived from without: for he that is endued with such love, findeth no such thing in him whom he loveth, from whence he should derive it: But because he is a Christian, because he layeth hold on the word, which is altogether pure by itself, by the power of it his heart also is made pure, and replenished with true love. Whereupon he poureth for●h the treasures of his love toward every man, neither is he moved or turned away with the person of any, whether he be good or evil. Behold, thus should they preach, which will rightly teach love required of the law, whereof our babblers know nothing, neither have any regard thereof, albeit they talk many things of the law, and dispute much of love. They do not see, no they do not so much as once think, that love must be such, that it flow out of the heart, & that the fountain must be first pure and clear. This never descendeth into their heart, although they hear, read, and teach many things of it. They are occupied with very uncertain, and unprofitable cogitations, yea rather with dead dreams. Wherefore whatsoever is preached of works and of a good life, True good works. that only is well done which proceedeth from the word of God, a pure heart, and a true faith. This thou mayst see in all states, how every one ought in his calling to do the office enjoined him, and exercise the works of love. A servant labouring, & thinking no more than thus: My Lord or Master payeth me my wages, for which only I serve him, otherwise I would not vouchsafe to look upon him, &c: hath not a pure heart, for he doth not serve, but for a piece of bread, or for his hire, which being taken away, his service also ceaseth. How a good servant ought to be affected. But if he were a right & true Christian, he would rather be thus affected: I will not therefore serve, because my Master payeth me wages, because he is honest or unhonest, &c: but therefore, Ephes. 6.5. because the word of God doth thus speak unto me: Servants be obedient unto your Masters as unto Christ, etc. This service proceedeth of it own accord out of the heart, which layeth hold on the word and greatly esteemeth it, saying: I will serve my Master, and take my wages, but this shall be the chiefest thing, for which I do this service, that I may serve my God and Lord jesus Christ, who hath laid the condition and state of a servant upon me, which I know doth please him in me, etc. Here thou seest a true work proceeding out of a pure heart. So also let a Lord or Prince, and they which have the charge of governing the common weal, think thus: God hath committed unto me the office of a Magistrate, that I should be a ruler: now if I will have regard unto this only, that I may enjoy my dignity, riches, and power, it is certain that my heart is not pure, and yet in the mean season I do the works of a ruler, so, that the world can not complain of me, neither Cesar, or the Lawyers can blame or find fault with me by their laws. Even as neither a servant serving only for wages can be reprehended of the world, whether he seeketh his own things or not. Surely the word of God is not regarded in the office of a ruler that doth so, but his own idol, his own glory, money and power etc. But if this affection be in his heart: How the heart of a godly Magistrate ought to be affected. because I am occupied in this office, wherein God hath placed me, and the word commandeth him that beareth rule to be careful, it is meet that I do execute the same with all faithfulness and diligence, to the praise and glory of my God: The execution of the office of such a ruler endued with such a mind, cometh out of a pure and sincere heart, wherewith both God and good men are delighted. There is moreover in him love, which doth not cleave to the person or outward things, but beginneth in the heart, which the word of God maketh manifest, which forasmuch as it is pure & clean, doth also purify the heart. And so his government and works are the mere services of God, & most acceptable sacrifices unto him, seeing that they are done only according to the word of God, and for God his sake. But our talkers can not teach this, neither are able to judge of it, only crying out when they teach best of all, that we must be honest. They bring a certain iuridiciall sermon out of the laws of men, as Cesar and his Clerks teach. But how the heart is purified, they have never so much as understood or thought any thing thereof, or how love is to be derived to all states and conditions of men according to the word of God. Thus must thou say moreover even in spiritual offices & states also: If I or any other shall preach to get some good benefice, whereas otherwise I would easily cease from doing this office, I may preach the Gospel, but my heart is not pure, but most plainly polluted. Therefore although I do long and much affirm, that it is a good work and a weighty office, yet do I not perform it aright, forasmuch as I do it not from the heart. How the heart of a true Preacher & Minister ought to be affected. But then only it is rightly done when the heart hath this affection: albeit I must get my living thereby, yet this ought not to be the chief end thereof, but because God hath called me unto it, and hath committed it unto me diligently to be done, it remaineth, that I do with all diligence labour therein to the glory of God, and salvation of souls, which I do otherwise also for the love of the word, willingly and from my heart. Hereby I seek neither love or friendship, nor honours, nor thankfulness of men, but my works come from the heart, which I first do, before I obtain any honour, glory, reward, money, or favour, although if those come and follow, I may have and receive them without sin. Lo, thus the word is the cause, foundation, ground, fountain and springe of love coming out of the heart, & of all good works that please God, which he can by no means away with, God requireth the heart. if the heart be not pure before: for neither are works acceptable to men, which are done without the heart by dissimulation. Now it Cesar and men require the heart, although they can not see it, of how much greater estimation is that heart before God, which doth all things for the words sake? Therefore he also suffereth his word to be preached, that we may order all our life according to the prescription thereof. And let not us suffer ourselves to be hindered, frayed from it, or discouraged with the let or hindrance of any thing, although for it we shall suffer all kind of losses, unthankfulness, contempt, &c: but let us break and go through all brunts with a bold and manly courage, and say thus: we began nothing for any man's sake, neither will we leave of any thing because of any man, but that we may do that which is acceptable to God, we will go on still, howsoever things fall out with us. They which do thus, become men excellent and most highly to be esteemed, who are ready to do all duties, and serve God with all readiness of mind and love not feigned. For the fountain and springe is good, not derived and brought in from without. These things I thought good briefly to speak of the first part, how the heart is purified by the word alone, and not as the monks have dreamt, by a fight taken upon them against evil cogitations, & by feigning of good thoughts. For what thoughts soever thou shalt feign, the heart shall remain unclean, if the word of God be not in it, although it pretend a great show of a godly life, as Paul witnesseth. But this pureness, whereof he speaketh, doth extend farther than outward & corporal pureness doth, which the jews did use, eating & drinking their hands being oftenwashed, which our religious men also use in their fasting, diversity of apparel, orders and rites, &c: for this is called pureness of the spirit, which we then have, when being instructed by the word of God, we know thereby how he is to be served in every state & calling, and endeavour to frame our lives according thereunto. The second part. Now followeth the second part concerning a good conscience, whereof also we must entreat, to wit, that love must come from such a heart, as hath a joyful & quiet conscience, both toward God, A good and quiet conscience toward men. and also toward men. Toward men so, as Paul glorieth of himself, that he lived so, that he offended no man, troubled no man, was an evil example and burden to no man, but all that did see and hear him, must needs witness, that he indifferently served all, helped all, counseled all, & dealt friendly and gently with all. Such a conscience Moses also glorieth of against the seditious, Numb. 16: Thou knowest that I have not taken so much as an ass from them, neither have I hurt any of them. And jeremy chap. 18: Remember, O Lord, how that I stood before thee to speak good for them, and to turn away thy wrath from them. Likewise doth Samuel 1. King. 12: I have walked before you from my childhood unto this day: behold here I am bear record of me before the Lord, & before his anointed: whose ox have I taken? or whose ass have I taken? whom have I done wrong to? whom have I hurt? or of whose hand have I received any bribe? and so forth as followeth in the same place. Such boasting & glory every Christian must attain unto, that he do so live toward every man, and so exercise and show his love, that no man can worthily complain any whit of him, whereby he shall trouble or dismay his conscience, but that all that will confess the truth, may be enforced to say, that he hath so lived, that he hath been an example to every man of living well, which will only but follow him. And this is called a good conscience before men, or against the complaints and reprehensions of men. And albeit such a conscience is not able to stand before the judgement of God, no nor any pureness of the heart in the outward life and works of love (we continuing in sinning often times before God) yet we must attain unto such a heart, that we may comfort ourselves before him also, and say: this God hath bidden and commanded to be done, therefore I do it with a pure heart and a good conscience, neither would I willingly do otherwise, neither of purpose hurt or trouble any man, but whatsoever I say and do, that is willed and commanded of God. Let no Christian suffer such a confidence to be wrested from him, that he may boast himself by the word of God against the whole world. For he that hath no regard how he leadeth his life, that he may stop the mouths of all blamers and accusers, and clear himself before all, and testify that he hath lived, spoken, and done well, he I say is not yet a Christian, having not in himself a pure heart and love. For we will not presume of the doctrine of faith, as though that being had, every man may do what he list, whether it be profitable or unprofitable to his neighbour, that we must in no case do. Otherwise that doctrine should have the name to give licence and free liberty for every one to do what he will. But we must so behave ourselves, that we may obtain love out of a pure heart and a good conscience, that no man may accuse us of any crime. And although these things be spoken of our life and works, and a Christian is an other manner of man before God, as we shall hear, yet we must earnestly endeavour ourselves in this also, that we may be without blame before God. And when we shall not attain thereunto, we must fly to prayer, and say before God and men: forgive us our trespasses, &c: that at the least wise, our life may remain without blame, What we must do when we fail in our duty toward our neighbour. and we may obtain a good conscience before men. And if this can not be brought to pass by perfect love and pureness of the heart, yet let it be done by humility, that we may pray for, and desire of all men pardon of our offences, when as we have not purely and perfectly done our duty, or are not able to do it, so that thy neighbour may be enforced to say, albeit thou hast greatly hurt me, or hast not done thy duty toward me, as it was meet, yet forasmuch as thou humblest thyself, I will willingly forgive thee, and take it in the best part. And for this humilities sake I say that thou art a good man, which dost not stand obstinately, as though thou wouldst advisedly and of purpose offend against me, but dost turn thyself unto love. Therefore that life is as yet said to be without blame, which albeit it was subject to reprehension, is with humility covered, and reform, that no man can worthily complain thereof. Thus the law should be expounded and handled, that both love toward every man may rightly proceed out of a pure heart for God his sake, and the conscience may stand before the world. And this aught to have been practised of those vain talkers in their Sermons, their cold trifles and vain follies being neglected and left of. But that all these things may stand and be of force before God also, there yet remaineth one thing, which pertaineth hereunto, which is that that followeth. And of faith unfeigned. For as I have said, albeit I have a good conscience before men, Our old Adam doth hinder us that we can not attain to perfect purity and holiness. and do exercise love out of a pure heart, yet the old Adam, that is, flesh and blood remain in me subject to sins, whereby it cometh to pass that I am not altogether holy and pure. And as Paul saith Gal. 5: The flesh lusteth against the spirit, etc. And Rom. 7. he affirmeth that he must fight a daily fight against himself, because he can not do that which is good, & yet he would willingly do it. The spirit in deed would very willingly live purely & perfectly according to the word of God, but the rebellious flesh resisteth the desire thereof, assailing us with many and great temptations, that we should seek honour, wealth, riches, pleasure, & should become slothful & negligent in our state & duty. So there remaineth a continual fight in us, because of the unpureness of our person, Although we have a good conscience, and do exercise love out of a pure heart before men, yet the same can not stand before God. wherein there is not yet sincere pureness, nor a good conscience & perfect love, unless there be perhaps somewhat before men. But before God many things are found lacking in us, many things are worthy of blame, although all things be perfect before men. For example's sake: although David can obtain that confidence before men, that he can be reprehended of no man, and the holy Prophets Esay, jeremy, &c: do glory & are sure, whatsoever they have done according to their duty, is right and well done, seeing it is the word and commandment of God, wherein they have exercised themselves with a pure heart & a good conscience, yet can they not stand by this confidence before the judgement of God, but are compelled to say: if we should strive with thee in judgement, than no man shall have so good a conscience or so pure a heart, which doth not dread thy judgement, and acknowledge himself to be worthy of reprehension and blame. For God hath reserved that prerogative unto himself, that he may contend in judgement with every one, albeit he be holy, and accuse him of deadly sin: neither is there any so holy, whom he may not judge and condemn as worthy of destruction. Wherefore although both the heart be pure & the conscience good before men, yet must thou endeavour to attain unto this also, that the same may be likewise good before God, that he may not find fault with them, but that they may be safe and quiet from his judgement, as they are before men. Hereunto now pertaineth the third part, that is faith. The third part. And this is the principal part and chief precept, containing all the rest in it, that we may know, that where love is not yet perfect, the heart not sufficiently pure, and the conscience not quiet, and God doth yet find some thing which is worthy blame, where the world can find fault with nothing, faith must moreover come, and such a faith, which is not feigned, and defiled with confidence of a man's own holiness. For wheresoever this is not, there the heart is never purified before God, neither shall the conscience be able to stand, if they be examined by severe judgement, and exact censure. Men in deed shall not justly blame me, albeit I glory, that I have served them by preaching, helping, governing, and by doing the duty of an overseer or ruler, &c: with all faithfulness. And if I have done any thing more or less than I ought, I am sorry at my heart, for I would very willingly have done all things that I ought. Wherefore I am quiet & already excused, neither have they any more, which they may rightly require of me, but are enforced to acquit and discharge me. But here I must attain unto this also, that my heart be so pure, and my conscience so good before God, that he may not by any means accuse and condemn me. Howbeit we find not this in ourselves, We can not of ourselves attain to a pure heart & a good conscience before God. although we may glory somewhat thereof before the world. I must therefore obtain some other thing whereunto I may trust, if I shall come into peril, and within the throwing of the dart, as it is commonly said, and I must say to my fearful and terrified conscience, I have done that which I have been able, and who knoweth how often I have done less than I ought? for I could not see and mark all things, as David also saith Psal. 19: Who can understand his faltes? Therefore I can lay no foundation of trust upon my own holiness and pureness. Well, I have the word, so live, love, and have a good conscience, which is pure and holy. But this I want, that I can not conclude, that that is in my heart, neither do I find so good a conscience in me, as the law requireth of me. For there is no man living in the earth, which can say this truly, I know that I have done all things, and that I do owe nothing before God. But the most holy ones must say thus: I have done surely according to my ability that which I have been able, but I have offended much oftener than I know. Wherefore our own conscience doth witness against us, accusing and convincing us, although before the world we are most free from reprehension or blame. For it must follow the word which saith: this thou shouldest have done, this thou shouldest have left undone. It can not avoid the judgement of this, nor answer to the accusation thereof, but is at the least wise enforced to stand in an uncertainty, being wholly wrapped in doubting. But if it doubt, then is it by and by convinced: for it standeth not before God, but flieth and trembleth. By what means we attain to such pureness and a good conscience as can stand before God. Wherefore the principal part of our doctrine must here help us, to wit, that our Lord jesus Christ being sent of the father, did come into the world and hath suffered and died for us. Whereby he hath reconciled the good will and favour of the father to us, his wrath being appeased, and doth now sit at the right hand of the father, having regard of us as our Saviour, and as a continual Mediator and Intercessor for us, making intercession for us, as for them which can not have and obtain of themselves such pureness and a good conscience. Therefore by his help and benefit we may say before God: although I am not pure, neither have a good conscience, yet I cleave to him by faith, which hath perfect pureness and a good conscience, which he gageth for me, or rather which he giveth unto me. For he alone is he, of whom we read written, as Peter, and isaiah chapt. 53 say: who did no sin, neither was there guile found in his mouth. And this praise belongeth only unto him, neither hath he any need to pray, forgive us our debts, neither of that article of the Creed, I believe the forgiveness of sins, &c: but he is free and quiet in perpetual, pure and perfect righteousness and pureness, unto whose charge none can lay any thing, nor accuse his conscience of any crime, not man, not the devil, no not God himself: for he himself is God, who himself can not accuse himself. And this is called faith neither coloured nor feigned, which, the conscience striving and trembling, dareth come forth in the sight of God, and say: Almighty God, I am innocent before the world and quiet in mind, so that no man can lay any thing to my charge, or find fault with me. For albeit I have not done all things, yet I ask pardon of every one, that he will forgive me for God his sake, even as I again forgive all. By this means I have cut of the complaints of all, who have no more which they may rightly lay against me. But before thee I must lay aside this trust and confidence, and must wholly acknowledge the guiltiness of innumerable sins, and say as David said Psal. 143: Lord enter not into judgement with thy servant: for in thy sight shall no man living be justified. Wherefore I can not contend with thee, if thou requirest an account of my life. We must appeal from the judgement seat to the mercy seat. But I appeal from the judgement seat to the mercy seat, I do easily suffer, that I be dealt with according to law & right before the judgement seat of the world, and I will willingly answer, and will do what I am able: Howbeit before thee I will not come into judgement, but I desire grace, which I take hold of on every side. The judgement seat. For thus the Scripture teacheth me, that God hath set two seats before men: the one a judgement seat, for them which are yet secure and untractable, & acknowledge not their sins, neither will confess and acknowledge them: the other a mercy seat, The mercy seat. for miserable & fearful consciences, which feel their sins, dread the judgement of God, and do earnestly make request for grace. And this mercy seat is Christ himself, as Paul witnesseth Rom. 3. whom God hath set forth unto us, that we might have refuge unto him, being not able to stand before God by our own power. Unto him I will apply myself, if I have done or do less than is meet: and how great pureness and goodness soever my heart and conscience have before men, I will have it here to be altogether nothing, and hidden, and covered as it were with a ●ant, yea with a fair heaven, which may mightily defend it, which is called grace and remission of sins. Under the defence thereof my heart and conscience must creep, and remain safe and quiet. For so he commanded his Apostles to preach & publish, that through his name all that believe in him, shall receive remisson of sins. Again, He that shall believe and be baptised, shallbe saved. And joh. 3. he saith: God so loved the world, that he hath given his only begotten Son, that who soever believeth in him, should not perish, but have everlasting life. Therefore God hath set forth the mercy seat unto us, whereunto he leadeth us from the judgement seat. Let us leave other before the judgement seat, namely those proud holy ones, contemners and persecutors of the word of God, where they shall hear sentence according to their deeds. We will suffer these to abide in their circle, until they have humbled themselves: but we will not abide in this circle, but will departed from it as far as we shallbe able, into the circle of the mercy feat, unto which we do appeal. Neither have we invented this of our own brain, but it is the word of God himself, which threateneth horrible judgement to them, which come with their own holiness, and trusting thereunto, do hope that they shallbe able to stand before God the judge, neglecting the mercy seat of Christ. For the sentence standeth, that they shallbe set before the judgement seat, as Christ saith joh. 3: He that believeth not is condemned already, because he hath not believed in the name of that only begotten Son of God. He that believeth in him is not condemned, that is, shall not come to the judgement seat, but to the mercy seat, where there is no wrath or rigour, but grace & forgiveness of sins, all things being remitted which be not pure, yea being blotted out and so consumed, as a drop of water is consumed of the heat of the sun. For where the mercy seat reigneth, there is nothing else, but mere forgiveness and remission of sins. This therefore being known, we must exactly understand the difference between the Law and the Gospel, whereof we often teach. The office of the Law. The law draweth us to the judgement seat, requiring of us integrity of life, love out of a pure heart & a good conscience, it maketh us also to exercise ourselves therein, and must go no further. But when it shall come and accuse thee, and will reason with thee, and have those things to be performed which it requireth, then shalt thou be greatly troubled. For albeit thou hast done them, yet art thou not able to stand before God, before whose judgement seat, many things are yet found wanting in thee, which should have been done of thee, and thou hast left them undone, neither are they known unto thyself. The Law will drive us unto desperation, unless we can appeal from the judgement seat to the mercy seat. Whither then wilt thou turn thee? Here the Law urgeth thee by all means, and thine own conscience being witness, accuseth thee, requiring the sentence of the judge against thee. Then must thou despair, there is no counsel or help to be had, except thou knowest to fly from the judgement seat to the mercy seat, as for example: Admit some Bishop die in his own holiness, who while he lived was as it seemed, of a good life, and acknowledged Christ no otherwise then a cruel judge (as it hath been hitherto preached of him, neither hath he been otherwise set forth, as he is also wont to be unto such, not of his own nature, for in deed he is most gracious and comfortable, but because they esteem him for no other in their heart) behold this man is a hindrance unto himself, that he can not obtain any grace. For he knoweth no difference of the judgement seat and the mercy seat, yea he is altogether ignorant, whether there be a mercy seat, from which he so erreth, and must be bound to the judgement seat. But we teach thus, How Christ must be learned and considered of. that Christ is so to be learned and considered, that we be most certainly persuaded that he sitteth before miserable and trembling consciences, that believe in him, not as an angry judge, which commandeth forthwith to carry violently them that be guilty unto punishment, but as a gentle, loving, and comfortable Mediator, between my fearful conscience and God, which saith unto me: If thou be a sinner, and astonished, and the devil laboureth to draw thee to the judgement seat, then see that thou fly unto me, and fear no wrath or anger. Wherefore? Even because I sit here, that, if thou believe in me, I may make intercession for thee to my father, that no anger and severity may hurt thee: for all anger and punishment shallbe sooner laid upon me, then be borne of thee. Howbeit that can not be: for he is the only beloved son, in whom all grace and favour dwelleth, whom as often as the father doth behold, he can not but replenish both heaven and earth with grace and favour, and forget all wrath and displeasure. And what soever he shall ask of his father, that he shall forthwith obtain with out all repulse or denial. So by faith we are made wholly blessed and safe, subject no more to any damnation, yet not for our own holiness and pureness, but for Christ's sake, to whom we cleave by faith as to our mercy seat, being assuredly persuaded, that with him there remaineth no anger, but mere love, and pardon and forgiveness of sins. Thus the heart is purified before God, and the conscience made good and quiet, not in respect had of mine own pureness of life led before the world, but by trust and confidence of that excellent treasure, which my heart apprehendeth, which is unto me in steed of a pledge and fullness, when as before God I am not able to pay. We must especially take heed, that our faith be not false or feigned. But herein the whole force of the matter consisteth, that we do again and again take heed, that our faith be not false, or as Paul speaketh, feigned. For if this err, and deceive us, all things deceive us. For there have been many in all ages, as there be also at this day, which can speak many things of faith, and willbe masters not only of the law, but even of the Gospel also. Who say the same that we do, that faith performeth & doth all things, but that the Law and good works are also to be joined unto it, and that otherwise, if these be not added, faith availeth nothing. In which words they mix & mingle together our life & works, and Christ. But this is not purely and sincerely to have taught faith, but to have coloured, defiled and corrupted faith, so that it can no more be called faith, but a feigned colour & counterfecting of faith, the trust and confidence of the heart standing not purely toward Christ, as the only mercy seat, but being grounded upon our one holiness, as being able to stand before the judgement seat. Wherefore doing thus, we are most rightly cast of before God, and condemned unto destruction whereof we are most worthy. For if faith must be pure and void of all counterfecting and feigning, than these two things, Christ and my works must be rightly discerned and severed one from the other. For this is plain even to him that is blind, that Christ and his works are not my life and my works, but are separated from the Law and from the works of all men, yea and that by a greater distance, than man is unlike or differeth from man. For neither can I say, that I and Cesar or the Bishop of Rome are the same thing, yet I am much nearer and liker unto either of them, than a mortal man and a sinner is unto Christ the Lord, who is not only a pure and holy man, free from all spot and blot, but is moreover God also. Therefore let the Law and the pureness of thy heart, yea and thy good conscience avail in earth only toward men: But where the mercy seat is, to wit at the right hand of the father, and the Mediator between thee & God, thither no man's works & merits ought to have access, much less be they there of any force or value. Wherefore Christ is purely to be separated from all my life, deeds and works, and we must without exception conclude, that he is an other thing than our life led before men with a pure heart and a good conscience, albeit it be led even perfectly and without blame. For it being presented before God, and by the law brought to the judgement seat, I am condemned and lost. But Christ is the mercy seat, and all that cleave unto him by faith, can not be condemned and judged. So the judgement seat together with the law and all my life go into one part: but my faith must fly and leap far unto an other part, and join itself unto him which is pure, and hath no sin, of whom the Scripture speaketh: he that believeth in him shall not be confounded. Because he is present in the sight of the father, and maketh intercession for me. Moreover he giveth me his own pureness and holiness, that being clothed and adorned therewith, I may be able to stand before God, and all wrath and displeasure may be taken away, in steed whereof I may enjoy mere love and favour. Lo, thus faith remaineth pure and free from counterfecting, for it resteth not upon my works, that because of them it should behove God to be gentle and favourable unto me, as a false and feigned faith doth, which mingleth together man's merits and the grace of God, and although it hold the words of Christ, yet hath it the confidence and trust of the heart reposed in itself, so, A feigned faith is no sure foundation, but faileth them that trust unto it. that it is certain, that it is only a colour which can not long continue. For the matter cometh at the last to this point, that believing that God is favourable unto thee because of thy life led without fault or blame, thou must despair and say: who knoweth what I have done? whereby am I certain that I have neglected nothing through carelessness, or that nothing is wanting in me? In this doubtfulness of mind the foundation faileth, slideing away under thee like unto sand moved or stirred, and so faith is of no force or value at all. Wherefore it is not unfitly called feigned and painted faith, through which one seeth as it were through a lattice or painted glass, through which the thing that is seen representeth the colour of the glass, and yet is not in deed of that colour. So they also believe that that affection is in God, that he vouchsafeth to regard our works and merits. Which they paint forth according to their own opinion and dreams, which are utterly false, rash and unadvised. And so judging God & all things according to them, they see only as it were through a lattice or painted glass. But so only thou shalt behold him with pure and clear eyes, if thou do well separate the judgement seat and the mercy seat one from the other, that heaven with the stars thereof may remain pure to grace & remission of sins obtained by the Mediator, where Christ reigneth with his works, and the earth also with her trees and herbs, whither we must be referred with our works. The matter I say must be brought of us to that pass, if we will stand with a right and an unfeigned faith before God, that we do purely distinguish and sever ourselves, our life, and Christ or the mercy seat: and he that will not do this, but presenteth himself before the judgement seat with a bold courage, shall feel the reward of his rashness. I myself have been in that danger, and as it were a mouse having tasted pitch have run away, rejoicing greatly that liberty was given me to attain to the mercy seat, and now I am enforced to say, that albeit I have lived very well before men, yet all things committed of me contrariwise, do remain beneath under the judgement seat, to be punished according to the sentence and judgement of God. Only Christ is our comfort and means whereby we attain salvation. Now I have no other comfort, nor no other help and counsel of my salvation, then that Christ is my mercy seat, who hath never offended, hath defiled himself with no sin, who died and rose again for me, and sitteth now at the right hand of the father, & defendeth me under his shadow and protection, that I need not doubt, that I am by his benefit and intercession safe before God from all wrath and terror of judgement. Thus faith remaineth in all things pure, setting no other thing before itself, whereunto it may boldly trust, but Christ alone. Now he that knew this well, should be a man of a resolute mind. For all other have to do with a feigned faith, boasting many things of faith, but mingling all things together, like as vintners mix wine with water, by this that they say, if thou live thus, God willbe favourable unto thee, and they make the judgement seat of the mercy seat, and the mercy seat of the judgement seat, which by no means can be, for the judgement seat shall remain, etc. Wherefore separate these two one from the other as far as thou shalt be able, that they come not together, namely, thy life and holiness together with the judgement seat into one place, which may drive & enforce thee to have a good conscience, and to lead an upright life before men. But offer thy sins to the mercy seat to be transferred into an other place, where God lovingly receiving thee, will embrace thee as a beloved son, and will never remember more any wrath or sins. If such doctrine of faith were set forth unto men, than should it be excellently well done, and all other things should follow of their own accord, as pureness of heart and goodness of conscience, through right and perfect love. For who soever is by faith quiet in his heart, and assured that he hath God favourable unto him, who is not angry with him, albeit he hath deserved his wrath divers ways, he doth all things with a glad and cheerful mind. Moreover he liveth so also toward men, that he is loving and beneficial toward all, although they be not worthy of love. He is quiet toward God through Christ the Mediator, who will not throw him down headlong into hell, but doth lovingly favour him, and lifteth him up into heaven. And this is the chief quietness, and principal point and foundation of our salvation. Afterwards he doth in his life show himself dutiful also toward his neighbour, doing all the best things he is able unto him, what soever his state or duty commandeth or requireth. And when he doth less than is meet, he asketh pardon of his negligence before God and men, so that there is left occasion neither to him, nor to the world afterward to rebuke him, power also to devour him is taken from hell, & to tear him in pieces, from the devil. Thus a man is said to be in all things perfect, How we become perfect. toward men by love, and toward God not by the law, but by Christ, whom he apprehendeth by his faith, as the mercy seat: Which gageth his holiness for the believers, or rather giveth it to them, so, that in him they have all things that are necessary to salvation. Now this is right and pure doctrine, which should be exercised, and taught unto men distinctly, that they might know how they may be able to stand both before God and men, that faith and love be not mingled together, or life referred both to God and men. This aught to have been performed of those glorious and arrogant teachers, seeing that they willbe counted masters of the law, that the difference of the law and faith might be well known unto all. Very hard to learn the true doctrine of faith. For although it be taught and repeated with never so great diligence, yet notwithstanding it is very hard to be well and thoroughly learned, especially to us which have been instructed and trained up in the doctrine of works, and led only to the law and our own works. To these may be added our nature also, very prone and ready by itself hereunto, and now brought into a custom, whereby it is confirmed, and in continuance of time turneth the heart also into exercise and use, so, that we can not abstain, nor think otherwise, but, that God willbe favourable unto us, which have done so great works, and have led our life so without blame or fault. Therefore we must strive against both our nature & custom. For surely it is a very hard thing to think or be persuaded otherwise, and so purely to put a difference between faith and love, the filth still hanging upon us and cleaving unto us, albeit we be now in faith, so that our heart can scarce rule itself, that it say not: so long time have I taught the Gospel, so have I lived, such great works have I done, etc. And we would very willingly have God to regard our life, and turn his mercy seat for our cause into a judgement seat. Thou mayst use this boasting toward men, I have done well to all as I have been able, and if any thing be wanting, I as yet will endeavour to make a recompense. But if thou be minded to go unto God, I advise thee to cease from such arrogant boasting, and think to appeal from judgement to grace. Let who will begin and prove this thing, he shall at length see and try, A hard thing to trust nothing to our own works and holiness. how grievous and heard it is, for a man that hath been occupied all his life time in the works of his own holiness, to escape out, and with all his heart by faith to cleave to this one Mediator. I myself have now preached the Gospel almost twenty years, and have been exercised in the same daily by reading & writing, so that I may well seem to be rid of this wicked opinion. Notwithstanding I yet now and then feel the same old filth to cleave to my heart, whereby it cometh to pass that I would willingly so have to do with God, that I might bring some thing with myself, because of which he should for my holiness sake give me his grace. And I can scarce be brought to commit myself with all confidence to mere grace, which I should do: for we ought to fly only to the mercy seat, forasmuch as God hath set it before us for a sanctuary, which must be the refuge of all them that shallbe saved. Wherefore it is not to be marveled at, if it be grievous unto others, so purely to apprehend and lay hold of faith: but especially to such as be yet hindered and entangled of devilish preachers, of whom Paul speaketh, which cry out against the doctrine of faith, and in these words urge the works of the Law, Do this and thou shalt live: Also, if thou wilt enter into life, keep the commandments, etc. Which in deed are true and right, if thou didst also rightly understand them. Declare unto me the true meaning of these words, otherwise I know sufficiently already, that I ought to be righteous and keep the commandments. But how must I attain hereunto? or what is it to be righteous? If thou sayest that it is, to have a good conscience and a pure heart, and to do all things, that God hath commanded: Well, be it so, but hear ye then, go to, perform me that, or at least show one, that dareth say that he hath performed it. For thou shalt not yet so purify my heart and conscience with thy doctrine, that God can not accuse and condemn me. But now the Law (as it hath been sufficiently declared) requireth such a heart, as hath a good conscience before God. How therefore do we obtain such a conscience? This is the question and the cause, whereof the controversy is. Truly it cometh not hereof, How we obtain a good conscience. because thou teachest the judgement seat, that is, the Law, but from hence, for that we have a pure and unfeigned faith, which layeth hold of Christ, in whom it most fully obtaineth all things which the Law requireth. So at length all things are brought to pass in me having a good conscience, inasmuch as I am now made righteous and justified before God. For although that many things be as yet found wanting in me, yet he standeth on my side, who hath so much righteousness, as wherewith he is able to supply both mine and all men's defects. Thus we show the way whereby we are made righteous before God, when as they, when they teach best of all, Teachers & urgers of the Law. show only the way to attain to honesty and righteousness which is of force and value before men, contending that it ought to be of force before God also, mingling together all things in one, inasmuch as they have no certain knowledge thereof, understanding not what they say or what they affirm. For, to what end tendeth this thy immoderate cry? He that will enter into life, let him keep the commandments, etc. in which words thou shalt not show the way to attain righteousness: for descend a little into thyself, and examine thyself diligently, then shalt thou find thyself to have been in time past conceived and borne in sins, and to live in the same now, and not to be able to perform that which the law requireth. Why therefore dost thou seduce other with vain words, saying? be thou righteous and thou shalt be saved, which is to no purpose, neither followeth there any fruit thereof, the way being not showed by which we attain to justification? I hear the words well, what things the law requireth, but how shall we attain unto ability to fulfil them? Then speakest thou to me again and sayest, thou must do good works. But how shall I stand before the judgement of God, if I have long and much wrought good works, and am righteous before men, as thou teachest me? how shall I be certain, that I seem such a one to God also? For here my heart and conscience be ready to witness the contrary against me. True doctrine concerning Christian righteousness Howbeit I should have been thus taught of thee, as Paul commonly teacheth, that righteousness must proceed from faith unfeigned, and before all things the mercy seat must be laid hold of, from whence all things that are wanting in us are to be taken. And so in deed these words, keep the commandments of God, are rightly understood. For the law, requireth perfect righteousness in thee, being of force as well before God as before men: thou having obtained this, go forth into the company and assembly of men, and exercise love, and do good works. By this order and means something is brought to pass, and such sayings of the Scripture are fulfilled. For so man doth that which the law requireth, first before God, not by his own strength or virtues, How a Christian is perfectly righteous. but by Christ, without whom we can do nothing before God, and secondly by his own endeavour before men. And he is now perfectly righteous, inwardly by faith in Christ, and outwardly also by his works, yet so, that there is place among men for mutual pardoning of offences. Therefore the righteousness of Christians doth much more consist in forgiving, then in their own works. Those vain praters do pervert the order of this doctrine, and without preaching of forgiveness, do teach that works only are to be urged. Lo, thus Saint Paul reprehendeth the error and ignorance of them, which speak much of the law, and repeat it in daily sermons, Vain teachers. and yet they themselves do not understand or show the way, how the law must be fulfilled, knowing nothing so well as to babble forth and often to repeat these words, that the law, the commandments are to be kept, if thou wilt be saved, good works must be done, etc. As they do at this day fill all books with such confusion of words, and in all their sermons utter nothing else, than such vain babbling, which they themselves understand not. But they never say word of those things whereof Paul here speaketh, namely of the sum of Christian doctrine, how love must flow out of a pure heart, a good conscience, and faith unfeigned, they say no more, but keep the commandments. They levelling at the true mark do never hit it: therefore they corrupt and fulsifie all things, love, the heart, the conscience etc. For the head of the fountain is wanting, that is, sincere faith, which if it be not right and sound, all things must needs be corrupt, which shall flow and proceed from it. And what soever they teach, it is a conceit of their own imagination, and like to delusions, not unlike also to those things, that are seen through a lattice or glass, which resemble the colour of the clear glass, and yet in deed are not of that colour. They think that God will regard them, when they live so before men, as it seemeth good to their obscure opinion. But if God were of that opinion, he might then have well kept still Christ and the Gospel. For what need or necessity should move him, to send Christ from heaven, who should purchase that unto us with his precious blood, which we ourselves have before with us? He surely should be the foolishest of all men, which would pour forth a precious treasure, which no man needeth. Thus thou seest how these men teach their own dreams, whereof they themselves know or have tried no certainty, neither do any thing else but fill men with errors, being not able to declare, how that which they teach is to be attained unto. They draw men unto works, whereby they confirm them in their old nature and custom, out of which they were to be drawn. These truly are grievous and odious men, and not unworthily very sharply accused and reprehended of Paul: and it appeareth that they were of no small authority and estimation, seeing that he pronounceth of them, that they were called and would be counted doctors of the Law, and far greater and worthier than the Apostles themselves. Wherefore we must endeavour to lay up and print this text even in the bottom of our heart: for it is excellently well ordered, and is pure and perfect doctrine, teaching how we must be righteous before God and men, as the Law requireth, that these three may be as it were conjoin in us, namely, a pure heart, a good conscience, and faith unfeigned: and that our life may flow out of all these, and be occupied and led in them: then have we attained, and fulfilled the meaning of the Law. Howbeit we must most diligently take heed, and endeavour to draw Christ unto the Law, who is the end and fullfilling of the Law, and our righteousness and fullness before God, which we find not in ourselves, and without faith shall never find, albeit the Law be taught and often repeated without understanding and knowledge. And these things may suffice to have been spoken at this present for the exposition of this place. ⸪⸪⸪ ⸪ A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER, OF THE QUESTION OF THE PHARISEES, AND answer of Christ concerning giving tribute to Cesar. Matth. 22. Verse 15. THen went the Pharisees, & took counsel how they might tangle him in talk. 16. And they sent unto him their disciples with the Herodians, saying: Master, we know that thou art true, and teachest the way of God truly, neither carest for any man: for thou considerest not the person of men. 17. Tell us therefore, how thinkest thou? Is it lawful to give tribute unto Cesar or not? 18. But jesus perceived their wickedness and said: Why tempt ye me, ye hypocrites? 19 Show me the tribute money. And they brought him a penny. 20. And he said unto them: Whose is this image and superscription? 21. They said unto him, Caesar's, Then said he unto them: Give therefore to Cesar the things which are Caesar's, and give unto God, those things which are Gods. 22. And when they heard it, they marveled, and left him, and went their way. Man's wisdom & reason is not able to prevail against the wisdom of God. IN this text is set forth unto us, how subtle reason and man's wisdom agree with the wisdom of God, and how foully reason stumbleth, when it striveth to be even most subtle and wise, as it here falleth out with the Pharisees, who notwithstanding were the best and most wise of the jews, which even by this their subtlety they declare: nevertheless their wisdom is here proved to be foolishness. They could blame Christ neither for his preaching nor for his works, and yet would they willingly have had occasion to put him to death, wherefore they thought to set upon him most craftily and wilily, propounding a subtle question unto him, the subtlety whereof was such, that man's reason was not able to comprehend it, than which also a subtler could not be invented: and thus they speak unto him: The subtle question of the Pharisees propounded unto Christ. Master, we know that thou art true, and teachest the way of God truly, neither carest for any man: for thou considerest not the person of men. Tell us therefore, how thinkest thou? Is it lawful to give tribute unto Cesar or not. Here think they, we shall entrap him. For he shallbe compelled to answer that tribute is either to be given, or not to be given. If he affirm that it is to be given, we have overcome him: but if he deny that it is to be given, then is he guilty of death. Whereas they say, Master, they will thereby move him, and as it were constrain him to answer the truth. But whereas they say, We know that thou art true, they do thereby put him in mind of his duty. Whither therefore should Christ turn himself? for there seemeth to be no way for him to escape, yet he would not for all that fall into their net. Was not this a subtle question? Do they not show themselves to have been sufficient crafty and wily ones? for which way soever the Lord had answered, he had been taken. Was not this done also full warily and circumspectly? for they associate to themselves the ministers of Herode, thinking no other but to entrap him with deceit, that he should not by any means escape, thus casting in their minds: Now we will meet with him well enough, if he deny that tribute is to be given, the Herodians are present, which shall forth with put him to death as a seditious fellow, and one that resisteth the Roman Empire. But if he affirm that tribute is to be given, he speaketh against the liberty of the jews, then will we stir up the people against him. For the jewish people would be free, and have their king of their own stock, even as it was promised them both of Moses and God, that their kingdom should continue until the time of the true king, that is, of Christ. Even as the Patriarch did prophecy thereof: Gen. 49 10. The sceptre shall not departed from juda and a law giver from between his feet, until Silo come. And therefore God did choose this people specially to himself, and made a kingdom of them, only for Christ's cause. Moreover there were many sentences in the Scripture which declared that they should serve none, For they should be the chiefest and not the lowest, etc. Deut. 28.13. This and such like sayings the Scribes had beaten into the people's heads, wherewith they were greatly disturbed: even as at this day it is put into the people's mind, that the Church cannot err. Hereupon the Pharisees thought thus: If he affirm that tribute must be given, he blasphemeth G●d, he shallbe guilty of death, as one injurious to God, and then shallbe stoned of the people. For God hath granted and promised liberty unto this people, and they were all even in the midst of captivity the people of God. Howbeit at that time they wanted a king, as they do at this day. Wherefore divers tumults, seditions, & uproars were stirred up among them. For they were taught by the law, that they should have a king of their own flesh and stock, as it is said before, wherefore they did uncessantly strive against strange kings and governments, until not a few of them at times were beaten & slain. Neither did this happen seldom times, for they were a stiff-necked, obstinate, and unruly nation, & therefore the Romans which at that time did bear rule over them, did very circumspectly govern them, and divided the land into four charges of government, that being on every side kept in awe by the governors and precedents, they might not so soon flock together and move sedition, and that they might also be more easily resisted if at any time they should rise against the Roman Empire. Wherefore Pilate was appointed of the Romans lieutenant of judea, Herode Tetrarch of Galilee, his brother Philip Tetrarch of Iturea, and of the country of Trachonitis, and Lysanias the Tetrarch of Abilene, as Luke rehearseth them. And all this was done that they might keep the jews under, whereupon the jews were inflamed with anger, and in a rage and fury, but specially in the time of Christ they would willingly have had a king. The subtle imaginations of the Pharisees against Christ. Wherefore the Pharisees having found out this devise, thought thus with themselves: Well, we have the matter now at a good stay. The Romans challenge to themselves the government, now if he answer unto the question that tribute is not to be given, the lieutenant is at hand and ready to put him to death: if he answer that it must be given, he shall stir up the people against himself, and so we shall assuredly by this means entrap him: thus they supposed that either they should find cause of death in the Lord, or at the least make his doctrine to be nothing set by of the people. As the jews here do, so also do we, the chief and necessary things being left, we are occupied about other matters not necessary. The Pharisees here move a question, whether they be free or otherwise: forasmuch as they had the Law and the word of God, they supposed that they ought to be subject to none, but to their own King, yet they were now compelled to obey Cesar Emperor of Rome. They had Scripture concerning the love of God and their neighbour, but that being left, they are occupied about other matters. It was promised unto them, if they obeyed the precepts and commandments of God, that they should then be a free people, they disobey and neglect God's commandments, and yet notwithstanding they will be free, and have their own king. In like manner falleth it out with us, we earnestly challenge to ourselves Christian liberty, and yet we think, that if we do those things that seem good in our own brain and fantasy, we are thereby Christians, both faith and charity being of us neglected. But what doth Christ, the Pharisees so subtly setting upon him? he striketh them with their own sword, and entrappeth them in their own devise, whereby they thought to have entrapped him, answering neither of those things which they hoped he would, as the Evangelist doth more at large describe, saying: But jesus perceived their wickedness & said: Why tempt ye me, The wisdom of Christ in confounding the craft and subtlety of the Pharisees ye hypocrites? Show me the tribute money. And they brought him a penny. And he said unto them: Whose is this image & superscription? They said unto him, Caesar's. Here thou plainly seest the wisdom & marvelous dexterity of Christ, he willeth the tribute money to be showed unto him, and asketh of the image and superscription thereof. They answering that it is Caesar's, he very well and most freely inferreth, that they are under Cesar, unto whom they were compelled to pay tribute. As if he said: If ye have so let in Cesar, that his money is coined with you, surely he beareth rule over you, as though he should say: It is come to pass through your own fault that Cesar ruleth over you. What should they say or do unto this question? They marveled and went their ways, they thought that they should notably have overcome him, but for all their subtlety and wisdom they were deceived. This is written for our comfort, The wisdom & strength of Christians that we which are Christians may know that we have such wisdom, as exceedeth all wisdom, such strength and righteousness, as whereunto no strength & righteousness of man is like. For against the holy Ghost there is no counsel: this power and strength we obtain through Christ, that we may tread sin under foot, and triumph over death. When Christ dwelleth in us by faith, we have him which bringeth to pass such things, howbeit they are not thoroughly felt but in time of tentation. Wherefore when I stand in need, he is present, and giveth unto me strength, that I may courageously pass through. We must not therefore be afraid that our doctrine shall perish and be put to ignominy and shame. For let all the wise men of the world rise against the word of God, yea and be never so circumspect, and set themselves against it, yet shall they have the foil and be overcome. It may be that they bark and bite, so that it seemeth unto men, as though they would destroy the Gospel, but when they have set themselves against it to extinguish it, they shall no whit prevail, but in the snare that they have laid for others, they themselves shall at length be taken. As we see here in this text, and commonly in Paul, but specially in the history of S. Steven, where we read how vainly his adversaries used the Scriptures, yea those that they used were against themselves. For the jews did accuse Steven, that he had spoken both against the temple, and against God which commanded the temple to be builded, bringing & alleging Scriptures, whereby they thought to convince and condemn him. But Steven being full of the holy Ghost, showed them in order out of the Scripture, how that God dwelleth not in temples made with hands: David would have built him an house, but God refused it. What was the cause hereof? A long time before David was borne, God dwelled among his people. He surely should be a miserable God which should need a house. And so he confirmeth by many histories that God doth not dwell in houses or temples made with hands. What should the jews do here? they did manifestly acknowledge their own Scripture, which they had brought against Steven. So all they shall be put to shame and overthrown, which set themselves against the wisdom & word of God. The wisdom & power of the world shall never be able to extinguish or suppress the Gospel. Wherefore let no man be afraid, albeit all the wisdom and power of the world strive against the Gospel, although it would extinguish it even by shedding of blood. For the more blood that is shed, so much more is the number of Christians increased. The blood of Christians saith Tertullian, is seed whereof Christians grow. Satan must be drowned in the blood of Christians. Wherefore it is not violence and force that is able to suppress the Gospel: for it is like unto a palm tree, which hath this nature and quality, that albeit a weight be laid upon it, yet it always riseth and lifteth up itself against the weight. Such a nature also hath the Gospel, for the more it is striven against, so much more are the roots thereof spread abroad, and the more mightily that it is oppressed, by so much doth it more and more grow and increase. Wherefore there is no cause that we should be afraid of power, Not persecution and trouble, but too much prosperity is to be feared of Christians but rather that we should fear prosperity & merry days, which are able to hurt us more than anguish & persecution. Neither let us be afraid of the subtlety and wisdom of the world, for they can not hurt us, yea the more that they strive against the truth, so much more pure & clear is the truth made. Nothing therefore can come better to the Gospel, then when the world with his force and wisdom setteth itself against it. The more vehemently sin and Satan do fight against my conscience, so much stronger is my righteousness made. For if sins do urge and disquiet me, I do then more ardently pray and cry unto God, and so my faith is more and more increased and strengthened. 2. Cor. 12.9. This is that which S. Paul meaneth when he saith: Power is made perfect through weakness. Forasmuch therefore as we have so great a treasure, which is increased and strengthened by persecutions and adversity, there is no cause that we should be afraid, but rather that we should with a cheerful mind rejoice in tribulation, as S. Paul saith Rom. 5. according as the Apostles did, who with great joy departing from the councils, Act. 5.41. gave God thanks, that they were counted worthy to suffer rebuke for the name of jesus. If the devil were endued with such wisdom, that he would be quiet, and suffer the Gospel to have free course, he should not suffer so much loss. For when the Gospel is not impugned, it is as it were wasted with rust, neither hath it occasion to show forth the virtue and power thereof. We live therefore here secure as yet, for no man striveth against us, wherefore we continue still as we were before, yea (alas) we become worse and worse. Whereas some of our adversaries have set upon us by writing, that pertaineth to a few. For inasmuch as they have written against us, they have thereby done nothing else, but as it were blown the fire, but if we had been thrown into the fire, or slain with the sword, the number of Christians would be greater among us. Wherefore this is a comfort unto us, The comfort of Christians in tentation. if we at any time be tempted, that Christ is ready to help us, & reigneth among us, yea he is so near unto us, that always through him we may overcome, as long as we believe and trust in him: Howbeit when we are touched with no adversity, he doth little or nothing, but when we are fought against and oppressed, he is present, and bringeth all our enemies to confusion. We have moreover to learn here that they which are wise & mightier than other, The most wise & mighty of the world do oftentimes strive most against God. which are endued with the chief gifts of understanding and nature more than other, which excel in greater industry, learning and readier capacity than other, which are fit to oversee other, and can govern all things best, that they I say, do many times most of all other resist God and faith, & trust more to their own strength and reason then to God. For they are carried so far by their venomous nature, that they neither can nor will use those things to the commodity and profit of their neighbour: but trusting to their own gifts and ability, they hope that now they shall obtain this, now that, neither do they think that they shall have need of Gods help also thereunto: As it appeareth here in the Pharisees and Scribes, who were certain, as they supposed, that if they so set upon the Lord, it could not be, but that they should then entangle him. For it is unpossible, thought they, that he should here escape us, we shall here hold him as it were fallen into a net, whether he affirm or deny that tribute must be given. Mark moreover how subtle and perverse that wit of man's nature is, The nature of man until he be regenerate by the spirit of God is wholly corrupt and unpure. which is here very lively set forth. There is nothing else in man but wickedness, delusion, guile, deceits, lying, fraud, and all kind of evil, yea of nature man is but lies and vanity as the 116 Psalm saith. We must not trust any man in any thing, do not persuade thyself, that any man speaketh the truth unto thee, for whatsoever man speaketh it is a lie. Why so? The fountain or springe head, that is, the heart is not sincere, wherefore neither can the rivers be pure. And for this cause the Lord doth commonly call men the generation of vipers and brood of serpents. Is not this a goodly title of man? Let any man now go, and glory of his own righteousness, strength or free will. Before the world in deed some man may be, and gloriously appear goodly, righteous, and holy, but there is nothing else, but a generation of vipers and brood of serpents, and that especially in those that seem most excellent, most precious, most wise, & of greatest understanding. If thou go through even all the histories of the Greeks, jews, & Romans, thou shalt find the best and wisest Princes of all, which have governed the affairs of their Empire prosperously, thou shalt find them I say to have thought nothing of God, but only trusting to themselves, to have acknowledged nothing as received from God. Hereupon it is gathered, that the less a man excelleth in wisdom before the world, so much less doth he commit against God. For they that excel in counsel and authority before the sight of the world, do for the most part deceive and lie more than others. thinking, that if they dealt by delusions and deceit, their fraud & iniquity is not perceived: for they can after a pretty sort cloak their craft and subtlety. But the holy Ghost hath a most clear & bright sight, which they can not avoid, but they shall be espied. The Scripture doth often times call such, lions, wolves, bears, swine, and cruel beasts, inasmuch as they rage, and devour and consume all things with their fraud and deceit. Wherefore in the old Testament the jews were forbidden to eat of certain beasts, as of those already rehearsed, and of others, for this one cause especially, that it should be a type and example to us, whereby we might perceive, that there are some men, which are strong, mighty, rich, witty, learned, skilful, and wise, which are to be avoided and eschewed as a certain unclean thing, and as such as seduce and deceive others with their fair show, might, and wisdom. For neither shall they be counted for such, neither will any man think them to be such, as do so much as think any evil in their heart, much less do it. Wherefore thou must put no trust & confidence in any man, trust not unto him, for he will deceive thee wherein soever he is able. Again if thou trustest man, thou art against God, in whom thou puttest not thy trust. It is written in the 17 chapter of jeremy: Cursed be the man that putteth his trust in man, and, Blessed is the man that putteth his trust in the Lord. Some man may now say: How shall we do then? An objection One man must have dealing with an other, otherwise how can the life of man continue? We must buy, we must sell, we must utter and change our wares with men: Now if one should not trust an other, the whole trade of man's affairs should be in peril, yea and perish. I say that no man can deny, The answer but that there must be mutual dealings among men, and that one doth need the help and travel of an other. But this I will have, that whatsoever dealing thou hast with men, either in buying or selling, thou count it for a thing uncertain, which thou must neither trust, nor build upon it. For this is certain, as soon as thou shalt trust to man he will seek to deceive thee, forasmuch as the nature of man, as it is of itself, can do nothing but lie and deceive. Yea all things in man are uncertain, both his works and words, there is nothing in him, but lightness and unconstancy, We must put all our hope and trust in God only. which thou mayst boldly believe to be true. Wherefore all our hope and confidence must be reposed in God alone, and after this sort we must say: Lord, give thou me grace that I may direct & order my life, my soul, my body, my substance and goods, and whatsoever is mine, according to thy divine will, for I believe in thee, I trust in thee, do not thou forsake me in so perilous dealing with this or that man: I put no trust in man. If thou knowest that it is good for me, make him to deal faithfully with me: if thou knowest that it will be to my hindrance and hurt, help me to avoid it, for thy will only pleaseth me, which I wish always to be done. As soon as thou thinkest in thy mind: He is a good man, and one that will keep his promise, I am sure that he will not deceive me, but will deal faithfully, even then hast thou fallen from God, and worshipped an idol, putting thy trust in a liar. Wherefore when thou hast any dealing with man, think boldly: If he deal faithfully, it is well, if he do otherwise, in the name of God, let him go, I will commit all things to the will of God, he shall prosperously bring them to pass. Of such a false and ungodly confidence reposed in men, How the worshipping of Saints crept in among Christians. that evil crept in among Christians, namely the worshipping of Saints, whereby the Christian Church, that is, the true congregation of the faithful, hath suffered exceeding great hurt and incomparable ruin. For what other was the service and worshipping of Saints but a devilish thing? When as men used to reason after this sort: This man was very holy, that which he taught, he did, whom we will follow, and do the like. Jerome, Augustine, Gregory said this, therefore is it true, & therefore will I believe it. Francis, Benedict, Dominicke, Bartholomewe lived thus, they did this and that, I will imitate their life and works. Moreover Augustine was saved by this rule, wherefore I also shall be saved by it. Fie, how unstable and miserable a thing is this, they are only lies and dreams of men, there is not in one word mention made here of Christ and his word, but they are only the vain inventions and trifles of men. I would utterly break the rule of Augustine, if he therefore ordained it, thinking to be saved thereby. So blind and without understanding is reason, that it receiveth the dotages & vain inventions of men, when as notwithstanding the word of God only is to be received in matters of salvation, as if Herod, Pilate, Caiphas, & Hannas should preach the Gospel, I ought to receive it. Again, if those that are counted holy, should rise and preach lies, also rules, habits, shavings, ceremonies, and such like vain inventions of men, I ought in no wise to receive them, for we must here have respect, not to the persons, but to that which they preach. Dost thou presume to be wiser than all the fathers & saints, than all the Bishops and Princes of the whole world? Thus may some man object against me. far be that from me. For I do not contend to be wiser than they. But this without controversy is thus, that whatsoever is wise, great, liberal, mighty & strong before the world, doth seldom or never agree with the word of God. For so it falleth out, that they that are such do for the most part persecute the Gospel, and if they were not so great, the Gospel should not so greatly shine forth and triumph. The Roman Emperors Hadrian, trajan, Diocletian were the most wise Caesar's of all, whose government was so liked of, that it was praised of the whole world, yet they persecuted the Gospel, and could not abide the truth. The same we find written of the Kings of the jews, as of Achas and others, which governed their kingdom very well, yet despised the word of God and disobeyed his commandments. We in our time had never such Emperors or Princes, as are comparable to them. But it ought to be verified in these, that God would by foolish preaching confound the wisdom of this world, as Paul saith 1. Cor. 1. All these things are showed unto us in this text which we have in hand, which hath a simple and a slender show and appearance of itself, but yet containeth many things in it most worthy the noting. Now how the Lord concluded with the Pharisees, when they had showed him the tribute money, and had answered that it was Caesar's image and superscription, the Evangelist declareth, saying: Give therefore to Cesar the things which are Caesar's, and give unto God those things which are Gods. Although they had deserved no such thing of the Lord, The sword and office of the Magistrate confirmed by Christ. nevertheless he teacheth them the right way. And in these words he confirmeth the sword and office of the Magistrate: they hoped that he would condemn & resist him, but he doth nothing less, for he commendeth and praiseth him, commanding that they give unto him those things that are his. Whereby he plainly will have, that there be Magistrates, Princes, and Rulers, under whose government we must live. Neither must we care whether they use and exercise their rule and authority well or ill, we must have regard only to their power and office, for their power & authority is good inasmuch as it is ordained & instituted of God. Neither is there any cause why thou shouldest find fault with power, if at any time thou be oppressed by Princes and tyrants: for whereas they abuse the power given unto them of God, they shall surely be compelled to give an account thereof. The abuse of a thing doth not make that thing evil, which is in itself good. A chain of gold is good, A similitude. neither is it therefore made worse, for that a harlot weareth it about her neck, or if one should put out mine eye with it, should I find fault in the chain therefore? In like manner the power of the Prince must be borne, for if he abuse his office, he is not to be counted of me as no Prince, neither belongeth it unto me to revenge or punish it in him. I must obey him for God his cause only, for he representeth the place of God. How grievous things soever therefore Magistrates shall exact, I must for God his cause bear them all, and obey them, so far as they be not contrary to God's commandments. If they do justly or unjustly, it shall in due time appear. Wherefore if thy substance, life and body, and whatsoever thou hast should be taken from thee by the Magistrates, thou mayst say thus: I willingly yield them unto you, and acknowledge you for Rulers over me, I will obey you, but whether ye use your power and authority well or ill, see you to that. Moreover whereas Christ saith: Give unto Cesar the things that are Caesar's, and unto God those things that are Gods. We must understand that unto God pertaineth honour, What things must be given unto God, & what unto Cesar. we must acknowledge him for the living, omnipotent, and wise God, and ascribe unto him what good thing soever can be named. And albeit we do not give him this honour, he notwithstanding easily keepeth it, for nothing is either added to, or taken from him by our honouring. Howbeit in us he is true, omnipotent, and wise, when as we count him so, and believe that he is such a one, as he suffereth himself to be said to be. Now unto Cesar and the Magistrate fear, custom, tribute, obedience, &c: are due. God requireth especially the heart, the Magistrate the body and goods, over which he executeth his office in the place of God, which S. Paul doth most notably in plain and manifest words declare Rom. 13: Let every soul be subject unto the higher powers: for there is no power but of God: and the powers that be, are ordained of God. Whosoever therefore resisteth the power, resisteth the ordinance of God: and they that resist, shall receive to themselves condemnation. For Magistrates are not to be feared for good works, but for evil. Wilt thou then be without fear of the power? do well: so shalt thou have praise of the same. For he is the Minister of God for thy wealth, but if thou do evil, fear: for he beareth not the sword for nought: for he is the minister of God to take vengeance on him that doth evil. Wherefore ye must be subject, not because of wrath only, but also for conscience sake. For, for this cause ye pay also tribute: for they are Gods Ministers, applying themselves for the same thing. Give to all men therefore their duty: tribute, to whom ye owe tribute: custom, to whom custom: fear, to whom fear: honour, to whom ye owe honour. And therefore also are Magistrates ordained of God, that they may defend & maintain public peace, which alone exceedeth all worldly good things: we felt a little in the last commotion of the common people, what loss, misery, calamity and grievous sorrow conspiracy and sedition bringeth in the world. God grant that it may so continue, that we try it no more. Thus much shall suffice to have been spoken for the exposition of this text. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER, TEACHING THAT SALVATION cometh by Christ alone. joh. 6. Verse 44. NO man can come to me, except the Father which hath sent me, draw him: & I will raise him up at the last day. 45. It is written in the Prophets: And they shall be all taught of God. Every man therefore that hath heard, and hath learned of the Father, cometh unto me. 46. Not that any man hath seen the Father, save he which is of God, he hath seen the Father. 47. Verily, verily I say unto you, He that believeth in me, hath everlasting life. 48. I am the bread of life. 49. Your fathers did eat Manna in the wilderness, and are dead. 50. This is that bread which cometh down from heaven, that he which eateth of it, should not die. 51. I am that living bread which came down from heaven: if any man eat of this bread, he shall live for ever: and the bread that I will give, is my flesh, which I will give for the life of the world. The sum of this text. 1 CHrist is known of none, but of him whom the Father draweth, that is, except the Father teach us that knowledge inwardly in the heart. Therefore Christ saith to Peter Matth. 16: Flesh and blood hath not revealed it unto thee, but my Father which is in heaven. 2 Christ is the wisdom of God, which is of more price then precious stones, and whatsoever can be wished, is not to be compared unto it, Pro. 8.11. as Solomon saith in the Proverbs. 3 The old heavenly bread, that is, the righteousness of the law doth not justify: But Christ, if we believe in him, justifieth for ever. The exposition of the text. THis text teacheth us nothing else but christian faith, and stirreth it up in us, as surely john through his Gospel, doth almost no other thing but instruct us, how we must believe in the Lord Christ. And such a faith as is grounded on the true promise of God made unto us in Christ, Only faith in Christ saveth us. shall save us, as this text plainly declareth. Also they are here all proved fools, which have taught us an other way and means to obtain righteousness. Whatsoever man's mind can invent, although it be holy, although it have a fair show before men, it must needs utterly fall, if that he will have salvation to come thereby. For albeit that man is exercised with the duties of godliness, he shall not be able to attain unto heaven, unless God prevent him with his word, which may offer his divine grace unto him, and lighten his heart, that he may walk in the right way. Now this way is the Lord jesus Christ, Christ the right way. he that will seek an other way, as the most part of men with their outward works commonly do, hath now erred from the right and high way. For Paul saith Gal. 2: If righteousness be by the law, that is, by the works of the law, than Christ died without a cause. Therefore I say, that a man must by the Gospel be as it were bruised and broken, & humbled even from the bottom of his heart, as being frail & weak, which can move neither hands nor feet, but only lieth prostrate and crieth: Help me O omnipotent God, merciful Father, I am not able to help myself: Help O Lord Christ, mine own help is nothing. That so against this corner stone which is Christ all may be broken, as he saith of himself in Luke, when he asked the Pharisees and Scribes: Luke 20.17. What meaneth this then that is written: The stone that the builders refused, that is made the head of the corner? Whosoever shall fall upon that stone, shall be broken: & on whomsoever it shall fall, it will grind him to powder. Wherefore either let us fall upon it by our imbecility and weakness, by denying ourselves, & so be broken, or else he will break us for ever in his strait judgement. But it is better that we fall upon it, then that it fall upon us. Upon this foundation Christ saith here in this text. No man can come unto me, except the Father which hath sent me, draw him: and I will raise him up at the last day. Now he whom the Father draweth not, shall surely perish. It is also concluded that he which cometh not to this son, shall be damned for ever. He is the only Son given unto us, which may save us, without him there is no salvation: if he help not, Without Christ there is no salvation. our case is most miserable: Of him Peter also speaketh to the same effect in the Acts of the Apostles chap. 4: This is the stone cast aside of you builders, which is become the head of the corner, neither is there salvation in any other: for among men there is given none other name under heaven, whereby we must be saved. Whither would our Divines and Schoolmen turn themselves here, which have taught us that by many works we must attain unto righteousness? Here is that high Master Aristotle confounded, who hath taught us, that reason endeavoureth to do the best things, & is always ready to the better. But this Christ doth here deny: for unless the Father possess and draw us, we shall perish for ever. Here all men must confess their imbecility and slowness to good things. If so be that any persuade himself that he is able to do any good thing by his own strength, truly he hath reproved Christ of falsehood, and with great arrogancy presumeth to come to heaven, albeit he is not drawn of the Father. Wherefore where the word of God is in his course, & sound preached, whatsoever things are high and great, it casteth them down, it maketh all mountains even with the valleys, and overthroweth all hills, as the Prophet isaiah saith, that all hearts hearing the word may despeire of themselves, otherwise they can not come unto Christ. The works of God are such, that while they kill, they make alive, while they condemn, they save: as Hanna the mother of Samuel singeth of the Lord: 1. Sam. 2.6. The Lord killeth, and maketh alive, bringeth down to the grave, & fetcheth up again. The Lord maketh poor, & maketh rich, bringeth low, How the Father draweth us unto Christ. and heaveth up on high. Wherefore if a man be thus stricken of God in his heart, that he acknowledgeth himself such a one as aught for his sins to be condemned, he surely is even that very man, whom God by his word hath stricken, and by this stroke hath fastened upon him the bond of his divine grace, whereby he draweth him, that he may provide for his soul, & have care of him. He could first find with himself no help nor counsel, neither did he wish for any, but now he hath found the special consolation & promise of God, which is after this sort: He that asketh receiveth, he that seeketh findeth, & to him that knocketh it is opened. By such a promise man is more & more lifted up in mind, & conceiveth a greater trust and confidence in God. For as soon as he heareth that this is the work of God alone, he desireth of God, as at the hand of his merciful father, that he will vouchsafe to draw him. If so be that he be drawn of God unto Christ, undoubtedly that also shall come unto him, whereof the Lord maketh mention here, namely that he will raise him up at the last day. For he layeth hold on the word of God, & trusteth in God, whereby he hath a certain testimony, that he is he, whom God hath drawn: As john saith in his first Epistle: 1. joh. 5.10. He that believeth in that Son of God hath the witness in himself. Hereupon it must needs follow, that he is taught of God, and in verity now knoweth God to be no other, but a helper, a comforter, and a Saviour. Hereby it is now manifest, that if we believe, God will be no other toward us but a Saviour, helper, and giver of all felicity, who requireth and asketh nothing of us, but will only give and offer unto us, as he himself saith unto Israel Psal. 81: I am God thy Lord, which brought thee out of the land of Egypt: open thy mouth wide, & I will fill it. Who would not love such a God, which showeth himself so gentle and loving unto us, and offereth so readily his grace and goodness? They shall not be able to escape the severe and eternal judgement of God, which do unadvisedly neglect so great grace, as the Epistle to the hebrews saith: If they that transgressed the law of Moses, escaped not unpunished, but died without mercy, how much more grievously shall God punish them, which count the blood of the Testament as an unholy thing, and tread under foot the son of God? The knowledge of God. O how diligent is Paul in all his Epistles to teach how the knowledge of God may rightly be conceived? O how often doth he wish increase in the knowledge of God? As if he would say: If ye only knew and understood what God is, ye should then be safe. Then ye would love him, and do all things that are approved of him. Thus he saith Colos. 1: We cease not to pray for you, and to desire that ye might be fulfilled with knowledge of his will, in all wisdom, & spiritual understanding: that ye might walk worthy of the Lord, & please him in all things, being fruitful in all good works, & increasing in the knowledge of God, strengthened with all might through his glorious power, unto all patience, & long suffering with joyfulness: giving thanks unto the Father, which hath made us meet to be partakers of the inheritance of the Saints in light. And Psal. 119 David saith: Instruct me, & I will keep thy law, yea I will observe it with my whole heart. And thus ye have out of the first sentence of this text, that the knowledge of God doth come from the father. It is needful that he lay the first stone in our building, otherwise we shall labour in vain. But that is done thus: God sendeth unto us Preachers, whom he hath taught, and provideth that his will be preached unto us. First that all our life and condition, The preaching of the law. although it have a fair show & be holy outwardly, is of no estimation before him, yea is abhorred and loathed of him. And this is called the preaching of the law. The preaching of the Gospel. Afterward he maketh grace to be preached unto us, to wit, that he will not have us utterly condemned and cast of, but that he will receive us in his beloved son, and not simply receive us, but also make us heirs in his kingdom, yea and Lords over all things which are in heaven and earth. This now is called the preaching of grace or of the Gospel. And all this is of God, which raiseth up and sendeth forth Preachers. This S. Paul signifieth when he saith thus Rom. 10: Faith is by hearing, and hearing by the word of God. This also the words of the Lord mean here in the Gospel, when he saith: It is written in the Prophets: And they shall be all taught of God. Every man therefore that hath heard, and hath learned of the Father, cometh unto me: Not that any man hath seen the Father, save he which is of God, he hath seen the Father. When as we hear the first preaching, that is the preaching of the law, how we are condemned with all our works, than man sigheth unto God, What the preaching of the law worketh in man. and knoweth not what to do, his conscience is evil and fearful, and except help should come in time, he should despeire for ever. Wherefore the other preaching must not be long differred, the Gospel must be preached unto him, and the way unto Christ must be showed, whom God hath given unto us a Mediator, that through him alone we may be saved, by mere grace and mercy, without all our own works and merits. Then the heart is made joyful, The preaching of the Gospel what it worketh in us. and hasteth unto such grace, as the thirsty heart runneth unto the water. David had a notable feeling hereof, when he said thus Psal. 42: Like as the heart desireth the water brooks, so longeth my soul after thee, O God: My soul thirsteth for God, yea even for the living God. When therefore a man cometh to Christ, through the Gospel, then heareth he the voice of the Lord Christ, which strengtheneth the knowledge that God hath taught him: to wit, that God is nothing else but a Saviour abounding with grace, who will be favourable and merciful to all them, which call upon him in this his Son. Therefore the Lord saith moreover: Verily, verily I say unto you, He that believeth in me, hath everlasting life. I am that bread of life. Your Fathers did eat Manna in the wilderness, and are dead. This is that bread which cometh down from heaven, that he which eateth of it should not die. I am that living bread, which came down from heaven: if any man eat of this bread, he shall live for ever: and the bread that I will give, is my flesh, which I will give for the life of the world. In these words the soul findeth a table daintily furnished, whereby it may stake all hunger. For it knoweth assuredly that he that speaketh these words can not lie. Wherefore if it commit itself confidently unto him, and cleave to the word, it resteth upon him, and so departeth not from this goodly table. This is that supper, to the preparing whereof the heavenly Father killed his oxen and fatlings, and hath bidden us all unto it. The living bread whereof the Lord here maketh mention, Christ the living bread, whereon we must feed by faith. is Christ himself, whereby we are so fed. If we lay hold but of a morsel of this bread in our hearts, and keep it, we shall be satisfied for ever, neither can we ever be plucked from God. Moreover such an eating is nothing else, but to believe in the Lord Christ, that he is made unto us of God, as Paul saith 1. Cor 1. wisdom, righteousness, sanctification, and redemption. He that eateth this meat, liveth for ever. Wherefore by and by after this text, when the jews were at contention about these his words, he saith: Verily, verily I say unto you, Except ye eat the flesh of the Son of man and drink his blood, ye have no life in you. Whosoever eateth my flesh, & drinketh my blood hath eternal life, & I will raise him up at the last day. Manna which the fathers did eat in the desert (as Christ here saith) could not save from death: but this bread maketh us immortal. If we believe in Christ, death shall not hurt us any thing at all, yea there is no more death. This the Lord meaneth by these words in an other place, where he saith to the jews: Verily, verily I say unto you, joh. 8.51. if a man keep my word, he shall never see death: where it is certain that he speaketh of the word of faith, and of the Gospel. But some man may say that holy men die notwithstanding, An objection. for Abraham & the holy Prophets are dead, as the jews said unto him. I answer: The death of Christians is only a sleep, The answer as the Scripture also commonly calleth it: for a Christian tasteth & seeth no death, that is, he hath the feeling of no death. For this Saviour Christ jesus, in whom he believeth, hath overcome death, that afterwards he should not feel or taste it, but death is unto him only a passage and gate to life, as Christ himself witnesseth joh. 5: Verily, verily I say unto you, he that heareth my word, & believeth in him that sent me, hath everlasting life, & shall not come into condemnation, but hath passed from death to life. Wherefore the life of a Christian is merry, and on every side replenished with joy, and the yoke of Christ is easy & sweet. But that it seemeth heavy and grievous unto us, this is the cause, for that the Father hath not yet drawn us: hereupon it cometh to pass that we take no pleasure thereof, neither is the Gospel comfortable unto us. If so be that we would lay up the words of Christ well in our heart, they would be unto us an exceeding comfort. And thus ye have heard how we must feed on this bread which came down from heaven, that is, on the Lord Christ, to wit by faith, which we then do when we believe in him, that he is our Saviour. The whole chapter out of which this text is taken, commendeth unto us nothing else but spiritual meat. For when the multitude followed Christ, that they might again eat and drink, which the Lord himself signifieth, he taketh occasion of the corporal meat which they sought, & almost through the whole chapter speaketh of spiritual meat, as he said: The words which I speak are spirit and life. Whereby he would signify, that he therefore fed them, that they should believe in him: & as they did eat the bodily meat, so they ought also to feed of the spiritual. Here let us weigh and mark this, that the Lord doth so gently and graciously apply himself to us, and offer himself in such gentle words, that it ought worthily to move our hearts to believe in him, to wit, that that bread, was therefore given for us, inasmuch as it was behoveful that he should taste death and suffer hellish pains: Also should bear sins which he never had committed, as though he had committed them, and had been his own: and he did also the same willingly for our sakes, and took us as brethren and sisters. The will of the heavenly Father. This if we believe, we do the will of the heavenly Father, which is nothing else but to believe in his Son, & so be saved. As Christ himself saith a little before: This is the will of him that sent me, that every man which seeth the Son, and believeth in him, should have everlasting life. It now therefore appeareth that he that hath faith doth the will of God, and eateth of this heavenly bread. As Augustine saith: What dost thou prepare thy mouth, believe, and thou hast eaten. Of this spiritual supper the whole new Testament speaketh, but especially in this place of john. The Sacrament of Christ's body & blood is a certain testimony and pledge of this true supper, whereby we ought to strengthen our faith, and to be assured, that this body and this blood, whereof we feed in the Sacrament, delivereth us from sin, death, Satan, and all evil. But how may a man perceive and know, How a man may know whether he be called to this spiritual supper. that he also doth pertain to this heavenly bread, and is called to this spiritual supper? let him consider the case in his own heart, which if he find so affected, that it doth as it were feel a sweetness in the promise of God, and is undoubtedly persuaded, that he is of the company of them which pertain to his supper, he is assuredly such a one in deed. For as we belteve, so cometh it unto us. Such a man hath also by and by a regard of his neighbour, Charity toward our neighbour the fruit of true faith. and helpeth him as his brother, careth for him, giveth unto him, dareth him, comforteth him, briefly doth no otherwise to him then he desireth to be done unto himself. And all this proceedeth from hence, for that the bountifulness and goodness of Christ hath replenished his heart with sweetness and love, that it is a pleasure and joy unto him to do good to his neighbour, yea and he is grieved if there be none toward whom he may be serviceable. And beside all this, he is tractable and lowly towards all men, he doth not esteem the temporal pleasure and pride of life, he judgeth no man, he defameeh no man, he interpreteth all things in the better part. When as he seeth that the matter goeth not well with his neighbour, as that he fainteth in faith, waxeth cold in love, and that his life is not on every side approvable, he prayeth for him, and is sore grieved if any commit any thing against God and his neighbour. In a sum, the root and sap are sound, for they are in a flourishing vine, to wit, Christ, and therefore such fruits come forth. But if any be void of faith, and not taught of God, such a one doth not feed on this heavenvly bread, neither bringeth forth these fruits. For where a right faith is not, there such fruits are always wanting. And therefore S. Peter teacheth us to make our calling unto salvation, sure by good works, where he speaketh properly of the works of love, namely, that we do good to our neighbour, and be affected toward him, as toward our own flesh and blood. Thus much shall suffice concerning this text. Let us call to God for his grace. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER, CONCERNING GOOD WORKS THE FRUITS OF FAITH. Rom. 13. Verse 11. THis also we know the season, how that it is time that we should now arise from sleep: for now is our salvation nearer, than when we believed. 12. The night is past, and the day is at hand, let us therefore cast away the works of darkness, and let us put on the armour of light. 13. Let us walk honestly, as in the day: not in gluttony and drunkenness, neither in chambering and wantonness, nor in strife and envying: 14. But put ye on the Lord jesus Christ, and take no thought for the flesh, to fulfil the lusts of it. Whereof the present text entreateth. THE Apostle in this text teacheth, not of faith, but of works the fruits of faith, showing how the life of a Christian ought to be ordered and framed according to the flesh outwardly among men. For how we must live in the spirit and before God, faith doth teach, whereof Paul a little before this place hath at large and even apostolikely entreated. Yea if we consider this text well, it doth not so much teach, as provoke, exhort, move, and stir up them which are already taught, what they must do. The office of preaching divided into parts. For Paul divideth the office of preaching into two parts, into doctrine and exhortation, Rom. 12. Doctrine is, when one teacheth that which was not known before, whereby men are instructed & come to understanding. Exhortation is, when the preacher moveth & provoketh unto that which is already known. Either is necessary to be done of him, who will christianly perform the duty of preaching, wherefore Paul doth very earnestly apply himself to both, and that his exhortation may be more effectual, & may more acceptably enter into the minds of them whom he hath purposed to exhort, he useth certain elegant and figurative speeches, and doth with an adorned manner of speaking allure their minds unto him. For the words, sleep, darkness, light, waking, armour, works, the day, the night, which he here useth, are all spoken figuratively, by which other things are signified, than their nature and propriety do bear: for he speaketh not of the natural night, day, darkness, armour, waking, sleep, &c: but he resembleth by these natural things a certain likeness to our mind, whereby he may more forcibly provoke and bring us to those spiritual things. As if he said, ye see how men to get the riches of the present time, which do soon perish, rise early, and laying aside the works of darkness, apply themselves to the works of the day, after the night is passed, and the day is come: with how much greater diligence ought we, shaking of our sleep, to rise early, and casting away the works which we did while it was yet dark, to apply ourselves now to those works which are agreeable to our light, forasmuch as the night is now passed, and the day of our salvation hath appeared? By sleep he signifieth evil works which are void of faith: What the Apostle meaneth by the words, sleep, to rise, etc. for sleep is a work properly meet for the night, and that he meaneth thus, he sufficiently declareth, when he by and by after addeth: Let us cast away the works of darkness. So contrariwise, to wake and to rise signify good works which come of faith. For as sleep pertaineth properly to the night, so to rise is properly agreeable to the morning and day. Whereupon it is said 1. Thess. 5: Beloved brethren, ye are not in darkness, but ye are all the children of light and of the day: we are not of the night, neither of darkness, wherefore let us not sleep as do other, but let us watch and be sober. For they that sleep, sleep in the night, and they that be drunken, are drunken in the night. But let us which are of the day, be sober, putting on the breast plate of faith and love, and the hope of salvation for an helmet. For God hath not appointed us unto wrath, but to obtain salvation by the means of our Lord jesus Christ, which died for us, that whether we wake or sleep, we should live together with him. It is sufficiently manifest, that the Apostle doth not in these words forbidden us the sleep of nature, nevertheless he draweth a similitude from natural sleep and waking, to spiritual, that is, to a good and evil life. And to be brief, to rise out of sleep is here the very same thing that the Apostle writeth, Tit. 2: That grace of God, that bringeth salvation unto all men, hath appeared, & teacheth us that we should deny ungodliness & worldly lusts, and that we should live soberly and righteously, and godly in this present world: looking for that blessed hope and appearing of the glory of that mighty God, and of our Saviour jesus Christ. For that which he calleth in these words, to deny ungodliness and worldly lusts, he calleth in the text which we have in hand, to arise from sleep, and that which he termeth to live soberly, and righteously, and godly, that he calleth in our present text, to watch, and to put on the armour of light, and whereas he saith: the grace of God that bringeth salvation, hath appeared, that he calleth here the day and light, of which we will hereafter speak more at large. Natural and spiritual sleep compared together. Now let us see what likeness there is between natural and spiritual sleep. He that sleepeth naturally, neither seeth, nor feeleth any of those good things that are in the world, but lieth among those things which are even next adjoining unto him, as it were dead, serving to no use, neither regarding any thing at all. For albeit he live in himself, yet is he as dead to all other. Again, in stead of true things, he is in dreams wholly occupied with vain images and forms of things, which appear true, and is so foolish that he embraceth those vain forms, and thinketh them to be true things. But when he waketh, those images do together vanish away, and the man beginneth to be occupied with true things. After the same manner almost it is, when one is as it were swallowed up of ungodliness, for he sleepeth, and is like a dead man before God, neither seeth he, neither feeleth any of the good things, which are good things in deed, namely, those spiritual good things, which are promised & offered him by the Gospel, albeit they be just by him. For those things are seen and felt by faith alone, otherwise they are removed from all sight and feeling. Wherefore as long as by reason of the sleep of his unbelief, he can have neither any regard or sense of true good things, which are very near him through the Gospel, he busieth himself with the false good things of this world, as riches, promotions, and pleasures, which being compared unto eternal life, unto heavenly joy, and that perfect salvation which cometh to the godly, are altogether as dreams, and as those vain visions compared to natural things, whereof they are only representations. But when man awaketh, and hath received faith, all regard and desire of those false good things of this present life vanisheth away, and he acknowledgeth that they are nothing else but mere vanity and falsehood, even as those visions do quite fade away as soon as a man awaketh out of natural sleep. Hereof the 76. Psalm speaketh? They have slept their sleep, and they whose hands were mighty, have found nothing. And Psal. 73: Like as a dream when one awaketh, so shalt thou make their image to vanish out of the city. And Esay 29: As when a hungry man dreameth that he is eating, & yet when he awaketh his soul is empty: or as when a thirsty man dreameth that he is drinking, and when he awaketh he is yet faint, and his soul hath appetite: even so shall the multitude of all nations be, that fighteth against mount Zion. See how contemptuously and disdainfully the Prophet speaketh of the chief power, riches, pleasures and promotions of the world, and likeneth them to dreams and most vain visions wherewith they which are asleep are deluded. What other durst say, that the good things, riches and power of these Kings, Princes, and rich men, are nothing else but dreams, when as for them men mingle earth with heaven, fire with water, raging without measure and end in the world? But the cause hereof is, for that they yet sleep, therefore they do yet see nothing hereof, as they want faith, so also are they destitute of this light. For now is our salvation nearer, than when we believed. What mean these words? did we believe before, The promise of God concerning salvation by his Son. and do we not believe now? Here we must call to mind that which Paul writeth Rom. 1: that God promised the Gospel by his Prophets in the holy Scriptures, concerning his Son jesus Christ our Lord, that all should by him be saved, according to that which was said unto Abraham Gen. 22: In thy seed shall all the nations of the earth be blessed. This blessing promised to Abraham in his seed, is nothing else, but grace and salvation in Christ offered to the whole world by the Gospel, which Paul so interpreteth Rom. 4. and Gal. 3. For Christ is that seed of Abraham, that is, as he is man, his flesh and blood, by whom and in whom shallbe blessed, as many as believe in him, and call upon him. This promise was afterward by the Prophets continually more and more declared and preached, for they did all write of the coming of Christ, of the grace which he should bring, and of the Gospel, which Peter also witnesseth Act. 4. This promise of God all the faithful believed which died before Christ was borne, who by this faith were saved, and obtained salvation in Christ and through Christ. Hereunto Paul now had respect when he said: Our salvation is now nearer, than when we believed. For that which he saith is thus much in effect: We believed in time past that the promise made unto Abraham, should be fulfilled, now is it fulfilled, and those things that we believed should come to pass, are now present: Christ is come, the Gospel is revealed and published, and the blessing which we looked for, is spread over the world, all things which we tarried for, and believed being promised, are come. And hereby the Apostle signified the spiritual day, whereof he speaketh afterward, which is properly the beginning and manifestation of the Gospel, whereof we will hereafter speak. Now by this, that those things which we believed should be fulfilled, are now fulfilled, our faith is not any whit made void or frustrate, but much more sound and perfect. For as they of the old time before Christ's incarnation believed the promise of God which should be fulfilled, so do we believe that the same is fulfilled, The faith of them which lived before Christ's incarnation & theirs which live after it, all one in itself. and the faith is altogether the same in itself, but that our faith followed theirs, as the fulfilling followeth also the promise. For either faith trusteth in the seed of Abraham, that is in Christ, theirs before his incarnation, ours after it. Wherefore he that should at this day believe with the jews that Christ is to come, should make God a liar, as though he had not yet fulfilled his promise, which he hath fulfilled, and being fulfilled would have it published and preached. So also should salvation be yet far from the believers, which we should look for being as yet to come, in the time that shall hereafter follow. Of this double faith Paul speaketh Rom. 1: By the gospel righteousness, which God giveth, is revealed from faith to faith. What meaneth this, from faith to faith? nothing else, but that albeit the faith of the Fathers and our faith is the same, whereby it is believed in Christ either to come, or which hath already appeared: yet the Gospel doth lead from their faith to ours, so that it is now necessary not only to believe the promise that was to be fulfilled, but also that it is fulfilled, which it did not behove Abraham and the other Fathers to believe, although they had the same Christ which we have. For there is one faith, one spirit, one Christ, one communion of all Saints, this difference only there is between us, that they went before Christ, we follow him. We have therefore believed, and we do also believe, to wit the Fathers and we, with a like and common faith in the same Christ, although not after the same manner, as it is said. And as by reason of this communion of faith which we have a like in the same Christ, we say: we have believed, or we did believe, when as not we, but the Fathers have believed or did believe: so they again did say, that they should hear, see, and believe in Christ, when as not they, but we do live in that time. We read not in a few places of the Scriptures, that they which were before the incarnation of Christ, took upon them the person of them which are after it, and they which are after it, of them which were before it, because of the communion of faith, and the same Christ, which they have in common, and so there is as it were one company of believers. Now whereas the Apostle saith, How salvation is nearer unto us than it was to the believers before Christ's incarnation. that salvation is now nearer unto us then when we believed, that is, when our Fathers those ancient believers did look for it to come, we must not understand it of the nearness of possession, as though we now had it nearer and more certainly than they, for the Fathers had altogether the same faith, as it is said, and the same Christ, wherefore salvation was as near unto them as unto us. For Christ yesterday, and to day, the same also is for ever. Heb. 13. Christ continueth the same from the beginning of the world even unto the end, by whom all are saved alike. But Paul speaketh of the nearness of revealing, that what soever things were said before concerning Christ, they were now fulfilles, death being overcome, the Lord did sit at the right hand of the Father, the Gospel was preached abroad in the world, by which Christ did come unto all in the whole world, for this cause Paul saith that our salvation is nearer than when it was hidden, and known unto few men: because that Christ being not yet glorified, it was not meet that the preaching of salvation should be made public or common. Whereas therefore the Apostle saith here, Our salvation is now nearer us, he saith the same thing in the Epistle to Titus in other words: The grace of God, which bringeth salvation, hath appeared, that is, hath sprung forth, and is every where commonly preached: although it was not hid before in any of the Saints, notwithstanding it was not yet commonly known unto the world. After the same sort the Scripture speaketh in many places, when it sometime saith that Christ is to come, sometime, that he is come, although he always hath been, and is in all the elect. Howbeit because he had not before his resurrection come to all by public preaching, the Scripture speaketh diversly of his coming. For because of this public preaching he came in the flesh, being made man, for his incarnation had not been profitable to any, The coming of Christ by the preaching of the Gospel. if the Gospel had not thereupon been preached, by which he came into the whole world, and whereby it is commonly known, why he was made man, whereby that blessing promised to Abraham, is now published, and made common to all which by the Gospel believe in Christ. Hereupon Paul saith very well, Rom. 1. that the Gospel was promised of God, etc. as though he would say, although God hath promised every where in the writings of the Prophets his son in the flesh, yet forasmuch as all that should be done, that the Gospel might be preached abroad in the world, whereby he cometh spiritually to the minds of the believers, (which coming only bringeth salvation, and is far to be preferred before that coming in the flesh, inasmuch as it was done because of this) I say rather that God promised by the Prophets in the Scriptures the Gospel concerning his son. For God considered the Gospel and our faith in all these things, for which he would also have him to be made man, that the Gospel might be preached of him, that being made man, he hath saved us by his death, and that the salvation which he hath wrought, might go into the whole world, and be made near unto all. Some have taught four comings of Christ, according to the four sundays in advent as they call it, but this coming of Christ by the Gospel, which is most necessary of all, and of which all do depend, of which Paul here speaketh, this coming I say, they could not see, inasmuch as they are ignorant, both what the Gospel is, and to what end it was given. They babbie many things of the coming of Christ, and nevertheless they drive him further from themselves, than heaven is distant from the earth. For what can Christ profit any man, which doth not possess him by faith? or how can any man possess him by faith, where the Gospel is not preached? The night is passed and the day is at hand: By the day what is signified. His meaning in effect is, that salvation is at hand. For by the day Paul understandeth the Gospel, namely, that it is that day, whereby our hearts and minds are enlightened, therefore such a day being sprung, our salvation is certainly at hand, that is, Christ and his grace promised in time passed to Abraham, hath shined forth by preaching in the whole world, giveth light unto all men, raiseth all out of sleep, showeth true and eternal good things, wherein we may be hereafter occupied, What is here meant by the night. and may walk honestly in this day. Contrariwise, by the night all doctrine is to be understood, which is not the Gospel, beside which none can bring salvation. But if thou do a little more exactly weigh the words, thou shalt see that Paul describeth that part of the day, which is most delectable of all, and most full of all pleasantness, namely the joyful and amiable morning, and the rising of the sun. For it is the morning when the night is gone and ended, and the day is now come, whereupon all things are marvelously cheered and recreated, the birds sing, other living creatures do stir up with alacrity and joyfulness: men being as it were made alive again, do go forth to their labours: all things, the day springing, and the morning shining, are so affected, as though the world were renewed, and all things restored to life again. Wherefore in many places of the Scripture, the joyful, The preaching of the Gospel likened to the morning. prosperous, and quickening preaching of the Gospel is likened to the morning and the rising of the sun, as it is here of Paul who calleth the Gospel the day sprinking or arising. Also Psal. 110: In the day of thy power shall the people offer thee free will offerings, of the womb of the morning shall the dew of thy children spring. Here also the Gospel is plainly called the womb of the morning, and the day of the power of Christ, wherein we are conceived and borne the children of God as dew, to wit, without the labour of men, by the only grace of the holy Ghost from heaven. The most pleasant and comfortable sun jesus Christ maketh this day, whom the Scripture hereupon calleth the sun of righteousness. Christ the sun of righteousness. God saith Mala. 4: To you that fear my name, shall that sun of righteousness arise, and health shallbe under this wings. For as many as believe in Christ, do receive of him the beams of his grace and righteousness, and do obtain salvation under his wings. Whereupon it is said Psal. 118: This is the day which the Lord hath made, we will rejoice and be glad in it, as though he said: This corporal sun maketh the corporal day, but God himself maketh this day, even he is that sun, from whence those beams and that day come, wherewith the whole world is enlightened. Finally, hereupon he calleth himself the light of the world, joh. 9 And Psal. 19: The heavens declare the glory of God, that is, even as these bodily heavens do bring the sun and the day, and the sun is carried in them, so the Apostles have in themselves, and bring by preaching, the true sun, which is Christ, &c: Whereupon it followeth: In the heavens he hath set a tabernacle for the sun, which cometh forth as a bridegroom out of his chamber, and rejoiceth as a giant to run his course. His setting forth is from the utmost part of heaven, and his circuit unto the utmost part thereof: and there is nothing hid from his heat. All this is said of the exceeding pleasant beginning or rising of this day, that is of the Gospel, which the Scripture every where marvelously setteth forth. For it is a word which quickeneth, maketh glad, willing, cheerful, and ready to do good works, and finally it bringeth with it all good things. Wherefore it is called the Gospel or glad tidings, for that it is a pleasant, and prosperous message of the grace of God, and of all good things. The Gospel revealeth unto us all things that are needful for us to know. But who is able to rehearse all those things, which this day revealeth & maketh manifest unto us? For it teacheth all things, what God is, what we are, whatsoever is past, and to come, of heaven, hell, the earth, Angels and Devils. By this lamp is showed unto us, how we ought to behave ourselves in all these things, and toward all, from whence we are, and whither we go. Yet nevertheless Satan hath deceived us miserable creatures, that neglecting such a day, whereby all things might be clear and manifest unto us, we seek the truth of Philosophers and heathen men, who have not so much as by a dream known any whit of these things, and so we have suffered ourselves to be blinded with men's traditions, and to be thrust back again into the night. For it is not light, whatsoever is not this day, otherwise Paul and the whole Scripture should in vain extol this day alone, and call all other beside it the night. Surely the burden of God's displeasure must needs be most grievous, for that contrary to so plain and manifest places of Scripture, we have sought an other light, although the Lord himself calleth himself the light and sun of the world. And if other proofs were wanting, this one is sufficient, that universities do so impudently both set up and glory of Aristotle as a light unto them, in whom they exercise themselves much more than in Christ, yea nothing in Christ, but altogether in Aristotle. Let us therefore cast away the works of darkness, and let us put on the armour of light. As Christ is the sun, By light is here signified and meant faith. and the Gospel the day, so faith is the light whereby to see and watch in this day. For it would not profit, albeit the sun did shine, and make the day, if the eyes did not perceive the light. Wherefore although the Gospel be begun and preached in the whole world, yet none are lightened, but they that receive it, and by faith being made capable of the light, do arise out of sleep. But to them that as yet sleep this sun and day bring no profit, of which they receive no light, no more than if no sun or day had shined. And this is that season and hour, whereof he speaketh: Well-beloved brethren, forasmuch as we know this, that it is now time that we should arise out of sleep, etc. It is a spiritual time and season, although begun in this outward time, as it doth daily also come, wherein we ought to arise out of sleep, and lay aside the works of darkness. Whereby Paul showeth that he doth not speak to them, which are yet void of faith: for as it is said, he teacheth not faith here, but the works and fruits of faith, when as he saith: We know that the time is come, and that the night being passed, the day is at hand: they which believe not can not know these things. Now if thou object and say, what reason or cause is there that he should write these things to the faithful, inasmuch as they know that it is time? etc. Thou must call to mind that in the beginning of the exposition of this text of the Apostle, we have said that the office of preaching is of two sorts, one of teaching, We have need of continual exhortation. an other of exhorting and moving. Now a man can not attain unto that knowledge, that it should not be needful that he be always moved, and kept in a continual and fresh meditation of those things which he hath learned, lest the devil, the world, and the flesh (which are enemies that never grant truce, neither slack their assault) do make him weary and slothful, that he may at the last sleep, and become altogether negligent in good things. For the devil, saith Peter, is such an enemy, as goeth about continually like a roaring Lion, seeking whom he may devour: Wherefore he saith: Watch and be sober. Paul also will have us do the same thing here. For seeing that the Devil, the flesh, and the world keep no mean, nor make no end of fighting against us, neither must there be any mean kept or end made of exhorting, provoking, and moving us to watch and work. Hereupon the holy Ghost is called an exhorter, inasmuch as he inviteth and moveth us unto good. Paul calleth the works of light armour, and why. For the same cause Paul also useth here chosen words: the works of darkness he calleth not armour, but the works of light he calleth armour, not works: undoubtedly that he might show, that there is a fight, that labour and travel is required, and that it can not be obtained without peril, to watch and live well, forasmuch as so mighty enemies, the devil, the flesh, and the world do without ceasing fight against us, wherefore job saith chapter 7: The life of man upon earth is a fight and tentation. Now it is not a small matter to stand all our life long in the battle, wherefore there is need of very shrill trumpets and warlike drums, that is of earnest admonitions and exhortations, whereby we may be stirred up and encouraged to persever variantly in the fight. Hereupon now it appeareth, why he calleth good works armour or weapons, and calleth not the works of darkness so, which notwithstanding, if we consent unto them are also weapons, Rom. 6: Give not your members as weapons of unrighteousness. Again, it is before said, that by light is here signified faith, which from the day of the Gospel by the sun Christ, The armour of light what it is. shineth into our hearts, and enlighteneth them, therefore the armour or weapons of light are nothing else but the works of this faith. Contrariwise, darkness is infidelity or unbelief, which is by reason of the absence of the Gospel as of the day, and of Christ as of the sun. This darkness the devil doth rule, which cometh from the doctrine of men, and the judgement of man's own reason: wherefore the works of darkness, The works of darkness what they are. are the works of infidelity. For as Christ is the Lord and governor of the light, which we said to be faith: so Paul Ephes. 6. calleth Satan the prince of darkness, that is, of them which are without faith, and refuse to be obedient to God, as the same Apostle witnesseth 2. Corinth. 4: If our Gospel be then hid, it is hid to them that are lost, in whom the god of this world (namely the devil) hath blinded the minds, that is, of the infidels, that the light of the glorious Gospel of Christ should not shine unto them. But what both this armour or weapons of light, and works of darkness are, it is now taught of the Apostle. Let us walk honestly as in the day. No man worketh those things in the day, which he is wont to work in darkness, every one feareth an other, and endeavoureth himself to live honestly. It is commonly said: The night is void of shame, which is true, and therefore men do those things in the night, which they would be ashamed to do in the day, but the day is notwithout shame, and requireth an honest conversation. After the same sort ought a Christian life to be: The life of a Christian. a Christian ought to commit nothing, whereof he may be ashamed, although the whole world should see his works & doings. For he that liveth and worketh so, that he is unwilling that all his works and doings should be seen and heard of all men, and his whole life be manifestly known unto all, liveth a live unworthy of Christ, according to that which our Saviour himself saith joh. 3: Every man that doth evil, hateth the light, neither cometh to light, lest his deeds should be reproved. But he that doth truth, cometh to the light, that his deeds might be made manifest, that they are wrought according to God. Hereby it appeareth how necessary it is, that we should be provoked and exhorted to watch and to put on the armour of light. For what one is there at this day among Christians, which can abide, that all his works should be published openly in the light. Now what a Christian life is this, how hypocritically do we live, when as we can not suffer our life so much as to be disclosed before men, which now is disclosed before God and all his Angels, and in the last day shallbe disclosed before all creatures? Wherefore it behoveth a Christian to live so, as he desireth to appear in the last day, and before all. Eph. 5.8.9. Hereupon Paul saith: Walk as the children of light: the fruit of the Spirit is goodness, and righteousness, and truth. And Rom. 12: Procure things honest, not only in the sight of God, but also in the sight of all men. And 2. Cor. 1: Our rejoicing is this, the testimony of our conscience, that in simplicity and godly purches, and not in fleshly wisdom, but by the grace of God we have had our conversation in the world. Howbeit such a life shall nothing at all appear, where faith is not, but where a lively, a cheerful and a strong faith is, there such a life can not be wanting, forasmuch as such a faith is not wearied, with well doing, Preaching & exhortation necessary for them that do already believe. neither sleepeth. Wherefore it is no less necessary, to preach to them that have received the doctrine of faith, whereby they may be provoked and stirred up to go on in the good life which they have embraced, and that they suffer not themselves to be overcome by the assaults of the raging flesh, the crafty world, and most subtle Satan, than it is meet that the doctrine of faith be preached to them that be as yet ignorant of Christ. Not in gluttony and drunkenness, neither in chambering and wantonness, nor in strife and envying. Here he rehearseth the works of darkness by name, one of which he named also before, to wit, sleep, according to that saying 1. Thessal. 5: Let us not sleep as do other, but let us watch and be sober. Not that he forbiddeth natural sleep, but spiritual, which is infidelity, whereof those works of the flesh proceed: howbeit natural sleep also is a work of darkness, if it be used for pleasure, and through immoderate filling of the belly, Paul by six works of darkness comprehendeth all the rest. so that it is a hindrance to the light, that is, faith, and to the armour thereof. Moreover these six works of darkness which he here rehearseth, do comprehend all the rest. For Gal. 5. and Coloss. 3. he reckoneth up more of them. But we will divide those, which he here rehearseth, into two sides, the right and the left. On the right side these four fight with the spirit, gluttony, drunkenness, chambering and wantonness: on the left side (forasmuch as the left side in the Scriptures signifieth adversity) those things which proceed from thence do fight, as are wrath, contention and such like: but the right side signifieth prosperity, and those things which ensue thereof, as delights, gluttony, drunkenness, and overmuch sleep, etc. Now it is sufficiently manifest, that Paul under two works of darkness here rehearsed, namely, contention and envying, doth comprehend the rest also of that sort, among which are bitterness, anger, wrath, crying, and evil speaking. Ephe. 4. And those which he rehearseth in the Epistle to the Galathians: Hatred, debate, emulations, seditions, heresies, murders, etc. In a sum, hereunto pertain whatsoever come of evil anger, either in words or deeds, all which can not be numbered. After the same sort under those four, gluttony, drunkenness, chambering and wantonness, he comprehendeth the vices of lust, which are wont to be committed as well in words as works, which also no man is able to number. And so the present words of the Apostle do show, neither needeth it any further declaration, that by these six works all things are to be understood, whereby they that are void of faith, and are yet in darkness, do live unpurely as concerning themselves, and unjustly toward their neighbours, whose whole life is disordered and out course both toward themselves and toward other. For there is no man that knoweth not what it is to be gluttonous and drunken, that is, either to eat or drink above a measure necessary for the body, it is as well known, what it is to sleep in chambers, and to be wanton, that is, to follow the pleasure of the body, both with sleeping above measure, and with other lewd and unchaste gestures and works, which are wont to be committed in chambers of full fed, well tippled, idle and slothful bellies, as well in the day, as in the night, as well when they are alone, as in the resort and company of others. All which things do require even natural darkness, and secret places, and are signified of Paul by chambering and wantonness. But put ye on the Lord jesus Christ. In these words as it were in a sum, he showeth all the armour of light, when as he exhorteth us to put on Christ. Christ is put on two manner of ways. Now Christ is put on of us after two sorts: first when we are clothed with his righteousness, which is done by faith, wherewith he that is endued, believeth that Christ for him died, and fulfilled all things. For not ours, but Christ's righteousness hath reconciled us to the Father, and delivered us from sins. And so to put on Christ pertaineth to the doctrine of faith, which teacheth that Christ was given unto us, and is unto us in stead of a pledge. Whereof Paul speaketh Galat. 3: All ye that are baptised into Christ, have put on Christ. The other manner of putting on Christ is, when we weigh and consider, that he is given unto us also in steed of an example, that we should show ourselves serviceable toward our neighbours, being endued with the same virtues, with which we by faith acknowledge that he being adorned, did serve us, that so we may resemble him in all points: and of this manner of putting on Christ Paul speaketh here. The same also he willeth us to do 1. Corinth. 15. when he saith: As we have borne the image of the earthly, so let us now bear the image of the heavenly. And Ephes. 4: Cast ye of, concerning the conversation in time past, that old man, which is corrupt through the deceivable lusts, and be renewed in the spirit of your mind, and put on the new man, which after God is created unto righteousness, and true holiness. Now in Christ we see nothing but the armour of light, no gluttony, no drunkenness, but fasting, temperancy, keeping under of the flesh by divers labours, traveling, preaching, praying, and doing well to all men, in him was no place for slothfulness or superfluous sleep, much less for wantonness, but a marvelous chastity and purity: he accustomed himself to watch, to rise early, to lie on the ground in the field, having neither house, neither chamber, nor bed: in him was no wrath, contention or brawling, but altogether goodness, sweetness, meekness, charity, mercy, patience, etc. Wherefore where as Paul saith here briefly: Put ye on the Lord jesus Christ, it is as much as that we should set him before us as an example to follow. Colos. 3.12. He teacheth the Colossians the same thing in somewhat more words after this sort: Now therefore as the elect of God holy and beloved, put on the bowels of mercy, kindness, humbleness of mind, meekness, long suffering: forbearing one an other & forgiving one an other, if any man have a quarrel to an other: even as Christ forgave, even so do ye. And above all these things put on love which is the bond of perfectness: and let the peace of God rule in your hearts, to the which ye are called in one body, and be ye thankful. And Philip. 2, after that he had exhorted them to love one an other, and that every man should esteem other better than himself, and seek to pleasure & do for other, he also setteth Christ before them as an example, who showed himself to us our servant, & saith: Let the same mind be in you that was even in Christ jesus, who being in the form of God thought it no robbery to be equal with God: But he made himself of no reputation, and took on him the form of a servant, and was made like unto men, & was found in shape as a man. The sum therefore is this: The armour of light. the armour or weapons of light are good works, contrary to those works of darkness, gluttony, drunkenness, chambering, wantonness, contention, and envying, such works are, to fast, to watch to pray, to labour, to suffer hunger, thirst, cold, heat, to be chaste, to use modesty, temperancy, goodness, and that I do not thrust in too many of mine own words, let us hear Paul himself rehearsing them in order Gal. 5: The fruit of the spirit is love, joy, peace, long suffering, gentleness, goodness, faith, meekness, temperancy. But he rehearseth them far more at large 2. Cor. 6, saying: We beseech you that ye receive not the grace of God in vain: for he saith, I have heard thee in a time accepted, and in the day of salvation have I succoured thee: behold now the accepted time, behold now the day of salvation, as if he said: Our salvation is now nearer unto us then when we believed, to wit, that it would come to pass, that these days of salvation, in which the Gospel is preached abroad to the whole world, should appear. It is time therefore to arise out of sleep: Let us give no occasion of offence in any thing, that our ministery be not reprehended. But in all things, let us approve ourselves as the Ministers of God, in much patience, in afflictions, in necessities, in distresses, in stripes, in prisons, in tumults, in labours: by watchings, by fastings, by purity, by knowledge, by long suffering, by kindness, by the holy Ghost, by love unfeigned: By the word of truth, by the power of God, by the armour of righteousness on the right hand and on the left, By honour, and dishonour, by evil report and good report, as deceivers, and yet true: as unknown, and yet known: as dying, and behold we live: as chastened, and yet not killed: as sorrowing, and yet always rejoicing: as poor, and yet making many rich: as having nothing, and yet possessing all things. See what a plentiful and very golden stream floweth out of the mouth of Paul. Hereof I think we most plainly perceive, what is the armour of light, wherewith we must be fenced and fortified both on the right hand, and on the left. A most excellent and perfect example for all Christians to follow. Now this most fitly agreeth with the matter, whereas he setteth before us a most excellent and perfect example, namely the Lord himself, saying: Put ye on the Lord jesus Christ. For he is a sluggish beast and not a man, who when he seeth his Lord fast, suffer hunger, labour, watch and to be weary, yet giveth himself to gluttony, sleep, and pleasures. What Lord could take these things at his servants hand, nay what servant durst presume to do these things? So it can not be that a Christian man should not be ashamed, when he beholdeth Christ, and seeth himself so unlike unto him, yea occupied in quite contrary things. For whom the example of Christ himself doth not stir up, exhort, and move, who can bring or stir him up unto goodness? What would the leaves of words do with their small noise, if these thunderings of the example of Christ do not move? And surely for this cause Paul of purpose adjoined this word, Lord, saying: Put ye on the Lord jesus Christ, as if he said: count it no great nor burdenous thing, to stand and fight in this armour of light, ye that are servants, behold your Lord, who when he had no need, did notwithstanding so well & valiantly use this armour, and fought in it for you. And take no thought for the flesh, to fulfil the lusts of it. The Apostle in these few words hath noted two cares of the flesh: One is natural, Lawful care for the flesh. whereby necessary food and apparel is provided for the body, that it may live, and be able to sustain his labour, lest that it be by overmuch abstinence weakened, and made unprofitable to work. Unlawful provision & care for the flesh. The other care is joined with sin, when the body is provided for to fulfil the lusts thereof, and that it may be delighted: this care the Apostle here forbiddeth, for it engendereth the works of darkness, so to pamper and make of the flesh, which is continually to be chastised, that it may be obedient to the spirit, and may not shake of the sitter, like unto an untamed horse, albeit that chastising is so to be tempered, that the body notwithstanding may do his duty, and bear the sitter. For as the fodder, the whip and the burden belongeth unto the ass: so meat, correction, and work unto the servant. Ecclesiastic. 33. He doth not say that thou shalt slay or slay the ass, neither that thou shalt kill the servant, or cast him into prison: so unto the body the chastising and labour thereof is due, and necessary food is not to be withheld from it. Paul himself saith: 1. Cor. 9.27. I tame my body, and bring it into subjection. He saith not, I cast it into sickness, or I kill it, but I subdue it to the spirit, that it may serve, and be obedient thereunto. Moreover these words, to fulfil the lusts thereof, Paul added because of two sorts of men, whereof the first under a pretence of natural necessity, do satisfy their pleasure, We are prone and ready to fulfil the lusts of the flesh. and cover that practise under this false pretence. We are so prone and ready unto this, that even many of the Saints have very much complained of this evil, and because of it, have oftentimes above measure afflicted their bodies: for the flesh is so crafty and marvelous sutle to prepare delights for itself, that no man can sufficiently taken heed of it, yea it is needful that a man here do never leave to care and fear. The other sort of men are those blind holy ones, which think that the kingdom of God and the righteousness thereof consisteth in meats and drink, and in chosen apparel, and do beside their own work regard nothing: when they have so fasted, that they have made their head diseased, and their stomach distempered, Superstitious fasting & abstinence from meats. 1. Cor. 8.8. and do bring unto their body some great infirmity or sickness, they then think that they have been marvelous holy, and have wrought incomparable good works. But Paul saith: Meat maketh not us acceptable to God, for neither if we eat, have we the more neither if we eat not, have we the less. And Colos. 2. he writeth thus much in effect: Beware of the worshipping of Angels, which hath a show of wisdom because of humbleness and superstition, whereby they spare not the body, while they withdraw from it the measure of food due unto it, bestowing nothing upon it whereby it may be fed. This preposterous worshipping of Angels, yea in deed superstition, did so deceive Gerson, otherwise a notable man, that he praised the Charterhouse Monks, for that they did so constantly abstain from flesh, that even when they were sick they would eat none, although they might preserve themselves even from death thereby. But what, if God shall judge them as killers of their own body? For there can be none at all either ordinance or order, yea or vow contrary to the commandment of God, & if there be any such, surely it ought to be of no force, even as if thou hadst vowed adultery. Necessary provision must be made for the body. Now God both here by Paul, and elsewhere hath commanded, that necessary provision should be made for the body, and hath forbidden that we should procure the death of it: wherefore those things that are profitable to preserve it, whether they be flesh or eggs, or any thing else, must be given unto it, in what day or time soever, whether it be the sixth or first day of the week, whether it be Lent or after Easter, in the mean season whatsoever orders, laws, and vows, yea even of the Pope being neglected. For it is not lawful for any man, no not for the Angels to forbid any thing against the commandment of God. Howbeit this madness proceedeth from that darkness and blindness, whereby miserable men do regard the work only, and think that they shall obtain salvation through the greatness and multitude of works. The true end of fasting. But Paul willeth that our fastings and other chastisings of the flesh be the weapons of light, whereby the works of darkness may be overcome, and not the body destroyed: wherefore there ought to be no other use among Christians of fastings, watchings and labours. As it is all one before God, whether thou eat fish or flesh: whether thou drink wine or water: whether thou wear red or green garments: all these are the good creatures of God, made unto this end, that we may use them: have regard only to this, that thou mayst use them with a mean, and mayst abstain thyself so much from them, as shall suffice to overcome the works of darkness. Wherefore it is unpossible that a common manner of this abstinence should be appointed indifferently to all: One common manner of fasting cannot be appointed to all. for the constitution of all men's bodies is not alike, it is above measure to one, which to an other is under measure: one hath need of much, an other of little, and therefore is it meet that every one have regard of himself, and govern his own body, according to the present doctrine of Paul, whereas he saith: Take no thought for the flesh, to fulfil the lusts thereof, that is, obey the wisdom thereof so far that ye deny not the necessary things which it requireth, but grant it not those things, which it requireth to the fulfilling of the lusts thereof, more than necessity, to pleasure only. If a better rule of moderation could have been given beside this, Paul would not have concealed it. Hereby thou seest, that the popish ordinances, Popish ordinances forbidding the eating of flesh contrary to the Gospel. which forbidden the eating of flesh and certain meats, are quite contrary to the Gospel: Which Paul hath plainly foretold 1. Tim. 4: The Spirit, saith he, speaketh evidently, that in the latter times some shall departed from the faith, & shall give heed unto spirits of error & doctrines of devils, which speak lies through hypocrisy, forbidding to marry, and commanding to abstain from meats, which God hath created to be received with giving thanks. No man surely can deny that these words do briefly reprove the orders of Monks and sacrificing Priests, so clear and manifest are both these words, and also their preposterous religion. Moreover thou seest here also, godly Reader, that Paul doth not teach that dotage & womanly holiness of certain, which choose unto themselves certain days, wherein to fast to certain Saints, one to this, an other to that, all which are blind proceed, and builded upon their own works. True religion is, without choice of meats and days, all the life long to use modesty and sobriety. For seeing that these must be the armour of light, and it is requisite that all our life be undefiled and chaste, it behoveth us surely never to put of this armour, but we must be found always sober, temperate, watching, labouring and praying. But those doting holy ones one day taste nothing but bread & water, & afterward, three whole months they daily be drunken and eat excessively, even until they be not well in their wits. Others fast so, that at the evening they eat no meat, but in the mean season they make themselves drunk with drinking. Who is able to rehearse all their dotages and all their works of darkness? all which proceed from hence, for that foolish men consider & regard the work, & not the use of the work, they make of armour a glass, they are altogether ignorant, whereunto it is profitable to fast and abstain: they are like unto him which carried a sword to this end, that he might look upon it, and knew not how to use it, when he was beaten. These things may suffice to have been spoken for the exposition of this text. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER, WHEREIN IS TAUGHT HOW THE FAITHFUL aught to rejoice in God, & let their patiented mind be known unto men. Philip. 4. Verse 4. Rejoice in the Lord always, again I say, rejoice. 5. Let your patiented mind be known unto all men. The Lord is at hand. 6. Be nothing careful, but in all things let your requests be showed unto God in prayer & supplication with giving of thanks. 7. And the peace of God which passeth all understanding, shall preserve your hearts & minds in Christ jesus. THis text in deed is but short, nevertheless it doth most plentifully abound with right Christian doctrine, instructing first, how we ought to behave ourselves toward God, secondly, how toward our neighbours, saying first: Rejoice in the Lord always. joy in the Lord a fruit of faith, without which there is no true joy but sadness & fear. This joy is a fruit of faith, most certainly following it, as Paul witnesseth Gal. 5 where he saith: The fruit of the Spirit is love, joy, peace, long suffering, gentleness, goodness, faith, meekness, temperancy, etc. Neither can it be that that heart should rejoice in the Lord, which hath not yet believed in him. Whereupon it cometh to pass, that where no faith is, there can be nothing but fear, trembling, horror, and sadness, as often as such either remember God, or hear him named: yea hatred and enmity of God remaineth in such hearts, the cause whereof is, for that the heart void of faith, findeth itself defiled with sins, whereby it doubteth not but that it hath deserved the vengeance of God, that sins can not but be hated of God which is just, & so, when it doth not believe that God will be merciful and favourable unto it, how can it not but detest all memory of him? so far is it of that it can rejoice in the Lord, the revenger of sins. These two things, the knowledge of sin, and of the vengeance of God prepared for sins are in the heart of the unbeliever, which heart as it is unbelieving, so hath it no hope of pardon, and therefore what other thing can these things work in it, but cause it to be troubled, cast down and always fearful, and greatly terrified, and to think that the vengeance of God doth every moment hang over it, that so that may be verified which Solomon saith: Pro. 28.1. The ungodly fleeth when no man pursueth him. And that which is said Deut. 28: The Lord shall give thee a fearful heart, and thy life shall hang in doubt before thee. If a man will much persuade such a heart, to have joy in the Lord, he shall do even as if he persuaded the water that it should burn like unto the fire, for it can cast none of this joy, it always feeleth in conscience, that the revenging hand of God is heavy upon it. Whereupon the Prophet saith Psal. 32. Be glad O ye righteous, and rejoice in the Lord: and be joyful all ye that are true of heart: for this joy in the Lord can not be but in the righteous and them that are upright in heart. And therefore it is manifest that this part of Scripture was written not to sinners, but to the righteous & Saints. Sinners must first be showed, how they may be delivered from sins, and may obtain God to be favourable unto them, which when they have learned and so obtained, it followeth that they do of their own accord rejoice in the Lord, being delivered from remorse of conscience. But if any demand, how one may be delivered from remorse of conscience, and have God merciful unto him, that is declared before at large, and shall hereafter be copiously spoken of. How a man may be delivered from remorse of conscience, and be assured of God's favour. He which seeketh to have a free and glad conscience, and God gentle and favourable, let him not begin at his own works, as the deceitful Papists teach, only tormenting consciences, and increasing the wrath of God, but let him despair of himself and of all his own works, let him embrace God in Christ, having a sure faith in the Gospel, that he shall receive whatsoever it promiseth. But the Gospel promiseth that Christ is given to us, that he may take away our sins, and be our high Priest, Mediator and Advocate before God, that so we may nothing doubt, but that our sins through Christ only and his works are forgiven us, and that we are reconciled to God, and that by this means our conscience is delivered and comforted. The believing heart rejoiceth in the Lord. When such a faith possesseth the heart, and the Gospel is so received in deed, than God appeareth sweet & altogether loving, neither feeleth the heart any thing but the favour & grace of God, it standeth with a strong and bold confidence, it feareth not lest any evil come unto it, it being quiet from all fear of vengeance and displeasure, is merry, and glad of so incomparable grace and goodness of God given unto it freely and most abundantly in Christ. Wherefore there must needs forthwith proceed from such a faith, love, joy, peace, gladness, giving of thanks, praise, & a certain marvelous delight in God, as in a most dear and favourable father, which dealeth so fatherly with us, and poureth forth his gifts so plentifully and in so great a measure, upon them that do not deserve them. Behold of such joy Paul speaketh here, which truly where it is, there can be no place for sin, or fear of death or hell, yea nothing is there but a joyful, quiet and omnipotent trust in God and in his favour. Wherefore it is called joy in the Lord, not in gold or silver, gluttony or drunkenness, in delicates or singing, health, knowledge, wisdom, power, glory, friendship, favour, no nor in good works, holiness, or whatsoever is without God. Of these thou shalt take but a deceitful and vain joy, Vain joy. which can not pierce the heart, or enter unto the bottom thereof, whereof thou mayst rightly say that which is wont to be spoken as a proverb among the Germans: This man rejoiceth, but he feeleth not any joy in his heart. There is one full & perfect joy, which the believers take of and in the Lord, which is nothing else, then to commit themselves unto him, and of him alone to rejoice, trust and presume, as of a most favourable and loving father. Whatsoever joy is not after this sort, the Lord doth contemn and reject it, whereof jeremy speaketh chap. 9: Let not the wise man rejoice in his wisdom, nor the strong man in his strength, neither the rich man in his riches: but whoso will rejoice, let him rejoice in this, that he understandeth and knoweth me. And Paul 2. Cor. 10. saith: Let him that rejoiceth rejoice in the Lord. He addeth, that we must rejoice always, We must always rejoice in the Lord. where he toucheth them, which only half the time do rejoice in the Lord, and praise him that is, when all things fall out according to their desire, but when adversity cometh, they change joy with sadness and sorrow, of whom the 48 Psalm speaketh: So long as thou dost well unto him, he will speak good of thee. But the Prophet himself saith not so: I will always bless God, his praise shall ever be in my mouth. Psal. 34, And he hath a just cause so to do, for who shall hurt him, unto whom God is merciful, surely sin shall not hurt him, neither death nor hell, wherefore the Prophet saith in an other place: Yea though I walk through the valley of the shadow of death, I will fear no evil. Psal. 23. And Paul saith Rom. 8: Who shall separate us from the love of Christ? shall tribulation or anguish, or persecution, or famine, or nakedness, or peril, or sword? I am persuaded that neither death nor life, nor Angels, nor principalities, nor powers, nor things present, nor things to come, nor height nor depth, nor any other creature shall be able to separate us from the love of God which is in Christ jesus our Lord. Again I say rejoice. This repetition of the Apostle confirmeth his exhortation, and truly not without a cause, forasmuch as we live in the mids of sins, and therefore in the mids of tribulations, both which do move us unto sadness & heaviness. Wherefore the Apostle purposing to comfort us against these, exhorteth us that we should always rejoice in the Lord, Though the faithful sometime fall into sin, yet they must not therefore cease to rejoice in the Lord. albeit we sometime fall into sins. For it is meet, the more God with his goodness exceedeth the evil of sin: so much more always to rejoice in him, when we are sorrowful because of our sins, which albeit by nature they bring sadness and sorrow with them, yet forasmuch as they can not bring so much hurt, as Christ, if we believe in him, bringeth profit and safety, joy in the Lord ought always to have the first place with us, and far to overcome the sorrow and sadness that cometh by reason of our sins. For we must always think on that which john writeth: If any man sin, we have an Advocate with the Father, jesus Christ the righteous, and he is the reconciliation for our sins. 1. joh. 2. Let your patiented mind be known unto all men. He hath already taught, how men ought to behave themselves toward God, namely that they must serve him with a cheerful heart and continual joy: now he declareth in few words, how the believers ought to behave themselves toward men, saying: Let your patiented mind be known unto all men. Which words are thus much in effect: Be joyful toward God, always rejoicing in & of him, What it is to let our patiented mind be known unto all men. but toward men be of a patiented mind, & pliant, applying yourselves to all, & so behaving yourselves, that ye be ready to do and suffer all things, & to yield in every thing, as much as may be by any means without transgressing the commandment of God, whereby ye may approve yourselves to all men, and please all in that which is good: not only hurting none, but also taking in good worth all things of all men, interpreting aright the sayings of all men, & accepting them in the better part, that men may plainly see you to be them, unto whom all things are alike, which take in good part whatsoever betideth you, which stick in nothing, which would not disagree with any man for any cause, which be rich with the rich, poor with the poor, rejoicing with them that rejoice, weeping with them that weep, & to be brief, which be made all things to all men, that all men must needs acknowledge that ye are grievous to none, but agreeable, of a patiented mind, pliant, and obedient toward all in all things. The Greek word epieices which the Apostle here useth, meaneth the same, which signifieth in our tongue a patiented and pliant mind, whereby one doth so apply and show himself indifferent to others, that he is the same to one that he is to an other, applying himself indifferently to the will of all, not requiring himself to be counted for a rule, whereunto the rest ought to apply and order themselves. An old Interpreter translateth it modesty, which, if thou understand it aright, and not for the only moderation & temperancy of meat and apparel, as it is wont commonly to be taken, is not altogether unfitly translated, namely, if thou understand it to be a virtue, whereby one thinking modestly of himself, endeavoureth to order and apply himself unto all, according to the capacity and ability of every one, ready to permit, to take in good part, to obey, to give place, to do, to omit, to suffer all things, as he shall see it will profit his neighbour, albeit he must suffer hindrance and loss of his substance, name, and body thereby. That these things may be made more plain, it shall be good to declare them by examples. An example of a patiented mind in Paul. Paul 1. Cor. 9 writeth thus of himself: Unto the jews I become as a jew, that I may win the jews: to them that are under the law, as though I were under the law: to them that are without law, as though I were without law (when I am not without law as pertaining to God, but am in the law through Christ) I am made all things to all men, that I might by all means save some. Behold, thou seest here the patiented & pliant mind rightly observing those things which are here commanded. For those things that he writeth of himself have this meaning: Sometimes he did eat, drink, and do all things as a jew, albeit it was not necessary that he should so do: sometimes he did eat and drink with the Gentiles, and did all things as free from the law. For only faith in God, and love toward our neighbour, are necessarily required, all other things are free, so that we may freely observe them for one man's sake, & omit them for an other man's sake, as we shall perceive it to be profitable to every one. Now it is contrary to this modesty or meekness, if one having an impatient mind, trusteth to his own wit, An impatient mind what it doth. and contendeth that one thing among the rest is necessary, which thou must either omit or observe, and so applying himself unto none, but contending to have all other to apply themselves unto him, he neglecteth & perverteth the softness & meekness which is here taught, yea & the liberty of faith also: such some of the jews were, unto whom we must give no place, even as Paul yielded not unto them. We see the same example commonly in Christ, but specially Matth. 12, & Mar. 2. where we read that he suffered his Disciples to break the Sabbath, & he himself also, when the case so required, did break it, when it was otherwise, he did keep it, whereof he gave this reason: The Son of man is Lord, even of the Sabbath. Which is as much to say as: the Sabbath is free, that thou mayst break it for one man's sake and commodity, and for the sake and commodity of an other thou mayst keep it. So Paul caused Timothe to be circumcised because of the jews, for that they thought that it was of importance to their salvation: again he would not have Titus circumcised, because certain jews did unjustly urge it, so that the circumcision of Titus would have been rather a confirmation of error unto them, then have profited them any thing. Paul therefore would keep circumcision free, that he might sometime use it, and sometime not use it, as he should perceive it to be commodious and profitable to every one. How the ordinances & decrees of men must be observed or not observed So, to come to other matters, when the Pope commandeth to make confession, to fast, to abstain from, or use this or that kind of meat, &c: and exacteth these things as necessary to salvation, they are to be utterly contemned, and those things that are contrary to these, are most freely to be done: but if he should not command them as necessary, if any man might be helped or edified in any thing by the observation of them, surely they were to be observed, but freely, and of love only, as also they are to be omitted, if the omitting of them may be profitable to any. The reason of this liberty is this: The Son of man is Lord of the Sabbath: if of the Sabbath, how much more of the traditions of men? Whatsoever thou shalt observe upon this liberty, it can not hurt any, but to observe them of necessity, it extinguisheth faith and the Gospel. Likewise, if one live as yet in a Monastery, if he observe the vows and ordinances of that life upon Christian liberty, and of love to his brethren that he may edify them, and of no necessity, neither with the hindrance of his own or other men's salvation, he shall do godly, for he is free: but if those things be straightly required as necessary to salvation, then before thou suffer thyself to be brought into this error, Monasteries, shavings, hoods, vows, rules, ordinances, and all such like must be left, and the contrary must be done, to witness, that only faith and love are necessary for a Christian, and that all other things are free, so that he may either omit or do them for the edifying and cause of them with whom he liveth. Whatsoever thou shalt observe upon liberty and of love, is godly: but if thou observe any thing of necessity it is ungodly. The same is to be said of all other ordinances and decrees of men, which are wont to be observed in Monasteries, that whatsoever doth not disagree with the word of God, thou mayst being free either observe or omit it, according as thou shalt know it to be profitable and acceptable to them, with whom thou art conversant: but if they be required as necessary, reject them all utterly, and tread them under thy feet. Hereupon thou now seest, what a devilish thing the Papacy & Monasteries be. For whatsoever things be free & to be permitted to free love only, they make them necessary, Christian liberty turned of the Papists into mere necessity. and say the keeping of them is of importance to salvation, whereby truly as much as is in them, they together pervert and extinguish the Gospel and faith. I pass over with silence, that they hereupon set and sell the care of the belly in steed of the service of God. For how many among them at this day do for God's cause, & not rather for the bellies sake, take upon them to be Monks or Clerks, do frequent the quire, sing, pray, say Mass, or do any such thing, wherein they counterfeit and corrupt the true worship & service of God? The common subversion of all Monasteries were the best reformation of all these things, from which so much discommodity and no whit of profit may be looked for. Before one Monastery could be persuaded concerning true Christian liberty, infinite thousands of souls in others should perish, wherefore forasmuch as they bring no commodity at all, neither is there any need of them, and they are cause of greater hindrance to a Christian common weal, then can be thought, and can not by any means be reform, what can be more profitable, then that they be utterly overthrown and abolished? Moreover that we may admonish here concerning the civil Magistrate, when he commandeth or requireth any thing, Obedience to the civil Magistrate doth not hinder Christian liberty. yea if he compel thereunto, we must obey, for there cometh no loss of Christian liberty or of faith hereby, forasmuch as they do not contend that those things are necessary to salvation which they do ordain or require, but only to maintain outward rule, public tranquillity and government, & so the conscience remaineth free. Wherefore, forasmuch as it doth nothing hinder faith to do those things which the civil Magistrate commandeth, but doth also profit the common weal, it shall be without doubt a point of Christian obedience to endeavour to do them with a willing mind, that we may be such as are pliant & agreeable to all men, willing to do all things, ready to deserve well of every one, & to gratify all. Howbeit if any should contend that those commandments of the civil Magistrate be necessary to salvation, then, as it is said of the traditions of the Papists, the contrary rather were to be done, or at the lest it were to be witnessed, that thou dost them only for the common weals sake, because so it is profitable to others, and not, that thou mayst obtain salvation by them, which we have gotten by Christ jesus alone, as many of us as believe in him. According to this doctrine & the examples before mentioned every one ought to behave himself in every thing & toward all men, as Paul here teacheth, that he stick not to his own judgement or right, but that he show himself pliant unto others, and have regard of those things, which he shall know will be acceptable and profitable to his neighbours. When therefore it doth nothing hinder thy faith, and profiteth thy neighbour to yield somewhat of thine own right, if thou do it not, thou art without charity, & neglectest that Christian softness & patiented mind that Paul here speaketh of: Yea if thou hast regard hereof, as he that truly believeth in Christ ought to have, thou must take it patiently even when any man doth injury unto thee, or endamage thee, and so interpret it in the better part, and always think on that, A most worthy saying of a right Christian Martyr. which that Martyr when all his substance was taken from him, said: But they shall not take away Christ from me. So whatsoever chanceth unto thee, say thou: I have as yet suffered no loss of my faith, why should I not take it in good part, which my neighbour hath done? why should I not yield unto him, and apply myself to his will? Thou canst scarce find a more manifest example hereof, An example which Christians ought to follow in behaving themselves toward their neighbours. then between two unfeigned friends: for as they behave themselves one toward an other, so ought a Christian to behave himself toward every one. Either of them endeavoureth to gratify other, either of them giveth place to other, suffereth, doth, and omitteth whatsoever he seeth to be for the profit and commodity of the other, & that freely without all constraint. Either of them doth diligently apply himself to the will of the other, neither of them compelleth other to follow his mind, & if one should use the goods of an other, that other would not be offended, but would take it in good part, and would not grudge rather to give more, and that I may speak briefly, between such there is no exaction of law, no grudging, no constraint, no necessity, but liberty, favour and good will. Contrariwise, such as be impatient and obstinate, which take nothing in good part of any man, but go about to make all things subject to their own will, and to order all things according to their own judgement, The impatient & obstinate are cause of much evil. such I say trouble the world, and are the cause of all discords, contentions, wars, & whatsoever discommodity there is, they say afterward, that they did those things for the love of justice, and for that they endeavoured to defend that which is right. So that that heathen man said not amiss Extreme rigour is extreme injury. And Solomon also saith Eccles. 7. Be thou neither too righteous nor over wise. For as extreme rigour is extreme injury, so too great wisdom is extreme folly. Which also is meant by this common saying: when wise men dote they dote beyond measure. Surely if God should deal with us according to right, we should perish in a moment, wherefore as Paul praiseth in him this moderation of right, and incomparable patience and gentleness saying 2. Cor. 10: I beseech you by the meekness and gentleness of Christ, so is it also meet that we do observe a measure of our judgement, right, wisdom, prudence, and in all things apply ourselves to the profit & commodity of others. But let us weigh the words of the Apostle, for they are placed not without a spiritual skilfulness, he saith: Let your patiented mind or softness be known unto all men. Where thou must not think that he commandeth thee to be made known unto all men, How our patiented mind must be made known unto all men or that thou oughtest to tell thy patiented mind or softness before all men. For he saith not, tell it forth, but let it be known, that is, endeavour to practise it toward men, I do not command that ye should think or speak of it, but that ye labour that it may be known in deed, while all men do try and feel it, that no man may say any other thing of you, then that ye be of a patiented mind, and pliant, applying yourselves to all men, being enforced so to say even by manifest experience. So that if any man were never so much bend to speak otherwise of you, his mouth might be stopped by that testimony of all other, witnessing of your patiented mind and meekness. So saith Christ Matth. 5. Let your light so shine before men, that they may see your good works, and glorify your Father which is in heaven. And Peter saith: 1. Pet. 2. Have your conversation honest among the Gentiles, that they which speak evil of you as of evil doers, may by your good works, which they shall see, glorify God in the day of visitation. It is not surely in our power, that our patiented mind should be known and acknowledged of all men, but it shall be sufficient for us, if we endeavour that all men may have trial thereof in us, and that no man may find it wanting in our life. Moreover [all men] is not so to be taken, that thou shouldest understand thereby all men which are in the world, but rather all sorts of men, that we have regard to be of a patiented mind as well toward enemies as friends, as well toward servants as Masters, small as great, poor as rich, strangers as them at home, toward them that we know not, as toward them with whom we are familiar. For there are some, which behave themselves very gently and patiently toward strangers, but toward them that are in the house with them, or with whom they always keep company, there are none more obstinate or froward than they. And how many are there, The most part are ready to make their patiented mind known to the rich and their friends, but not to the poor and their enemies. which at great and rich men's hands take all things in good part, interpret every thing at the best, and most gently bear, whatsoever they say or do, but toward the poor and abjects they show no gentleness or meekness, neither take any thing of them in good part. So we are all ready to do for our children, parents, friends, & kinsmen, and most favourably interpret and willingly bear whatsoever they have committed. How often do we even praise the manifest vices of our friend, or at the least wink at them, and apply ourselves most fitly unto them? but to our enemies & adversaries we impart none of this favour, in them we can find nothing that is good, nothing that is to be borne, nothing that can be interpreted in the better part, but we dispraise every thing, & take it at the worst. Against such parted and unperfect patiented minds Paul here speaketh saying: Let your patiented mind be known unto all men: he will have our patiented mind and right Christian meekness to be perfect and entire toward all, whether they be enemies or friends, he will have us suffer and take in good part all things of all men, without all respect either of persons or deserts. And such without doubt will our patiented mind be, if it be true and not counterfeit: no otherwise then gold remaineth gold, whether a godly or ungodly man possess it, and the silver, which judas, who betrayed the Lord, had, was not turned into ashes, but remained that which it was, as truly all the good creatures of God, whosoever have them, do continue toward all things, that which they are: So a patiented mind which is sincere coming of the spirit, continueth like itself, whether it light upon enemies or friends, poor men or rich. But our nature which is full of deceit & plainly corrupt, doth so behave itself, as if that which is gold in the hand of Peter, were turned into a coal in the hand of judas, and it is wont to be patiented and pliant toward rich men, great personages, strangers, friends, and not toward every one, wherefore it is false, vain, lying, hypocritical, and nothing but deceit and mockery before God. Hereof now learn how unpossible sound and entire, that is, spiritual meekness and a patiented mind is unto nature, and how few there be which mark this evil, by reason of that deceitful meekness and patiented mind, though in outward show very goodly, which they show unto certain, thinking that they do well and justly, in that they are more hard and impatient toward some. For so their defiled and filthy nature teacheth them, by her goodly reason, which always judgeth and doth against the spirit and those things that are of the spirit, because as Paul saith: Rom. 8: They that are after the flesh, savour the things of the flesh. But to conclude, it is manifest that the Apostle hath comprehended in these few words the whole life worthy of a Christian, which he ought to lead toward his neighbour. For he that is of a patiented mind, pliant and meek in deed, studieth to deserve well of all men, as well concerning the body as concerning the soul, as well in deed as in words, and doth also bear with a most patiented mind, the offences and malice of others. Where such a mind is, there is also love, joy, peace, long suffering, gentleness, goodness, & what soever is the fruit of the spirit Gal. 5. But here flesh murmureth: If we should endeavour to be so meek and patiented, saith the flesh, that we should take all things in good part of all men, it would come to pass, that no man should be able to keep a piece of bread safely & in peace for the unjust which would abuse our meekness & patiented mind, they would take away all things, yea they would not suffer us to live. Mark how comfortably & abundantly the Apostle doth satisfy this distrusting & foolish cogitation, even from this place unto the end of this text. The Lord is at hand. As though he said: We must make our patiented mind known unto all without fear lest any abuse it to our hurt & hindrance. if there were no Lord or no God, one might fear, when by his meekness and patiented mind he counteth all things alike, and taketh all things in good part, that that would be damage and hurt unto him, but now there not only is a Lord, which governeth all things most justly, but he is also at hand, he can not forget or forsake thee, be thou only of a patiented mind and gentle toward all, let him have the care of thee, nourish, and preserve thee. He hath given Christ the eternal good, how should not he also give things necessary for the belly? He hath far more, then can be taken away from thee, and thou forasmuch as thou hast Christ, hast much more than the whole world. Hereunto pertaineth that which is said Psal. 55: Cast thy burden upon the Lord, and he shall nourish thee. And 1. Pet. 5: Cast all your care on him: for he careth for you. And Christ saith Matth. 6: Behold the fowls of the air and lilies of the field, etc. all which agree with the present consolation of the Apostle, and have the same meaning which these words here have: The Lord is at hand. Christian's must not be careful, but must cast their care on God who careth for them. Be nothing careful. That is, take no care at all for yourselves, let God care for you, who knoweth and is able to do it, whom ye have now known that he is good and gracious. The heathen have not without a cause care of this present life, inasmuch as they are ignorant and do not believe that they have a God who hath care of all, as Christ Matth. 6. said: Be not careful for your life, what ye shall eat, or what ye shall drink: nor yet for your body, what ye shall put on: for after all these things seek the Gentiles, but your heavenly Father knoweth, that ye have need of all these things. Wherefore let the whole world take from thee, and do thee injury, thou shalt always have sufficient, and it can not be that thou shouldest perish with any adversity, unless they have first taken from thee thy God, but who can take him from thee, if thou thyself dost not cast him of? There is no cause therefore that we should be careful, seeing that he is our father and provideth for us, which hath all things in his own hand, even those, which seem to take away those things that be ours from us, and to endamage and hurt us wherein soever they are able. But we have exceeding great cause always to rejoice in the Lord, when we are of a patiented mind toward all men, forasmuch as we are certain, if so be that we believe, that it can by no means come to pass, that good things should be wanting unto us, having Almighty God our favourable and careful father: whom they that have not, let us suffer them to be troubled with cark and care. It ought to be our only care, how we may be void of care, and be found always joyful in God, and meek and of a patiented mind toward men. So without doubt we shall try that which David tried saying: I have been young & now am old, Psal. 37.25. and yet saw I never the righteous forsaken, nor his seed begging their bread. And that which he saith Psal. 40: The Lord careth for me. But in all things let your requests be showed unto God in prayer & supplication with giving of thanks. In these words the Apostle teacheth, how our care is to be cast upon God, and the meaning of that which he saith is this: How the godly must cast their care upon God. Only be not careful, but if any thing chance, which may make you careful (as in deed innumerable such are wont to come unto those that live in the world) so behave yourselves, that ye attempt nothing at all with your care, what soever that shallbe which chanceth unto you, but casting of care, turn yourselves with prayer and supplication unto God, and desire him that he will bring to pass and finish that which yourselves otherwise should in vain have attempted with your care to accomplish. Howbeit desire this with giving of thanks, forasmuch as ye have such a God as hath care of you, and unto whom ye may safely commit all cark and care for you. But he that will not so behave himself when any thing happeneth, but will first weigh all things by his own reason, and order them according to his own judgement, and so take to himself the care of his things, he shall wrap himself in innumerable discommodities, he shall lose all joy and quietness thereby, and yet shall prevail nothing, but labour in vain, & plunge himself so much more in troubles and miseries, that he shall not be able to escape out of them again, which we learn daily both by our own and by other men's experience. Now that which Paul here admonisheth concerning prayer tendeth unto this end, lest that any man should neglect all things & commit them to God, and he himself sleep and do nothing at all, no not so much as once pray for them: for he that should use this slothfulness, albeit he were now quiet, shall easily be wrapped in cares, whereof he shall not be able to rid himself: we must do our endeavour and not sleep, and therefore it is that many things be incident, which are wont to bring carefulness, whereby we might be as it were compelled to pray unto God. Wherefore Paul hath not in vain joined together these two: Be nothing careful, and: In all things let your requests be showed unto God in prayer and supplication with giving of thanks. Nothing and All do in deed greatly differ, howbeit the Apostle therefore put them together, that he might signify that it can not be, but that many and innumerable things be incident, which are wont to bring cark and care, but that in all them we ought to admit no carefulness, but always fly unto prayer, and commit them all unto God, & desire of him those things whereof we have need. Now we must here see how our prayer must be framed, and what is the true manner of praying. The Apostle setteth down four things, prayer, supplication, giving of thinks, and requests or petitions. Prayer. Prayer is those words or speech, wherein as sometimes some thing is desired, so also other things are declared, as is the Lords Prayer and the Psalms. Supplication. Supplication is, when the petition is urged or made more earnest by some thing, as when one prayeth for his father, or for some other thing which is dear and excellent unto him, as when we pray unto God by his mercy, by his son, by his promise, by his name, etc. As Solomon Psal. 132: Lord remember David, and all his trouble. And Paul Rom. 12: I beseech you by the mercies of God. And 2. Cor. 10: I beseech you by the meekness and gentleness of Christ, A petition or request. etc. A petition or request is, when we name that which is desired, and for which prayer and supplication is made, as in the lords Prayer, all that composition of words is called prayer, but those seven things for which we pray, as, hallowed be thy name, thy kingdom come, etc. are petitions. According to that saying Matth. 7: Ask, and it shallbe given you: seek, and ye shall find: knock, and it shallbe opened unto you. For whosoever asketh, receiveth: and he that seeketh findeth: and to him that knocketh, it shallbe opened. Giving of thanks is when the benefits of God are rehearsed, Giving of thanks. whereby faith in God is strengthened, and stirred up so much more confidently to look for that which is desired, & for which we do pray. Wherefore prayer urgeth or earnestly asketh by supplication, but is strengthened and made sweet & acceptable by giving of thanks, and so by this strength and sweetness it prevaileth, and obtaineth, what soever it asketh. This manner of prayer we read to have been used in the Church, and among the holy fathers of the old Testament, which were wont always in their prayers to ask with supplication and giving of thanks. The same also we see in the lords Prayer, which beginneth with giving of thanks and with praise, when as even in the beginning thereof we confess God a father, unto whom the godly mind hath access by his fatherly love and by the love of his son, unto which supplication nothing may be compared, wherefore it is both the best and most excellent prayer of all which may be had. Moreover in these words Paul hath very well expressed the mystery of the golden censer of the old Testament, The mystery of the golden censer declared. whereof we read many things in the books of Moses. It was lawful for the Priests only to burn incense, now all we which believe in Christ, are Priests, wherefore it is lawful for all us, and for us only to burn the incense of prayers. The censer that golden vessel, is the words which we utter in prayer, surely golden and precious, as those are, whereof the lords prayer consisteth, the Psalms and other prayers of the Scripture. For commonly in the Scripture vessels signify words, for that our meanings are contained in words as in a vessel, and by words are uttered and received as out of a vessel, as wine, water, burning coals, and such like, are contained in vessels, and taken out of vessels. So by the cup of Babylon Apoc. 17. the doctrine of men is understood, and by the cup wherein the blood of Christ is drunk the Gospel. Furthermore burning coals, What is signified by the burning coals, whereon the incense was laid. whereupon the frankincense was laid, signify giving of thanks, and rehearsing of benefits in prayer, which we are wont to do in making supplication. For, that by fiery coals benefits are signified it is manifest even out of the 12. to the Rom. where the Apostle reciteth the saying of Solomon Proverb. 25: If thine enemy hunger, feed him: if he thirst, give him drink: for in so doing thou shalt heap coals of fire on his head. And benefits may be rightly called coals of fire, forasmuch as they inflame the heart with love, although it be cold. In the Law it was prohibited to lay the frankincense upon any other coals, but them that were of the altar of the Lord, which signifieth, that we must not rehearse our own good deeds in prayer, as that Pharisee did, Luc. 15: but only the benefits of God bestowed upon us in Christ. He is our altar, We must give thanks to God by Christ. by him we must offer, for the benefits received by him we must give thanks, and make mention of them in prayer for the increasing of our faith. This Paul teacheth Coloss. 3. where he saith: Do all things in the name of the Lord jesus, giving thanks to God the Father by him. For God can not suffer, that thou shouldest glory of any thing else in his sight, which he declared in a type or figure levit. 10, where we read that Nadah and Abihu the sons of Aaron were taken and consumed of the flame from the altar of God, because they burned incense taking other fire then of the altar of the Lord. The works of Christ only are acceptable to God, wherefore for these only we must both give thanks and rejoice in prayer. The petitions made in prayer signified by the incense laid on the burning coals. The incense signifieth the petitions made in prayer. For petitions are, whereof prayer consisteth, and which ascend unto God, according as Paul saith: Let your petitions be showed unto God, wherein he seemeth to have considered and interpreted them as a savour ascending from the censer. As though he had said: when ye will burn incense sweet and acceptable unto the Lord, make, that your petitions be showed unto God with supplication and giving of thanks, this incense and this savour as it is most sweet unto God, so doth it ascend strait unto heaven, like vapours of smoke, and entereth even unto the throne of God. And as burning coals do give a strong savour and make it ascend upward: so the memory of the benefits of God, which we rehearse by giving of thanks, and whereof we do as it were advertise God and ourselves, doth make prayer steadfast and bold, which cheerfully and gladly ascendeth into heaven, without which truly prayer fainteth, is cold and of no force. Wherefore whosoever thou art, before thou pray with faith and effectually, they heart must be inflamed with the memory of the benefits, which God hath bestowed upon us in Christ. But perhaps some man will demand, how our petitions be showed or become manifest unto God, seeing that they be not only known unto him before we pray, but he also doth send us that, which we ask? Whereunto I answer: the Apostle adjoined this, that he might teach, of what sort true prayer ought to be, We must not pray at adventure but be certainly persuaded that we shallbe heard of God. to wit, assured and having confidence and trust in God, which passeth not away into the wind, neither is made at adventure, as their prayer is, which pray, and have no regard, whether God heareth or not, yea rather believe that he doth not hear, which undoubtedly is not to pray or to ask of God, but to tempt and mock God. For if any man did desire money of me, whom I certainly knew, not to persuade himself that he should receive it, I could not suffer such an asker, of whom I might assure myself to be mocked: how much more is God offended at our much crying out and babbling, when we do continually babble much & cry out, & do not think at all whether he heareth us. Learn therefore here, How our petitions are showed unto God. that they petitions must be showed unto God, that is, that thou must so ask, that thou doubt not, that they petitions be known and accepted of God, and believe certainly, that thou shalt obtain what soever thou dost ask, with which faith if thou be endued, it shall so come unto thee in deed. For as we belteve, so it cometh unto us. Wherefore, as the smoke carrieth the savour upward from the censer: so faith carrieth the petitions of the believers into the sight of God, whereby we assuredly believe, that our petitions shall come unto God, and that we shall undoubtedly obtain those things that we ask. Paul by these words [be showed] did undoubtedly mean that, which is eftsoons in the Psalms: God hath heard my petition, Give ear Lord unto my prayer, and such like. Hereof Christ speaketh Matth, 21, and Mar. 11. Whatsoever ye shall ask in prayer, if ye believe, ye shall receive it. And james saith chap. 1: Ask in faith and waver not, for he that wavereth shall receive nothing of the Lord. Who may not now hereof perceive, that that much babbling and crying out, which is made commonly through the world in monasteries, is a mocking and deluding of God? The prayers of these, if they may be called prayers, are abundantly showed before men, for they cry out and babble too much, but there is no regard of them with God, they are not known of him, neither come they unto his ears, that is, he doth by no means hear them, for that they do not believe, or are assured, that their crying out or much babbling is heard of God, wherefore as they believe, so do they receive. It was time therefore long since, that those mockings and blasphemies of God should be abolished. But if we pray as we are here taught, there shallbe nothing surely which we may not obtain. Why we oftentimes pray and receive not. Now we pray for many things continually, and receive nothing, neither is it any marvel, seeing we pray so, that our petitions be not showed unto God, for that we do not believe that they be manifest unto him. woe to our diffidence and incredulity. And the peace of God which passeth all understanding, shall preserve your hearts and minds in Christ jesus. In how goodly an order doth Paul here instruct a Christian man? First he teacheth him to be glad and joyful in the Lord by faith: secondly to show himself meek and gentle to all his neighbours. And if thou say, how can I do that without loss or hindrance? he answereth: The Lord is at hand. If thou again object: But what if men persecute me, and even bereave me of that I have? He addeth: be nothing careful, but let thy petitions be showed unto God. Where if the flesh again murmur, what if in the mean season I be oppressed and spoiled? he concludeth that there shallbe nothing less, the peace of God shall preserve and keep thee, whereof I must now entreat somewhat. The peace of God. By the peace of God is not meant here that peace, whereby God is peaceable and quiet in himself, but that which he giveth unto us, and poureth into our hearts, even as also it is called the word of God which he giveth us, that we may preach it and believe it. So when he giveth this peace unto us, it is called the peace of God, even because we have the same with him, when in the world notwithstanding we suffer affliction. Now this peace passeth all understanding, reason, and knowledge of man: which is not so to be understood, as though man can not at all perceive or know it, for if we have peace with God, truly it must be felt in our heart and conscience, otherwise our hearts and minds could not be preserved by it, but it is thus to be understood▪ When tribulation cometh upon them, which know not to fly unto God with prayer and supplication, but trust to their own wisdom and care, whereby they seek peace, but that which reason is able to know, which is that, whereby tribulation taketh an end, and is changed with outward tranquillicie: this peace doth not pass reason, but is agreeable unto it, inasmuch as it is sought and found out of it. Wherefore they that are void of faith are exceedingly disquieted, and troubled until according to the reason of the flesh they obtain this peace by heardly delivering or ridding themselves of adversity, not regarding whether they bring that to pass by force or by craft, as he that hath received a wound seeketh to have it healed, The peace which the faithful enjoy. etc. But they that rejoice sincerely in the Lord, it is sufficient for them, that they know that they have God favourable unto them, and have assured peace with him, they abide willingly in tribulation, being nothing careful for that peace of reason by the removing of outward troubles, but they endure them valiantly, looking to be strengthened inwardly by faith, taking no care whether the adversities which they suffer, shall remain a short or a long time, whether they shallbe temporal or continuing, neither are disquieted with caring what end they shall have. They commit all things to God, seeking not to know, when, how, where, or by whom he will give them quietness. Wherefore God again showeth them this favour, that he maketh the end of their trial to be such, and with so great commodity, as no man could either suspect or wish for. Lo, this is that peace of the cross, the peace of God, the peace of conscience, true Christian peace, which maketh that a man outwardly also, as much as is in him, liveth quietly and peaceably with all men, & troubleth no man. This peace reason is not able by any means to know or comprehend, that a man under the cross may have quietness of mind and joy of heart, and peace even in the very invasion of his enemies: this is the gift and work of God, known to none, but to him that hath it, and hath tried it. Whereas Paul said: Rom. 15.13. Now the God of hope fill you with all joy & peace in believing, that which he calleth in these words, peace in believing, he calleth in our present text the peace of God. Moreover Paul signifieth in these words, that whosoever will rejoice in the Lord by faith, and be meek and of a patiented mind toward all by love, the Devil undoubtedly is against him, The Devil laboureth to hinder and stay the godly proceed of the faithful. and will raise up some cross, that he may drive him from so Christian a purpose, wherefore the Apostle will have every one to be prepared against this assault of Satan, and to place his peace there where Satan can not trouble it, namely in God, and not think how he may cast of the cross, but suffer the adversary to take on, and rage as he list, he in the mean season patiently looking for the Lord, that he coming may make an end of adversity and trouble: for by this means his mind, heart and conscience are preserved and kept in peace. Neither can patience endure, where the heart is not confirmed with this peace, for that he only which hath this peace doth thoroughly persuade himself that God is favourable unto him, & careful for him, and maketh no account what chanceth unto him from creatures. Moreover let no man understand here the hearts and minds to be the will and knowledge of nature, but as Paul himself interpreteth, the hearts and minds in Christ jesus, that is, such as we have in Christ, of Christ, and under Christ. These are the hearts and minds which faith and love cause, with which they that be endued, do behave themselves most godly toward God, and most lovingly and gently toward their neighbour. Toward God they so behave themselves, that they believe in him, and love him with their whole heart, and are also most ready, with their whole heart and with all their cogitations to do those things which shallbe acceptable to God and their neighbours, as much as, yea more than they are able. Such hearts and minds the Devil goeth about with the fear of death and other troubles to terrify and drive from this godliness, erecting a false hope there against by the devices and imaginations of men, wherewith the mind is seduced, that it may seek to be comforted and helped of itself or other creatures, which if it do, surely he hath drawn such a man from the care of God, and wrapped him in his own vain care. Thus hast thou godly reader, out of this short text a most plentiful instruction of Christian life, how thou must live toward God and thy neighbour, namely that thou must believe that God is all things unto thee, and thou again must be all things unto thy neighbours, that thou must show thyself such a one to thy neighbour, as God hath showed himself to thee, that thou must receive of God and give to thy neighbour: All which are contained in faith and love, the whole sum of all Christianity. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER, CONCERNING THEM THAT BE UNDER THE Law, and them that be under Grace. Gal. 4. Verse 1. THen I say, that the heir as long as he is a child, differeth nothing from a servant, though he be Lord of all, 2. But is under tuters and governors, until the time appointed of the father. 3. Even so, we when we were children, were in bondage under the rudiments of the world. 4. But when the fullness of time was come, God sent forth his Son made of a woman, and made under the Law, 5. That he might redeem them which were under the Law, that we might receive the adoption of the sons. 6. And because ye are sons, God hath sent forth the Spirit of his Son into your hearts, which crieth, Abba, Father. 7. Wherefore now thou art not a servant, but a son: if thou be a son, thou art also an heir of God through Christ. THis text toucheth the very pith of Paul's chief doctrine, the cause why it is well understood of so few, is not, for that it is so obscure and hard, but because there is almost no knowledge of faith left in the world, without which it can not be that one should rightly understand Paul, who every where entreateth of faith with such force of the spirit as he is able. I must therefore speak somewhat, that this text may be made plain, and that I may more conveniently bring light unto it in expounding it, I will speak a few words in manner of a preface. First therefore we must understand that that treatise, wherein is entreated of good works, doth far differ from that wherein is entreated of justification, as there is very great difference between the substance and the working, between a man & his work. Now justification is of man, and not of works: for man is either justified and saved, or judged and condemned, and not works. Neither is it in controversy among the godly, that man is justified by no work, but righteousness must come unto him from some other where, then from his own works. For Moses writeth of Abel after this sort: The Lord had respect unto Abel, and to his oblation. God first regardeth the man, and then the work. First he had respect to Abel himself, then to his oblation, because that Abel was first counted righteous, entire, and acceptable unto God, and then for his sake his oblation also was allowed, and not he because of his oblation. Again, God had no respect to Cain, and therefore neither to his oblation: where again thou seest, that regard is had first of the worker then of the work. Of this place it is very plainly gathered, that no work can be allowed of God, whereas he which worketh that work, was not first acceptable to him: and again, that no work is disallowed of him, unless the author thereof be disallowed before. I think that these things willbe sufficient concerning this matter in this place, of which it is easy to understand, that there are two sorts of works: some going before justification, and some following it, and that these last are good works in deed, but that those other do only appear to be good. Hereof cometh such disagreement between God, and those counterfeit holy ones, for this cause nature and reason rise and rage against the holy Ghost, this is that whereof almost all the whole Scripture entreateth. The Lord in his word defineth, that all works that go before justification, are evil, and of no importance, and requireth that man himself before all things be justified. Again, Man before he is regenerate can do nothing that is good. he pronounceth all men, which are not yet regenerate, and have not changed that nature, which they received of their parents, with the new creature of Christ, to be unrighteous and wicked, according to that saying Psal. 116: All men are liars, that is, unable to perform their duty, and to do those things, which by right they ought. And Gen. 6: The heart of man is always ready unto evil, whereby undoubtedly it cometh to pass, that he is able to do nothing that is good, which hath the fountain of actions, that is his heart, corrupted. And if he do many works which in outward show seem good, God hath regard first to the worker then to the work, reason doth quite contrary, affirming that by his works the worker is justified. they are no better than the oblation of Cain. Here against cometh forth reason our reverend masters seeming to herself marvelous wise, yet in deed is unwise and blind, and is not ashamed to gainsay her God, & to reprove him of lying, she being furnished with her follies and very strawie armour, to wit, the light of nature, free will, the strength of nature, also with the books of the heathen and with the doctrines of men. She dareth with her evil sounding strings make a noise against God, that the works of a man even not yet justified, are good works, and not works like unto cain's, (which God pronounceth) yea and so good, that he that worketh them is justified by them. For so Aristotle hath taught, that he that worketh well is made good. Unto this saying she leaveth and sticketh unmovably, and wresteth the Scripture clean contrary, contending that God will have respect first to the works, them to the worker. Such very devilish doctrine beareth the sway now every where in schools, colleges & monasteries, wherein no other saints, than Cain was, have rule and authority. Now of this error an other immediately springeth. They which attribute so much to works, & do not accordingly esteem the worker and sound justification, go so far, that they ascribe all merit and sovereign righteousness to works done before justification, making almost no account of faith, alleging that which james saith, that without works it is dead. Which sentence of the Apostle when they little understand, they attribute almost nothing to faith, they always stick to works, whereby they think they do merit exceedingly of God, and are persuaded that for their works sake they shall obtain the favour of God, and by this means do they continually disagree with God, showing themselves to be the right posterity of Cain. God hath respect unto man, these to the works of man: God alloweth the works for his sake that worketh, these require that for the works sake the worker may be crowned. Now God goeth not from his sentence, as it is meet and just, and these will seem nothing less than to err in any respect. They will not have their good works contemned, reason to be nothing esteemed, free will to be counted uneffectual, or surely, if thou dost here strive against them, they begin to be angry with God, and count it a small matter to kill their brother Abel. But here perhaps thou wilt say: what is needful to be done? by what means shall I first of all become righteous, and acceptable to God? How shall I attain to this perfect justification? The Gospel answereth, preaching that it is necessary that thou hear Christ, and repose thyself wholly in him, denying thyself, & distrusting all thine own strength. By this means thou shalt be changed from Cain to Abel, & being thyself acceptable, shalt offer acceptable gifts to the Lord. This faith, as it is preached unto thee for no merit of thine own, so is it given unto thee for no deserving of thine, but of mere grace. And this faith justifieth thee, thou being endued herewith the Lord remitteth all thy sins, and that by the contemplation of Christ his son, in whom this faith believeth and trusteth. Moreover he giveth unto such a faith his spirit, which doth thoroughly change a man and make him new, so that now he hath other reason, and an other will, than before, namely that which is ready unto good. Such a one worketh nothing but good works, neither can it be but good, which he being good before, shall do, whereof I have spoken somewhat before. Wherefore nothing else is required unto justification, What is required to justification. then to hear jesus Christ our Saviour, and to believe in him, howbeit neither of these is the work of nature, but both of only grace. He therefore that goeth about to attain hereunto by works, shutteth the way to the Gospel, to faith, grace, Christ, God, and all things that help unto salvation. Again, unto good works there is need only of justification, which he that hath attained, doth work only good works, and beside such a one none. Hereof it sufficiently appeareth, that the beginning, the things following, and the order of man's salvation are after this sort. First of all is required, that thou hear the word of God, next that thou believe, then that thou do work, & so at the last become saved and happy. He which changeth this order, without doubt is not of God. Paul also describeth this order Rom. 10, saying: Whosoever shall call upon the Name of the Lord, shallbe saved. But how shall they call on him, in whom they have not believed? and how shall they believe in him, of whom they have not heard? and how shall they hear without a preacher? and how shall they preach, except they be sent? Therefore Christ teacheth us to pray the Lord of the harvest, that he would send forth labourers into his harvest, that is, sincere preachers. When we hear these preach the true word of God, we may believe, which faith justifieth a man, and maketh him godly in deed, that he now calleth upon God in the spirit of the sons, and worketh nothing but that which is good, and thus becometh a man saved. Which is no other thing, then if I say: He that believeth shallbe saved. Again, he that worketh without faith is condemned, as Christ saith: He that doth not believe shallbe condemned, from which no works shall deliver him. Confer now herewith those things which are wont commonly to be spoken of honesty and righteousness. Are they not wont thus to say? I will endeavour, that I may yet become honest. It is meet surely that we study to lead an honest life and to do good works. Well, admit this to be so. But if one then ask them how we may apply ourselves unto honesty, and by what means we may attain unto it: they answer, that we must fast, pray, frequent temples, avoid sins etc. Hypocritical & counterfeit holiness. Hereupon one becometh a Charterhouse Monk, an other chooseth some other order of monks: an other is consecrated a Priest: some torment their flesh by wearing hear cloth: other scourge their bodies with whips, other afflict themselves after other sorts. But these are even of cain's brood, & their works are no whit better than the works of Cain. For the man himself continueth the same that he was before, ungodly, and without all justification: there is a certain change made only of outward works, of apparel, of places etc. Neither are these any other than very apes of saints, for they do preposterously imitate the manners & works of saints, when as they themselves are nothing less than saints. They scarce think of faith, they presume only of such works as seem good unto themselves, thinking by them to come unto heaven. Of whom Christ said: Enter in at the strait gate: for I say unto you, many seek to enter in at it, & can not. Why is this? because they know not what this narrow gate is. For it is faith, which doth altogether annihilate or make a man nothing in his own eyes, & requireth that he put no trust in any of his own works, but that he lean only to the grace of God, & be prepared for it to leave & suffer all things. But those holy ones of cain's brood think their good works to be the narrow gate, & are not therefore extenuated, or made less, whereby they might enter: they do not leave confidence in their works, but gathering them together in great cowls, they hang them about them, and so go about to enter in being burdened, and as it were swollen big, which is as possible for them, as for a camel with his bounched back to go through the eye of a needle. When thou shalt begin to preach unto these of faith, they laugh and hiss at thee: Dost thou count us, say they, for Turks and Heathen, whom it behoveth now first to learn faith? Is there such a company of Priests, Monks and Nuns, & is not faith known? Who knoweth not what he ought to believe? even manifest sinners know that. And being after this sort animated and stirred up, they think that they be abundantly endued with faith, and that the rest is now to be finished & made perfect by works. Whereupon they make too small & slender account of faith, as I have said, because they are ignorant both what faith is, & that it alone doth justify. They call it faith, when they believe those things which they have heard of Christ, which kind of faith the Devils also have, & yet are nothing therefore justified: but this deserveth to be called rather an opinion of men than faith. For as we do oftentimes admonish, it is not sufficient, that thou mayest worthily be called a Christian, to believe those things to be true, which are preached of Christ, which kind of faith they of cain's brood also have: A true faith. but thou must also nothing doubt, that thou art of the number of them, unto whom all those benefits of Christ are given & exhibited. Which he that believeth, must plainly confess, that he is holy, godly, righteous, the son of God, and certain of salvation, & that by no merit of his own, but by the only mercy of God poured forth upon him for Christ's sake. Which he beleeeveth to be so rich and plentiful, as it is in deed, that although he be as it were drowned in sins, he is notwithstanding thereby made holy & the son of God. Whereof if he should any thing doubt, he should procure exceeding ignominy & reproach to baptism which he hath received, & to the Lords supper, & also reprove the word & grace of God of falsehood. Wherefore take heed that thou nothing doubt, that thou art the son of God, & therefore righteous, by his grace, let all fear & care be here away. Howbeit thou must fear & tremble that thou mayst persever such a one unto the end: Thou must not being in this case, be careful that thou mayst become righteous & saved, but that thou mayst persever and continued. Neither must thou do this, as though it consisted in thine own strength, for all thy righteousness & salvation is of only grace, whereunto only thou must trust: But when thou knowest that it is of grace alone, & that they faith also is the gift of God, thou shalt for good cause live in fear & care, lest that any tentation do violently move thee from this faith. Hereunto pertaineth that which is written in the 9 chap. of Ecclesiastes: The righteous & wise, yea and their servants also are in the hand of God, & there is no man that knoweth either love or hate, but all things are before them. It happeneth unto one as unto an other, etc. For the present time every one by faith is certain of his salvation, but constantly to stand and persever, as it is the gift of the Lord, and not in our own strength, so ought we always to have a care and fear thereof. When they of cain's brood hear faith to be entreated of after this sort, they can not sufficiently marvel at our madness, as it seems unto them. God turn this away from me, say they, that I should affirm myself holy and godly, far be this arrogancy and rashness from me. I am many ways a miserable sinner, I should be mad, if I should arrogate holiness unto myself. And thus they mock at true faith, and count such doctrine as this for execrable error, and go about with might and main to extinguish the Gospel. These are they that deny the faith of Christ, deniers of the faith of Christ. & persecute it in the whole world, of whom Paul speaketh 1. Tim. 4: In the latter times many shall departed from the faith, etc. For we see it brought to pass by the means of these, that true faith lieth every where oppressed, is not only not preached, but also commonly disallowed and condemned, with all them that either teach or profess it. The Pope, Bishops, Colleges, Monasteries, and Universities have now above five hundred years persecuted it with one mind and consent, yea and that marvelous stiffly and obstinately, and have done no other thing unto the world, but every where as much as they were able driven many unto hell. Which truly both hath been and is that last and most hurtful persecution of Antichrist: The Lord at the last bring it to an end. If any object against the admiration or rather mad senselessness of these men, that we do nothing but that that is meet, if we count ourselves even holy, trusting to the goodness of God justifying us, seeing that David prayed thus: Preserve thou me, Psal 86.2. Rom. 8.16. O Lord, for I am holy. And for that Paul saith▪ The Spirit of God beareth witness with our Spirit that we are the children of God; They answer that the Prophet and Apostle would not teach us in these words, or give us an example, which we should follow, but that they being peculiarly and special enlightened, received such revelation of themselves that they were holy. And after this sort they misinterpret and wrest whatsoever place of the Scriptures affirmeth that we are holy, saying that such doctrines are not written for us, but that they are rather peculiar miracles and prerogatives as they call them, which do not belong to all. Which forged imagination we account of, as having come from their sick brain, who when as they be themselves void of faith, and savour nothing of the spirit, think and contend, that there be none which have sound faith and the spirit, whereby surely they believe themselves to be thorns and thistles, not Christians, but rather enemies and destroyers of Christians, and persecutors of the Christian faith. Again, they are of this belief, that they shall be righteous & holy by their own works, and that because of them God will give unto them salvation and eternal blessedness. The Papists attribute more to their own works then to God his grace. But here see the madness of men: in their opinion and judgement it is a Christian thing, to think that we shall be righteous and saved because of our works, and to believe that these things are given by the grace of God, they condemn as heretical. They attribute that to their own works which they attribute not to the grace of God: they affirm that they do save us, and not this: they trust to works, they can not trust to God's grace: which blindness worthily cometh unto them, inasmuch as they will not build upon the rock, let them build upon the sand, & so be drowned by their own means, that by their own works and satisfactions they may torment themselves even unto death, gratifying Satan herein, for that they will not rest upon the grace of God, & serve the Lord with a gentle and sweet service. They that are endued with a true faith, are both joyful in God, and dutiful toward their neighbours. For they that are endued with true faith, and do rest upon the grace of the Lord, it is marvelous, how they are in God, by his goodness, of most quiet minds, and greatly rejoicing with holy joy: whereupon they do also with pleasure apply themselves to good works, not to such as these of cain's brood do, as to feigned prayers, fasting, base & filthy apparel, & such like trifles, but to true & right good works, whereby their neighbour is profited, and from whence no small commodity redoundeth unto men. Moreover, they are of most ready minds to suffer whatsoever things, inasmuch as they are certain that God doth favour them, and hath a care of them. These are right honest and profitable men, of whom both God is glorified, & men much profited. When as those of cain's brood serve to no use, either before God or before men, no, they do not so much as profit themselves, but are only an unprofitable lump of earth, yea not only unprofitable, but exceeding pernicious and hurtful also both to themselves, and to others. For inasmuch as they are destitute of true faith, they can not give unto God his due glory, Where true faith is wanting, there neither God can be duly glorified, not true good works done nor do those good works which may truly profit their neighbour. For those works that they apply themselves unto, are their own inventions, consisting in gestures, apparel, places, times, meats and such like trifles, whereby their neighbour can be helped neither in body, nor mind, nor in any thing else. For what can it profit me that thy crown is shaven very broad: that thou wearest a grey cowl: what profit bringeth it, that thou fastest to day, and keepest holy day to morrow: that thou abstainest from this meat, and eatest that: that thou remainest in this place: that thou readest and mumblest up daily so many words? Surely thou dost nothing else by these, but torment thyself to please Satan, and to be a pernicious and hurtful example to thy neighbours: for there is no Christianity in thy life being such. Thou believest not as it behoveth a Christian to believe, and therefore neither dost thou pray Christianly: Thy fasting also is not true chastising of thy body, but rashly taken upon thee in steed of a good work: In a sum, this thy service and study of religion is no other thing, then in time passed among the jews was the religion of Moloch and Baal, in the honour of whom they did kill and burn even their own children. So pernicious and pestilent an example is this thy holiness, which seemeth so goodly unto thee, which when it marvelously counterfaiteth a show of godliness, it draweth miserable men to the following thereof, and utterly extinguisheth true religion. Here perhaps some godly man will think: If the matter be so, and our works do not save us, but only to hear Christ and believe in him, who is given unto us of the Father to be our righteousness and salvation, to what end then are so many precepts given unto us, and why doth God so severely require that they be obeyed? The present text of the Apostle shall give unto us the solution of this question, and upon this fit occasion we will now enter into the exposition thereof. The Galathians being taught of Paul the faith of Christ, but afterwards seduced by false Apostles, thought that the matter of our salvation must be finished & made perfect by the works of the law, and that only faith doth not suffice. These Paul calleth back again from works unto faith with great diligence, and words marvelous effectual, plainly proving that the works of the law which go before saith, do make us only servants, and be of no importance to godliness & salvation: but that faith doth make us the sons of God, & that from thence true good works do without constraint forth with most plentifully flow. But here we must accustom ourselves to the words of the Apostle: Whom Paul calleth a servant, and whom a son in the text which is here entreated of. He calleth him a servant that is occupied in works without faith, whereof we have already entreated at large: he calleth him a son, which is righteous and liveth by faith alone, without works. The reason hereof is this: this servant, although he apply himself to good works, yet he doth it not with that mind, with which a son doth, that is with a mind that is free, willing, & certain that the inheritance and all the good things of the Father are his: but doth it as he that is hired with a stipend in an other man's house, who hopeth not that the inheritance shall come unto him. The works in deed of the son and the servant are like, & almost all one according to the outward appearance, but their minds do differ exceeding much, and their hope is nothing like, even as Christ himself saith: The servant abideth not in the house for ever: but the son abideth for ever. joh. 8. These of cain's brood want the faith of sons, which they themselves confess for they think it a most absurd thing, & wicked arrogancy, to affirm themselves to be the sons of God and holy, therefore as they believe, even so are they counted before God, they never become the sons of God, or holy, nevertheless they are exercised with the works of the law, and are well wearied, wherefore they are and remain servants for ever. And they receive no other reward, but these temporal things, namely, quietness of life, abundance of goods, dignity and honours, etc. Which we see to be usual among the followers of Popish religion, than whom there is none at this day that liveth more pleasantly, more wealthily, more gloriously and honourably. But this is their reward, they are servants and not sons, wherefore in death they shall be thrust from all good things, neither shall any portion of eternal inheritance come unto them, who in this present life would believe nothing thereof. So therefore it is that servants and sons are not much unlike in works, but in mind and faith they are most unlike. Now the Apostle endeavoureth here to prove, (which in deed is the very matter) that the law with all the works thereof doth make us no other than servants, if this faith in Christ, whereof we have spoken, be away. For that alone doth make us the sons of God. Neither the law nor nature can give it, only the Gospel bringeth it, when it is heard with an holy silence of mind. It is the word of grace, which the holy Ghost doth forthwith follow, as it is showed in very many places, and specially Act. 10: where we read, that the holy Ghost did by and by fall on Cornelius and his family hearing the preaching of Peter. The law why it was given. Moreover the law was given for this, that we might learn by it, how void we are of grace, and how far from being of the mind of sons, yea that we are plainly of a servile mind. For we being left to ourselves, can in no wise be free from the law, neither if we do any good thing, do we it willingly, forasmuch as that faith of sons is wanting, wherewith he that is endued, knoweth assuredly, that the eternal inheritance shall come unto him, and is of his own accord inclined and bend, with a willing and ready spirit to do those things that are good. Now these men do willingly confess that they are void of this faith, and if they would confess the truth in deed, they should also plainly confess, that they had far rather be without all law, and that they are against their wills subject thereunto. Wherefore all things are among them constrained, and void of faith, and they are in very deed compelled to confess that by the law they can not attain any further. Which one thing they ought to learn by the law, and know, that they are servants, and have nothing belonging to sons, whereby they might be inflamed with desire to come from servitude to the state and condition of sons: and might make no account of their own things, as in deed they ought to do, that God of his grace might advance them unto an other state by faith. Now this were a sound understanding of the law, and the true use thereof, whereof this is the office, The office of the law. to reprove and convince men hereof, that they are servants and not sons, as many as follow the law without faith, and that they do exercise themselves therein plainly against their wills, and with no confidence of grace. For it causeth and maketh such to be offended at it, and learn by it, how unprepared and unwilling they are to that which is good, inasmuch as they are void of faith, whereby it moveth them to seek help some other where, and not to presume of their own strength to satisfy it. For it requireth a ready will, and hearts of sons, which alone can satisfy it: it utterly refuseth servants, and them that be unwilling. But these of cain's brood do not only of their own accord confess, that they want this faith, which maketh the sons of God, but also they persecute it: they feel and know also full well, how unwillingly they bear the law, and had rather to be free from it, nevertheless they think that they shall become righteous by these their unwilling and constrained works. They will continue servants, & will not be changed into sons, and yet they would enjoy the goods of a strange father. They do all things clean out of order: whereas by the law they ought to learn, that they are servants, and unwilling to do that which is good, and therefore should by faith aspire to the state of sons, notwithstanding they go so far that they seek to satisfy and fulfil it by their own works only. And thereby they do altogether hinder the end of the law, and strive against faith and grace, whereunto if they were not blind, the law would direct and drive them: And so they continue always, a blind, blockish, and miserable people. These things Paul teacheth Rom. 3. and 7. and doth freely pronounce that no man is justified before God by the works of the law, No man is justified by the law. adding no other cause hereof, than this, for that the knowledge of sin only cometh by the law. If thou wilt know how this cometh to pass, consider well some one of cain's brood, and thou shalt by and by see it verified. First he worketh his works according to the law, with great grief and labour, and yet he therewith confesseth, that he is uncertain whether he be the son of God, and holy. Yea he condemneth and curseth this faith, as the most pernicious arrogancy and error of all other, and will continue in his doubting, until he be made certain by his works. Here thou seest plainly that such a man is not good or righteous, seeing that he wanteth this faith and belief, that he is counted acceptable before God, and his son, yea he is an enemy of this faith, and therefore of righteousness also: Wherefore neither can his works be counted good, although they pretend a fair show of fulfilling the law. And thus is it easy to understand that which Paul saith: that no man is justified before God by the works of the law. For the worker must be justified before God, before he worketh any good thing, although before men, which esteem a man by outward things, and not by the mind, they are counted righteous which apply themselves to the doing of good works. For men judge the worker by the works, God judgeth the works by the worker. Now the first precept requireth, that we acknowledge & worship one God, that is, that we trust and rest in him alone, which in deed is the true faith, whereby we become the sons of God. But how easy is it by this precept to know, that sin is both in him of cain's brood, & in thyself, inasmuch as both of you want such a faith, even by your own nature? which thou couldst not know but by means of this law. And this is that which Paul meaneth when he saith: That by the law cometh the knowledge of sin. Rom. 3.20. Now thou canst be delivered from this evil of infidelity, neither by thine own power, nor by the power of the law, wherefore all thy works whereby thou goest about to satisfy the law, can be nothing but works of the law, of far less importance, then that they are able to justify thee before God: who counteth them only righteous, which truly believe in him, for they only acknowledge him the true God, are his sons, and do truly fulfil the law. But if thou shouldest even kill thyself with works, yet is it so far of, that thy heart can obtain this faith thereby, that thy works are even a hindrance that thou canst not know it, yea they are a cause that thou dost persecute it. Hereupon it is, that he that studieth to fulfil the law without faith, is afflicted for the devils sake, and not for God's sake, and continueth a persecutor both of faith and of the law, until he come to himself, and doth plainly cease to trust in himself and in his own works, doth give this glory unto God, who justifieth the ungodly, acknowledgeth himself to be nothing, and figheth for God his grace, whereof he doth now know, being taught by the law, that he hath need. Then faith and grace come, and fill him being empty, satisfy him being hungry, by and by follow good works, which are truly good: Neither are they now the works of the law, but of the spirit, of faith and grace, and they are called in the Scriptures the works of God, which he worketh in us. For whatsoever we do of our own power & strength, All that we do of ourselves being not assisted by the grace of God, is evil. and is not wrought in us by his grace, without doubt it is a work of the law, and availeth nothing to justification, but is both evil and hated of God, because of the infidelity wherein it is done. Again, whatsoever he of cain's brood worketh, he doth nothing from his heart, nothing freely and with a willing mind, except he be as it were hired with some reward, or be commanded to do some such thing, whereunto he ought otherwise to be ready of himself: Even as an evil and unthrifty servant suffereth himself to be brought to no work, unless he be hired with a reward, or commanded, whereunto he ought otherwise to be willing of himself. Now how unpleasant is it to a man to have such servants? But they of cain's brood be plainly such, they would do no good work at all, if they were not either compelled by the fear of hell, or alured by the hope of present good things. Whereby again thou seest, that these have no mind to the law, they gape only for gain, or are moved with fear, whereby they bewray themselves, that they do rather hate the law from their heart, and had liefer that there were no law at all: Wherefore it is plainly manifest, that they are not good, and consequently that neither their works be good: for how should evil men work good works? Moreover those their works, which in appearance & show seem to be good, are either wrested from them by fear, or are bought with promises. An evil heart can do nothing that is good. But this naughtiness of the heart & unwillingness to do good, the law bewrayeth when it teacheth, that God doth not greatly esteem, what the hand doth, but what the heart doth: which, seeing it hateth the law that is good, who will deny it to be most evil. Surely it is a sin to be against the law, which is very good. Thus therefore sin is known by the law, according as Paul teacheth, forasmuch as we learn thereby, how our affection is not set on that which is good, What the knowledge of sin which cometh by the law, aught to work in us. which ought to terrify us, and drive us to cease to trust in ourselves, and to long after the grace of God, whereby this naughtiness of the heart may be taken away, and our mind may become such, as is of itself ready to good things, and loveth the law, which voluntarily, not for any fear of punishment, or respect of reward, but because it doth of it own accord like well of the law, and love righteousness, worketh those things which are truly good: By this means only one is made of a servant a son, of a slave an heir. Which mind and spirit thou shalt receive by no other means, then by faith in Christ, as it is before spoken at large. Now let us come to entreat of the text of Paul. Verse 1. The heir as long as he is a child, differeth nothing from a servant, though he be Lord of all. He propoundeth a similitude taken of the custom of men. For we see that the children, unto whom their parents have left some substance, be brought up no otherwise then if they were servants. They are fed and clothed with their goods, but they are not permitted to do with them, nor to use them according to their own mind, but are ruled with fear & discipline of manners, that so even in their own inheritance they live no otherwise then as servants. After the same sort is it also in spiritual things. The similitude of Paul applied. God made unto the elect a covenant, when he promised that it should come to pass that in the seed of Abraham, that is in Christ, all nations should be blessed, Gen. 22. That covenant was afterward confirmed by the death of Christ, and revealed and published abroad by the preaching of the Gospel. What the Gospel is. For the Gospel is no other thing, than an open and general preaching of this grace, that in Christ blessing and grace is laid up for all men, which so many only shall receive as shall believe. Now before that this covenant is truly opened and made manifest to men, the sons of God live after the manner of servants under the law, and are exercised with the works of the law, although they can not be justified by them, inasmuch as they are servile, and do nothing avail to justification as it is said before: Notwithstanding, because they are even then predestinate to life, when they are after the manner of servants held under the law, they are true heirs of heavenly good things, that is, of this blessing and grace of this covenant: albeit they as yet do not know, or enjoy it, but are wearied with works no otherwise then other that are void of faith. So at this day thou mayest find not a few, which now having faith, as they are the sons of God, so do they also enjoy the grace of God in the liberty of the sons, when as a little before being drowned in works, they knew nothing at all of faith, being in all things like unto other hypocrites. Nevertheless, because they were before the foundation of the world appointed of God unto this faith and state of sons, they were even then the sons of God before, when they were as yet altogether ignorant of faith. There are some also which being as yet as it were drowned in works, are like to servants and those of cain's brood, who notwithstanding before God are sons and heirs, which shall be brought unto the faith of sons, leaving the state of servants, and shall embrace the liberty and right of sons, shall cease from the works of the law, and come unto the inheritance of justification, that being justified by grace, they may work freely those things that be good, to the glory of God, and commodity of their neighbours, being far from all fear, or hope, as well of justification, as of all other good things. For they shall then have and possess it by the covenant of the Father confirmed by Christ, & revealed, published, and as it were delivered into their hands by the Gospel, through the only grace and mercy of the Father. The faithful before Christ's coming had the same covenant which we have. This covenant both Abraham and all the fathers, which were endued with true faith, had no otherwise then we have, although before Christ was glorified, this grace was not openly published and preached. They lived in like faith, and therefore they obtained also like good things. They had the same grace, blessing and covenant with us, for there is one Father, and the same God of all. Thou seest therefore that Paul, as almost in all other places, so here also doth entreat much of faith, that we are not justified by our works, but by faith alone, whereby not certain good things by piecemeal, but all good things at once do come unto us. For there is no good thing, which this covenant of God doth not contain in it, it giveth and bringeth righteousness, salvation, and God himself. Works can not be done at once, but by faith the whole inheritance of God is together received. From thence also good works do come, howbeit not meritorious, whereby thou mayst seek salvation, but which with a mind already possessing righteousness, thou must do with great pleasure to the profit of thy neighbours. For thou shalt now have need of nothing, being endued with faith, which bringeth all things, yea surely more things than one dare wish, much less can deserve: wherefore it is no marvel if such work all things freely, and so do unto their neighbour, as they both believe and rejoice, that God of his goodness & by the merit of Christ hath done unto them. What reward should they hope for, which already have all things? the shadow whereof those most miserable ones of cain's brood seek by their works, but they shall never find it, they follow it, but they shall never come unto it. Verse 2. But is under Tuters and Governors, until the time appointed of the father. Tuters and Governors are they which do bring up the heir, and so rule him, and order his goods, that neither he wast his inheritance by riotous living, neither his goods otherwise perish or be consumed. They permit him not to use his goods at his own will or pleasure, but suffer him to enjoy them as they shall be needful and profitable unto him. First, whereas they keep him at home, and inform him with good manners, what do they else but prepare and instruct him, whereby he may most commodiously and long enjoy his inheritance? Again, the more straightly and severely they bring him up, so much greater desire they stir up and inflame in him to come to, and enjoy his inheritance. For as soon as he beginneth to be of any discretion and judgement, it can not be but grievous unto him, to live at the commandment and will of an other. After the same sort standeth the case of the elect, The elect are for a time under the law as under a Tutor or governor. which are brought up and instructed under the law, as under a Master, to the liberty of the sons. First the law profiteth them in this, that by the fear of it, and of the punishment which it threateneth, they are driven from sin, at the least from the outward work, lest that the liberty of sinning increase overmuch, and remove them from all religion of God, that hope of salvation being paste, and God quite contemned, they should run headlong without all fear into all kinds of evil, as some desperate persons are wont to do. Again, the law is profitable to them in this, that by it they are brought unto knowledge of themselves, and learn how unwillingly they live under the law, and that they do no good at all with a willing and ready mind as it becometh sons, but with a servile and unwilling mind: whereby they may easily see, what is the root of this evil, and what is especially needful unto salvation, to wit a new and a willing spirit to that which is good. Which surely neither the law, nor the works of the law are able to give, yea the longer and the more that they apply themselves unto them, so much more unwilling shall they find themselves, and with so much more grief to work those things that are good. Hereupon now they learn, that they do not satisfy the law, although outwardly they live according to the prescript rule thereof: for as they do pretend to obey it in work, so in mind they do hate it, wherefore in mind also they remain sinners, although they pretend themselves righteous by works, that is, they are like unto those of cain's brood, and to hypocrites, whose hand in deed is compelled to good, but they have a heart, which as it is an enemy to the law, so doth it verily consent unto sins, and is miserably subject unto them. To know this concerning themselves is not the lowest degree to salvation. Hereof also we may see, how fitly Paul calleth such constrained works the works of the law. The works of the law. For they flow not from a ready and willing heart, but are enforced by the law, the heart declining an other way. Howbeit the law doth not require works alone, but much rather the heart itself, so that we might say, not only the works, but rather the heart of the law: not only the hands of the law, but rather the mind, will, and all the strength of the law. Whereupon it is said in the first Psalm of the blessed man: But his delight is in the law of God, and in his law doth he exercise himself day and night. Such a mind the law requireth in deed, but it giveth it not, neither can it give it of it own nature, whereby it cometh to pass that while the law continueth to exact it of a man, and to condemn him as long as he hath not such a mind, as disobedient to God, he is in anguish on every side, his conscience is grievously terrified and without all counsel and help. Then in deed he is most ready for grace, and this is that time appointed of the Father, The time appointed of the Father. when his servitude should end, and he should enter into the state of the sons. For being thus in distress and terrified, seeing that by no other means he can avoid the condemnation of the law, he turneth himself wholly to pray to the Father for grace, he acknowledgeth his frailty, he confesseth his sin, he ceaseth to trust in works, and doth altogether, as it is meet, humble himself, perceiving now full well, that between him and a manifest sinner there is no difference at all but of works, that he hath a wicked heart, even as every other sinner hath. Yea it may be that such hypocrites do far more hate the law in their heart, than those famous sinners, which are even as it were drowned in sins. For while these are even wearied with the works of sins, and do try the filthiness of them, it often times cometh to pass, that they do in some part loath and detest them, when as those righteous ones do always think those things that they have not tried, to be more sweet, neither can they believe that there is so much gall in sins, whereof they are by nature inflamed with such a desire, & therefore as they do more earnestly love sin, so consequently they do much worse hate the law, which as a certain schoolmaster, is always against their desire. Moreover forasmuch as the condition of man's nature is such, that it is able to give to the law works only, and not the heart, who doth not see how greatly it is contemned of us? Hypocritical dealing. An unequal division truly, to dedicate the heart, which doth incomparably excel all other things, to sin, and the brutish hand to the law: which is nothing else, but to offer chaff to the law, and the wheat to sin: the shell to God, and the kernel to Satan. So that cometh to pass which is in the Gospel, that the wickednesses of him, which is in thy judgement a desperate sinner, are counted as a mote, and thine, which so playest the hypocrite are counted as a beam. If this evil be added hereunto, that such hypocrites do not see a beam in their eye, but being blinded do persever in their accustomed works, not marking this their inward abomination of the heart, they by and by burst forth to judge & condemn others, they despise sinners, as he did in the Gospel, they think themselves not like unto them, they are not as other men are, they think themselves alone godly and righteous. Whose ungodliness if one reprove, & as it is meet, bewray, they by and by are in a rage and fury, and stick not to kill innocent Abel, and to persecute all those that follow the truth. And they will seem to do that to defend good works, and to obtain righteousness, neither do they promise to themselves a small reward for this, inasmuch as they do, as they say, persecute heretics, blasphemers, them which be seduced & do seduce with mischievous error, which labour to seduce and pluck even them from good works. Here thou mayst see that that showeth itself, whatsoever the Scriptures attribute to these men being surely most pestilent spirits, to wit, that they are a generation of vipers, and serpents. They are no other but of cain's brood, and so they do continue, servants they are, and servants they do remain. But they whom God hath chosen Abel's and sons, What the law worketh in the elect. do learn by the law, how unwilling a heart they have unto the law, they fall from their arrogancy, and are by this knowledge of themselves which he law bringeth, brought even unto nothing in their own eyes. Then by and by cometh the Gospel, and lifteth them up being humbled, whereby the Lord giveth his grace unto them thus casting down themselves, and endueth them with faith, Hereby they receive that covenant of the eternal blessing, and the holy Ghost, which reneweth their heart, that now it is delighted with the law, hateth sin, and is willing and ready to do those things that are good▪ And here now thou mayst see not the works, but the heart of the law. And this is the very time appointed to the heir of the Father, when he must be no longer a servant but a son, and doth now begin to be led by a free spirit, being no more kept in subjection under Tuters and Governors, after the manner of a servant. Which is even that that Paul teacheth in the words following. Verse 3. Even so, we when we were children, were in bondage under the rudiments of the world. What is to be understood by this word, rudiments. By the word rudiments thou mayst understand here the first principles or law written, which are as it were the first exercises and instructions of holy erudition, whereof it is spoken also Heb. 5: As concerning the time ye ought to be teachers, yet have ye need again that we teach you what are the first principles or rudiments of the word of God. And Colos. 2: Beware lest there be any that spoil you through philosophy and vain deceit, through the traditions of men, according to the rudiments of the world. Again Gal. 4. How turn ye again unto impotent & beggarly rudiments, whereunto as from the beginning ye will be in bondage again? ye observe days & months, etc. Here as it were in contempt he calleth the law rudiments, he addeth also, The law called beggarly rudiments, and why. impotent, & beggarly, both because it is not able to perform that righteousness which it requireth, and also for that it maketh men in deed poor & impotent. For whereas it earnestly requireth a heart and mind given to godliness, and nature is not able to satisfy it herein, it plainly maketh man to feel his poverty, and to acknowledge his infirmity, that that is by right required of him, which he not only hath not but also is not able to have▪ Hereunto pertaineth that which Paul hath left written 2. Cor. 3: The letter killeth, but the spirit giveth life. Moreover Paul calleth them the rudiments of the world, The rudiments of the world why so called. for that all that observing of the law, which men not yet renewed by the spirit do perform, doth consist in worldly things, to wit, in places, times, apparel, persons, vessels, and such like. But faith resteth in no worldly thing, but in the only grace, word, and mercy of God, neither doth it make a man righteous and safe by any outward thing, but only by the invisible and eternal grace of God: Wherefore it counteth a like, days, meats, persons, apparel, and all things of this world. For none of these by itself doth either further or hinder godliness & salvation, as it doth the righteousness of those of cain's brood, which is as it were tied to these outward things. Faith therefore deserveth nothing less than to be called the rudiments of the world, by which we obtain the fullness of heavenly good things: and albeit it be occupied also in outward things, yet is it addicted to no outward thing, but doth freely in all things that which it seeth may be done to the glory of God, and profit of our neighbours, always continuing free and the same, and yet is made all things to all men, that so the conversation thereof may want all peculiar respect and difference. With those of cain's brood it agreeth neither in name, nor in any thing: one of them eateth flesh, an other abstaineth from it: one weareth black apparel, an other white: one keepeth this day holy, an other that: every one hath his rudiments, under which he is in bondage: all of them are addicted to the things of the world, which are frail and perish in an hour. Wherefore they are no other but servants of the rudiments of the world, which they call holy orders, godly ordinances, and ways to go to heaven. Against these Paul speaketh Colos. 2: Wherefore if ye be dead with Christ from the rudiments of the world, why as though ye lived in the world, are ye burdened with traditions? As, Touch not, Taste not, Handle not: which all perish with the using, and are after the commandments and doctrines of men. Which things have in deed a show of godliness, when as they are mere superstition, whereby the mind is in vain pressed down to these outward things, etc. By this and other places above mentioned it is plain, that all Monasteries and Colleges, whereby we measure the state of spiritual men as we call them, do plainly disagree with the Gospel and Christian liberty, and that therefore it is much more dangerous to live in these kinds of life, then among most profane men. For all their things are nothing but rudiments & ordinances of the world, consisting in the difference and use of apparel, places, times, and other present things, whereunto seeing they are so addicted, that they hope by them to attain righteousness & salvation, faith is made no account of amongst them, neither are they Christians, but in name, wherefore all their life and holiness is mere sin, and most detestable hypocrisy. They that are under the rudiments of the world, ought most diligently to look to themselves. It is needful therefore, that they that are occupied in such ordinances, should above all other men most diligently look unto themselves, that they trust not to these ordinances, that they be not too much addicted unto them, but that they do persever in a free faith, which is tied to none of those outward things, but resteth in the only grace of God. For the fair show of life & feigned holiness, which is in those ordinances, doth with a marvelous and secret force withdraw from faith, more than those manifest and gross sins, whereof open sinners are guilty, and doth easily make men such as Paul here speaketh of: When we were children▪ we were in bondage under the rudiments of the world, that is, when we were as yet ignorant of faith, and were exercised only with the works of the law, we did those outward works of the law, consisting in worldly things, but with an unwilling mind, and with no faith, hoping that by these rudiments of the world we should obtain salvation, wherefore we were no other than servants. Now this false and servile opinion faith alone taketh away, and teacheth us to trust unto, and rest upon the only grace of God, whereby at once is given freely that which is needful to work all things. For these works of the law, if that false opinion were away, were not ill of themselves. Verse 4. But when the fullness of time was come, God sent forth his Son made of a woman, and made under the law. Verse 5. That he might redeem them which were under the law, that we might receive the adoption of the sons. After Paul hath taught, that righteousness and faith can not come to us by the Law, neither that we can deserve it by nature, he showeth him by whom we obtain true righteousness & faith, and which is the author of our justification. Now this could not come unto us without any price, for it cost a very great price, even the son of God: The Apostle therefore saith: The fullness of time how it is to be understood. When the fullness of time was come, that is, when the time was ended, that time, I say, wherein it behoved us to live children and servants under the discipline of the Law. Wherefore the Master of sentences hath erred here, who interpreted the fullness of time, the time of grace, which began at the birth of Christ, plain contrary to the Apostle, who whereas he hath written, the fullness of time, this man hath interpreted it, the time of fullness. For Paul speaketh of the time, which was appointed of the father to the son, wherein he should live under tuters. Now as this time was full come to the jews and ended, when Christ came in the flesh, so is it daily fulfilled to others, when they come unto the knowledge of Christ, and do change the servitude of the Law with the faith of the sons. And this in deed is that coming, whereby alone we obtain the liberty of sons, without which that corporal coming would avail nothing. For Christ even for this cause hath come unto us, that believing in him, we may be restored to true liberty, by which faith they of the ancient time also obtained the liberty of the spirit. And so, whereas he should come to the holy men of old time, he came even then, forasmuch as by faith they felt him to be their true Saviour and deliverer, howbeit he is not yet come to our jews, although he is gone away again in body long since: for they do not believe in him. All from the beginning of the world to the end must trust unto the coming of Christ, whereby alone servitude is changed with liberty, but yet by faith, either in Christ being to come, as it was before he was borne: or in him being come, as it is now. Wherefore as soon as thou beginnest to believe in Christ, he cometh unto thee a deliverer and Saviour, & now the time of bondage is ended, that is, as the Apostle speaketh, the fullness thereof is come. This place surely is very copious, and containeth in it divers things most worthy to be known, so that I greatly fear, that it shall not be handled of us according to the worthiness thereof. For it teacheth that it is not sufficient to believe that Christ is come, but that we must also believe that he was sent of God, is the son of God, and also very man, borne of a Virgin, who alone hath fulfilled the Law, and that not for himself, but for us, that is, for our salvations sake. Let us weigh and consider these things in order. First it is sufficiently taught in the Gospel of john, that Christ is the son of God, and was sent of God, which he that believeth not is in a most miserable case, as Christ himself pronounceth joh. 8: Except ye believe that I am he, ye shall die in your sins. And joh. 1: In it was life, and that life was the light of men. For this cause the mind of man neither may nor aught to enjoy any other thing then that sovereign good, so, that it should be satisfied with any other then with it, whereof it was made, and which is the fountain of all good things: wherefore it is not the will of God that we should believe or repose our trust in any other thing, neither doth this honour belong to any other. And therefore God himself joined himself to man, Why it was requisite that God should be made man. being made man, that he might more forcibly allure men into him, and stir them up to believe in him. No good could come unto God hereby, but it was necessary for us that he should be made man, lest that we should believe in any other thing than in God alone. For if we should believe in Christ, and not in God, as God should be deprived of his honour, so should we be deprived of life and salvation. For we must believe in one God, who is the very truth, and we without him can neither live, nor obtain salvation. Whereas therefore the Apostle saith: God sent forth his Son, it is thereby manifest, that he was, before he came and was made man. Now if he be a son, he is more than a man or an Angel, which seeing they are the highest creatures, surely he is also true God. For to be the son of God is more than to be an Angel, as it is else where declared. Again, Christ a distinct person from the Father. seeing that he is sent of God, and is his son, he must needs be an other person. And so the Apostle teacheth here, that the Father and the Son are one God, and two persons. Of the holy Ghost it shallbe spoken hereafter. The second thing which ought here to be considered, is, that Christ is very man and the son of man. This Paul teacheth, when he saith: Christ very man. made of a woman. For surely that that is made or borne of a woman, is man: A woman by nature bringeth forth nothing but very man. This it is necessary that we believe as the Lord himself declareth joh. 6, in these words: Except ye eat the flesh of the son of man, and drink his blood, ye have no life in you. But to eat and drink his flesh and blood, What it is to eat & drink the flesh and blood of Christ. is nothing else but to believe, that Christ took these upon him in deed, and did also yield them to death for our sake. This is that covenant which was promised to Abraham: In thy seed shall all the nations of the earth be blessed. Gen. 22. Christ is this seed, and therefore the true son of Abraham, his flesh and blood. Hereupon it appeareth that they prevail nothing, We must come unto God by Christ. which make a proper way unto themselves to God, by their own works and godliness, and neglecting Christ strive to come directly unto God, as the Turks and jews do. This Christ alone is the mediator & blessed seed, by whom thou must receive blessing, otherwise thou shalt continue for ever in malediction. This covenant of God shall not be violated of because any. Thus Christ himself saith, joh. 6: No man cometh to the Father, but by me. The nature of God is otherwise higher, then that we are able to attain unto it, wherefore he hath humbled himself to us, and taken upon him that nature, which is best known and most familiar unto us, to wit, even our own. Here he looketh for us: here he will receive us: he that will seek him here, shall find: he that will ask here shall be heard: here is the throne of grace and the true mercy seat, from which none is driven or thrust which with true faith resorteth unto it. They which do here neglect him, as though he were made man for nought, and in the mean season do without a mediator pray unto God, who hath created heaven and earth, they shall pray in deed, but none shall help them: they shall cry, but none shall hear them. The third thing which is here set forth unto us to believe, is, that Marie the mother of jesus is a virgin. The mother of jesus a Virgin. This Paul affirmeth when he saith, that he was made of a woman, not of a man, as other are wont. This is that one man, which was borne only of a woman. He would not say, of a virgin, Why Paul rather said that Christ was made of a woman, them of a virgin. for that a virgin is not a name of nature, but a woman signifieth a sex and certain condition, whereunto it belongeth to be with child, and to bring forth, that is, to do the parts of a mother. Seeing therefore that Marie was a mother in deed, she is rightly called a woman. For she brought forth fruit unto us, which belongeth to a mother, and not to a virgin, although she brought it forth alone, without the means of man, wherein she was declared both a singular virgin and woman. But because it is of greater importance to the Apostle, and unto all us, that Marie is a woman, and thereby the mother of Christ, then that she is a virgin, for that this is only an ornament unto her, but in that she was a woman she brought forth him which is salvation unto all, for this cause I say, the Apostle calleth her rather a woman then a virgin. Neither was it considered in choosing her, that she was a virgin, but that she was a woman: for that she being a virgin became a mother, Why it behoved that the mother of Christ should be a virgin. the cause was, for that it behoved that Christ should be borne without sin, and therefore without the commixtion of man. For of the seed of a sinful man, nothing could be borne, but that which is defiled with sin: but it behoved that Christ should be that blessed seed, whose blessing should be poured forth upon all, as the manner of the divine covenant required. Whereupon it is gathered, that Christ could not be borne of the seed of man, for that all men are by nature under the curse. For how should blessing be promised to come unto all by Christ, if all were not subject to the curse? Forasmuch then as the covenant of God promised to Abraham, did require these two things, both that Christ should be the true son of Abraham, that is, his seed, his true flesh and blood, & that also he should be borne pure from sin: this mean was invented, that he should of Marie being very woman and the daughter of Abraham, be borne very man, and the right offspring of Abraham: and also that he should be borne without the commixtion of man, a virgin being conceived with child by the only means of the holy Ghost, that being full of blessing, he might derive the same unto all believers. So was the covenant of God fulfilled on either side: and it came to pass, that Christ became both the true seed of Abraham, and yet free from all contagion of Adam, and is also the author of eternal blessing to them that believe. Wherefore although Marie be holily to be reverenced by the name of virgin, yet by no comparison greater reverence is due unto her then by the name of woman, for that her most holy members, inasmuch as she was a woman, were advanced unto this dignity, that they were as means toward the fulfilling of the holy covenant of God, and by them he was brought forth, which was to put away all curse from them that believe in him, that so he might be both the blessed seed of Abraham, and the blessed fruit of the womb of Marie. Unto which benefit the only virginity had not been sufficient, yea it had been even unprofitable. The fourth thing whereof the present place of the Apostle doth admonish us, is, that Christ hath satisfied the Law for us. Which he also witnesseth of himself Matth. 5: I am not come to destroy the Law, but to fulfil it. It was needful that christ should fulfil the Law for us. This also the reason of the covenant requireth: for if by this seed of Abraham all men must be delivered from the curse, it is necessary that by it the Law be fulfilled. For as men are by nature the children of wrath, and subject to the curse, so it must needs be accursed, whatsoever they do, for it is before proved at large, that he which is evil himself, can work nothing that is good: likewise that we can do nothing that God will approve, unless we ourselves be approved of him before: and seeing that the Law requireth the heart, which can not be performed of them, which are not as yet regenerate by the spirit, it must needs be, that all the sons of Adam are guilty of transgressing the Law, and unless, whereas they themselves are not able, an other, to wit Christ, should perform that which the Law requireth, and so satisfy the Law for them, they should altogether perish by the curse of the Law. But when as Christ, going about to show, that the heart is required of the Law, did condemn the works which proceeded not from a heart that is godly and consenting unto the Law, he was accused of the Pharisees that he was come to destroy the Law. Because therefore he would take away this false opinion of himself, he said: Think not that I am come to destroy the Law, for I am not come to destroy, but to fulfil the Law: yea and I will give a spirit unto them that be mine, which shall justify their heart by faith, and incline it unto true good works. The same is usual with Paul also, who, Rom. 3, when he had rejected the works of the Law, and extolled faith, answering such an objection, saith: Do we then make the Law of none effect? God forbidden: yea we establish the Law. For we teach that the true fulfilling of the Law is by Christ. The like also is wont to be objected to us, as though we did forbid good works, when we disallow monasteries with their works, & teach that they must first by faith become good and approved of God, whereby they may afterward do true good works, by which both their flesh may be chastised, and their neighbours edified. Here we must note moreover, that the Law can be fulfilled of no man, but of him which being free from the Law, is no more under it. We must accustom ourselves also to the manner of Paul's speech, that we may know assuredly who is under the Law, Who be under the Law. and who is not under the Law. As many therefore as work good works, because the Law hath so commanded, being brought thereunto either with fear of punishment, or hope of reward, are under the Law, and are compelled to do good things and to be honest, being not brought hereunto of their own voluntary will. Wherefore the Law hath dominion over them, whose servants and captives they are. Now such are all men, that are not yet regenerate by Christ, which every one may easily learn with himself by experience, every man's own conscience showing it unto him. We all find ourselves so affected, that if no Law did urge us, & both the fear of punishment, and hope of reward were away, and it were plainly free for us to do what we list, we would do altogether those things that are evil, and omit the things that are good, especially either tentation moving us, or occasion provoking us. But now, forasmuch as the Law stayeth us with the threatenings and promises thereof, we do oftentimes abstain from evil things, and do those things that be good, howbeit we do them not for the love of goodness, and hatred of evil, but only for fear of punishment, and respect of reward: wherefore being left wholly to ourselves, we are servants of the Law, neither do we hear it any otherwise, than servants do their hard and cruel master. They which are not under the Law described, of what sort they be. But they that are not under the Law, that is, are not so against their wills in subjection under the dominion thereof, they of their own accord do good works, and abstain from evil, being neither terrified with the threatenings of the Law, nor alured with the promises thereof, but even for that they do of their voluntary will bear a love to honesty, and hate that which is dishonest, and are also from their heart delighted with the Law of God, so that if there were no Law made, notwithstanding they would desire to live no otherwise then the Law commandeth: as, to shun those things that be evil, and apply themselves to honest studies and exercises. They that are such, are sons, whom not nature, but that only blessed seed of Abraham, that is, Christ, could make such, renewing by his grace and spirit the hearts of them that believe in him. What it is, not to be under the Law. Wherefore not to be under the Law, is not, to be free from the Law, that they may do those things that are contrary thereunto, and omit those things that are good, but it is to do good things and abstain from wicked things, not through compulsion or necessity of the Law, but by free love and with pleasure, even as if no Law commanded them, and their own nature brought them hereunto, as in deed it doth, howbeit the new nature of the spirit, A similitude. not that old nature of the flesh. For as there is need of no Law for the body, which may compel it to eat, to drink, to digest, A similitude. to sleep; to go, to stand, to sit, and to do the other works of nature, for that it is ready to do them of it own nature, when the case so requireth, and when it is meet, without all respect either of reward or punishment: and may not unfitly be said, as concerning these things, not to be under a law, notwithstanding thereupon nothing less followeth, then that it doth therefore abstain from such works, unto which in deed it so much more applieth if self as they are less commanded, and are more natural unto it: After the same sort altogether doth the godly man behave himself concerning the works of godliness, he is carried to the doing of them by that his new nature of the spirit, albeit there were no law at all, and all both hope of reward, and fear of punishment were away. This only is the true liberty of a Christian man, and the deliverance of him from the law, whereof Paul speaketh 1. Tim. 1: The Law is not given unto a righteous man. Which is as much as if he had said: A righteous man of his own accord doth good things, and abstaineth from evil, having no regard either of reward or of punishment. The same thing also he meaneth by that saying Rom. 6: Ye are not under the Law, but under Grace, that is, ye are sons, not servants: Ye live holily, being compelled or enforced with nothing, but of your free and of itself ready will. To the same effect pertaineth that saying also Rom. 8: Ye have not received the spirit of bondage to fear again, but ye have received the Spirit of adoption of the sons. The Law maketh a fearful, that is, a right servile and cainish spirit, but Grace giveth the free spirit of sons, like unto Abel's, by Christ the blessed seed of Abraham. Whereof the 51. Psalm speaketh: Establish me with thy free spirit. Whereupon in the 118. Psalm Christian people are said to be of a free will. Moreover Christ hath so fulfilled the Law, that he only of all mankind hath of his own accord satisfied it, being with no thing compelled or enforced thereunto, neither is any other able to do the same, unless he receive it of him, and by him: And therefore Paul saith here: He was made under the Law, that he might redeem them, which were under the Law. The fift thing therefore that Paul here commendeth unto us to be believed, Why Christ was made under the Law. is, that Christ for our sake was made under the Law, that he might deliver us from the bondage of the Law, and of unwilling servants make us free sons: whereupon he saith: That he might redeem them which were under the Law, that is, might deliver them from the Law▪ Now he delivereth from the Law by the means aforesaid, not by destroying or utterly abolishing the Law, How Christ delivereth from the Law. but by fulfilling it, and giving a free spirit, which shall do all things willingly, without any respect either of the threatenings or the promises of the Law, no otherwise then if there were no law at all given, and is carried thereunto of his own nature. After which sort Adam and Eve were effected before they had sinned. How the spirit of liberty is obtained. But by what means is this spirit given & liberty gotten? No otherwise then by faith. For he that truly believeth, that Christ came for this cause, that he might deliver us from the Law, and that he hath delivered him already, he, I say, hath in deed received the spirit of liberty, and doth verily obtain that which he believeth: for both faith and this spirit of sons come together. Whereupon Paul saith here: that Christ hath delivered us from the Law, for this, that we might receive the adoption of the sons: both which come unto us by faith. Thus therefore we have those five things, whereof Paul admonished us in this so plentiful and fruitful a place. A question. But here riseth a question: Forasmuch as to be under the Law, is to be subject to the Law by compulsion, and to obey the Law no otherwise then unwillingly, so that none of them which are under the Law, are able to satisfy the Law, why Paul saith, that Christ was made under the Law. The answer. I answer, that the Apostle maketh a very great difference between Christ, who was made under the Law, Great difference between Christ's being under the Law & ours. and other men which are borne under the Law. For whereas he saith that Christ was made under the Law, he would signify, that Christ did put himself under the Law of his own accord, and was with his will made subject unto it of the Father, when as he might not have been under the Law. But we were under the Law, being the servants of the Law by nature, and bearing the dominion thereof unwillingly: as Christ was willingly, not by nature, and against his will. Wherefore there is as great difference between, It is one thing, to be made under the Law, & an other to be under the Law by nature. To be made under the Law, and, To be under the Law by nature, as between these, To be subject to the Law of free will, and, To be subject to the Law by servile constraint. It was free unto Christ, to be under the Law, or not to be under it, and he made himself subject to it of his own accord, that he might most diligently do all things that the Law requireth: but we were under the Law, even against our will. Thou mayst see a resemblance hereof in Peter, Ours, and Christ's being under the Law, and our deliverance from the same most excellently resembled. and the Angel which came into the prison to Peter to deliver him. Both of them were then in the prison, but Peter was there being cast into it of Herode, not of his own accord, wherein he was also to abide, for he could not go forth when he would. But the Angel went into the prison of his own accord, whereupon it was free for him also to go forth when he would: he was there only for Peter's sake and not for his own, and freely even at his own will, whom when Peter heard and followed, it was free for him also to go forth of the prison, whereas before it was not. This prison is the Law: Peter is our conscience: The Angel is Christ. Christ being absent, our conscience is held captive of the Law, and being unwilling of itself, is moved unto good things by the threatenings and promises thereof, and is tied and bound unto honest things with these, as with two chains. The keepers of this prison are the teachers of the Law, which declare the force of the Law unto us. So we being bound in the prison of the Law, Christ cometh unto us, and willingly maketh himself subject to the Law, and doth the works of the Law of his own accord, which we did bend ourselves to do against our wills, yea and doth them for our sake, that he may join us unto him, and also bring us out together with himself. For he may easily go forth, who is held in the prison by no necessity. If now we cleave unto him, and follow him, we also do go forth. But this cleaving to him and following him is nothing else, then to believe in him, and not to doubt that he became man, and was made subject to the law for thy salvations sake. Together with this faith cometh the spirit, he by and by maketh thee ready and willing to do with pleasure all things that the Law requireth: and so truly delivereth thee from the captivity of the Law, those chains of threatenings and promises fall of from thee, and thou mayst now go whither thou list, that is, thou mayst live according to thine own will, or rather according to the will of the holy Ghost ruling all things in thee: finally what good things soever thou dost, thou dost them from the heart, and with great pleasure. Christ made under the Law after two sorts. Moreover, that it may be made more plain, after what sort Christ made himself subject to the Law, we must understand that he was made under the Law after two sorts: both for that he did perfectly perform the works of the Law, and also for that he suffered and overcame the curse and punishment thereof for our sake. For he was circumcised, presented in the temple, and the time of the purification being finished, was obedient to his parents. All which things he might have omitted, being Lord of the Law, and over all: Howbeit he applied himself to these things freely of his own will, not being either compelled by any fear, or alured by any hope. In outward works he was in the mean season altogether like unto them which were under the Law, that is, which did the works of the Law against their wills, inasmuch as his free spirit was hidden from others, even as also the servile and constrained will of others is hidden. And so he both was under the Law, and not under the Law. He behaved himself outwardly in works as they which are unwillingly held under the Law, whereas notwithstanding he was not under the Law as they, but of his own free will: Wherefore in respect of his work he was under the Law, but in respect of his will he was free from the Law. How we are under the Law. But we as well by will as by works are under the Law by nature, for that we do works according to the rule of the Law, of necessity, yea and we do them with that will which the Law constraineth and urgeth, in as much as we do not endeavour to do them of our own accord. Christ made himself subject to the punishment of the Law also for our sakes of his own will. He did not only perform those works which the Law commandeth, but he suffered the punishment also which was due to us being transgressors thereof. The Law condemneth to death and the eternal curse all those that continue not in all things that are written in the book of the Law to do them, as Paul Gal. 3. reciteth out of Moses levit. 18. Now it is declared at large before, that the Law is fulfilled of no man, but that all men are against their wills held captives of the Law, wherefore every one is subject to death and to the curse, so that there is no man subject to the Law in respect of works, and will, which is not also subject to it in respect of the curse. For it curseth and condemneth all that do not perform it with their whole heart. But here Christ maketh intercession for them that be his, and the judgement which we have deserved, he taketh upon himself, he suffered the punishment due unto us, willingly making himself subject to death and the curse, that is, to eternal damnation, no otherwise then if he had transgressed the whole Law, and had more than all, deserved the sentence thereof against transgressors, when as he did not only not break the Law, but himself alone fulfilled it, yea and fulfilled it when as he ought nothing to it, so that he suffered otherwise then he deserved in two respects: both for that he had aught nothing to the Law, if he had not observed it, and also for that moreover he most diligently observed it, so that if the Law had had especial dominion over him, yet had he come in no danger thereof. But on the other side whereas we suffer, we suffer by double right: both for that by the transgression of the Law we have deserved all the punishment thereof, & also for that, if we had deserved nothing, yet being creatures we ought to be obedient to the will of our Creator. Hereof it now plainly appeareth, what this meaneth, that Christ was made under the Law, Why Christ was made under the Law. that he might redeem them which live under the law: for our sakes, for our sakes, I say, and not for his own he performed that, and that of no necessity, but of his great love toward us: and thereby he hath declared his unspeakable both goodness and mercy toward us, being made accursed for us, that he might deliver us from the curse of the law. He willingly made himself subject to the judgement of the law, & did himself bear the sentence pronounced against us, that as many of us as do believe in him, might be free for ever. Whereby mark what an incomparable treasure faith bringeth unto thee, By faith we enjoy an incomparable treasure. whereby thou enjoyest Christ and all his works, that thou mayst trust unto them no otherwise then if thou thyself hadst done them. For Christ did them not for himself, whom surely they could profit nothing, he having no need of any thing, but by them he laid up the treasure of salvation for us, whereunto we should trust, and being made blessed might enjoy it: With which faith also the spirit of the sons cometh, which beareth witness with our spirit, that we are the sons and heirs of God. What should God now add unto these? How can a mind hearing these things contain itself, that it should not love God again with a most ardent affection, and be most sweetly delighted in him? What in any wise may come to be done or suffered, which thou wouldst not willingly take upon thee with exceeding joy, and most high praise of God, with a rejoicing and triumphing mind? Which mind if thou wantest, it is a certain argument of a faint or surely a dead faith: for the greater thy faith is, so much more ready also and willing is thy mind to those things, which God either sendeth or commandeth. This in deed is the true deliverance from the Law, and the damnation of the Law, that is, from sin and death, which deliverance cometh to us by Christ. Yet not so, that there is now no law or death, but that they do not now trouble the believers any thing, that is, they are as though they were not. For the Law can not convince them of sin, neither can death confound them: but by faith they most happily pass from sin and death to righteousness and life. Here monks, Nuns &c: were to be exhorted if there were as yet left any place with them for counsel and admonition, that they would observe their ordinances, How men's ordinances, ceremonies etc. are to be observed. ceremonies, prayers, apparel, and such like, as Christ observed the law, by which means surely they should bring unto them no damnation: That is, that they would set the faith of Christ in the first place, and commit the rule of their heart unto him, acknowledging that by that faith only they do obtain righteousness and salvation: and that all their ordinances & works do avail nothing hereunto. Again that they would make themselves subject to them of their own accord, in no other respect, then that by them they might serve their neighbours, and subdue the arrogancy of the flesh. But now seeing they are occupied in them with this double erroneous opinion, as though they were necessary to salvation and righteousness, and if they did not observe them, they should grievously sin, they are unto them a most certain destruction, nothing but delusion and sin, whereby with their great affliction they draw unto hell, where they shall fully suffer the vexations and torments under the Abbot the devil, which being miserable and foolish men they have here begun. For all their life doth utterly disagree with the faith of the sons, and that which belongeth only to faith, to wit to justify and save us, they attribute to their works. Wherefore these men can not both thus stick unto their ordinances, and therewithal have faith, which suffereth itself to be addicted to no certain works, but what things soever the Lord either sendeth or commandeth, or the necessity and need of our neighbour requireth, it suffereth and doth them with great willingness & joy. These he that is endued with faith, counteth his works, having in the mean season no regard of Masses, or fasting, which some appoint to certain days, of choice of apparel, of meats, of persons, of places and such like, yea he greatly disalloweth of these, inasmuch as they trouble Christian liberty. These things shall suffice to have been spoken concerning the exposition of this place of Paul, where about the matter itself required to spend so many words, forasmuch as the nature of faith is so unknown. For unless thou do well understand the nature of faith, thou shalt perceive nothing or very little in the writings of Paul. Verse 6. And because ye are sons, God hath sent forth the Spirit of his Son into your hearts, which crieth, Abba, Father. Here we see very plainly that the holy Ghost cometh unto the Saints by no works but by faith alone, for Paul saith: And because ye are sons, God hath sent forth the Spirit, 〈◊〉 Sons believe, when servants only work: sons are free from the Law, servants are held under the Law, as appeareth plainly by those things that are before spoken. But how cometh it to pass that he saith: Because ye are sons; A question. God hath sent forth the Spirit, etc. seeing it is before said: that by the coming of the spirit we are changed from servants unto the state of sons, so that the spirit must be first sent unto us, before we are sons? But here as though we could be sons before the coming of the spirit, The answer. he saith: Because ye are sons, etc. To this question we must answer, that Paul speaketh here after the same sort that he spoke before: Before the fullness of time came, we wear in bondage under the rudiments of the world. All the elect, which are predestinate of the Lord that they shall become sons, are counted in that place of sons with God. Therefore he saith rightly: Because ye are sons, that is, because the state of sons is appointed unto you from everlasting, God hath sent forth the Spirit of his Son, to wit, that he might finish it in you, & make you such, as he hath long since of his goodness determined that he should make you. Moreover he calleth him the spirit of that Son of God, that he might continue in commending unto us this benefit of God, that he hath chosen us to be sons. For Christ is the Son of God, and that most beloved. Now if the father give unto us his spirit, he will make us like to his only begotten son, his true sons and heirs, that we may with certain confidence cry with Christ, Abba, Father, being his brethren, and fellow heirs with him. Wherein that Apostle surely hath notable set forth the goodness of God, which maketh us partakers with Christ, and causeth us to have all things common with him, so that we live, and are led by the same spirit. Moreover these words of the Apostle do show, both that the holy Ghost is an other from Christ, and yet doth proceed from him, when as he calleth him his spirit. The spirit in deed dwelleth in the godly, and no man will say that he is their spirit, as here Paul maketh him the holy spirit of Christ, saying: God hath sent forth that spirit of his Son, that is of Christ. For he is the spirit of God, & cometh from God to us, and is not ours; unless one will say after this sort: my holy spirit, as we say my God, my Lord. Wherefore whereas he is here said to be holy spirit of Christ, it proveth him to be God, as of whom that spirit is sent, & is peculiarly counted his spirit. Furthermore, Christians may perceive by this place, whether they have in themselves the holy Ghost, How we may know whether the holy Ghost dwell in us or not. to wit, this spirit of the son, whether they hear his voice in themselves. For Paul saith, that he crieth in the hears which he possesseth, Abba, Father a according as he saith also Rom. 8: We have received the Spirit of adoption, whereby we cry Abba, Father. Now thou hearest this voice, when thou findest so much faith in thyself, that thou dost assuredly without any doutinge presume, not only that thy sins be forgiven thee, but also that thou art the beloved son of God, which being certain of eternal salvation, darest both call him father, and be delighted in him with a joyful and most confident heart. Thou must be so certain hereof, that thou canst not be more certain of thy life, & must sooner suffer death, and hellish torments, then suffer this trust and confidence to be taken from thee. For to doubt any thing herein were no small reproach and contumely to the death of Christ, as though that had not obtained all things for us, and ought not far more effectually to provoke and encourage us to have a good trust in God, than all our sins and temptations are able to put us out of hope and fray us from it. It may be in deed that thou shalt be so tempted, that thou shalt fear and doubt of thine adoption, and think plainly that God is not a favourable father, but a wrathful revenger of sinners, as it fell out with job and many other saints, but in such a conflict this trust & confidence that thou art a son ought to prevail and overcome, or else thou shalt come into a miserable and desperate case. When one of cain's brood heareth these things, he is as it were beside himself by reason of admiration and astonishment. Fie, saith he, away with this arrogancy, and this most pernicious error. God turn this mind from me, that I do not presume to think that I am the son of God: I am a sinner, most miserable and wretched, and I will never esteem more of myself. But thou which desirest to belong unto Christ, fly this kind of men, no otherwise then most hurtful enemies of Christian faith, and of thy salvation. Though of ourselves we be miserable sinners, yet we may assuredly persuade ourselves, that through Christ we are the sons of God. We also know that we are sinners, and very miserable and wretched: but here we must not weigh or consider, what we either do, or are, but what Christ is, and what he hath done for our sake. It is not spoken here of our nature, but of the grace of God, which so far exceedeth our sins, as heaven is higher than the earth, and the east is distant from the west, as the 103. Psalm saith: Now if it seem unto thee a great honour that thou art the son of God, as in deed it is very great, consider that it is no less marvelous, that the son of God for this cause did come, was borne of a woman, and made under the Law, that thou mightest become the son of God. These are great benefits of God, & do cause in the elect a great trust and confidence in the goodness of God, and a spirit which is afraid of nothing, but is bold and able to do all things. Contrariwise the religion of those of cain's brood, as it is a thing marvelous straight and careful, so doth it make hearts exceeding fearful, which serve to no use, but are unapt to all things, fit neither to suffer or do any thing, which tremble and are afraid even at the shaking of the lease of a tree, as it was before spoken of them levit. 26. Wherefore thou must lay up these words of the Apostle well in thy mind, thou must feel this cry of the spirit, which crieth so in the hearts of all the faithful. For how shouldest thou not hear the cry of thine own heart? Neither doth the Apostle say that he doth whisper, speak, yea or sing, it is greater than all these which the spirit doth in thy heart, he crieth out a main, that is, with all the heart. Whereupon it is said Rom. 8, that he maketh request for us with sighs that can not be expressed, and that he beareth witness with our spirit that we are the children of God: how therefore can it be, that our heart should not hear this cry, sighs, Adversity stirreth up the spirit. and testimony of the spirit? Howbeit hereunto temptations and adversity are very profitable, they move to cry, and do exceedingly stir up the spirit. Notwithstanding we foolish men do greatly fear and fly the cross, wherefore it is no marvel if we do never feel the cry of the spirit, and do continually remain like them of cain's brood. But if thou dost not feel this cry, take heed that thou be not idle and flothfull, neither secure, pray instantly, for thou art in an evil case. And yet do not desire, that thou mayst feel nothing but this cry of the spirit, thou must feel also an other terrible cry made, whereby thou mayst be provoked and urged to this cry of the spirit, which happeneth to all the saints: That is the cry of sins, which call most strongly and instantly unto desperation, but this cry must be overcome of the spirit of Christ, by godly calling upon the Father, and crying for his grace, that the trust and confidence of grace may become greater than desperation. The cry of the spirit. Wherefore this cry of the spirit is nothing else, but to be with all our heart touched with a very strong, firm, and unmovable trust of most dear sons toward God, as our most tender and favourable Father. Hereby we may see how far a Christian life exceedeth nature, which can do nothing less than trust so in God, A Christian life far exceedeth nature. The cry of them which trust in their own works, and not in Christ. and call upon him as a Father, but is always afraid, and uttereth a voice which is a witness of exceeding fear: Woe is me, how cruel and untolerable a judge art thou, O God? how heavy is thy judgement unto me? As Cain said Gen. 4: My iniquity is more than that it may be forgiven. Thou hast cast me out this day from the upper face of the earth, and from thy face shall I be hid, yea it shall come to pass that every one that findeth me shall slay me, etc. This is a terrible and dreadful cry, which is necessarily heard of all such as be of cain's brood, forasmuch as they trust to themselves and their own works, and put not their trust in the son of God, neither were and consider that he was sent of the Father, made of a woman, made under the law, much less that all these things were done for their salvation. They are continually tormented in their own works, the miserable men do in vain go about by them to help themselves, and to obtain the grace of God. And while their ungodliness is not herewith content, it beginneth to persecute even the sons of God, as it is always wont to do, yea at the last they grow unto such cruelty, that after the example of their father Cain they can not rest, until they slay their righteous brother Abel, in whom they do also kill unto themselves Christ. Then the blood of righteous Abel crieth unto heaven against unrighteous Cain, neither ceaseth it to cry until the Lord hath revenged it. He asketh those cain's of their brother Abel yea of Christ: but they deny all knowledge of Christ, which labour not to become the sons of God and heirs by Christ, but to become righteous by their own works. In the mean season the blood of Christ continually crieth out against them, even nothing but punishment and vengeance, when as for the elect, it crieth by the spirit of Christ for nothing but grace & reconciliation. The Apostle useth here a Sirian, and a Greek word, saying: Abba, Pater. For this word Abba in the Syrian tongue signifieth a Father, by which name at this day the chief of Monasteries are wont to be called, and by the same name hermits in time past being holy men, did call their Precedents, at the last by use it was also made a Latin word. Wherefore that which Paul saith is as much as: Father, Father, or if thou hadst rather, as, My father. Why the Apostle doubled the word, Father But what is the cause why the Apostle doth double the word, Father, that is, the cry of the spirit? I will by your leave bring forth my judgement and opinion hereof. First I think that he would hereby show the force and straining of this holy cry. For when as we call any with great affection, & through no small necessity, we are wont eftsoons to double his name. Now because that sin, and Cain do always go about with desperation to stop this cry of the spirit for the grace of the father it is need surely to cry most strongly, and with a voice both doubled, and exceedingly strained forth, that is, the trust of the grace of the Father ought to be most strong and not able to be overcome. Again such is the manner of the Scripture, to witness the certainty of a thing, sometime to double or iterate the words, as joseph did to Pharaoh Gen. 41. So here also the spirit twice calleth upon the Father, whereby it may show the certainty of his fatherly favour and grace. For the trust hereof aught to be no less certain, then great and unmovable. Finally it is meet also to persever, which again this doubling of the name of father doth note unto us. For as soon as we begin to call God Father, Satan with all his band moveth war against us, and omitteth no means to wrest from us this trust of sons toward God our Father, wherefore tother Father must be diligently doubled, that is, our trust and confidence must be confirmed, neither must we ever cease from calling upon this Father, but must most earnestly continue in this cry of the spirit, whereby we may obtain a certain sure experience of his fatherly goodness, by which our trust in him may be made most certain and safe. And perhaps Paul had respect hereunto, when he first set down Abba, which is a word strange to them, to whom he wrote, after adding Pater, that is Father, a familiar word and of their own language, meaning to signify hereby, that the beginning of so great trust in God is unaccustomed and even strange unto men, but that when the mind hath a while exercised it, and continued in it although assailed with temptations, it becometh even familiar and almost natural, that we now enjoy God as a domestical Father, and do in every thing most confidently call upon him. Verse 7. Wherefore now thou art not a servant, but a son: if thou be a son, thou art also an heir of God through Christ. Now, saith he, that is after the coming of the spirit of the sons, after the knowledge of Christ, thou art not a servant. For as it is said, a son and a servant are so contrary one to an other, that the same man can not be both a son and a servant. A son and a servant do greatly differ. We can not obtain salvation by works. A son is free and willing, a servant is compelled and unwilling: a son liveth, and resteth in faith: a servant in works. And so by this place also it appeareth, that we can obtain no salvation of God by works, but before thou workest that which is acceptable unto him, it is necessary that thou have received of him and possess salvation and all things, that thereupon works may freely flow forth, to the honour of so gracious a father, and to the profit of thy neighbours, without any fear of punishment, or looking for reward. This, that which Paul saith, proveth: If thou be a son, thou art also an heir. For it is said before, that we become the sons of God by faith, without any works, & therefore heirs also, as this place witnesseth: for by nature they that are sons, the same also are heirs. But if this inheritance of the Father be now thine by faith, surely thou art rich in all good things, before thou hast wrought any thing. For how should it be, that by faith thou art the heir of God, without any works through only grace, and that thou mayst again first merit it by works? Wherefore the case standeth, as I often times say: To a man that is baptised and believeth in Christ, the heavenly inheritance of the Father is already given at once, that is, all good things, they are only hid as yet by faith, for that the manner of the present life can not suffer, that he should enjoy them being revealed. Whereupon Paul saith Rom. 8: Ye are saved, but by hope, for ye do not as yet see it, but do yet wait, when the possession of your good things shall be revealed. And 1. Pet. 1. it is said: Your salvation is reserved in heaven and prepared for you, to be showed in the last time. Whereunto the works of a Christian ought to be referred. Wherefore the works of a Christian ought not to have regard of merit, which is the manner of servants, but only of the use and commodity of his neighbours, that he do not live and work to himself, but to his neighbour, whereby he may truly live to the glory of God. For by faith he is rich in all good things, and truly blessed. Now the Apostle addeth, through Christ, lest that any think that so great inheritance cometh unto us freely, Although we are saved freely & with out all merit in respect of ourselves yet Christ hath merited and with a dear price purchased salvation for us. and without all cost. For although it be given unto us without our cost, and without all our merit, yet it cost Christ a dear price, who, that he might purchase it for us, was made under the law, and satisfied it for us both by life & also by death. So those benefits which of love we bestow upon our neighbour, do come unto him freely, and without any charges or labour unto him, notwithstanding they cost us some thing, inasmuch as we bestow upon him, although freely and of mere goodness, yet those things that are our own, whether it be labour or part of our substance, even as Christ hath bestowed those things that be his upon us. And thus hath Paul called back his Galathians from the teachers of works, which preached nothing but the law, perverting the Gospel of Christ. All which things are very necessary to be marked of us also. For the Pope with his Prelates and Monks, hath now too long a time with intruding and urging his laws, which are foolish and most pernicious, inasmuch as they do every where disagree with the word of God, seduced almost the whole world from the Gospel of Christ, & plainly extinguished the faith of sons, according as the Scripture hath in divers places very manifestly prophesied of his kingdom. Wherefore let every one that desireth to obtain salvation, most diligently take heed of him and all his Apostles, no otherwise then of Satan himself, and his chief and most pernicious Apostles. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER, CONCERNING FAITH AND DIFFIDENCE IN danger and trouble. Matth. 8. Verse 23. WHen jesus was entered into the ship, his Disciples followed him. 24. And behold, there arose a great tempest in the sea, so that the ship was covered with waves, but he was asleep. 25. Then his Disciples came, and awoke him, saying, Master, save us, we perish. 26. And he said unto them: Why are ye fearful, O ye of little faith? Then he arose, and rebuked the winds and the sea: & so there was a great calm. 27. And the men marveled, saying: What man is this, that both the winds & the sea obey him? ACcording to the history this text setteth before us an example of faith and diffidence: whereof we may learn both what a strong and invincible thing faith is, and that it must be exercised & tried even in great matters, and full of peril: and also how desperate a thing on the other side diffidence is, and how full of fear and trembling, which can never do any thing rightly or well. This doth experience most lively set forth in the Disciples. How desperate & fearful a thing diffidence is, it appeareth by the example of Christ's Disciples. They, when they entered into the ship with Christ, and whilst there was calmness in the lake, were nothing disquieted in mind, neither felt any fear. Then if one should have asked them whether they believed, they would have answered without doubt that they did believe. For they did not know that their heart did trust in that quietness, for that all troubles were absent, and therefore did rest upon a thing visible, and not upon the invisible grace of God. Which then was made manifest, as soon as the tempest was risen, and the waves did cover the ship: for by and by all their trust and confidence ceased, for that the quietness and calmness whereunto they trusted was taken away, and diffidence, which before when all things were prosperous did lurk in their minds, did then appear. For this is the nature of diffidence, that it believeth or knoweth no more than it feeleth. Forasmuch therefore as it had possessed the breasts of the Apostles, they felt nothing now but the fearful tempest, and the waves covering the ship, they saw the sea swelling and greatly raging to threaten nothing but death. These things only did they think upon, these only did they consider, and therefore could there be no measure or end of fear and trembling in their minds: the more they weighed in their mind the peril, so much more were they terrified, and seemed even now to stick in the very jaws of death, hoping for no life or deliverance. And as they could not so much as think any thing else because of their unbelief, so all comfort also was far from them. For diffidence or unbelief hath nothing whereunto it may trust or flee, wherefore when outward adversity cometh, it admitteth nothing into the mind but it, and therefore it can never feel any peace or quietness while this remaineth. So in hell, where diffidence exerciseth full tyranny, there can never be any intermission of desperation, trembling and terror. What faith doth in trouble & danger. But if the Disciples had been then endued with a sound faith, and if it had ruled in this danger, it would have removed from the mind the wind and all this tempest, & in steed of these would wholly have thought upon the power of God and his grace promised, whereunto it would no otherwise have trusted, then if it had sat upon a most strong rock far from the sea and from all tempest. For this is the chief virtue and cunning of faith, that it seeth those things which are not seen or felt, and seeth not those things which are felt, yea which are now sore upon us, and do press & urge us. As on the contrary side diffidence seeth nothing but that which it feeleth, neither can it rest upon any other thing but that which it feeleth. For this cause those things are of God laid upon faith, which the whole world is not able to bear, as sins, death, the world, and the devil: neither suffereth he it to be occupied with small matters. For who flieth not death? who is not terrified & overcome of it? The force of faith, whereby death, the world, Satan and sin are overcome. Against this invincible faith standeth, yea it courageously setteth upon it, which otherwise tameth all things, and overcometh and swalloweth up that unsatiable devourer of life. So even the whole world is not able to bring under and subdue the flesh, but it rather bringeth under and maketh the world subject unto it, & beareth rule over it, so that he liveth carnally whosoever is of the world. But faith subdueth this subduer of all other, holdeth it in subjection, and teacheth it not only to be ruled, but also to obey. Likewise who is able to bear the hatred and fury, ignominy and persecution of the world? who doth not yield unto it and is oppressed with it? But faith even laugheth at all the iniquity, rage, and fury thereof, and maketh that unto itself matter of spiritual joy, wherewith other are even killed. It doth no otherwise behave itself against Satan also. Who is able to overcome him, which practiseth so many crafts and wiles, whereby he stayeth and hindereth the truth, the word of God, faith, and hope, and soweth against them innumerable errors, sects, delusions, heresies, desperations, superstitions, and such kind of abominations without number? All the world is to him as a spark of fire to a fountain of water, it is wholly subdued unto him in these evils, as (alas) we both see and try. But it is faith which troubleth him, for it is not only not made subject to his delusions, but it also discovereth and confoundeth them, that they be no more of any importance, that they are able to do nothing but do vanish away, as we have experience at this day by the decaying and vanishing of the Papacy and indulgences. Finally, sin hath that force, that that which is even the least, can not be appeased or extinguished of any creature, that it doth not gnaw and tear the conscience, yea if all men should go about together to comfort the conscience wherein sin hath begun to live, they should go about it in vain. But faith is that noble Champion, which overcometh and extinguisheth every sin, yea if all the sins which the whole world hath committed from the beginning were laid upon one heap, it would extinguish and abolish them all together. Is not faith therefore most mighty and of incomparable strength, which dareth encounter with so many and so mighty enemies, and beareth away the certain victory? Wherefore john saith in his first Epistle chap. 5: This is that victory that hath overcome this world, even our faith. Howbeit this victory cometh not with rest and quietness, Faith obtaineth not the victory over the enemies of our souls without sore fight & conflicts. we must try the fight, not without blood and wounds, that is, we must needs feel sin, death, the flesh, the devil, and the world, yea and that assailing us so grievously and with so great force, that the heart of man do think that he is past all hope, that sin hath overcome, and the devil gotten the upper hand, and on the contrary side very little feel the force of faith. We see an example of this fight here in the Disciples, for the waves did not only strike the ship, but did even cover it, that nothing could be now looked for, but that it should be drowned, especially Christ being asleep, and knowing not of this peril: all hope was then past, life seemed to be overcome, and death appeared to have the victory. But as it fell out with the Disciples in this tentation, so also doth it fall out, and must fall out with all the godly in all kind of temptations, which are of sin, the devil, and the world. In the tentation of sin we must needs feel the conscience thrall unto sins, the wrath of God and hellish pains to hang over us, and all things to be in that case, as though we were past all recovery. Likewise when we have conflict with the devil, it must appear, as though truth should give place to error, and Satan should drive the word of God out of the whole world, and he himself reign for a God with his delusions & deceits. Neither standeth the case any otherwise, when it cometh to pass that we are tried of the world, it must needs be, that it should greatly rage's and cruelly persecute us, so that it shall seem that no man at all is able to stand, that no man is able to obtain safety, or profess his faith: that Cain only shall bear rule, and suffer his brother in no place. Albeit we be in danger & great distress, yet must we not be discouraged, but believe that we shall be delivered But we must not judge according to such feeling and outward appearance of things, but according to faith. The present example ought to stir us up hereunto, & to be received of us in steed of special comfort. For we learn hereof, that albeit sins do urge us, death disquiet us, the world rage against us, and the devil lay snares for us, that is, although the waves do cover the ship, yet we must not be discouraged. For although thy conscience being wounded doth feel sin, and the wrath and indignation of God, yet shalt thou not therefore be plunged in hell. Neither shalt thou therefore die, although even the whole world hate and persecute thee, and gape so wide to devour thee, as the morning spreadeth forth itself: They are only waves, which falling upon thy ship do terrify thee, and compel thee to cry out, we perish, Lord save us. Thou hast therefore in the former part of this text, the nature of faith set forth, how it is wont and aught to behave itself in tentation, also how desperate a thing diffidence is, and nothing to be counted of. The other part commendeth unto us love in Christ, whereby he was brought so far, that he broke of his sleep, arose, and counted the danger that his Disciples were in for his own, and helped them freely, ask or looking for nothing of them therefore. Even as it is the nature of Christian love to do all things freely and of good will to the glory of God, and profit of our neighbours, The nature of Christian love. seeking to itself nothing thereby. For the exercising of which love man adopted of God, is left in the earth, even as Christ being made man lived in the earth that he might do for us, as he witnesseth of himself: I came not to be served, but to serve, Matth. 20.28 and to give my life for the ransom of many. The Allegories of this deed. In this deed Christ hath set forth the life of Christians, and the state of such as preach and teach the word of God. The ship signifieth the Church, the sea the world, the wind the devil, the Disciples of Christ are the Preachers and godly Christians: Christ the truth, the Gospel and faith. Now, before that Christ and his Disciples enter into the ship, the sea is calm, & the wind quiet, but when Christ with his Disciples are entered in, by and by ariseth a tempest. This is that which he said: Matth. 10.34 The world can not abide the sound and sincere preaching of the Gospel. I came not to send peace but the sword. For if Christ would suffer the world to live after his own manner, and would not reprove the works thereof, it would be quiet enough. But now seeing that he preacheth that they which are counted wise men, are fools: they that are counted righteous, are sinners: they that are counted rich, are not blessed, but miserable, it rageth & is in great fury. So thou mayst at this day find wise men of this world, which in deed would suffer the Gospel to be preached, if the words of the Scripture should be simply declared, and in the mean season the state of Ecclesiastical persons not reproved: but as soon as thou shalt begin to condemn by the Scriptures all those things which have been hitherto brought in under a false name of religion, and to teach that they are to be rejected as being of no importance, thou preachest seditiously, and troublest the world with unchristian doctrine. But how doth the present text pertain unto us? A great tempest did arise, where that ship went, wherein Christ and his Disciples were. Other ships did pass the sea quietly, nothing tossed of the winds, this ship only must be tossed and covered with waves, because Christ was carried in it. For the world can suffer any kind of preaching beside the preaching of Christ: the cause is, for that he condemneth all things of the world, Why the world can not abide the preaching of Christ. Matth. 12.30. joh. 16.8. and challengeth all righteousness to himself, according to that which he saith: He that is not with me, is against me: and again: The Spirit will reprove the world of sin, of righteousness, and of judgement. He saith not: will preach, but, will reprove, and not this or that man, but, the world, and whatsoever is in the world. Against this ship of Christ all this tempest is raised, and it is brought into danger. For the world doth not suffer his own things to be condemned, but Christ can not allow them, & if he should allow them, he had come in vain. For if the world were wise by itself, and did know and follow the truth, what need had there been that Christ & his Disciples should preach? Wherefore it is not a small comfort to Christians, A comfort to true Preachers that they know before that they shall suffer persecution. especially to Preachers, that they are certain before, that as soon as they shall begin to preach Christ to the world, they must suffer persecution, & that it can not be otherwise. So that it is a sure sign, and therefore to be wished, that it is true Christian preaching, if it be tried with persecution, especially of the holy, learned and wise men of the world. As it is an undoubted sign also, that it is unchristian preaching, if it be praised commonly and honoured of the world, according to that saying Luke 6: Blessed are ye when men hate you, and put out your name as evil, for the Son of man's sake: for so did their fathers to the Prophets. Now mark how our spiritual men do behave themselves, and of what sort their doctrine is: They have got into their subjection the riches, glory, and power of the world, and they that praise them, enjoy the honour and pleasures thereof, their case in all things agreeth with the case of the false Prophets, and yet they dare boast themselves to be Preachers and Teachers of Christ, and worshippers of God. Of whom the Preachers of God's word must look for & desire help in the time of trouble and persecution. The next thing, whereby this deed doth comfort and encourage the Preachers of Christ, is, that it showeth where help is to be asked, when a tempest is risen: to wit, not of the world, for not man's wisdom or power, but Christ himself, and he alone is able to help them. Him they must call upon in every distress with full confidence, in him they must trust, as his Disciples here did. For unless they had believed that Christ was able to take away the danger wherein they were, they would not have awaked him, and prayed him to save them: although their faith then was very weak, and very much diffidence was in them, for that they did not confidently commit themselves with him unto danger, doubting nothing but he was able to deliver them out of the midst of the sea, and from death itself. Hereof therefore let it be acknowledged as certain, that as no judge or Moderator can be given to the word of God, but God only, so there can be had no other maintainer or defender thereof: who as he sendeth it out whether he will without any merit or counsel of men, so he alone also will defend & preserve it without the aid or strength of men: and therefore he that seeketh aid unto this word of men, shall without doubt fall, being forsaken as well of men as of God. Whereas Christ did sleep, it giveth us to understand, that in the time of persecution he doth sometimes withdraw himself, Christ sometimes in the time of persecution and trouble with draweth himself & differreth his help for a while. & seemeth as though he slept, whiles that he giveth not strength & power valiantly to resist, the peace and tranquillity of mind being now disturbed, but suffereth us to wrestle and labour with our infirmity for a while, that we may acknowledge how we are altogether nothing, and that all things do depend on his grace and power. As Paul confesseth of himself 2. Cor. 1. that it behoved that he should be so pressed and troubled out of measure, that we should not trust in ourselves but in God, which raiseth the dead. Such sleep of God David oftentimes felt, and maketh mention thereof in many places: Arise, awake, O Lord: why sleepest thou? why dost thou forget us? etc. In a sum, the present text offereth unto us two principal things full of confidence and godly boldness. The first, that when persecution is risen for the word of God, we may say: We knew that it would so come to pass. Christ is in the ship, therefore the sea so rageth, the winds trouble us, the waves fall upon us as though they would drown us. But let them rage and be furious as much as they may: it is certain, the sea and the winds do obey Christ which is the other principal thing which this text offereth. Persecution shall extend no farther, nor rage's any longer than he will, and albeit the waves do even overwhelm us, yet must they be obedient at his beck. He is Lord over all, wherefore nothing shall hurt us: he only endue us with his grace, that we be not overcome by unbelief and so despair, Amen. Whereas the men marveled and praised the Lord, as unto whom the sea and winds do obey, The Gospel is more spread abroad and faith increased by persecution. it signifieth that the Gospel and word of God is so far from being extinguished by persecution, that thereby it is spread farther abroad, and faith also is increased and becometh stronger. Wherein it appeareth how divers the nature of this divine good thing is from the good things of the world, which decay by calamity and misfortune, and are increased by prosperity and fortunate affairs: But the kingdom of Christ is increased and strengthened by tribulation and adversity: but is diminished and weakened by peace and tranquillity. Whereupon Paul saith 2. Cor. 12: The lords power is made perfect through weakness: which God perform in us also, Amen. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER, WHEREIN IS ENTREATED OF THE LIFE OF A CHRISTIAN. 2. Cor. 6. Verse 1. SO we therefore as works together beseech you, that ye receive not the grace of God in vain. 2. For he saith: I have heard thee in a time accepted, and in the day of salvation have I succoured thee: behold now the accepted time, behold now the day of salvation. 3. Let us give no occasion of offence in any thing, that our ministery be not reprehended. 4. But in all things let us behave our selves as the Ministers of God, in much patience, in afflictions, in necessities, in distresses. 5. In stripes, in prisons, in tumults, in labours. 6. In watchings, in fastings, in purity, in knowledge, in long suffering, in kindness, in the holy spirit, in love unfeigned. 7. In the word of truth, in the power of God, by the armour of righteousness on the right hand and on the left. 8. By honour and dishonour, by evil report and good report, as deceivers, and yet true: 9 As unknown, and yet known: as dying, and behold, we live: as chastened, & yet not killed. 10. As sorrowing, & yet always rejoicing: as poor, and yet make many rich: as having nothing, & yet possessing all things. THis is an admonition and exhortation to the Corinthians, to apply themselves to those things, which they did already know. The words surely are easy to be understood, but hard to be done, and in use most rare. For in such marvelous order and colours he painteth out Christian life, as it can not be pleasant to the flesh to behold. First he saith: The Ministers of the word workers together with God. As workers together we beseech you. He calleth the Ministers of the word together workers, as 1. Cor. 3. he also saith: We together are Gods labourers, ye are God's husbandry, and God's building. Which is thus much in effect: We preach and labour in the word among you by teaching & exhorting, but God inwardly with his spirit doth bless and give the increase, lest that the outward labour in the word be in vain. And so God is the inward and true Master, which bringeth to pass all things, whom we serve in the office of outward preaching. Now he calleth himself & his fellows such together workers, lest they should contemn the outward word, as though they either had not need of it, or had already sufficiently attained to the knowledge thereof. For although God can alone by his spirit, without the outward word work all things in the minds of the elect, yet he will not do it, but rather will use together working preachers, & work by their word when & where it pleaseth him. Forasmuch therefore as it seemeth good unto God to give to Preachers this office, name, & dignity, that they be counted workers together with him, it is not lawful for any man to challenge either that learning or holiness unto himself, that he neglect even never so simple a sermon wherein the word of God is preached, much less that he contemn it: for we know not when that time will come, when God by his Preacher will vouchsafe to accomplish his work in us. The preaching of the Gospel doth not long continued in one place sincere & uncorrupt Secondly, the Apostle admonisheth of the danger of losing the light of the Gospel, when he saith: that ye receive not the grace of God in vain. Whereby he giveth us to understand that the preaching of the Gospel is not a perpetual, continuing & permanent doctrine, but rather that it is like rain that suddenly cometh & soon passeth away when as the Sun and heat come by and by and take away all the moisture that is left thereof, and afterward scorch and hurt things nevertheless. This very experience proveth, for no man shall be able to bring forth even one place in the world, where the Gospel hath remained pure and sincere above the age of one man, but continued and increased while those lived by whose ministery it began, they departing hence that also almost wholly departed, and by and by after followed heretics and false teachers, with their delusions and false doctrine perverting and corrupting all things. So Moses foretold his Israelites, that by and by after his death it should come to pass, that they should departed from the way of the Lord, and corrupt their own ways, which the book of judges witnesseth to have come to pass. Moreover the same book saith, that as often as any judge which had called again the word of the Lord did die, they fell again forthwith to their ungodliness, & made all things worse and worse. So joas the king continued in his duty so long as jehoiada the Priest lived, who being dead, he began by and by to be a King unlike himself, Act. 20 29. & left the office of a good and godly King. Neither fell it out otherwise after Christ had received his Apostles to himself almost the whole world was filled with heresies and false doctrine. Which Paul pronounced before: I know this, saythes, that after my departing shall grievous wolves enter in among you▪ not sparing the flock, etc. So standeth the case at this day also, the pure and sincere Gospel hath shined unto us, the day of grace and salvation, and the acceptable time are present, but they shall shortly be ended if the world stand. Moreover, to receive grace in vain can be nothing else, What it is to receive the grace of God in vain then to hear the pure and sincere word of God, whereby the grace of God is preached and offered, and notwithstanding to embrace it with no diligence, neither to be changed or altered in life. By this unthankful slothfulness we deserve to have it taken away again as being unworthy of it. For we making so light of the Gospel are undoubtedly they which are bidden and called to the marriage, but whiles being busied about other matters we despise this grace, the good man of the house is angry with us, & sweareth that we shall never taste of his supper. The same doth Paul now here admonish of, that we take heed to ourselves, least that we receive the Gospel unthankfully & without fruit. Yea Christ also admonished us of the same: Walk while ye have the light, joh. 12.35. lest the darkness come upon you. It ought surely to make us more wary and heedful, even for that we suffered so grievous and pernicious darkness under the Pope. But we have now forgotten all such things, no thankfulness, no amendment is found among us, which how greatly to our own hurt we neglect, we shall shortly feel. For he saith: I have heard thee in a time accepted, and in the day of salvation have I succoured thee: behold now the accepted tyme. He describeth here the marvelous felicity which is there where the Gospel flourisheth, there is no wrath, no revengement, all things are replenished with grace and salvation, yea it is unspeakable how great felicity these words do speak of. Whereas he first saith: a time accepted, A time accepted. it is spoken by an Hebrew figure, and is as much as if thou say: a gracious time and replenished with the favour of God, wherein God turneth away his anger, and declareth nothing but love toward us, and a ready will to help us. Our sins are blotted out, not only those that be past, but those also which as yet stick in our flesh, and that I may speak in a word: the kingdom of mercy is present, wherein nothing but forgiveness of sins, and restoring of grace is showed: heaven standeth open, the right year of jubilee is come, wherein all debts are remitted, and no grace is denied. Whereupon he saith: In a time accepted have I heard thee, that is, now I favour thee & am merciful unto thee, whatsoever thou wilt have, pray for it, and thou shalt obtain it, and certainly receive it. Only let not the fault be in thyself, pray, while this time endureth. The day of salvation. Behold now the day of salvation. He calleth this the time and day of salvation, that is of help and felicity. For we are not only certain hereof, that God is merciful and favourable unto us, and we acceptable unto him, but also as we believe, and by faith are sure of his goodness toward us, so he declareth in deed, heareth them that cry unto him, helpeth and saveth them, yea and maketh them plainly blessed. We therefore worthily acknowledge and confess this time to be the wished, prosperous, happy, and very day of salvation. For it behoveth that both be together, both that God favour us, and also that he declare his favour towards us by work or deed. That he favoureth us, the accepted time which is now present doth witness: that he doth also help us and finish our salvation, this other witnesseth, to wit the day of salvation, the day of help. But as the state of the life of Christians is, if thou wilt judge according to the outward man, thou wilt judge it rather a time of affliction, wrath and indignation, wherein the Gospel is preached, and wherein they live, than a time of grace and salvation. Wherefore the words of the spirit must be spiritually understood, so shall we easily see & perceive that these noble and most pleasant names do most rightly and properly belong to the time wherein the Gospel flourisheth, that it is a time accepted, that is, full of grace, and a time of salvation, whereby surely all the riches and felicity of Christ's kingdom are notably commended and set forth unto us. Let us give no occasion of offence in any thing. Forasmuch therefore as there is so acceptable and gracious a time, let us, saith he, use it worthily, and not receive it in vain. First endeavouring to give no occasion of offence to any man, lest that our office of preaching Christ be reprehended, No offence must be given whereby the Gospel may be reprehended. Double occasion of offence may be given, whereby the Gospel is reprehended. whereby he sufficiently declareth what offence he meaneth, namely, that the doctrine of the Gospel may not be stumbled at, as though he taught that which is not perfect and sound. Now there may be given a double occasion of offence, whereby the Gospel is reprehended: one, whereby the Heathen are offended, when as some under a pretence of the Gospel seek the liberty of the flesh, will not be obedient to magistrates, turning the liberty of the spirit, into fleshly licentiousness. These do marvelously offend the discreeter & wiser sort of the Heathen, and make that they hate the Gospel without a cause, which they think doth teach this licentiousness: and so as it were with a certain force they do by this their insolency repel and drive them from the faith of Christ: for they measuring all Christians by these, do detest them as light men, and troublers of the common wealth, and therefore not to be suffered. This offence therefore, and this reprehension, or rather hatred and persecution of the Gospel we acknowledge to come through these preposterous Christians. another offence is, whereby even Christians among themselves are sometime offended, through the unseasonable use of Christian liberty, in meats and other indifferent things, whereat the weaker sort in faith do sometime stumble. Whereof the Apostle hath given many precepts 1. Cor. 8. Rom. 14. He exhorteth therefore here unto that, whereof he admonisheth in other words 1. Cor. 10: So behave yourselves, that ye give none offence, neither to the jews, nor to the Grecians, nor to the Church of God: even as I please all men in all things, not seeking mine own profit, but the profit of many, that they might be saved. The same he teacheth also Philip. 2. that every man look not on his own things, but on the things of other men, for so all offence should be easily taken away, nay none at all should be given. That our ministery be not reprehended. Though we can not bring to pass that the word of God be not at all reprehended, yet must we endeavour that it be not reprehended through our fault. Who can bring to pass that our ministery shall not be reprehended, seeing that the Gospel is necessarily subject to persecution, no less than Christ himself? In deed it is not in us to make that the word of God be not reprehended and persecuted of them which are ignorant of God, and do not believe: for it is a rock of offence, isaiah. 8. Rom. 9 this offence cometh because of our faith, and can not be avoided of us, and therefore the blame thereof ought not to be laid upon us. Howbeit there is an other offence which proceedeth hereof, for that our love is not sufficient dutiful, this cometh through us, inasmuch as our works are the cause thereof, because they do not so shine by faith, that they w●i●h are conversant with us may thereby be provoked to serve God, as it is meet. This offence is given through our fault, whom it be cometh so to live, that the jews, Heathen & Princes of the world might have no occasion to say: Behold how light and naughty these men are, yea and very wicked wretches, the doctrine of life which they follow must needs be evil and pestilent. So our infamy and crimes are occasion of offence to others, and of hatred and detestation of the most holy word of God. For whereas we ought so to know, preach and follow it, that thereby both our neighbours might be brought unto God, and to the leading of a godly life, and also the glory of God set forth, we by our naughty and slothful life bring to pass that it doth not only bring no profit and commodity to our neighbours, but is brought into hatred and made detestable through our means, bearing our ignominy and reproach. Now it is a most horrible sin and wickedness by our naughtiness to make the word of God which is most holy and bringeth salvation, to make it I say, so odious, and to repel and drive men from it, to our own, and their most certain destruction. But in all things let us behave ourselves as the ministers of God, in much patience, in afflictions, etc. Here he describeth in order the signs & proper tokens of a Christian life, wherewith it ought to be adorned in outward conversation: Not meaning that one is made a Christian and godly hereby, but as he saith, that by these as by proper fruits and signs of Christianity, we should show ourselves to be both, and behave ourselves as the ministers of God, that is as Christians & godly men. And mark well that he saith: as the ministers of God. It may seem very strange, that the ministery of God consisteth in these, in many afflictions, in necessities, in distresses, in stripes, in prisons, in tumults, in watchings, in fastings, etc. Among these he numbereth not Masses, and prayers for the dead, or other trifles of feigned worship of God. He rehearseth those things that pertain to the true and right service of God, whereby the body is chastised, and the flesh tamed. Which is well to be noted, lest that any neglect fastings, watchings and labour, and make us count of them for that they do not justify. They bring not righteousness in deed, yet are they fruits of righteousness being obtained, wherein thou mayst be exercised, and whereby thou mayst keep thy flesh in subjection, and enforce it to do his duty. In tumults. He rehearseth tumults or seditions among the rest, not that it becometh us to teach or move them, who ought to obey Magistrates, and with quietness to live obedient unto all in that which is good, as Paul teacheth Rom. 13, and Christ Matth. 22: Give unto Cesar those things that are Caesar's: but that we must bear tumults of others, as also necessities, distresses, stripes, and imprisonments, which we must cause or procure unto none, but suffer being procured and laid upon us by others. Wherefore in the first place he setteth much patience, which surely moveth no sedition or tumult, but rather suffereth it, and appeaseth it, if it can. But in the mean season it singularly comforteth us at this time, Christians commonly accused to raise sedition and tumults, when they suffer the same being raised of other. when as tumults are commonly imputed unto us, for that this is incident to a Christian life, that for the preaching of the Gospel it is accused to raise sedition, which it rather suffereth being raised of other against the word of God. For as in time past Achab accused the most holy Prophet Elias of sedition, affirming that it was he that troubled Israel, when as he himself in deed did trouble it: so is it neither a shameful nor new thing, for us to be accused of the same when we preach the same word. Let us think when the enemies of God lay this reproach and slander upon us, that not only Elias, not only the Apostles, but Christ himself was counted of the jews a seditious fellow, & crucified, a title being written in three languages and put on the cross, that he should of all be counted as a seditious king of the jews, which would have moved that people against Cesar, and adjoined them to himself, who in deed by word and example of his life taught nothing more than submission and obedience, and lived so that he was ready to profit and minister unto all. As for the rest whereof the Apostle here maketh mention, as patience, affliction, necessity, distress, stripes, prisons, labour, watchings, fasting, purity: it is easy to understand how they pertain to the ministery of God, who truly disdaineth to have slothful, idle, gluttonous, and drowsy ministers, and such as can not abide adversity and trouble▪ But he specially reproveth our delicate ones, which quietly enjoy revenues and rents, and take their delight and pleasure, thinking that it is an unworthy thing that they should labour, for they are shaven, wear long gowns, and cry out in temples etc. Howbeit these shall not be able to approve themselves before God, God will have none to be idle, but also labour and so eat their own bread. who will have all to labour, and eat their own and not other men's bread, as it is written by Paul to the Thessalonians. Who therefore teacheth here also, that God is served by labour, and not that only, but that we also are thereby proved and commended to be the ministers of God. In knowledge. Paul taketh knowledge here for that which we call prudence or wisdom, whereby we use things with reason, behaving ourselves with discretion and comeliness. Of which knowledge the saying also of Paul Rom. 10. is understood: They have the zeal of God, but not according to knowledge, that is, they bear a zeal to the law not prudently, not weighing and considering all things well, that they might do no undecent thing. Wherefore whereas he here expressly requireth knowledge in the ministery of God, Christian's must frame their life prudently and with sufficient discretion. he thereby admonisheth us, that we frame our life with reason, and order it prudently, in all things keeping a mean, and having an advised rehard of our neighbours, lest that in any thing we offend the weaker sort, with unseasonable use of Christian liberty, and that we do all things to the edifying of all. So we must labour, fast, watch, and apply ourselves to chastity and such other things, not above measure, that either the body may be in danger by too much hunger and watching, or the true purity of life by overmuch abstinence from matrimonial company, but we must use these things with knowledge, that is with convenient wisdom and discretion, that they may not any whit hurt, but always edify. Whereupon Paul 1. Cor. 7. expressly admonisheth married folks, that they abstain not overmuch from mutual company, lest that they be tempted of Satan. In all these therefore, in fastings, watchings, labours, chastity &c: the Apostle would prescribe and appoint no rule, law or measure, which the counsels of the Pope and Monks do, but the mean or measure to be observed in them he left free to every man's knowledge and discretion, that every one may consider with himself how much or long he must labour, fast, watch, or abstain, to this end that the flesh may be camed and made obedient to the spirit. In long suffering, in kindness, in the holy Spirit. What the two former are the Apostle hath at large sufficiently declared Rom. 2. Gal. 5. But whereas he saith: In the holy Spirit, it may be understood after two sorts, either that he speaketh of the holy Ghost, God himself, or that he meaneth by the holy spirit the true force and manner of a spiritual life, as though he would admonish in this manner: Beware of an hypocritical spirit, which willbe counted for a holy spirit through a marvelous show and crafty counterfeiting of spiritual things, when it is in deed an unclean, profane, and an evil spirit, and bringeth in nothing but sects and heresies. A true spiritual life. But live ye in the true & holy spirit which is given of God, which giveth and maintaineth unity, one mind, heart and affection, whereof he speaketh also Eph. 4: Endeavour to keep the unity of the spirit in the bond of peace. They therefore which persever in the same true faith, mind and sentence, behave themselves as the ministers of God in the holy spirit, being truly spiritual, and living a spiritual life. For a sincere spiritual life, which is led by the assistance of the holy spirit of God, is also led in the unity of minds, the hearts by faith being affected after the same sort. In love unfeigned, in the word of truth. As he set the holy spirit against heretics and false Prophets, so he setteth unfeigned love against slothful and sluggish Christians, who albeit they have the same meaning and mind in the true spiritual life, as concerning opinions of doctrine, yet are they remiss, cold and faint in love. So he setteth the word of truth against them which abuse the word of God, and interpret it according to their own affections, that thereby they may get them a name and profit. For as false spirits do contemn the word of the Scripture, and prefer themselves before it: so these do in deed boast of the word, and willbe counted masters of the Scripture, but by their interpretations do pervert the sense and meaning thereof. Against these Peter speaketh: If any man speak, let him speak as the words of God, that is, let him take heed that he be certain that those words which he speaketh, be the words of God, and not his own vain imagination. Now Paul calleth that here the word of truth, which that is sincere word of God, The word of truth. not which is unsyncere & feigned, which forasmuch as it is ours, is falsely called the word of God. For that which we call the true & right word, the Hebrews call the word of truth. In the power of God. In spiritual functions & matters of salvation we must do nothing but that which we are certain that God worketh by us. Of this power Peter also speaketh 1. Pet. 1. If any man minister, let him do it as of the ability which God ministereth. And Paul Coloss. 1: Whereunto I also labour and strive, according to his working, which worketh in me mightily. Again Rom. 15: I dare not speak of anything which Christ hath not wrought by me, to make the Gentiles obedient. etc. Christians must be certain that they are the kingdom of God, and do nothing at all, especially in spiritual functions, and those things that pertain to the salvation of souls, whereof they are not certain, that it is not they which work, but God that worketh by them. For in the kingdom of God it is meet, that God alone do speak, command, do, dispose, and work all things. This Christ meant when he said Matth. 5: Let your light so shine before men, that they may see your good works, and glorify your Father which is in heaven, as the author of them, which doth them and not you. By the armour of righteousness on the right hand, and on the left, by honour and dishonour, etc. This armour he describeth more at large in the Epistle to the Ephesians & Thessalonians. He rehearseth there the girdle of verity, The spiritual armour of a Christian. the breast plate of righteousness, the shoes of preparation to preach the Gospel, the shield of faith, the helmet of salvation, etc. This armour of righteousness, he calleth in his Epistle to the Ephesians, the armour of God, both are to this end, that he may turn Christians from corporal and profane armour, and admonish them, that they are a spiritual people, and therefore must be furnished with spiritual armour, wherewith they must always fight a spiritual fight with spiritual enemies, which here he rehearseth, and showeth that they do assail us both on the right hand and on the left. The enemies of Christians which assail them on the left hand. On the left hand he setteth dishonour, evil report, and that we are counted as deceivers, unknown, dying, chastened, sorrowing, poor, having nothing. For all these things come unto Christians, they are openly defamed, being reproached to their face, and by infamy falsely accused and railed on, counted as deceivers and followers of most wicked trades. They are as unknown although noble, all refusing to be friends with them because of the perilous confession of the name of Christ, yea it many times cometh to pass that they that were their most familiar friends are ashamed of them, for that they have so evil a report, and are very ill spoken of among the chief, richest, wisest, and mightiest of the world. They are dying, that is, as sheep appointed to the slaughter, they look for death every moment, by reason of the great hatred and envy which the evil bear toward them, being always persecuted of the chief of the world. They are chastened, for it often times falleth out that they are stricken and beaten, and do by other discommodities try how they are envied of the world, and how great indignation the mighty of the world bear against them. They are as sorrowing, for all outward things are against them, and the whole world giveth many causes of griefs unto them. They are as poor, for there is no man of the world which will give them any thing, every man is ready to hurt and endamage them. Neither do they possess any thing, for although all things be not taken from them at once, yet are they in that state that they daily look for it. Against these adversities & as enemy's assailing us on the left hand, it is needful that we be fortified & fenced with the armour of God, lest that we either despair or faint. The armour of God. Now this armour is a sure and invincible faith, continual consolation and exhortation of the word of God, and a lively hope and undoubted expectation of the help of God. When being furnished with these, we suffer all things patiently, standing steadfast in our duty, we declare ourselves the sincere ministers of God, which the false Apostles and hypocrites can never do, although they feign that they serve God. On the right hand he setteth glory, praises, Where against Christians must be defended with spiritual armour on the right hand. that we are counted true, known, do live, are not killed, do rejoice, enriching many, possessing all things. For it always falleth out, that there be some which make account of Christians, and reverence them, among whom they are well reported of, and counted true in doctrine, wherefore some are not wanting which join themselves unto them, and do openly pretend friendship with them, freely pronouncing them to be the ministers of God. Neither do they die so oft as they are brought into danger, and being chastened are not always killed. Finally it cometh to pass by the consolation of the spirit, that they do then most of all rejoice, when they are in greatest affliction. For their heart rejoiceth in God, which joy bursteth forth, and uttereth itself in words, works, and gestures. And albeit they be poor in corporal substance, yet are they never famished with hunger, but with the word of God do enrich very many in spirit, & stand not in need of any thing, although they have nothing, for all things are in their hands, for that all creatures must serve the believers, as Christ saith: To him that believeth all things are possible. These things albeit they be the excellent gifts of God, notwithstanding if the fear of God should be absent, even they should be turned into enemies unto us, and therefore is it needful that we be strongly fenced against them with the armour of God, lest that they make us wax proud, or insolently puff us up. A Christian man therefore is marvelously free, and addicted to nothing but to God alone, he setteth God only before his eyes, he endeavoureth to come strait unto him by the middle and high way, between those things which assail on the right hand and on the left, so that he is neither thrown down by adversity, nor puffed up by prosperity, but useth both most rightly, both to the glory of God and profit of his neighbours. We must, saith the Apostle, live such a life, while it is the time of grace and of the lively light of the Gospel, lest that while this day shineth we work not, and that shall have shined unto us in vain. This is the true ministery of God which only he alloweth, wherein he grant that we may serve him, and that most dutifully, Amen. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER, CONCERNING TENTATION. Matth. 4. Verse 1. THen was jesus led aside of the spirit into the wilderness, to be tempted of the Devil. 2. And when he had fasted forty days and forty nights, he was afterward hungry. 3. Then came to him the tempter & said, if thou be the son of God command that these stones be made bread. 4. But he answering, said, it is written: Man shall not live by bread only, but by every word that proceedeth out of the mouth of God. 5. Then the Devil took him up into the holy City, and set him on a pinnacle of the temple, 6. And said unto him: If thou be the Son of God, cast thyself down: for it is written, that he will give his Angels charge over thee, & with their hands they shall lift thee up, lest at any time thou shouldest dash thy foot against a stone. 7. jesus said unto him, it is written again: Thou shalt not tempt the Lord thy God. 8. Again the Devil took him up into an exceeding high mountain, & showed him all the kingdoms of the world, and the glory of them. 9 And said to him: All these will I give thee, if thou wilt fall down, and worship me. 10. Then said jesus unto him, Avoid Satan, for it is written: Thou shalt worship the Lord thy God, and him only shalt thou serve. 11. Then the devil left him: and behold, the Angels came, and ministered unto him. THis text hath therefore been appointed to be red in the beginning of the solemn fast, which hath hitherto been commanded for forty days, that the example of Christ being commended to Christians, they might thereby be provoked to keep that fast so much more religiously, which surely was nothing but a vain trifle. First, for that no man is able to follow the example of Christ, who lived without any meat, forty days, and so many nights. Christ rather followed the example of Moses herein, then gave unto us any example to follow, Moses receiving the Law, was forty days & forty nights in the mount Sinai without meat: so long time would Christ also fast, coming to bring & publish a new law. Again, this fasting is a perverse thing, inasmuch as it was ordained of men. For albeit Christ fasted forty days, yet have we no word of his whereby he hath commanded us also to do the same. He did many other things beside notwithstanding he will not have us also to do them: those things that he hath commanded us to do, those things, I say, we must endeavour to do, that thereby we may obey his wil A most wicked abuse of fasting. But the most pestilent thing of all herein was, that we took upon us, and used fasting as a good and meritorious work, not to tame the flesh thereby, but to satisfy for sins, and to procure the favour of God unto ourselves. Which wicked opinion made our fasting so foul, filthy and abominable before God, that no feastings, banquets, gluttony and drunkenness are so filthy and detestable before him, & it were better to drink and bib day & night, then so to fast. And although this ungodly & wicked intent had not defiled our fasting, but that it had been ordained for chastising that body, Fasting must be left free. nevertheless forasmuch as it was not left free, that every one might have taken it upon him of his own accord, but was enforced by the laws of man, so that most which fasted, fasted against their wills, and with a grudging mind, it could not be but vain and unacceptable to God. I speak not what other hurt it did in women with child, in young children, in the weak and aged. Wherefore we will more rightly consider this text, and see what manner of fasting it teacheth by the example of Christ. Two sorts of fasting, which are allowable & to be commended. The Scripture commendeth unto us two sorts of fasting which are laudable: one, which is taken upon us of our own accord, to tame the flesh, whereof the Apostle speaketh 2. Cor. 6. where he exhorteth us to behave ourselves as the ministers of God, by labours, watchings, & fastings among the rest. An other, which in deed is not taken upon us willingly, yet is willingly borne of us, when by reason of need and poverty we have not whereon to feed. Whereof Paul speaketh also in the first Epistle to the Corinthians, the fourth chapter: Unto this hour we both hunger and thirst. And Christ Matth. 9: When the bridegroom shallbe taken from them, then shall they fast. This fasting Christ teacheth us by his present example, who being alone in the desert and having no meat, did suffer that need and hunger patiently. The first of these two fasts may when we please be left and broken with eating of meat: but this last must be suffered until the Lord end and break it. Now the cause why the Evangelist did so diligently first declare, that jesus was led aside of the spirit into the wilderness, that he should there fast and be tempted, is this: lest that any taking upon him to fast of his own mind and for his own commodities sake, should in vain endeavour to follow this example of Christ. For he must look for the leading aside of the spirit, he will cause fasting and tentation enough: We must not procure tentation to ourselves, but patiently suffer it, when it pleaseth the Lord to send it. for he that without the leading aside of the spirit, should voluntarily bring himself into danger of hunger, or any other tentation, when by the blessing of God he hath what to eat and drink, and whereby to live quietly, he, I say, should plainly tempt the Lord. We must not procure to ourselves poverty and tentation, they will come soon enough of themselves, only when they are sent of the Lord we must endeavour to bear them patiently. jesus, as the Evangelist writeth, was led aside of the spirit into the wilderness, he did not choose to himself the wilderness. They are led with the Spirit of God, which are the sons of God, Romans 8. The good things which the Lord giveth, he giveth for this, that we may enjoy them with thanks giving, not that we should neglect them, tempting him. Moreover, this history is written unto us both to instruct, The history of Christ's tentation containeth both instruction & exhortation. and also to exhort. To instruct, that we may learn hereby, that Christ by this his fasting, hunger, tentation and victory against Satan did serve us, & furthered our salvation: that whosoever believeth in him, may never need, or be hurt by any tentation, but rather shall abound with good things in the mids of poverty, and be safe in the mids of tentation, for that his head and Lord Christ hath overcome all these things for him, whereof by faith he is most certain, according as the Lord himself saith joh. 16: Be ye of good comfort, I have overcome the world. And if God could without meat nourish his Christ forty days & so many nights, so he c●● also Christians. We are exhorted also here, that according to this example of Christ, we suffer hunger, tentation, and other necessities when they come, and when the case so requireth, to the glory of God & profit of our neighbours. And surely if we do earnestly confess and stick to the word of God, these things will undoubtedly come unto us. The present text therefore containeth a marvelous consolation and strengthening of faith, against the filthy and incredulous belly, which being diligently and faithfully weighed, our conscience shallbe very much comforted and strengthened, that we may not be careful for living, but trust with a full confidence, that God will give us plentifully those things that be necessary. Now, that this tentation also is incident unto us it is manifest. For as Christ was led aside into the wilderness, that is, was left alone of God, Angels, men, and all creatures, which might help him: How we are sometime led aside into the wilderness. so also falleth it out with us. We are led aside into the wilderness, we are forsaken and left alone. And this in deed is it, which especially grieveth us, to feel or perceive nothing whereunto we may trust, or from whence we may look for help. As when it lieth upon me to prepare sustenance for me and mine, and I have nothing at all of myself, neither perceive any help coming from any man, neither know where to look for any. This is to be led aside into the desert, and to be left alone, I being in this case, am in the true exercise of faith, than I learn how I myself am nothing, how weak my faith is, how great and rare a thing sound faith is, and how deep abominable incredulity is settled in the hearts of all. But he that hath as yet a purse heavy with money, a seller full of wine, a garnar replenished with grain, he is not yet led aside into the wilderness, or left alone, and therefore can not feel tentation while these things remain. Satan tempteth Christ with care for the belly and diffidence of God's goodness. Secondly, Satan cometh, and tempteth Christ with this care for the belly, and diffidence of the goodness of God, saying: If thou be the Son of God, command that these stones be made bread. As if he should say according to the Dutch proverb: Trust in God, and in the mean season neglect to bake bread. Tarry till a roasted chicken fly into thy mouth. Go now, and say that thou hast a God, who is careful for thee. Where is now that thy heavenly Father, who hath so great a care of thee? Hath he not goodlily forsaken thee? Eat now and drink of thy faith, and let us see how thou shallbe sufficed: it were well wi●● thee, if thou couldst feed on stones. What a goodly son of God art thou? How fatherly doth he behave himself toward thee? He sendeth thee not so much as a piece of bread, but suffereth thee here to be pined with hunger. Go now, and believe yet that thou art the son of God, and he thy Father. Surely with these and such like cogitations he tempteth all the children of God, which Christ also undoubtedly felt, for he was not a block or stone, but very man, although pure from sin, as he also continued, which is not given unto us. Now that the devil tempted Christ with care of the belly, diffidence and wicked desire, the answer of Christ doth sufficiently declare: Man liveth not by bread alone. Which is as much as if he had said: Thou wilt have me have regard to bread alone, thou dealest with me, as though I ought to have no other care but of meat and food for the belly. This tentation is very common, An usual thing to be tempted with care for the belly. even among men that are of the most perfect sort, but they especially feel it, which when they are poor, have notwithstanding a wife and children to nourish and maintain, and therewithal an empty house. Hereupon Paul calleth covetousness the root of all evils, for that it is the right offspring of diffidence. And what thing else, but this diffidence and care of the belly, is the cause that many are so loath to marry? what else doth hold so many thousand men in whoredom & unchaste living, and detaineth them from matrimony, but this immoderate care of the belly, and ungodly fear lest they should be pined and perich with hunger? But the present deed and example of Christ should be thought upon, who although he had been without meat forty days and so many nights, yet was he not quite forsaken and left destitute, but the Angels at the last came, and ministered all things necessary unto him. Thirdly, we may see here how Christ meeteth with this tentation of the belly, and overcometh it. He seeth nothing in deed but stones and that which can not be eaten, therefore from those things that were before his eyes he removeth his mind to the word of God, thereby both strengthening himself, and overthrowing the Devil. On which word Christians, How Christians when they are tempted with poverty and need must comfort themselves, and overcome the tentation. especially when poverty presseth them, and all things seem to be turned into stones, and the mind doth now tremble for fear of hunger, aught with a strong faith to lay hold, and answer the tentation that would quite discourage them: What if the whole world were full of bread? yet doth not man live by bread alone, there is need of an other thing, that is, of the word of God. Now forasmuch as these words are of marvelous force and efficacy, we must a little stand upon them, and endeavour to declare them, & not lightly pass them over. These words therefore Christ took out of the first book of Moses chap. 8. where Moses speaketh thus unto the Israelites: Deut. 8.3. The Lord thy God humbled thee, and suffered thee to hunger, and fed thee with Manna, which neither thou nor thy fathers knew of, to make thee know that a man doth not live by bread only, but by every word that proceedeth out of the mouth of the Lord. Which is as much as if he had said: Whereas he suffered thee to hunger, and yet thou didst not perish, thou mayst thereby easily know, that it is God which sustaineth thee by his word even without bread. For if we did live and were nourished by bread alone, it were necessary that we should be always filled with bread. But it is the word of God that nourisheth us, which he will have preached, that we may know that he is our God, and that he will show himself bountiful and gracious unto us. He that believeth in the word of God shall both be sustained in the time of hunger, and at the last assuredly have food sufficient. We are taught therefore by this answer of Christ, and testimony of Moses, that he which believeth in the word of God, shall undoubtedly have experience of two things. First, that when meat is wanting, and he is pinched with hunger, he is as well sustained and strengthened by this word, that he die not or perish with hunger, as if he might abundantly enjoy meat, this word of God, which he obtaineth in heart, nourishing and strengthening him without meat and drink. And if he have but a little meat, he shall perceive that little, although it were but even one piece of bread, to feed and nourish him no less, then if he did enjoy princely fare. For not by bread, but by the word of God the body is nourished and preserved, like as by it it was made, as also all other things, like as by the word they were created, so also by it are they preserved. The other thing, which we are here taught that the believer shall have experience of, is, that at the length he shall assuredly receive bread, from whence so ever it come, yea although it should rain down from heaven, as Manna did to the Israelites, in a place where no other bread could be gotten. Let a Christian quietly promise to himself and look for these two things, his hope can not be frustrate, either he shall have in hunger somewhat to eat, from whence soever it be given him, or his hunger shallbe made so tolerable unto him, that he shallbe no less fed, then if he were fed with bread, the power of the word of God nourishing and sustaining him. Those things that I have said of bread that is, of meat, are also to be understood of drink, apparel, house, and all things necessary unto this life. It may be in deed that a godly man do need apparel, Singular comfort against poverty and need. or an house, etc. but at length he shall have them. The leaves falling from the trees shall sooner be turned into coats and cloaks, than we can be left naked, or surely those garments which we have shall not wax old, which the Israelites tried, whose clothes and shoes in the desert were not torn, as also a most wide wilderness was unto them in steed of houses, places unpassable, passable, unwaterie, watery, finally the stony rocks, fountains of water. For the Word of God standeth sure and unmovable: The Lord is careful for us. And Paul saith: 1. Pet. 5.7. 1. Tim. 6.17. God giveth us abundantly all things to enjoy. Also Christ saith Matth. 6: Seek first the kingdom of God, and all things shallbe ministered unto you, only be careful for nothing. Such words and promises of God must needs remain true for ever, and therefore no good thing can be wanting to them that believe. This even daily experience may teach us. We see commonly poor folks and their children to be better liking than many rich folks and their children, for that the use of their small sustenance is by the blessing of God increased, and doth much more feed and nourish them, than all that most abundant substance doth feed and nourich the rich. Now, whereas the wicked do sometime suffer need, or in the time of famine some do even die through hunger, that is the special vengeance of God, as is also the pestilence, war and such like. Otherwise it plainly appeareth, that not meat but God doth feed and sustain us. Howbeit whereas God feedeth the world with bread, and not with his word alone without bread, he therefore doth it, It pleaseth God to work by ordinary means, yet of no necessity. that he may so hide his work, and exercise our faith. So he commanded the Israelites, that they should prepare themselves to battle, and yet he would not have the victory to be gotten by their sword and labour: but he himself would by means of their sword and labour overcome and vanquish the enemies. Here also it might be said, that the soldier doth slay and overcome the enemy, not by his sword alone, but by the word which proceedeth out of the mouth of God. Whereupon David saith Psal. 44: I will not trust in my bow, it is not my sword that can save me. And again, He is not delighted in any man's legs: Psal. 147.10. a man of great might is not delivered by much strength: a horse is but a vain thing to save a man, etc. Nevertheless God useeh men, sword, horses, and bows, howbeit not by the power and strength of them, but by them as by certain means or instruments, he himself fighteth & overcometh. This he hath sufficiently declared oftentimes, when he hath overthrown the enemies, and delivered his people, which surely he daily doth, when the case so requireth. After the same sort God useth bread also, by it, forasmuch as it is made for that use, he feedeth us, howbeit when it is wanting, he nevertheless feedeth them that be his, even by his word, without bread, as he doth at other times by bread, so that bread doth as it were work under God, as the Apostles and preachers of the word in spiritual and evangelical meat serve under him, as it is mentioned 1. Cor. 3. For as God useth their ministery to teach men, A similitude. he himself by his spirit speaking in their hearts through it, and doing all things alone, which he both is able to do, and often times wont to do without the ministery of the preachers of his word, although he will not in the mean season have the ministery of his to be despised, and so himself tempted: so to the nourishing of our outward man, he outwardly useth bread, although he doth make by his word inwardly, that we be nourished and strengthened, which he can as well do, and is wont to do when bread is away, that all our nourishment may be attributed to the word, and not to bread, which he useth as an instrument, but yet of no necessity. That I may speak briefly, all creatures do as it were serve under him, and are his instruments, without which notwithstanding he is able, and often times wont to work: by this means providing, that we may depend on his word alone, neither trusting more unto him, when we have bread and other things which our life useth, neither less when we want them, but may use them with giving of thanks when he bestoweth them upon us, when otherwise, may patiently be without them, being certain nevertheless, that we shall live and be nourished in both times, both when we have them, and when we have them not. And by this faith that vain and ungodly care of the belly, greedy desire of things, and carefulness of life are overcome. Tentation whereby we are moved to tempt God with presumptuous confidence. Then the Devil took him up into the holy City, etc. This tentation is quite contrary to the former. He assaileth us with such tentation also whereby he goeth about to move us to tempt God, even as he willeth Christ to cast himself down from a pinnacle of the temple, and so tempt God, when there were ladders, by which he might descend. And that this tentation provoketh to tempt God, it is manifest even by the answer of Christ, who answereth Satan in this manner: It is written: Thou shalt not tempt the Lord thy God. Hereby he signifieth that the devil would provoke him to tempt God. Now this tentation doth not amiss follow the former. For when the devil perceiveth the heart, that in poverty and necessity it trusteth in God, he by and by maketh an end of tempting by care of the belly and desire of things, as being weaker than that by it he may overthrow one so strong in faith. He thinketh therefore with himself: If he profess himself to be of so religious and assured a mind, I will on this side also give occasion to sin. And so he setteth upon him on the right side, affirming that that is to be believed, which the Lord hath neither spoken, nor commanded to be believed. As is this: If he should bring thee to such madness, that when thou hast bread at home given thee of God, as he of his goodness giveth unto us every day, thou wouldst not use it, but wouldst procure to thyself necessity and hunger, saying: I must trust in God, I will not feed on this earthly bread, I will tarry till God give me other from heaven. This were to tempt God. For he doth not command thee to believe, that that thing shall come unto thee whereof thou hast need, if it be already come of his liberality. For why shouldest thou believe that he will give that, which thou hast already of his gift? Thou seest therefore that the devil doth here object a certain necessity and need unto Christ, where there is none. For there was a sufficient mean to descend from the pinnacle of the temple, neither was it reason to attempt this new unaccustomed and unnecessary mean whereunto Satan persuaded. Moreover allegorically we may by this doing of Satan perceive his craft and subtlety. He took jesus, saith the Evangelist, into the holy City, and set him on a pinnacle of the temple. By this tentation he replenisheth men with cogitations that seem most holy, Satan tempteth men unto hypocritical holiness. that they may think themselves most plentifully endued with faith, and to stand in a very holy place, when as notwithstanding they are set not in the temple, but on the temple, that is, not in the sincerity of faith, but in a vain outward show of faith. Nevertheless he is in the mean season in the holy city, because that this kind of men is wont to be no where but among Christians, where the word of the Lord and the preaching of faith is daily heard, who also like unto Satan, have sentences of Scripture in a readiness as concerning the words, although they always pervert & wrest them to their own error and false imaginations. So Satan recited here unto Christ out of the 91 Psalm, that God doth command his Angels concerning his children, that they keep them, lifting them up with their hands. But the deceiver concealed that which is added, that is, Psal. 91.11. in their ways. For thus hath the Psalm: He will give his Angels charge over thee, to keep thee in all thy ways, etc. So that the custody of Angels is not by the commandment promised unto us, unless we walk in our ways which he hath prescribed us. If we walk in them, we shall assuredly be kept of Angels. Howbeit the devil saith nothing of the ways of the Lord, but promiseth by corrupting the saying of the Psalm, that it is commanded to the Angels, to keep us in what ways soever, whereof the Lord hath commanded nothing. And this is Satan's seducing, and persuasion to tempt God. But this tentation doth not easily happen in these outward things, as are bread, apparel, houses, etc. Thou mayst find in deed some rash heads, which for no cause do put their life, goods, good name in great danger, as they do which go on warfare of their own accord, which leap rashly into most deep waters, or go voluntarily into other no small dangers. Of whom jesus the son of sirach saith: Eccle. 3.27. He that loveth peril, shall perish in it. Whereof the Germans have a proverb: Self do, self have: what every one followeth, that he cometh unto. So is it almost usual, that none are oftener drowned than they that are most exercised in swimming, and none fall more perilously, than they which use to attempt high matters. We are seldom brought to tempt God by not taking the use of outward things which he hath given us. But he shall be hardly found, which having a false and overmuch confidence in God, attempteth any such thing, or useth not the things present, as bread, apparel, house, and such like, looking with peril, while God provide otherwise for him by miracle. We read of a certain Eremite, who because he had vowed to take bread of no men, brought himself into peril by hunger, and so perished, and undoubtedly went straight unto hell, because of that false faith and tempting of God, which he learned no other where but of that devil, so that his madness was altogether like that, whereunto Satan here persuadeth Christ, to wit, that he should cast himself down from a pinnacle of the temple. Howbeit thou shalt find very few which do follow this Eremite, and do differre to enjoy corporal things present for that they hope that God will give them other from heaven. But in spiritual things, which concern the nourishment, We are easily and often by the tentation of Satan brought to refuse the true spiritual food of our souls, and to seek other contrary to the will and word of God not of the body, but of the soul, this tentation is wont to be both mighty and often. In these God hath appointed a certain manner, whereby the soul may be fed, nourished and strengthened, both most commodiously, and also most blessedly, so that no good thing at all can be wanting unto it. This nourishment, this strength, this salvation, is Christ our Saviour, in whom the Father hath most abundantly offered and given all good things. But there are very few which desire him, the most part seek some other where, whereby their souls may live, & obtain salvation. Such are all they which seek salvation by their works. These are they whom Satan having set on a pinnacle of the temple, biddeth them cast themselves down, and they obey him. They descend where as is no way: that is, they believe and trust in God, yet so, as they trust also in their own works, in which is no place at all for faith and trust, no way or path unto God, wherefore throwing themselves down headlong, they break their neck, falling into utter desperation. Now Satan persuadeth miserable men unto this madness, as also he persuaded Christ to cast himself down from a pinnacle of the temple, by places of Scripture perverted and misapplied, wherein works are commanded, whereby he maketh them believe, that the Angels shall keep them, that is, that they shall be approved of God, when as in deed they can by nothing so offend him, as by that mad trust and confidence in works. For they acknowledge not, that the Scripture doth no where require works without faith, or that it doth every where require a sound & lively faith from which works proceed. We have at large declared who are such, namely, incredulous hypocrites, which are given to works without faith, which falsely boast of the name of Christians, challenging to themselves to be chief in the flock of Christ: For this tentation must be in the holy city. Now these two temptations, and the causes of them do greatly differ: In the former the cause why men do not believe is need and hunger, for they are thereby moved to distrust God, and despair of his goodness. In the latter the cause why they do not believe is overmuch abundance, for that miserable men are full of most plentiful and abundant treasure, so that they loathe it, coveting to have some other special thing, whereby they may procure the salvation of their souls. So our case standeth ill in both respects: If we have nothing we despair, and distrust God: If we have plenty of things, we loathe them, and require other, being then also void of faith. Concerning the first, we fly and hate scarcity and seek plenty: concerning the latter, we seek scarcity, and fly plenty. Howsoever God dealeth with us, we are not content: our incredulity is a bottomless pit of malice and ungodliness. Again the devil took him up into an exceeding high mountain. Tentation by vain glory, pleasures and delights of the world. Here he tempteth with vain glory & power of the world, as by the words of the devil doth plainly appear, who showing Christ the kingdoms of the world, offered them to him, if he would worship him. By this tentation they are overcome which revolt from faith, that they may enjoy glory and power here, or at least do so temper their faith that they lose not these things. In the number of these are all heretics and troublers of the Church, which do therefore either leave, or oppugn the sincerity of faith, that being exempted out of the common number they may be extolled on high. So we may place this tentation on the right hand, as the first assaileth us on the left. For as the first tentation is of adversity, whereby we are moved to indignation, impatiency, & diffidence, so this third tentation is of prosperity, whereby we are provoked to delights, glory, pleasures, and whatsoever is excellent and delectable in the world. The second tentation is altogether spiritual, whereby Satan by deceit, and marvelous & secret suttlery goeth about to withdraw man from faith. For whom he can not overcome with poverty, scarcity, necessity, & misery, them he tempteth with riches, favour, glory, delights, power, &c: & so he assaileth us on either side, yea when he prevaileth by neither way, he goeth about, as Peter saith, & attempteth all means, that whom he can overcome neither by adversity, that is, by the first tentation, nor by prosperity, that is, by the third tentation, he may overcome either by error, blindness, or false understanding of the Scripture, that is, by the second tentation which is spiritual, and therefore most hurtful. By which if he prevail against any they are also overcome both on the left side and on the right. For whether they suffer such poverty, or enjoy plenty of things, whether they contend, or yield unto all things, both is nothing: while they are in error, either patience in adversity or constancy in prosperity can be of no importance. For in both even heretics often times do notably excel, and it is a practise of the devil eftsoons to fayne himself overcome in the first and third tentation, that he may reign victor by the second. He can be content that they that be his do often times suffer poverty patiently, and do also contemn the world, although they do neither of both with a simple heart, and sincere faith. Every one therefore of these three temptations is grievous and very hard, but the middle one is most perilous of all, for it assaileth the doctrine of faith, and is spiritual, and wont to deceive in spiritual things. The other two also do assail faith, howbeit in these outward things, as adversity & prosperity, although they do also urge us very sore. For it can not be a little grievous to suffer poverty, to want bread, and such other things necessary. Again it is no less grievous to neglect, & wholly to deny favour, glory, riches, friends, companions, and other commodities which we have. But an entire and sound faith in the word of God can perform both notably, and if it be a strong faith, An entire & sound faith can both patiently bear adversity & contemn the vain glory & delights of the world they seem very easy and delectable unto it. We can not certainly know the order of these temptations which happened to Christ, for that the Evangelists have not described them after one order. For Luke hath set that last, which Matthew hath set in the mids, & that which Matthew hath set last, Luke hath placed in the mids. But there doth not so much consist in the order. Notwithstanding when any will teach the people concerning these temptations, it were better to follow the order of Luke. For he may fitly say, and thus rehearse, that Satan doth first tempt us with poverty and adversity, whereby if he prevail not, that he tempteth us with prosperity and glory, which if he do in vain, that he assaileth us with all his might, and tempteth us with error, lies, delusion, and other spiritual subtleties. Yet neither is this order always observed of Satan: but he tempteth Christians sometime with the first, sometime with the third tentation, as he hath and seeth occasion. Matthew was not careful to rehearse them in that order, which they have almost by their own nature, and which may be commodious for him that shall teach of them. Yea it may be that they happened not unto Christ by any certain order, but that he was assailed of Satan one day with this, an other day with that, during the space of those forty days, as Satan thought it most convenient and meet for his purpose. And behold, the Angels came, & ministered unto him. This I think was done corporally, that they having taken bodies, appeared, and ministered unto him meat and drink, as his servitors at the table, and Ministers of all other things necessary for his life. Yea and I think that the devil also appeared unto him in a corporal form, perhaps as an Angel. For in that he took Christ, and set him on a pinnacle of the temple: also whereas in a moment he showed him all the kingdoms of the world, he sufficiently declared, that he was more than a man, & such a one surely he showed himself openly, when he offered that he would give unto him those kingdoms, and required that he would worship him. And undoubtedly he did not appear like a devil when he did these things, for he loveth to appear after a fair sort, especially when he will lie and deceive: 1. Cor. 11.14. for than he transformeth himself into an Angel of light, as Paul witnesseth. Now this is written chief for our consolation, In the time of tentation we must nothing doubt of God's help and deliverance. that we may not doubt, that many Angels shall minister unto us, when one devil tempteth us, if we fight valiantly. For if we stand fast in faith, it is so far of that God will suffer us to be troubled and pinched with poverty, more than is meet, that he will sooner send his Angels to minister unto us, to be our Butlers, our Cooks, and to help us with their ministery in all necessity. Neither are these things written for Christ's cause, whom they can not profit, but they are written for us, that we may learn to believe, that if the Angels ministered unto him, they shall also when the case so requireth minister unto us his brethren and members. The Lord give us faith to believe this. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER, CONCERNING THE LEADING OF A GODLY LIFE. Ephes. 5. Verse 1. BE ye therefore followers of God as dear children. 2. And walk in love, even as Christ hath loved us, and hath given himself for us, to be an offering & a sacrifice of a sweet smelling savour to God. 3. But fornication, & all uncleanness, or covetousness, let it not be once named among you, as it becometh Saints. 4. Neither filthiness, neither foolish talking, neither jesting, which are things not comely, but rather giving of thanks. 5. For this ye know, that no whoremonger, neither unclean person, nor covetous person, which is an idolater, hath any inheritance in the kingdom of Christ, and of God. 6. Let no man deceive you with vain words: for, for such things cometh the wrath of God upon the children of disobedience. 7. Be not therefore companions with them. 8. For ye were once darkness, but are now light in the Lord: walk as children of light. 9 For the fruit of the Spirit is in all goodness, and righteousness, and truth. THis text is exhortatory, wherein Paul, according to his manner, and accustomed care for the brethren, exhorteth Christians not to leave or slack the study and care of godliness, and give themselves to slothfulness, but to declare by their work the word that they have learned of him, that is, to show it forth by the fruits of faith, and make it plausible and honourable, to the edifying of the Heathen, lest that by the vices of them which profess the doctrine of the Gospel, they take occasion to hate that doctrine, and so be offended by them, whom it did behove to win them unto Christ. Be ye therefore followers of God as dear children. First therefore he exhorteth us, forasmuch as we are by Christ made the sons of God, to imitate such a father, as dear children. marvelous gently & alluringly he speaketh unto us, calling us dear children, that by the love of God our father toward us, he may provoke us to love him again, and them whom he commandeth us to love, The love of God toward us. even as he hath loved us first. But how hath he loved us? Surely not after that common sort alone, whereby in this life he nourisheth and sustaineth us being unworthy, together with all the ungodly, making his sun to arise on the good, and on the evil, and sending rain on the just and unjust: whereof Christ speaketh Matth. 5: Be ye perfect as your Father is perfect. But he loveth us also after an other special manner, in that he hath given his son for us. joh. 3. For he hath abundantly bestowed upon us all temporal and also eternal good things, yea his own self, and hath as it were poured himself, with all that he is, hath, and can, into us who were sinners, unworthy, enemies, and servants of Satan, so that he could not do and give unto us more & greater things. Now he, whom this divine fire of love, which filleth heaven and earth, and yet is not comprehended, doth not kindle & inflame to love likewise his neighbour, whosoever he be, friend, or enemy, he I say, will neither by law, precepts, doctrine, threatenings and force be ever moved to godliness & love. Walk, saith the Apostle, in love, whereby he signifieth that our life should be nothing else, In what kind of love we must walk. but mere love. Howbeit he will not have us walk in the love of the world, which in love seeketh those things which are his own, and loveth so long as there is any thing, whereby it looketh for commodity and lucre. Therefore he saith: Even as Christ hath loved us, who neither sought nor could look for any profit or commodity of us, and yet he loved us so greatly that he gave himself for us, and not only his other good things which he giveth us daily, and he so gave himself for us, that he might be an oblation and sacrifice, to obtain the good will and favour of the father toward us, and to bring to pass, that we might now have God a merciful and favourable father, being become his true children and heirs, etc. So also it behoveth us to give and lend, not only to our friends, but also to our enemies, neither to count this sufficient, but to be ready also even to die both for friends and foes, thinking nothing else, but that we may serve and profit our neighbours both in body and goods, as long as we shall be in the pilgrimage of this life, seeing that we possess all things being given unto us by Christ. To be an offering and a sacrifice of a sweet smelling savour to God. This manner of speech Paul borrowed out of the old Testament, wherein those corporal sacrifices are written eftsoons to have yielded to the Lord a sweet savour, that is, to have been acceptable unto him. The sacrifices of the old Testament accepted for Christ's sake, who was to come. Christ the only sacrifice which God accepteth, & whereby we are acceptable unto him. Notwithstanding that was not because of the work and sacrifice in itself, as the jews falsely thought, & therefore were very often reproved of the Prophets, but for Christ's sake who was to come, the one and only sacrifice of a good savour, whom all those sacrifices of the law did shadow forth, and represent. Wherefore that which Paul here saith, is as much as if he had said: All the sacrifices of the old Testament have an end, they can now be of no price: Christ himself is the only sacrifice, which yieldeth unto God a sweet smelling savour, that is, is pleasing and acceptable unto him, whereby we are assured that we are acceptable unto God, and do please him. Wherefore there is no other sacrifice in the Church which may be offered for us, beside this only sacrifice, which being once offered hath at once satisfied for the sins of all the elect. And although we after the example of this sacrifice, do offer our bodies to God, as Paul teacheth Rom. 12, yet we offer them not either for ourselves or for other, forasmuch as that is proper to Christ, the only sacrifice, whereby the salvation of all is obtained. Wherefore those things smell most stinkingly before God, whatsoever men offer with this mind, as though they would satisfy for their own sins, or for the sins of other, whereof we both have and will elsewhere speak more. But fornication, and all uncleanness, or covetousness, let it not be once named among you. Uncleanness. By the name of uncleanness beside fornication he understandeth all lust & lecherous filthiness, which is committed out of matrimony, which for the filthiness of them he doth not vouchsafe to rehearse by name, as Rom. 1. he speaketh very grossly of them. Although in matrimony also a mean may be exceeded, & it is the duty of Christians so to moderate the use of marriage, that they require & perform due love & benevolence only for avoiding fornication, but we are fallen so far, that they are most rare, which come together only for procreation of children and to avoid fornication, which surely were best, and should very well become us. Now the Apostle saith, let it not be once named among you, that is, be so far from these evils, that they may not so much as be spoken of of you. There is often falling among Christians through infirmity, & how true Christians deal in this case. Albeit it will never come to pass in this exile, that none among Christians be weak, & do not oftentimes fall, yet true Christians will never wink at those things: they will reprove, amend, put away, cover, & cure whatsoever such thing shall burst forth amongst them, that the heathen may not be offended and say: See what vices the Christians suffer among themselves, how unclean and lewd a life do they lead? thinking that all their whole life is defiled with like vices as is their own. We must needs confess that among Christians some do eftsoons fall, which we must needs bear, it is well if only the better part liveth well, & winketh not at their sins, neither teacheth them, but rather reproveth and amendeth them. So Paul exhorteth Gal. 6. that they which are spiritual will restore them that offend, with the spirit of meekness. And he sharply reproveth the Corinthians, for that they did lightly pass over many sins of certain persons. For sin being reprehended & punished, is now counted as no sin, neither can the Church be blamed because of it. After the same sort heed must be taken, that covetousness be not named among Christians, that is, that they become not infamous by the name thereof, which they shall bring to pass, if, when it chanceth that covetous men be amongst them, or one useth deceit toward an other in their business and affairs, or some contend in judgement for those outward things, if I say, they do not wink hereat, but do reprove & correct such, that the sincerity of the doctrine of the Gospel may obtain due estimation among the people, & there may be no cause openly to dispraise our ministery, 2. Cor. 6. These things I have spoken because of them, who as soon as they see that all things do not resemble & show forth a holiness among Christians, & that some do stumble & fall, do think that there is no Christian left, that the Gospel is to no purpose, & that all things are taught and done in vain. As though the life of Christians were now without fight, victory & due triumph over sin being obtained, when as rather it is a warfare and a continual fight. Where as therefore they do now sight and are in the camp, it is no marvel if some fly away, if some be wounded, if some fall, yea & be even slain outright. War is not made without peril and hurt, if it be earnest war. As it becometh Saints. This he addeth to his exhortation, Christians are Saints, & therefore must be pure, not defiled with uncleanness, covetousness, etc. as a reason & cause showing why it lieth upon Christians, to take heed that they be not defamed by these names: For they are Saints, now it becometh such to be chaste, bountiful, & ready to give, to teach and do the same. Thou seest here, that Paul calleth Christians Saints, while they remain yet in this life, & are pressed with flesh & blood, from which nothing cometh but sin, which he doth undoubtedly not for their good works, but because of the sanctifying blood of Christ, as he witnesseth 1. Cor 6: But ye are washed, but ye are sanctified, but ye are justified in the name of the Lord jesus, & by the Spirit of our God. Forasmuch therefore as we are Saints, it is meet that we should show the same in our works, & albeit we be as yet weak, nevertheless we must daily endeavour to live purely, & far from covetousness, to the praise & glory of God, & the edifying of our neighbours, even that Heathen. Neither filthiness. All unchaste & lewd words of bawdry, Lewd, unclean and bawdy talk forbidden. uncleanness, & lecherous matters, he calleth filthiness, of which words abundance is wont to be poured forth in Inns & victailing houses, in the time of eating, drinking, & playing. These the Grecians used very freely and accustomably more than others, as their own Poets & other writers do sufficiently witness. But he especially reproveth here those lewd and wanton words, which are spoken openly without shame, which stir up wicked and unchaste thoughts, and are cause of many offences, especially being spoken among youth, according to that saying: 1. Cor. 15.33. Evil speakings corrupt good manners, as the Apostle writeth to the Corinthians. And if any Christians should be so careless of their tongue, that such words should come from them, such must be chastised of the Church, and if they do not amend, they must not be suffered, lest because of them the whole Church be ill reported of, as though these things were either taught among Christians, or suffered to be unpunished, as it is wont to be among the Heathen. Foolish talking prohibited. Neither foolish talking. Fables and other trifling speeches & jests are called foolish talking, which the Grecians also were wont to use more than other nations, being very witty to invent such vain speeches. Of this sort are those tales, which our women & maidens are wont to tell, spinning at the distaff, also the terms and verses of jugglers and such like fellows, and many common songs, which are partly even filthy, & partly contain other trifling and vain things. But especially it is unseemly and unconvenient for Christians to use such foolish and trifling talk, when they come together to hear the word of God, or to read and search the Scriptures, and yet notwithstanding almost even such folly happeneth among them, when many come together. For albeit they begin with serious matters, nevertheless they are marvelous easily brought unto trifles: from earnest and holy matters, to ridiculous and vain speeches, wherewith both the time is spent in vain, and better things are neglected. So have they been wont certain years hitherto, at every feast of Easter in the time of preaching to tell some ridiculous tale to stir up the people from sleep. They did not unlike at the feast of the nativity of Christ, using songs or carols, wherein they said, they made discourses of the birth and infancy of jesus, howbeit ridiculous meeter and words, moving rather laughter than devotion, as they called it: Also they song many feigned fables of the wise men, whom they made 3. Kings, of the passion of the Lord, of the punishment of Dorothea, & many other, all which were nothing but foolish talking & vain inventions, altogether unworthy of Christians. To the number of these I might well add those histories of Saints, which they call the legends, and that flood of lies, of miracles and pilgrimages to images, and monuments of Saints, Masses, and worshippings of Saints, indulgences and innumerable other, not so much foolish as ungodly inventions, which in the assemblies of the Church, were wont to be chief extolled in the pulpit, which were so contrary to godliness, that they deserve much rather to be called the wicked inventions of Satan, then foolish imaginations of men. For they did not as ridiculous lies are wont to do, corrupt good manners only, of which Paul speaketh especially here, but they did wholly overthrow faith, and put out of place the word of God, so that they did not only not beseem Saints, but did plainly abolish all Saints. Those former therefore were fables and tales of men, which are not believed, neither esteemed any thing of, but rather laughed at, although in the mean season they corrupt good manners, withdraw Christians from serious matters, and make them slack and slothful. But these latter are devilish fables, which are believed for a truth, and counted for serious, yea and heavenly matters, when as notwithstanding they be nothing else but feigned devices of Satan, whereby he with his angels deludeth and mocketh us. Neither jesting. Hereby he understandeth all pleasant speeches, which they whom they call jesters are wont to use, to make men merry, which by pleasant discourses and merry terms do move laughter & stir up men's minds to mirth & cheerfulness, which is wont to be usual in civil bankers, and when civil companions meet together. This jesting the Heathen counted for a virtue, especially Aristotle. jesting neither allowed nor used among Christians. But Paul among Christians giveth it place among vices. For Christians have other speeches, whereby they may recreate and cheer themselves in Christ, which also do bring some profit with them, although it easily happeneth, that many Christians do offend oftentimes herein. But they that are true Christians, do never praise it, neither do suffer that any should give himself to this jesting, and study to exceed therein, but they reprove and prohibit him, especially in the Church, in the time of preaching and teaching. For Christ hath witnessed, Matth. 12.36 that we shall in the last day give an account of every idle word. It is meet in deed that Christians be an elegant & amiable people, but therewithal grave, that there may be seen in them a severe gentleness, and a gentle severity, as the life of Christ is described unto us in the Gospels. Things which are not comely, but rather giving of thanks. This comprehendeth all idle words, which want a proper name. Idle words. Now I call them idle words which make neither to the edifying of faith, nor to the use of our corporal life. For there be things enough both profitable and pleasant, which when it pleaseth us to speak, we may talk of in the short time of this life, as of Christ, of love, and other things either necessary or profitable. Whereof Paul admonisheth when he saith: but rather giving of thanks. For our daily speech ought to be the praise of God, and giving of thanks to him, as well privately, as publicly in sermons, for such infinite good things, as he hath given unto us in Christ, even unspeakable. But such is the manner of our reason & nature, that necessary and profitable things are neglected, and foolish & frivolous things are chief regarded. Now mark here, if Paul doth not suffer in Christians speeches that be only pleasant and tending to mirth, what thinkest thou would he say of that pestilent backbiting and slandering, which reigneth now in all companies of men, even them that be private, when two oftentimes do talk together? Yea what would he say of them, which openly in sermons do as it were bite and rend one an other with reproachful words, and maliciously accuse and speak evil one of an other? For this ye know, that no whoremonger, neither unclean person, nor covetous person, which is an idolater, hath any inheritance in the kingdom of Christ and of God. In these words he doth very plainly pronounce against them which are infected with such vices, that they are heathen under the name of Christians, how many soever do not bring forth the fruits of faith. This is a brief and a certain sentence: A fornicator an unclean person and a covetous person have denied the faith. 1. Tim. 5.8. He that is a fornicator, hath denied the faith, an unclean person hath denied the faith, a covetous person hath denied the faith, all such are Apostates, perjured, & traitors towards God: as Paul writeth also unto Timothe, of him the neglecteth them that be of his family: If there be any, saith he, that provideth not for his own, & namely for them of his household, he denieth the faith, and is worse than an Infidel. How could he more severely and terribly fray us from vices? For he saith: For this ye know, as if he said: Do not so much as doubt, count it not for a play, neither let it be a sport unto you, neither comfort yourselves with vain hope of a Christian name, and for that ye are counted Christians, these things shall profit you no more, than it profited the jews, that they were the children of Abraham, and Disciples of Moses. It was spoken to all which Christ saith Matth. 7: Not every one that saith unto me, Lord, Lord, shall enter into the kingdom of heaven, but he that doth the will of my Father which is in heaven: Two very forcible means to stir us up unto godliness. there is need of doing, and our faith must be proved by works. Whom therefore that great force of heavenly fire shall not inflame unto godliness, that is, the admonition of the incomparable love of God toward us, which he set in the first place, him let these horrible threatenings of hell fire move, to wit, whereas he witnesseth, that as many as will not follow God, and walk in love, and show forth their faith by their works, are neither the sons of God, nor heirs of his kingdom, whereupon it followeth, that they are undoubtedly heirs with Satan of hell fire. Whom therefore these two so mighty provokements shall not stir up to the fear of God & godliness, with all diligence to do the duty of a Christian, he is plainly a block and a stone, having a heart harder than the anvil as job saith. He particularly reproveth a covetous person, The covetous man an idolater. and pronounceth him an Idolater or worshipper of images, whereby surely he declareth, how greatly he is displeased with them that are infected with this vice, and in the third chapter of his Epistle to the Colossians he saith also the same thing of him. The cause hereof I think to be this: other sinners use only that thing, wherein they offend, and make it serve their lust and desire: so the fornicator and unclean person use their body to pleasure: the proud person useth riches, learning, the favour of men, and such like, unto glory: only this miserable Idolater is a slave to his money and riches, and his sin is, that he spareth his money and goods, keepeth and hoardeth them up, dareth not apply them neither to his own use, nor to the use of other, but doth plainly serve and worship them as his god, and so much esteemeth them, that he would sooner lose and suffer to perish the kingdom of God, than he would spend his money, or give the value of a rush toward the maintaining either of a preacher, or an instructor of youth, whereby the word of God and his kingdom might be furthered. Forasmuch therefore as all the trust and hope of such a man is reposed in money, and not in God alone, who giveth him abundantly whereby to live, money is worthily called his god, and he himself said to be an Idolater, and hath no inheritance in the kingdom of heaven. What can be invented more filthy and pestilent than this disease? woe unto thee, incredulity, how an abominable and hurtful evil art thou? We must take heed we be not deceived with vain words. Let no man deceive you with vain words. These are the vain words of them which extenuate and make light of fornication and such like sins, as though they were not greatly evil, or did so much offend God. There were not wanting Philosophers and Poets among the Heathen, which counted all use of lechery beside only adultery, lawful, as a thing natural, as is to use meat and drink. So saith Terence: It is not a wickedness, believe me, for a young man to follow harlots, etc. But this is to be ignorant of God, and to live according to the sore of concupiscence, as the Gentiles were wont to do. Moreover such vain words are those, which albeit they have some likelihood of truth, yet in deed are trifling, and shall not excuse any. So covetousness doth not want a cloak and pretence for itself: for him that seeketh his own with the discommodity of others, they call a good husband, industrious, one that looketh to his business, although in the mean while the poor perish with hunger, or are otherwise afflicted above their strength. Wherefore such speeches are profane and heathenish, by which love is extinguished, & they which give ear to them & believe them, are deluded with a vain hope. For, for such things cometh the wrath of God upon the children of disobedience. This is an other light which we ought to follow, leaving the obscure light of reason, which doth not greatly condemn fornication, The wrath & vengeance of God hangeth over fornicators, unclean & covetous persons. uncleanness, covetousness, etc. This our light witnesseth, that for such things the wrath of God cometh upon unbelievers, whom he calleth the children of disobedience, and therefore can not abide to believe the word of God, & to give themselves to the obedience of faith. This Paul declareth 1. Cor. 10. by many examples, where he saith that a great part of the people was slain for fornication, of which deed is spoken also Num. 25. For violence also, covetousness, and uncleanness, the whole world was destroyed by the flood. Wherefore a sufficient sharp, yea and a certain vengeance abideth them that are infected with these wickednesses. Now he calleth them the children of disobedience, that is, of incredulity, which is as much as if he had said: of them that have revolted from the faith, and have renounced Christ. Hereby therefore we see and learn, that he that doth not approve his faith by works, is no better than a Heathen, yea worse, inasmuch as he hath renounced Christ, and denied the faith once received. For this cause therefore the vengeance and wrath of God shall come upon them that are such, as we Germans do now try, unto whom God sendeth abundantly the pestilence, famine, & cruel wars. Let men take heed they give no ear to those deceivers, which with vain words promise that those sins shall escape unpunished: Let those slack and slothful Christians beware, who although they be not blind Heathen, but know well that uncleanness and covetousness are sins, and think or teach no otherwise, do nevertheless live wickedly, resting upon faith, whereby they hope that they shall obtain salvation without works, forasmuch as works do not save: Yea albeit they very well know, that faith without works is a feigned faith, and that worthy fruits and good works must needs follow, where a true and sound faith is, yet notwithstanding they live securely in their sins, presuming of the grace and mercy of God, nothing fearing God and his judgement, when as notwithstanding it is certain, that God doth require the mortification of the old Adam, and good fruits of good trees. Although perhaps Paul speaketh not here properly of these, but of them which think, and in vain words teach, that fornication, covetousness, and such like are not sins, as the blind Heathen did, & many do at this day under the name of Christians: yet is it to be feared, seeing they live no better than the heathen do, & be themselves fornicators & covetous persons, that they shall feel the like vengeance of God with them, yea so much more grievous vengeance, as they do know more certainly that those are sins, according to that saying Rom. 2: Thinkest thou this, O thou man, that condemnest them which do such things, and dost the fame, that thou shalt escape the judgement of God? after thine hardness, and heart that can not repent, thou heapest unto thyself wrath against the day of wrath, & of the declaration of the just judgement of God. etc. Be not therefore companions with them: For ye were once darkness, but are now light in the Lord: walk as children of light. So Peter also saith, that it is sufficient for us, that we have spent the time passed of our life after the lust of the Gentiles, but from hence forth should have nothing common with them, but spend the rest of our life in the service and worship of God. They which are not yet lightened by Christ, are blind and ignorant, but they whom he hath lightened, do know both God & their duty toward him. When we were Gentiles, we knew not that these were sins, we were so blinded through incredulity and ignorance of God. But after that we are made light in the Lord, that is, lightened by Christ, we do not only well understand what God is, and what he requireth of us, what sin and iniquity is, but are also able now to be in steed of light unto others, and to teach them those things which we have learned. Such Paul said the Philippians were, that they shined as lights in the world in the mids of a naughty & crooked nation. So before we were not only dark, but darkness itself, inasmuch as we were not only ignorant and erred, but did also bring other into the same darkness, both by words and deeds. Let us be thankful therefore to him, which hath called us out of this darkness into his marvelous light, walking as the children of light, which Peter also admonisheth us to do. For the fruit of the Spirit is in all goodness, and righteousness, and truth. Forasmuch as he hath here spoken of light, it had been more agreeable to have added, for the fruit of light, as the Latin editions have, then of the Spirit, as it is read in the Greek. Who knoweth, whether the Greeks copies were here changed upon this occasion, for that Paul in the Epistle to the Galathians entreateth of the fruits of the spirit? But this skilleth little, Goodness. of the Spirit, and of light are all one in this place. Goodness therefore is a fruit either of the Spirit or of light, contrary to covetousness, whereby a Christian man is good, that is, profitable and beneficial to others, Righteousness. ready to gratify and do well to his neighbours. Righteousness being a fruit of the Spirit is contrary to covetousness. For it maketh that no man doth take away from an other that which is his, either by violence, either by craft or guile, Truth. but that he endeavour rather to give unto every man that which is his own. Truth is a fruit of the Spirit contrary to hypocrisy & lying, which requireth that a Christian be true and uncorrupt not only in words, but also in his whole life, that he do not glory of the name of a Christian without works, that he be not called a Christian, & yet live after the manner of the Heathen, in fornication, uncleanness, covetousness, and other vices, etc. **** A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER, WHEREIN IS DECLARED HOW GOD CARETH and provideth for them that be his. Luke 5. Verse 1. THen it came to pass, as the people pressed upon him to hear the word of God, that he stood by the lake of Gennesaret. 2. And saw two ships stand by the lake side, but the fishermen were gone out of them, & were washing their nets. 3. And he entered into one of the ships which was Simons, and required him that he would thrust of a little from the land: & he sat down, and taught the people out of the ship. 4. Now when he had left speaking, he said unto Simon: launch out into the deep, & let down your nets to make a draft. 5. Then Simon answered and said unto him: Master, we have travailed sore all night, and have taken nothing, nevertheless at thy word I will let down the net. 6. And when they had so done, they enclosed a great multitude of fishes, so that their net broke. 7. And they beckoned to their partners which were in the other ship, that they should come and help them, who came then and filled both the ships, that they did sink. 8. Now when Simon Peter saw it, he fell down at jesus knees saying: Lord go from me, for I am a sinful man. 9 For he was utterly astonished and all that were with him, for the draft of fishes which they took. 10. And so was also james and john the sons of Zebedeus, which were companions with Simon. Then jesus said unto Simon: fear not: from hence forth thou shalt catch men. 11. And when they had brought the ships to land, they forsook all and followed him. TO them that believe this text is most easy to be understood, which setteth forth two things unto us, namely faith, and temporal good things, & faith, and eternal good things. The faithful shall want nothing that is necessary for the sustentation of this life. First it declareth unto them that believe in Christ, that they shall have sufficient wherewith to sustain themselves even in this life: which Christ showeth by this, when he giveth so many fishes to Peter and his companions, as they durst not so much as desire. So that Christ is careful even how to feed the belly, if that cursed incredulity be not na hindrance thereunto. For behold S. Peter, and consider his heart aright in your mind, then shall ye find, that he did not so much as think, that he should take so many fishes. God therefore is present, and causeth fishes to come into the net, even more than they would have wished. By which example we are admonished that they shall have sufficient of those things that are necessary for the sustentation of this life, which do believe, but they that do not believe can never be satisfied, whereby they fall into all kind of vices. Hereunto pertaineth that which S. Paul saith 1. Tim. 6: Godliness is great gain, if a man be content with that he hath. For we brought nothing into the world, and it is certain, that we may carry nothing out, therefore when we have food and raiment, let us therewith be content. For they that willbe rich, fall into tentation and snares, and into many foolish and noisome lusts, which drown men in perdition & destruction. For the desire of money is the root of all evil, which while some lusted after, they erred from the faith, & pierced themselves through with many sorrows. This place of S. Paul plainly declareth what followeth our unbelief, Fruits of incredulity. to wit, that it traveleth to get substance, and laboureth to be rich, and falleth into the tentation and snares of the Devil. But we can not see that, forasmuch as it is spiritual. If we could as well see the hurt, which it bringeth to spiritual things, as we can see that which it bringeth to corporal and outward things, than were it an easy matter to preach unto us. For we see plainly in outward things, how he that is given to the desire of money, scrapeth and gathereth together, doth injury to all men, that he alone may gather together and heap up many things, whereunto he may trust and say: Well, now have I goods enough. Whereby we may gather how unkind & unmerciful a covetous man is: for he doth good to no man, he showeth himself gentle and kind to no man, he giveth nothing to any man, but looketh unto his own lucre and commodity. Now this is a cursed thing, that we can not so much as trust unto the Lord, that he will feed our belly, thinking always that we shall perish with hunger, when as notwithstanding we shall have things necessary and that which is sufficient for us, as Christ saith Matth. 6: I say unto you, be not careful for your life, what ye shall eat, or what ye shall drink: nor yet for your body, what ye shall put on. Is not the life more worth than meat? and the body than raiment? Behold the fowls of the air: for they sow not, neither reap, nor carry into the barns: yet your heavenly Father feedeth them. Are ye not much better than they? Which of you by taking care, is able to add one cubit unto his stature? And why care ye for raiment? Learn how the lilies of the field do grow: they are not wearied, neither spin: yet I say unto you, that even Solomon in all his glory, was not arrayed like one of these. Wherefore if God so cloth the grass of the field, which though it stand to day, is to morrow cast into the oven, shall he not do much more unto you, O ye of little faith? Therefore take no thought, saying what shall we eat? or what shall we drink? or wherewith shall we be clothed? (For after all these things seek the Gentiles:) For your heavenly Father knoweth that ye have need of all these things. But seek ye first the kingdom of God and his righteousness, and all these things shallbe ministered unto you. Care not then for the morrow: for the morrow shall care for itself: the day hath enough with his own grief. Ye see in this place, how God hath a care for the fowls and flowers, & doth adorn them after a most goodly sort: how much more will God give unto us those things that be necessary? and yet we can not put our trust in him, Where trust in God is not there charity ceaseth. so hath the Devil entangled us in his snares. When one cometh so far, that he is not content with that he hath, neither trusteth in God, than charity must needs suddenly cease, so that he doth good to no man, but only provideth that his own heap be increased. Hereupon came the spiritual state of sacrificing Priests and Monks, that they might only help themselves, feed their belly, avoid labour, enter into Monasteries, that thereof did rise a true proverb: Desperation maketh a Monk, yea not only a Monk, but sacrificing Priests, Bishops & Popes: for they trust not in God, that he is able to feed them, but they study upon this only, that they may be delivered from all misery and infirmity, which is altogether to live in incredulity: they never trusted in God, that he is able to give them nourishment and things necessary, if any of them should marry a wife and remain without that state of Antichrist. Moreover, here is an example set forth unto us, which provoketh and allureth us to confidence, and first that we commit our belly to God: for he hath a care of us, even in temporal things. Which sufficiently appeareth in Peter, whereas he took such a great multitude of fishes, which ran by great companies into his nets. Whereby is plainly signified that God will forsake no man, but that every one shall have enough, if that we shall only trust in him, as the 37. Psal. affirmeth: I have been young, and now am old, and yet saw I never the righteous forsaken, nor his seed begging bread. Things necessary shall not be wanting unto us, if faith be not wanting: for before we should want, the very Angels should come, & minister unto us food. Whereas therefore men are commonly oppressed with so great misery, only unbelief is the cause thereof. We must labour, & not be careful, but commit the success unto God. And albeit God be with us, notwithstanding he requireth yet of us, work or labour, and hope, if he at any time differre somewhat to help us. He commandeth Peter here, that for the taking of fishes, he should cast forth his nets: Lanche out into the deep, saith he, and let down your nets to make a draft, as if the Lord said: Do thou that which belongeth to a fisher cast thy net into the deep, and commit the success unto me, leave the care unto me. God leaveth not the care unto thee, but the work and labour: howbeit we after a clean contrary order, study to commit the care to ourselves and the labour to him. Whereby it cometh to pass, that every one for himself applieth his mind earnestly to gain, and to gather money unto himself, that he may not be enforced by any means to take pains and labour. But if thou wilt live a Christian life, leave unto thy God to care how the fishes shall come into the nets, and go thou, and take upon thee the state wherein thou mayst labour. Howbeit for the most part, we wish such states of life, as in which there is no need of labour, which is altogether a devilish thing. And therefore have we been consecrated Monks and sacrificing Priests, that we might live only like gentlemen, without labour. And for the same cause parents have set their children to school, that at the last they might live merry days, and so serve God, as they thought. Whereby it came to that pass that they did not know, what a good life was: forasmuch as God especially commendeth that, and that in deed is acceptable unto him, which is gotten with the sweat of the brows, as he commanded Adam. Gen. 3. In the sweat of thy face shalt thou eat bread. And the deeper thou art occupied in this law, in so much better case thy things are, wherefore follow thy work, labour, and trust in God, all carefulness being cast of. Now some murmur, and say, if faith be preached, that we must trust in God, and leave the care unto him, I might long enough, say they, believe or trust, before I should have wherewithal to be fed and sustained, if I should not labour. Yea it is plain enough that thou must labour, We must still labour and hope, though God differreth his help for a time, for he will at the last assuredly help us. forasmuch as labour is commanded thee: Howbeit suffer God to care for thee, believe thou, and labour, then shalt thou assuredly have those things that be necessary for the sustentation of thy life. And this is an other thing, that we must hope notwithstanding, though God differreth for a time. Therefore he suffereth them to labour all the night, and to take nothing, and showeth himself to be such a one, as will suffer them to perish with hunger. Which might have come into the mind of Peter, when he had fished so long and taken nothing, so that he might have said: now God will suffer my belly to perish with pining and famine. Howbeit he doth not so, but goeth on still in his labour, he plieth his work, & hopeth that God at the last will give him fishes, albeit he differreth a time. God therefore is present, and giveth him so many fishes in one day, as he could scarce take in the space of eight days. Wherefore these things are to be learned well of thee, that thou labour and hope, although God differreth his blessing a little. For albeit he differreth a while, and suffereth thee to labour sore, so that thou now think thy labour to be lost, yet must thou not therefore despair, but repose thy hope in him, trusting assuredly that he will at the last give thee prosperous success. For he will certainly come & give more than thou didst need, as he did here unto S. Peter. Wherefore if God delayeth with thee a little, think with thyself, he delayed also with S. Peter, & yet afterward gave unto him abundantly. Commit thy matter therefore to his good will and pleasure, and leave not of thy work, but hope still, and then shall not thy hope be frustrate. Thus much concerning the former part of the text, now let us here the latter. After therefore that they had taken fishes, and tasted the fruit of faith, their faith is increased and augmented. We therefore must go so far, that we may commit our belly to God: for he that can not commit so much as his belly to him, will never commit his soul unto him. Howbeit that is only a childish faith: Here we learn first to go by benches and settles: here we do feed on milk as yet: but we must likewise learn by these to commit our soul also to God. The Evangelist so meaneth when he saith: Now when Simon Peter saw it, he fell down at jesus knees, saying: Lord go from me, for I am a sinful man. For he was utterly astonished, and all that were with him, for the draft of fishes which they took. Let Peter here be a type or figure of them which believe eternal good things, and count him as one verily looking for & seeing the good things to come. A sinful conscience is of that nature, The nature of a sinful conscience. that it so behaveth itself, as Peter here did, whereas he flieth his Saviour, and thinketh: Lord I am more unworthy, then that I should be saved, and sit among thy Saints and Angels: for that good is most exceeding high. Here a strait conscience is not able to comprehend such great good things, but it thus thinketh: If I were as Peter & Paul, I could easily believe: Which is altogether a foolish and vain thing. For if thou wouldst place thyself according to thine own holiness, thou shouldest build upon the sand. Thou must not do so, but behave thyself like unto Peter, for in that he esteemed himself vile, and judged himself unworthy of so great grace, he rightly became worthy. And therefore, Though we feel the burden of our sins we must not despair, but trust in God that he will remit them & receive us unto grace. whereas thou art a sinner, thou must trust in God, and dilate and open wide thy conscience and heart, that grace may enter in. After thou hast now known God, thou must reject none of his gifts, that is, when as thou seest the great good things, thou must not despair. It is good that we know ourselves, & the deeper we know ourselves, so much the better. But that grace is not to be refused because of thy sins. For when thou shalt find thy conscience to tremble, so that it would drive away sins, than art thou most ready and most fit to receive grace, then shalt thou find comfort in thy conscience and say with Micheas: Who is such a God as thou, Mich. 7. that pardonest wickedness, & castest all our sins into the bottom of the sea? Whosoever take not away sins, they are no Gods, but idols: whereupon he sayeth rightly, that none is like unto our God. For other gods will find and not bring godliness, but the Almighty God doth not find it, but bring it: wherefore thou must not forthwith despair, if thy conscience trembleth and feeleth sin. For the more defiled that thou art, so much the sooner doth the Lord pour in his grace, if so be thou be repentant and thirstest after it. A great part go so far that they say they merit grace, whiles they dispose themselves thereunto, which is, as they interpret, whiles they do that which lieth in them, and also that they do satisfy for their sins. But it is not so. The Scripture teacheth us that it is God that taketh away sin, and casteth it into the bottom of the sea. We shall not put away sins by our works, neither shall we be justified of ourselves. God himself, and none but he shall do the thing, of his mere grace as Esay saith: I am, even I am he only, Esa. 43.25. that for mine own selves sake do take away thine offences, and forget thy sins, so that I will never think upon them more. And so must thou believe, otherwise thou shalt never obtain a joyful conscience. Wherefore, when as Peter said, I am a sinner, he said right. It is true in deed, there were causes, why he might be afraid of himself, and humble himself, but he ought not to refuse God, but most willingly receive him. Wherefore when thou shalt feel thy sin, like as Peter did, and shalt perceive that thou wouldst now fly from God, then is it need that thou do forthwith turn thyself, and come more and more unto him. For if God should go away, and would not take away thy sin, would not come unto thee, nor seek thee, yet the more thou perceivest thyself a sinner, the more hast thou oughtest to make unto him, which see thou mark well, and lay it up in a mindful memory. For as Saint Peter doth here, so all consciences do, which are terrified of sins, and would fly from God, & seek an other god, do not thou leave so, but come boldly, and join thyself nearer unto God. Otherwise if one go away to seek works, and help of an other god, he is then found like the foolish Virgins, which while they go to get themselves oil, are in the mean season shut out. But what doth Christ, when Peter so humbleth himself? and by reason of his great fear and terror, desireth the Lord to departed from him? did he leave him in such desperation of himself? No truly, but he comforteth him, saying thus: Fear not, from hence forth thou shalt catch men. This is a joyful word, God sustaineth the faithful both in body & spirit. whereby weak hearts receive comfort. Now therefore, that God hath a care for us, yea even in those things that pertain to the body, ye see by this, that he giveth Peter so many fishes: he maketh him also so full and rich in spirit, that he ought to bestow some of his plenty upon others. He maketh him a fisher both in body and in spirit: in body, for that he taketh many fishes which he may sell: but in spirit he is a fisher of men. For he hath the Gospel, whereby other men must be brought to God by him, and the kingdom of Christ be increased. Lo, it cometh to pass, that where men believe, the Lord giveth so much, as succoureth and helpeth all men. The faithful man outwardly helpeth the needy with his substance and goods: And from within he breaketh forth, teacheth other, and enricheth them also inwardly. For such a man can not hold his peace, but is enforced to show and declare to others, how he is dealt with, as it is in the 51. Psal.. Make me a clean heart, O God, and renew a right spirit within me. Cast me not away from thy presence, and take not thy holy Spirit from me. O give me the comfort of thy help again, and establish me with thy free Spirit. Then shall I teach thy ways unto the wicked, and sinners shallbe converted unto thee. And in an other Psalm also David sayeth: I believed, Psal. 116.10. and therefore will I speak. Which is thus much in effect: when I believe, I know God, and taste of his goodness, than I consider the case of other men, and go and declare such knowledge and goodness of God unto them. We see therefore in this text, how careful God is for them that be his, and that he doth sustain them both in body and in spirit. But if he doth sometime differre any thing, without all doubt it is through the fault of our incredulity, or because we have now new begun to believe. For where faith is new and little, there is sometime small and slender help, that we may learn to know the Lord, and to trust in him. But when we have gone so far that we trust strongly in God, than nothing can be wanting to us, than God poureth upon us both corporal and spiritual good things, and so abundant treasures that we may be able to help others. This in deed is to enrich the poor and to fill the hungry. Thus much shall suffice concerning this text. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER, CONCERNING trust IN GOD IN PENURIE AND DISTRESS. Marc. 8. Verse 1. IN those days, when there was a very great multitude, and had nothing to eat, jesus called his disciples to him, and said unto them: 2. I have compassion on the multitude, because they have now continued with me three days, and have nothing to eat. 3. And if I send them away fasting to their own houses, they would faint by the way: for some of them came from far. 4. Then his disciples answered him, whence can a man satisfy these with bread here in the wilderness? 5. And he asked them, how many loaves have ye? and they said, seven. 6. Then he commanded the multitude to sit down on the ground: and he took the seven loaves, and gave thanks, broke them, and gave to his disciples to set before them, & they did set them before the people. 7. They had also a few small fishes: and when he had given thanks, he commanded them also to be set before them. 8. So they did eat and were sufficed, and they took up of the broken meat that was left, seven baskets full. 9 And they that had eaten, were about 4. thousand: so he sent them away. I Hope dearly beloved, that ye do well understand the meaning of this text. For your understanding is sufficiently well grounded in these mysteries, so that ye do easily perceive what good is to be looked for in the Gospel, and what is prescribed unto us therein, namely the true nature and quality of faith. And this is the cause why Christ is of all the Evangelists set forth to be so loving and gentle: for although the doings and works described of them do oftentimes vary, nevertheless the simplicity of faith remaineth always alike. Moreover this text doth so lively set forth Christ unto us in his colours, that it may be manifest and well known unto every one of us, what we ought to promise ourselves concerning him, to wit, that he is merciful, bountiful, gentle, who succoureth all that fly unto him for help. And such aught to be the image of faith. By the Law we are terrified and cast down, but by the Gospel we are comforted & raised up. For the Scripture setteth before us a double image: one of fear, which representeth to our eyes the horrible wrath of God, before which no man is able to stand, but rather we are all enforced to be cast down in mind, when we see it, unless we be strengthened by faith. Howbeit against this is set the other image namely of grace, which faith doth attentively behold, and taketh from hence principles of comfort, and conceiveth trust and confidence in the favour of God, having this hope, that man can not promise to himself from God so many good things, but that he hath infinite more treasures in a readiness for him. Ye have now oftentimes heard, The temporal and outward blessings of God ought to be as means to make us hope and trust in him, that he will also bestow upon us spiritual and eternal good things. that there are two sorts of good things, spiritual and corporal. The Gospel by these temporal and corporal good things teacheth us the faith of children, and they are unto the weak as a certain mean or help, whereby they may learn the goodness of God, how bountiful he is in bestowing his riches upon us, and that we ought in spiritual things also to place all our hope and trust in him. For if we be now instructed by the Gospel, that God will give food to our belly, we may thereupon account with ourselves, that he will nourish & clothe our souls with spiritual good things. If I can not commit my body unto him that he may feed it, much less can I commit my soul unto him that he may always preserve it. Or if I can not be brought to believe, that a crown of gold shallbe given unto me of him, how I pray you, shall I hope for ten of crowns of gold of him? from whom I dare not promise to myself so much as a piece of bread, truly much less shall I be persuaded to believe, that he will give a fearme unto me, or his whole inheritance. Now he that is not able to attain unto this tender, and as it were as yet sucking faith, to him surely it is very hard to believe, that God will pardon his sins, or preserve his soul for ever. Forasmuch as we are persuaded, that the soul is by infinite degrees to be preferred before the belly, toward which notwithstanding he is touched with compassion as this our present text teacheth. Wherefore Saint Peter hath rightly admonished: 1. Pet. 2. Beloved brethren, as new borne babes desire that sincere milk of the word, that ye may grow thereby. For it is not enough that the infant being put to the teat do suck, but he must also wax greater, and gather strength, that he may accustom himself to feed on bread, and stronger meat. Now to eat milk is to taste of the favour and grace of God, which is then tasted of, when a trial thereof is had in our life. For although I should preach an hundred years of the bountifulness, favour, liberality and gentleness of God toward us, it would profit me nothing unless I have a trial and taste of those commodities, neither could I learn rightly to trust in God thereby. Hereof also thou mayst conjecture how rare a Christian man is. There are many which say, that they commit their belly to God, but that sticketh only in the tongue and lips, when as rather it ought to pierce to the heart. Let us now consider an example teaching us the quality and nature of faith. The quality and nature of faith. The Apostle Heb. 11. hath written thus: Faith is the ground of things, which are hoped for, and the evidence of things which are not seen, which is thus much in effect: faith is the foundation, whereby I look for that good thing, which is neither seen with the eyes, nor heard with the ears, but which I must only hope for. Even as in our present text it plainly appeareth, wherein we read that there were about four thousand men, who together with their wives and children had now suffered hunger three days (was not this a notable kind of fasting?) yet were not famished with hunger, being far from their houses, and destitute of those necessaries, whereby the body is sustained. Now Paul saith that faith is a thing whereby a man hopeth for those things which appear not to the eyes. Such a faith had this multitude, which although they see no meat, nevertheless they trust in God, that he will feed them. What doth Christ here? he is moved with compassion, he demandeth of the disciples with what victuals, or with what thing their hunger may be taken away. To whom his disciples answer: whence can a man satisfy such a multitude here in the wilderness? Here ye see how man's reason and faith agree together, that the wiser reason is, so much less can it submit itself to the works of God. For this cause therefore did he ask his disciples, that every one of them might try their own reason, and learn how much the capacity of man and faith do differ one from an other. Here it appeareth unto us how reason is blind, and how, Reason must give place to faith. when faith cometh, it ought to give place. Whereof let this be as an example: If I were a married man, having a wife and a company of children, and had nothing wherewith to nourish them, neither would any man give me any thing: yet should it be my duty to believe and hope, that God will provide for me. But when as I see my hope to be in vain, and that I am not succoured by and by with nourishment and clothing, then if I be faithless, I yield unto desperation, and go and purpose an other thing with myself, I apply my mind to unhonest trades, that I may get somewhat thereby, as theft, deceit, and other such practises, and by all means that I am able, I pass through the storms of adversity. See what filthy incredulity bringeth unto man. But if I be endued with faith, I shut mine eyes and say: Most gentle father, I am thy creature, and thy work, it can not be denied but thou hast created me, I will put all my trust in thee, which hast greater care of my welfare than I myself. Thou wilt well nourish, feed, cloth, and help, where and when thou shalt know best. So faith is a sure foundation, whereunto I trusting, No manner of thing that is good shallbe wanting to the faithful. do look for those things which I see not, and that I may speak at once, it shall not want those things that be necessary. Surely the Angels themselves should come down from heaven, & give bread digged even out of the earth, unto such a faithful man, that he might be nourished, rather than he should be pined with hunger, yea heaven and earth shall pass, before God will suffer a man endued with such faith to want either clothing or any other necessary thing. This singular trust and confidence in God, the comfortable and effectual word of the divine promise doth require. Whereof David glorieth Psal. 37: I have been young and now am old, and yet saw I never the righteous forsaken, nor his seed begging bread. And again: God knoweth the days of the righteous, their inheritance shall continue for ever. They shall not be confounded in the perilous time, and in the days of dearth they shall have enough. But if we shall ask counsel of reason, it will forthwith say (as the disciples did before) this thing is unpossible: for it looketh for nothing, it trusteth to nothing, when nothing is present. Of like diffidence were the disciples, who thought thus with themselves: how can it be that such a great multitude of men should be here refreshed with meat? truly it exceedeth our capacity. If they had seen an heap of money, store of bread, and shambles full of flesh, they could then have easily relieved this present necessity, they could have put all in a good hope, and fitly have disposed all things, according to the capacity of their reason. And thus much shall suffice to be spoken concerning the faith of temporal good things: now we will entreat of spiritual good things, which shall come unto us when we shall die. Then shall we see death set before our eyes, when as notwithstanding we would willingly live, then shall hell appear unto us, when we rather desire for heaven, then shall we behold the judgement of God, notwithstanding his grace would be much more acceptable unto us. In a sum, whatsoever we would desire to see, shallbe taken out of our sight, yea and no creature shall help us against death, Faith ceaseth not to trust in God even in greatest extremity and distress. hell, and the judgement of God. But if I believe, I say thus unto myself: well, faith is a sure foundation: herewith I being stayed up, shall attain unto those things which are very far out of my sight, albeit those things be horrible which be in my sight, yet shall they not hurt him that believeth. Although therefore I do presently see nothing, but death, hell, and the judgement of God, yet must I consider none of these, but rather my mind is to be confirmed with an undoubted trust, that God by the virtue of his promise, not in respect of my merits or works, will give unto me life, blessedness, and grace. This in deed is to cleave unto God by sincere faith, which is here very well painted forth in this gross and bodily image of four thousand men, who cleaving to God only by faith, did not doubt that they should be refreshed of him. If they had judged according to the capacity of their reason, they would have murmured, and said after this sort: surely we are a very great multitude, we are here in the wide wilderness, we have empty and hungry stomachs, here is nothing that is able to fill them. Howbeit they murmured of none of these things, but conceiving a sure confidence, reasoning nothing against God after the affection of men, they commend themselves wholly to the good will of God, and commit unto him this urging necessity of hunger, they themselves being quiet from all care. Then God, before this care cometh upon them, and before they begin to ask of him, is present, being more careful for them, than they are for themselves, & saith on this sort: I am moved with compassion toward the multitude: if I send them away fasting, it is a danger lest they faint by the way. Behold how gentle & bountiful we have God toward us, who hath even a care to feed the unclean belly. Here now our hope is erected, and the words of Christ are comfortable to a man, when he saith: They have now continued with me three days, it now behoveth me to give sufficient unto them to eat. Here we may see, that all that do stick diligently to the word of God, are fed of God himself. Wherefore let us dearly beloved, at the last begin to believe, Incredulity the mother of sin. for only diffidence and incredulity is the mother of all sins & vices, which at this day reign in all sorts of men. How cometh it to pass, that every where, whethersoever we turn us, there are so many harlots and bawds, such plenty of deluders and deceivers, so many thieves, pillars, usurers, robbers, Simonists, as they call them, and sellers of benefices? All these diffidence toward God bringeth forth unto us. For such kind of men do judge only according to human reason, and reason looketh unto that which is present: but that which it seeth not, it is not able to comprehend: wherefore while it doth not repose her trust by faith in God, it is enforced to despair, which desperation afterward causeth such naughty and wicked men. Behold thus it goeth out of frame with us, when we commit ourselves to be ruled, not to faith, but to our own reason. Moreover, as ye have now learned faith, so must ye also learn love. For Christ is set forth unto us in a double form, in one, of faith, that we should not be over careful: in an other, of love, Christ an example of love. that we may learn, that as he hath care of us, giving us meat, drink, apparel, & that of mere & bountiful love, not for his own commodities sake, or because of our merits: so also we ought to do well to our neighbour, and that freely, only love moving us thereunto, that as Christ is to us, so we may be to our neighbour. Hereupon now we may perceive, that all works of Monks and Nuns are vain and to be utterly disallowed, when they are not directed to that end, that they may serve their neighbour, but are ordained only unto this end, that they may merit much at God's hands by them. For the true works of Christians, which they desire to be accepted of God, must be done so, that they tend to the profit of our neighbour, and not to this end, that we should think that we shall merit many things of God by them, they must be cheerfully and freely bestowed upon all, even as Christ hath done, who hath spread abroad and freely bestowed his goodness upon all. These things have I briefly spoken concerning this text, that ye may thereby learn, that God requireth this especially of us, that we do firmly and constantly trust in him, and that we freely do good and be beneficial to our neighbours, according as God hath of his mere goodness and mercy bestowed infinite benefits and blessings upon us. The Prophet saith Psal. 50: Hear O my people and I will speak, I myself will testify unto thee O Israel, I am the Lord, even thy Lord. I will not reprove thee, because of thy sacrifices, or for thy burnt offerings, for that they be not always before me. I will take no bullock out of thy house, nor goats out of thy folds. for all the beasts of the forest are mine, and so are the cattle upon a thousand hills. I know all the fowls upon the mountains: and the wild beasts of the field are at my commandment. If I be hungry, I will not tell thee: for the whole world is mine, and all that is therein. Thinkest thou that I will eat bulls flesh, and drink the blood of Goats? After the same sort he saith unto us: Behold Israel, that is, thou faithful man, I am thy God, thou art not my God, I will give unto thee, thou givest nothing to me, I will not be angry with thee, for that thou offerest not many things unto me. For whatsoever is in thy stable, in thy houses, in thy court, it was all mine before, for I have sent it thither. Whereby he briefly reproved the jews, who did marvelously please themselves in their sacrifices. Now because he rejecteth these sacrifices, what will he have to supply the place of them? truly even that which followeth in the same place: Offer unto me praise, and thy vows, call upon me in the time of trouble, & I will hear thee, and thou shalt glorify me. That is, I will have thine heart, give over thyself to me, & account me for a gentle, favourable, yea and for thy God, and it shall suffice me. Wherefore place thy faith, trust and hope in him, count him for a gentle and loving God, cleave unto him, and in extreme anguish fly unto him for succour, and to none beside him. Believe and look for help of him, than he will help thee, thou needest not any whit doubt. Afterward do good to thy neighbour with a cheerful heart and freely. These two things are set forth in this our text, as also in many other places beside. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER, WHEREIN IS DECLARED how GRIEVOUSLY GOD PUNISHETH THE CONTEMners of his word. Luke 19 Verse 41. AND when he was come near to jerusalem, he beheld the city, and wept for it, 42. Saying, If thou hadst even known at the least in this thy day those things which belong unto thy peace, thou wouldst take heed: but now are they hid from thine eyes. 43. For the days shall come upon thee, that thine enemies shall cast a trench about thee, & compass thee round, and keep thee in on every side, 44. And shall make thee even with the ground, & thy children which are in thee, and they shall not leave in thee a stone upon a stone, because thou knewest not that season of thy visitation. 45. He went also into the temple, and began to cast out them that sold therein, and them that bought, 46. Saying unto them, it is written: Mine house is the house of prayer, but ye have made it a den of thieves. 47. And he taught daily in the temple. And the high Priests and the Scribes, and the chief of the people sought to destroy him. 48. But they could not find what they might do to him, for all the people hanged upon him when they heard him. THE sum and scope of this text is this: The Lord is troubled and lamenteth for the evils which were to come upon the contemners of the word of God. Ye have often times heard, what the word of God is, what is the fruit and commodity thereof, also what Disciples it hath, of which nothing is here done, or said: but the punishment and misery only is showed, which was to come upon the jews, for that they knew not the time of their visitation. Which thing let us well consider of, for it pertaineth unto us also. If they be punished which know not the time of their visitation, what shall come unto them, which persecute, blaspheme and reprehend the Gospel and Word of God? howbeit he speaketh here only of them which know not the season of their visitation. Two ways to preach against the contemners of God's word. The contemners of God are preached against after two sorts: first by threatenings, as Christ threateneth them Matth. 11: Woe be to thee, Corazin: Woe be to thee Bethsaida: for if the great works which were done in you, had been done in Tyrus and Sidon, they had repent long agone in sackcloth and ashes. But I say to you, it shall be easier for Tyrus and Sydon at the day of judgement, then for you. And thou, Capernaum (which was his own city, wherein chief he wrought miracles) which at lifted up unto heaven, shalt be brought down to hell: for if the great works which have been done in thee, had been done among them of Sodom, they had remained to this day. But I say unto you, that it shall be easier for them of the land of Sodom in the day of judgement, then for you. These are the threatenings wherewith he terrifieth them, that they should not so neglect the word of God. The other way the Lord here showeth, when as he sheddeth tears, and is touched with pity toward miserable and blind men, he doth not terrify or threaten them, as being indurate and obstinate, but is rather wholly moved with love and taketh pity on his enemies, and would willingly call them back, but that he could prevail nothing with them, & the means which he used to reclaim them were in vain. Before in Matthew, whereas he sharply rebuketh them, he dealeth not by love, but by rigour, but here is pure love and pity, as we shall afterwards see. First, when he drew near to the city, some went before him, and some followed him, with great joy singing and saying: Hosanna the son of David, they spread their garments in the way, they cut down branches from the trees, and strawed them in the way, and all things were done after a goodly manner, but in the midst of this joy Christ beginneth greatly to weep, Christ lamenteth for jerusalem. he suffereth all to rejoice, notwithstanding his eyes gushed out with tears, when he beheld the city, and said: If thou hadst even known at the least in this thy day those things which belong unto thy peace, thou wouldst take heed: but now are they hid from thine eyes. As if the Lord should say: O, if thou knewest what belongeth unto thy peace that thou mightest not be destroyed, but stand still, thou wouldst yet at this day consider of it and beware. Now it were time for thee to know that which should be best for thee, but thou art blind, & wilt neglect the time, then shall there be no place neither for help nor counsel. As if he said: Thou standest here adorned with sumptuous and goodly buildings, and there are in thee mighty citizens, which are both secure and merry, thinking that no danger hangeth over them, but after the space of forty years thou shalt be destroyed. Which the Lord plainly foretelleth in these words. The days shall come upon thee, that thine enemies shall cast a trench about thee, and compass thee round, and keep thee in on every side, and shall make thee even with the ground, and thy children which are in thee, and they shall not leave in thee a stone upon a stone, because thou knewest not that season of thy visitation. The careless security of the jews. Now the jews, as they supposed, stood unmovable & safe, resting upon the promise of God, so that they thought no otherwise, but that they should perseverantly continue so for ever, they were secure and thought thus with themselves: God will not send such things unto us: we have the temple, wherein God himself is resident. We have also plenty of excellent men, money, and other things, Go to then, who can do any hurt or harm to us? Moreover the Emperor and people of Rome having taken the city, seeing it furnished with so many and so great munitions and goodly and excellent buildings, marveled greatly, and confessed, that it was unpossible that so great a city should be taken, unless it had been the special will of God. Their boasting therefore, and confidence in their own false opinion deceived them. Howbeit the Lord did more earnestly and deeply consider the matter than they, when he said: O jerusalem, if thou knewest those things that are known to me, thou wouldst have a care of thy peace (peace in the Scriptures is, when the matters and affairs of any have good success) thou thinkest that thou hast glad and merry days, that it is well with thee, and that thy affairs are in a prosperous state: but if thou knewest how thine enemies shall by siege afflict thee, keep thee in on every side, and bring thee into such distress, that they shall make thee even with the ground, destroy all thy buildings, and leave not a stone upon a stone, thou wouldst surely conveniently receive the word, whereby thou mightest enjoy both true peace, and all good things. The reading of the history of the destruction of this city doth make much to the right understanding of this text. A description of God's wrath and most grievous vengeance poured upon the jews for their contempt and disobedience. God had plainly so ordained, that at the feast of Easter, at which time they came to jerusalem out of all quarters, the city should be besieged, and there were then gathered together, as josephus reporteth, about thirty hundred thousand men, upon whom the Lord would show his grievous indignation and wrath. All the Apostles and Christians were departed and gone into the country of Herod, not far from jerusalem. The Lord took out the wheat, and put the chaff together on an heap, now there was so great a multitude of people, that they might seem to exceed not only a city, but even a kingdom. And they were driven into so great calamity, that all their vittells were spent, and none at all left unto them, so that they were constrained to eat the strings of their bows, & old shoes, dressing them in such manner as they could, yea through the exceeding famine, they were driven to kill their own children: the soldiers took the flesh of children roasted from the mothers, smelling the savour of the roasted flesh two streets of: pigeons dung was unto them in steed of salt, and was also very dear: finally there was so great misery, so great slaughter and shedding of blood, that it would not have been marvel for a stone to have been moved with pity. He that had seen it, would have thought that God could not have been so grievously angry, and so greatly have afflicted a people. Both houses and streets were filled with carcases dead through famine. Notwithstanding the jews remained still so obstinate and without understanding, that they gloried of God, and would not yield themselves until the Emperor set upon them with his whole power, and took the city, which they were able to keep no longer. And when as some of them were so crafty that they devoured gold that it might not be taken from them, the Roman soldiers thought that they had all so done, whereupon they flew about two thousand, and having ripped their bellies sought for gold. There was such a slaughter & manquelling made, that it seemed a miserable thing even to the Gentiles, wherefore Cesar commanded that they should not be so slain, but led captive and sold. The jews were then sold so cheap, that thirty were bought for a penny, they were then dispersed through the whole world, and were counted the most abject people of all other, as also at this day they are the most contemptible nation in the earth. For they live spread here and there, without cities and countries of their own, neither can they be again gathered together into one place, so that they shall never be able any more to erect their Priesthood and kingdom, as they hope they shall. Thus God revenged the death of Christ, & all the Prophets, thus were they recompensed for that they knew not the time of their visitation. Wherefore let us be here admonished, The example of the jews ought to admonish and move other to know the time of their visitation. for it belongeth not only unto us, but even unto all Germany. It is no jesting matter or sport, neither is there any cause why we should persuade ourselves that it will fall out otherwise with us. The jews would not believe that evil should come upon them, until they had sufficiently tried it. And we at this day are visited by the benefit of God: he hath opened unto us a treasure, his sacred and holy Gospel, whereby we know his will, and see how much we were subject to the power of Satan: but no man will receive this Gospel, yea we contemn it, and that which is more miserable, we persecute and blaspheme it. God is patiented: it pleaseth him to try us a while: if we be not watchful, so that the word be again taken from us, the same wrath and indignation which was poured forth upon the jews, shall also be poured forth upon us. For there is the same Word, the same God, the same Christ at this day, that there was at that time, whereupon undoubtedly the punishment shall be the same, or at the least as grievous both in soul and body. We make almost a sport & trifling matter of the Gospel. For no man embraceth it from his heart, no man frameth his manners according unto it. Which is a manifest argument of blindness. O thing surely most miserable. I fear lest the matter will shortly come to that pass, that all Germany will fall together upon an heap, which (alas) in part of the commonalty hath already had a lamentable beginning, we have lost a great multitude of people, almost an hundred thousand men have been slain only between the feasts of Easter and Whitsuntide. It is a hard work of God, and I fear me the war begun is not yet at an end, this is only a forewarning and threatening whereby God would terrify us, that we might diligently take heed to ourselves: it was nothing but the Fox's tail, if he come again with his whip, he will scourge us more grievously. But we will behave ourselves as the jews behaved themselves, until there shall be place for no succour nor help. Now we might prevent it, now were the time to know what should be best for us, and to receive the Gospel with peace, for at this day grace is offered unto us, whereby we may live peaceably, but we suffer day to pass after day, year after year, applying ourselves less to the Gospel then before. No man doth now pray unto God for the increase of his word, no man receiveth it in his heart. If so be that the time shall pass, no prayers shall any more help. We weigh not this matter in our heart, we think ourselves safe, we do not thoroughly perceive the great misery already come to pass, neither do we consider in our minds, how miserably God punisheth us with false prophets and sects, which he on every side sendeth unto us, which preach so securely, as if they had wholly received into their breast the spirit the comforter. Those which we counted best of all do go away, & bring men into such a perplexity, that they almost know not either what is to be done or not to be done. But this is only the beginning, albeit sufficient horrible and cruel. For there can not be greater affliction and misery, then if the Lord send amongst us sects and false prophets, which are so rash and bold, that it is greatly to be lamented. Notwithstanding the time of grace is now present: Christ hath been sent down into the world, hath been borne man, hath served us, died for us, is risen again from the dead, hath sent unto us the spirit the comforter, hath given unto us his word, hath opened heaven so wide, that all good things may be obtained of us, moreover hath given unto us rich promises, whereby he promiseth that he will preserve us both in this short and frail time, and in the eternal times, in this life, and in the life to come, most plentifully pouring forth his grace upon us. God will not suffer the contempt of his grace and word to be unpunished. Wherefore the time of grace is now before our doors, but we despise & neglect it, which God neither will, neither can pardon. For when as we contemn his word he threateneth punishment, and will at the last punish us, although he should defer it even an hundred years, but he will not defer it so long. And the more purely that the word is preached, so much greater shall the punishment be. But I fear greatly lest this punishment require the subversion of all Germany. God grant that in this thing I be a false prophet, but I fear exceedingly that it will come to pass. God can not leave this wickedness unrevenged, neither will he defer long, for the Gospel is so abundantly preached, that it was not so manifest even in the Apostles time as it is at this day, thanks be to Christ therefore. Wherefore I fear much lest that all Germany be spoiled, yea and quite destroyed, unless we otherwise apply ourselves to this matter. We which have long heard the Gospel, aught to pray God from the heart, that he would give us longer peace. The Princes go about to bring all things to pass by the sword. whereby they go too rashly and rigorously to work. Wherefore it is exceeding needful, that we should pray unto God, that his Gospel may spread farther abroad through Germany, even unto them which have not yet heard it. For if punishment come suddenly upon us, our case shall be miserable, than many souls shall be in danger to be lost before the word shall come unto them. I would wish therefore, that we would not so cruelly despise the Gospel, that precious treasure, not only for our own sake, but also for their sakes which are as yet to hear it. A scourge is a little begun: God grant that it may so stay, that neither the Princes nor the commonalty be stirred up to greater rage and fury. For if that civil war should begin again, it were to be feared that it would have none end. We do like as the jews did, who had a greater care of the belly then of God, having more regard how to fill the belly, then that they might be saved, wherefore they lost both, and that worthily. For, forasmuch as they would not receive life, God sent unto them death, so they lost both body and soul. They pretended the same cause that we do. We would willingly in deed embrace the Gospel, if there were no danger of body and goods, wife, & children. If we shall believe him, said the jews, the Romans will come, and take away both our place and the nation, which nevertheless came unto them, for that which the wicked man feareth, falleth upon him. This was a let and hindrance to the jews that they would not believe the words of God, neither have regard to the rich and large promises that he had made unto them. So also do we, we regard not the mighty and comfortable promises which Christ hath made unto us, as where he saith: He shall receive an hundredth fold more, Matth. 19.29. and shall inherit everlasting life. Leave thy wife and children, I will preserve them, I will restore them, so as thou goest to work boldly in my name. Thinkest thou that I can not build thee other houses? countest thou me so simple, who will give unto thee heaven? wilt thou not put thyself in danger for my sake? if thy goods be taken from thee, it is well with thee, heaven and earth are mine, I will recompense thee abundantly. These and such like sayings we pass over, yea and also contemn, having diligent consideration only what we have laid up in our chest, and that our purse may be full, neither do we see, that even that which we have God hath given unto us, & will as yet give us more, if we believe and trust in him, neither do we mark if that we lose God, we shall lose the belly also. The faithful refuse not to suffer peril and trouble for God his sake. Howbeit they that believe in God, do not avoid peril if it come for his sake, but commit all things to his divine power, that he may order them according to his will, and thus they think: The Lord hath given me both a house and the furniture thereof, wife, children, etc. I have not obtained them of myself, forasmuch then as they are Gods, I will commit them unto him, he shall best preserve them. For even otherwise I must leave them, wherefore I will refuse to suffer no peril, and to leave whatsoever I have for his sake, if the case so require. If he will have me so to do, he can give me other things, for he hath promised that he will give sufficient to them that believe, both here and in the time to come. If he will not have me to live here, I own death unto him, when he shall require me, I will be ready for his words sake. He that shall not do thus, denieth God, and is notwithstanding compelled to lose both this frail life, and eternal life. The stinking belly which we make our god, is the cause, Immoderate care for the belly the cause of diffidence and distrust of God's care & providence. that we do not cleave to the word of God: for I will first be certain how I may feed myself, and where my goods be. The Gospel saith, Trust in God, but I provide for my belly, and if I have one noble in gold, I think I have sufficient to sustain & nourish me for ten days, & trusting unto that which I have laid up, I trust not in God, that as he hath hitherto fed me, so he will nourish me still. Is not this a detestable thing, that I trust to one piece of coin only, whereby I look to have my food and sustenance to morrow? Fie, what a cursed thing is such care for the belly? Shall a vile piece of coin be more esteemed of me, than God himself, in whose power are heaven and earth, who giveth unto us air and water, maketh grain to grow unto us, and sendeth all things necessary? It is more detestable than that it can be expressed by the voice of man, that God is not esteemed of us so much as a little money. Why dost thou not think: God who hath made me, will well nourish me, if he will have me live. If he will not, well, then shall I have no need. But, saith the belly, I find no god in my chest. Thou foolish ass, who can assure thee that thou shalt live till tomorrow? It is uncertain whether thou shalt keep thy belly till to morrow, and desirest thou to know where food and sustenance is? If this did pierce our heart, we should see how devilish a thing incredulity is. Is it not a horrible thing that I do not make so great account of God, who feedeth so many mouths, as to trust in him, that he will nourish me, yea that I do make more account of one noble in gold then of God himself, who poureth forth his good things so abundantly? The world is full of the blessings and works of God, he is on every side with his good things, notwithstanding we do not yet commit ourselves to him, or receive his visitation. O cursed world, which can not trust to God even one day, and yet trusteth to a piece of gold. Thus we see, as I think, of what sort the world is, how it despiseth God for the bellies sake, which notwithstanding it is compelled to lose. O how great contemners of salvation are we? we ought rather to detest the world, but we are too deeply drowned in old Adam. The world is as it were a figure of hell, yea a very devilish kingdom, & an entrance to hell. Wherefore Christ with weeping eyes exhorteth us to know our salvation, and to receive his visitation, lest that a plague & scourge follow, which undoubtedly shall come upon them, which thinking themselves in safety, do not believe and trust in God. God give us his grace, whereby we may know him. It followeth moreover in the text. He went also into the temple, and began to cast out them that sold therein, and them that bought, saying unto them, it is written, Mine house is the house of prayer, but ye have made it a den of thieves. This is the second part of this text, wherein is declared how the Lord going into the temple, beginneth to drive out the buyers and sellers therein. The former part was nothing else but an exhortation and inviting to faith, but here the Lord insinuateth what the temple of God is, and bringeth a place out of the Scripture hereunto appertaining, namely out of isaiah, isaiah. 56.7. where he saith: Mine house shall be called an house of prayer for all people. This is a strong saying, whereas the Prophet saith, for all people, against the jews, who trusting unto that temple at jerusalem, thought that this house made with hand, should continue for ever, supposing it to be unpossible, that God would either destroy this temple, or leave the city desolate, because the word of God can not lie. Wherefore they stoned Steven, for that he spoke against that holy city, and affirmed that jesus would destroy it, and change the ceremonies given of Moses. For they said: The Prophets have greatly praised this house: and do you Apostles preach that it shall be destroyed? Howbeit this saying is thus to be understood, that the city jerusalem, the Temple, and the People should continue until the time of Christ, whereunto all the Prophets tend, which referred all things unto Christ, that as he should do, so it should be, and so it should continue. Wherefore the place of isaiah extendeth no farther than to the coming of Christ, which all the Prophets also witness, affirming that there should come a kingdom, which should extend far and wide over the whole world, as it is in Malachi: Mal. 1.11. From the rising of the sun unto the going down of the same, my name is great among the Gentiles, and in every place incense shall be offered to my name, and a pure offering: for my name is great among the very Heathen, saith the Lord of hosts. Here the Prophet speaketh of the spiritual kingdom of Christ, who would build unto himself an house of prayer in the whole world. It is true that God himself did confirm and sanctify the temple at jerusalem, not because it was furnished with precious stones and goodly buildings, or hallowed of the Priests, which manner of trifles and dotages we use at this day, but because he had consecrated and hallowed it with his word, when he said: This house is my house: The true house of God. for his word was preached in it. Wheresoever the word of God is preached, there is his true house: where the word of God hath his course and proceeding, there undoubtedly God dwelleth with his grace: where his Gospel is, there is the holy house of prayer, there prayers both may and aught to be made unto God. God also will hear us, as Christ saith joh. 16: Whatsoever ye shall ask the Father in my name, he will give it you: hitherto have ye asked nothing in my name: ask, & ye shall receive. Contrariwise, where the word is not, there is Satan wholly. Now, whereas we imitating the jews have builded so many temples, it were tolerable, if we had therefore so done, that the word of God might be preached in them, for where God's word is preached, there is he present, and poureth forth his grace. Christ saith moreover that the jews have made the temple at jerusalem a den of thieves. But they were resident in the temple which sold oxen and sheep, that they which came might buy to offer and worship God: Why therefore doth he call it a den of thieves? Surely he giveth unto it a foul name, Why Christ calleth the temple at jerusalem a den of thieves. which came to pass upon this occasion: for that it was not any more counted of them for the house of God, but for a house of merchandise, that is, the Priests had no care how the word of God was preached there, and did negligently and carelessly sing, babble, and read Moses and the Prophets. But God doth nothing esteem that mumbling up of many words, which is only vain and childish. They behaved themselves like as our sacrificing Priests and monks do, who of temples & Monasteries making dens of thieves, preach poisonful doctrine, and therefore only they celebrate Mass, that they may thereby get unto themselves money, and fill the belly, killing & destroying silly sheep with their traditions. Which is the den, wherein souls are slain, which title is to be given to all temples, wherein the word of God is not preached. For there they mock God, kill souls, expel the true word, and set up thievery. O how foully have we been deceived in this point? But God at this day is highly to be praised, that his word reneweth & quickeneth us, driveth away thieves, & teacheth us to pray aright. For a sincere Christian must pray not in mouth only, but in heart also. Thus we have the second part of our text, how Christ casteth out the sellers, that is them that served the belly, and maketh place for his word. It were very good if Monasteries were scoured after this sort, that either Christian schools, or places wherein the word of God might be preached, might be made of them: which if it come not to pass, they are, and do remain dens of thieves. If Christ calleth his house a den of thieves, how much more shall our temples, which God hath not consecrated, be proved to be dens of thieves? I have often times desired you, that ye would devoutly pray unto God, that he turning away his indignation, would bridle the devil, who now rageth in the world. For ye have heard of a great calamity, how many thousand have been slain, it is to be feared that they are all damned. God requireth obedience of us, & he hath pronounced the sentence, that he that taketh the sword, shall perish with the sword. They were besieged of Satan, who knoweth whether the same shall come unto us? Let us pray God therefore that his kingdom may come unto us, that Christians may be multiplied, and that he will send wise and meek Preachers, whom the people may receive and obey. Let him that knoweth the gift of God, pray for others which have not yet heard the word of God. For it is high time so to do. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER, WHEREIN IS ENTREATED OF THE LAW AND THE GOSPEL, AND OF THE DIFference between them. Luke 10. Verse 23. AND he turned to his Disciples and said secretly, Blessed are the eyes, which see that ye see. 24. For I tell you that many Prophets and Kings have desired to see those things, which ye see, and have not seen them: and to hear those things which ye hear, and have not heard them. 25. Then behold, a certain Lawyer stood up & tempted him, saying, Master, what shall I do to inherit eternal life? 26. And he said unto him: What is written in the law? how readest thou? 27. And he answered and said, Thou shalt love thy Lord God with all thine heart, and with all thy soul, & with all thy strength, and with all thy mind, and thy neighbour as thyself. 28. Then he said unto him: Thou hast answered right: this do, and thou shalt live. 29. But he willing to justify himself, said unto jesus, Who is then my neighbour? 30. And jesus answered & said: A certain man went down from Jerusalem to jerico, & fell among thieves, & they rob him of his raiment, & wounded him, & departed, leaving him half dead. 31. Now so it fell out, that there came down a certain Priest that same way, and when he saw him, he passed by on the other side. 32. And likewise also a Levite when he was come near to the place, went and looked on him, & passed by on the other side. 33. Then a certain Samaritan, as he journeyed, came near unto him, and when he saw him, he had compassion on him. 34. And went to him, and bound up his wounds, and poured in oil and wine, and put him on his own beast, and brought him to an Inn, & made provision for him. 35. And on the morrow when he departed, he took out two pence, & gave them to the host, and said unto him, Take care of him, and whatsoever thou spendest more, when I come again, I will recompense thee. 36. Which now of these three, thinkest thou, was neighbour unto him that fell among the thieves? 37. And he said, He that showed mercy on him, Then said jesus unto him: Go, and do thou likewise. I Hope well that ye do now rightly understand this Gospel, forasmuch as it is preached of every year: notwithstanding because occasion is now again offered, we must again entreat and preach of it. First the Evangelist saith, that Christ took his Disciples aside, and said unto them secretly after this sort: Blessed are the eyes which see that ye see. For I tell you that many Prophets and Kings have desired to see those things which ye see, and have not seen them, and to hear those things which ye hear, and have not heard them. To see and hear is to be understood here simply of the outward seeing and hearing, to wit, that they saw Christ come in the flesh, heard his sermons, and were present at those miracles which he did among the jews. The jews saw the same according to the flesh, yea and felt them also: yet did they not truly acknowledge him for Christ, as the Apostles did, and especially Peter in the name of all the rest did confess him, saying: Thou art Christ the Son of the living God. We grant in deed, that there were some among the jews, which acknowledged him, as the Apostles did, but the number of them was very small, wherefore he taketh his Apostles here severally unto himself. Many Prophets and Kings have seen Christ, howbeit in the spirit, as the Lord himself saith to the jews of Abraham, joh. 8: How the faithful saw Christ before his incarnation. Your father Abraham rejoiced to see my day, and he saw it, and was glad. The jews thought then that he had spoken of the bodily seeing, but he spoke of the spiritual seeing, whereby all Christian hearts did behold him, before he was borne. For if Abraham saw him, undoubtedly many other of the Prophets, in whom the holy Ghost was, saw him also. And although this seeing saved the holy Fathers and Prophets, yet did they always with most inward and hearty affection desire to see Christ in the flesh also, as is commonly showed in the Prophets. Wherefore the Lord saith here unto his disciples, which saw him both in the flesh, and in the spirit: Blessed are the eyes which see those things that ye see. As if he said: Now is the acceptable year and time of grace: The matter which is now in hand is so weighty and precious, that the eyes are worthily said to be blessed, which see it. For now was the Gospel preached openly and manifestly both by Christ himself, and also by his Apostles, whereupon he here calleth them all blessed, which see and hear such grace. Of which grace I have preached much & a long time unto you, I would to God ye did keep that which I have spoken thereof, fresh in memory. When the Lord spoke these things, a certain Lawyer start up, showing himself as though he had been some thing, who tempting the Lord saith: Master, what shall I do to inherit eternal life? This lawer was endued with wisdom, and not unskilful of the Scriptures, which even his answer doth declare, yet in this place he is proved a fool, yea he is brought unto shame and ignominy. For Christ taketh away all his glorying even in one word. He was of this mind, that he had observed the whole Law, and that he was a certain chief one in respect of other, as undoubtedly he was, and thought himself sufficient worthy by reason of his godliness and learning to be conversant with the Lord. But what doth the Lord in this case? the text following declareth. And he said unto him, what is written in the Law? how readest thou? And he answered and said: Thou shalt love thy Lord God with all thine heart, and with all thy soul, and with all thy strength, and with all thy mind, and thy neighbour as thyself. Then he said unto him, Thou hast answered right: do this, & thou shalt live. Me thinks that the Lord gave this good man a hard lesson: he dealeth very straightly with him, it may seem to some that he should have spared him a little, he putteth him to shame openly before all: he proveth that he had done nothing, who notwithstanding thought that he had done all things. He asked what he should do: but I think he had enough and overmuch to do, if he had been able to do more than he was. If I had time, many things might be spoken of these two commandments. For they are the chief and greatest commandments in Moses, on which the whole Law, and all the Prophets do hang, as Christ himself saith in Matthew: Matth. 22.40. Notwithstanding we will entreat somewhat of them. If we consider all the commandments of Moses, they have respect altogether unto love. For this commandment: Thou shall have none other gods in my sight, we can no otherwise declare or interpret, then, Thou shalt love God alone, Deut. 6.4.5. so Moses expoundeth it in Deuteronomie, where he saith thus: Hear O Israel, the Lord our God is Lord only. And thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all thine heart, with all thy soul, and with all thy might: from whence the Lawer took his answer. But the jews understand this commandment so, that they think it to extend no further, then that they should not set up, nor worship idols. And if they can say and witness in mouth, that they have one God only, and do worship none but him, they think they have observed this commandment. After the same sort did this Lawer understand it, but that was an evil and a wrong understand thereof. How the first commandment is to be understood and observed. Howbeit we must otherwise consider & understand this precept: Thou shalt have none other gods in my sight. Thou, it saith, with all that thou art, but especially it requireth all thine heart, soul and strength. It speaketh not of the tongue, not of the hand, not of the knees, but of the whole man, what soever thou art and hast. That no other God may be worshipped of me, it shallbe necessary that I have the true and only God in mine heart, that is, I must love him from mine heart, so that I do always depend on on him, trust in him, repose my hope in him, have my pleasure, love and joy in him, and daily remember him. Even as otherwise, if we take pleasure of any thing, we say, it doth me good inwardly at the heart. And if any speaketh or laugheth, and doth it not in good earnest, neither from his heart, we are wont to say: Thou laughest in deed, but it cometh not from thine heart. The love of the heart in the Scriptures signifieth a vehement & special love, which we ought to bear toward God. They which serve God with mouth, hands, and knees only, are hypocrites, neither hath God any care of them. For God will not have part, but the whole. The jews did outwardly abstain from idolatry, and served God alone in mouth, but their heart was far removed from him, being full of diffidence and unbelief. Outward they seemed to be very earnest in serving God, but within they were full of idolatry. Whereupon the Lord said unto them Matth. 23: Woe be to you Scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites, for ye are like unto painted sepulchres, which appear beautiful outward, but are within full of dead men's bones, and of all filthiness. So are ye also: For outward ye appear righteous unto men, but within ye are full of hypocrisy and iniquity. These are those wicked ones, which glory of the outward thing, which go about to justify and make themselves good by their own works, after the manner of this Lawer. Consider how great the pride of this ass was, he cometh forth as though he could not be blamed or rebuked of the Lord, he thought, yea it seemed unto him, that the Lord would here commend and praise his life before the people. He thought not to learn any thing of the Lord, but he sought only his own commendation, he would willingly have had Christ to set forth his praise, toward whom the eyes of all were bend, and who was an admiration to all. So all hypocrites do, outwardly they pretend excellent, The quality of hypocrites. great and weighty works: they say that they have respect neither of glory nor praise, but within in their heart they are full of ambition, and wish that their holiness were known to the whole world, showing a goodly sign of their religion, by the biting of their lip, if they hear any speak thereof. But our Saviour Christ showeth here no kindness or gentleness to this Lawyer, inasmuch as he putteth him to shame: that great holy man notwithstanding continueth still in the same mind, and supposeth that he shall receive great honour, & singular praise because of his precious life, thinking that he had fulfilled the commandment, whereupon also he looketh for a joyful answer, that the Lord should say: Good master, your mastership hath done all things. But Christ answereth him: Do this. Which in deed is as much to say as: Thou art altogether a naughty fellow, thou hast never in all thy life fulfilled so much as one letter thereof, so showing unto him how evil and naughty he was. Like unto this Lawyer are all they which do most grievously offend against the first commandment, and think that God is to be loved no more than the words sound for, and that thereby it is fulfilled: the commandment therefore remaineth in their mouth, and doth as it were float above the heart, and pierceth it not: How God must be loved of us. but I must go much farther than so, I must love God so, that I can be content to forsake all creatures for his sake, and if it shall seem good unto him, my body and life, I must love him above all things, for he is jealous, and can not suffer that any thing be loved above him, but under him he permitteth us to love any thing. Even as the husband can suffer, that his wife love her maids, the house, household things, cattle, and such like, howbeit he suffereth her not to love any with that love wherewith she is bound unto him, but himself, yea he will have her leave all such things for his sake. Again the wife requireth the same of her husband. After the same sort God can suffer that we love his creatures, yea therefore they are created, & are good. The sun is a goodly creature, gold and silver, and whatsoever by nature is fair, procureth us to love it, which maketh it dear unto us, neither is God offended thereat. But that I should cleave unto the creature, and love it equally with him, that neither will he, neither can he suffer: yea he will have me both to deny and forsake all these things, when he requireth it of me, and will have me content, although I never see the sun, money, riches, &c: The love of creatures must be far inferior to the love which we must bear toward him. As he is the sovereign good, so will he also be chief loved before all other good things, If he will not suffer that I shall love any thing equally with him, much less will he suffer that I shall love any thing above him. Thou seest now as I think, what it is to love God with all the heart, with all the soul, with all the mind. What it is to love God with all the heart. To love God with all the heart, is to love God above all creatures, that is, although creatures be very amiable and dear unto me, and I take great delight in them, yet must I so love them, that I do contemn and forsake them, when my God and Lord requireth that of me. To love God with all the soul, What it is to love God with all the soul. is to bestow our whole life & body at his pleasure, as if the love of creatures, or any tentation assail thee, or would overcome thee, thou mayst say: I will rather part from all these than I will forsake my God, whether he cast me of, either kill me, either drown me, or whatsoever through his permission shall come unto me, I had rather leave all things than him, I will depend on that my Lord, rather than upon all creatures, or upon any other thing whatsoever it be. Whatsoever I have and am, I will bestow, but him will I not forsake. The soul in the Scriptures signifieth the life of the body, & whatsoever is done by the five senses, as to eat, to drink, to sleep, to wake, to see, to hear, to smell, to taste, and whatsoever the soul worketh by the body. To love God with all the strength. To love God with all the strength, is for God's cause to renounce all the members and limbs of the body, so that one will offer to peril whatsoever he is able in his flesh and body, before he will commit that which is against God. To love God with all the mind, To love God with all the mind. is to enterprise nothing but that which many please God, whereby he understandeth the thought, which is in man, that that also be referred to God, and to all things that be acceptable unto him. Thou perceivest now what this commandment of God containeth in it. Thou shalt love God, Thou, Thou saith he, and that wholly, even every part of thee, not thy hands, not thy mouth, not thy knees alone. They which do these things, as it is said, do truly fulfil it: but no man liveth in the earth which doth so, yea we do all otherwise. Wherefore the law doth here make us all sinners, so that not so much as the least jot or point thereof is fulfilled of them that are most holy of all in the world. For no man doth so cleave with all his heart unto God, that he can leave all things for his sake. We (alas) are gone so far, that we can not suffer so much as a little word, nay we will not forego the value of a halfpenny for God's cause. We are far of from loving God as we ought. How can it be that we should love God, when his will is not settled in our mind? If I love God, I can not but love his will also. Now if God send sickness, poverty, shame, and ignominy, it is his will, whereat what do we? we murmur, we grudge, our mind is carried hither and thither, we take it most unpatiently, and yet is this the least. What would we do, if we should leave our body and life for God & Christ his sake? then would we show ourselves after an other sort. But in the mean season we do like unto this Pharisee & Lawyer, we lead an honest life outwardly, we worship God, we serve him, we fast, we pray, and behave ourselves in outward appearance justly and holily. But God doth not require that of us, but that we should bend ourselves to do his will with pleasure and love, cheerfully & lovingly. Wherefore whatsoever the Lord saith here to the Lawyer, he saith it to all us, to wit, that we have yet done nothing, but that all things do yet remain to be done. All men therefore are guilty of death and subject to Satan: All men are liars, vain, filthy, and whatsoever they pretend, it is nothing worth. We are wise in our own matters, that we may scrape together money and goods, and we can speak most sweetly and fairly before men, and cunningly propound or set forth our matter. What doth God care for these things? He requireth of us that we love him with our whole heart, which no man living is able to perform, whereupon of this place is inferred, that we are all sinners, but especially they, whose life hath a goodly outward show only. This is the former part of this text, namely, the preaching of the law: Now followeth the other part, which is the preaching of the Gospel, which declareth how we may fulfil the law, and from whence that fulfilling is to be taken, which we shall learn of that Samaritane. What doth the Lawyer moreover, after that the Lord had thus dealt with him? He, saith the Evangelist, willing to justify himself, spoke unto the Lord & asked him as followeth: Who is then my neighbour? He asketh not: Who is my God? As if he said: I own nothing unto God, neither do I want any thing before God, yea it seemeth unto me, that I do neither owe any thing to any man: nevertheless I would willingly know who is my neighbour. The Lord answering him, bringeth forth a most goodly similitude, whereby he declareth that we are all neighbours one to an other, as well he that giveth a benefit, as he that receiveth and needeth one: although by the text it seemeth to appear, that he only is a neighbour, which bestoweth a benefit upon an other. But the Scripture maketh here no difference, sometime calling him our neighbour, which bestoweth a benefit, sometime him that receiveth a benefit. By this similitude the Lord inferreth in these words: Go and do thou likewise, so that that Lawyer had offended not only against God, but also against man, and wanted not only love towards God, but also love towards his neighbour, unto whom he had not done that good which he ought. This wretched fellow is brought into such a case that he is found wholly evil, even from the head to the feet. How came it to pass that he being most skilful of the Scripture could not beware of this? So fell it out: he led a pharisaical, hypocritical, and counterfeit life, which had not regard unto his neighbour, and to secure and help others, but sought thereby only glory and honour before men, and so looked by negligent & dissolute living to come to heaven. But ye have heard very often, that a Christian life consisteth in this, A Christian life. that we deal with faith and the heart in things that pertain unto God, but use our life and works towards our neighbour, and that I must not look while my neighbour seeketh a benefit, and requireth some thing of me, but according to my duty must prevent his ask, & of mine own accord offer my liberality unto him. Now we will see what the parable containeth in it. The Samaritane in this place is without all doubt our Lord jesus Christ, who hath declared his love toward God and men: The love of Christ toward God & men. Toward God, in that he descended from heaven, and was incarnate, and so fulfilled the will of his father: Toward men, for that by and by after baptism, he began to preach, to work miracles, to heal the sick, neither was there any work that he did, which did concern himself only, but all his works were directed to his neighbour, being made our minister, when as notwithstanding he is above all, and equal to God: but he did all these things, for that he knew that they did please God, and that it was the will of his father. When he had ascended to the height of the commandment, that he loved God with all his heart, he left and committed the life of his body, and whatsoever he had to the pleasure and will of his father saying: Father, behold all things that I have, my life and soul are ready at thy will: I leave for thy sake the glory and honour which I have had among men, yea and all things how good soever they be, that the world may understand how greatly I love thee: My father let for thy sake my wisdom be contemned, that the world may count me for the foolishest of all: Now make I myself most contemptible of all other, who was before praised of the whole world: Now am I as a most wicked thief, who before was liberal, profitable, and beneficial to the whole world: My father, I make no account of all these things, that I may be found obedient to thy will. This is that Samaritane, who being desired by no prayers, came, & fulfilled the law with his whole heart, he alone hath fulfilled it, which praise none can take from him: he alone hath deserved it, and to him only it appertaineth. But whereas he is touched with care of the wounded man, hath compassion on him, bindeth up his wounds, bringeth him with him into an Inn, The wounded man, & the thieves that spoilt him. provideth for him, that pertaineth unto us. The man which lieth half dead, wounded, beaten, & spoiled, is Adam, yea and all we. The thieves which spoilt us, wounded us, and left us half dead, as yet a little panting, are the Devils. The horse and his sitter do here fall down, we are not able to help ourselves, and if we should be left lying so, we should die, through great anguish and distress, our wounds would become festered, and our affliction miserable and exceeding great. This excellent parable is set before our eyes, lively painting forth unto us, what we are, what is the strength of our reason and free will. If that wretched man had gone about to help himself, his case would have been made worse, he would have hurt himself, he would have opened his wounds with rubbing, & so would have fallen into greater calamity. Again if he had been left lying, it had been all one. So it cometh to pass when we are left to ourselves: our studies and endeavour surely are nothing, howsoever we set upon the matter. Hitherto sundry ways & divers means have been invented, whereby we might come unto heaven, and amend our life, this man found out this, an other that, whereupon have increased innumerable sorts of Orders, letters of indulgences, pilgrimages to saints, which did always make that state of Christianity worse. This is the world which is painted forth in this wounded man, he being wholly laden with sins, fainteth under so heavy a burden, and is not able to help himself. But the Samaritane who hath fulfilled the Law, and is perfectly sound and whole, cometh, and doth more, then either the Priest or Levite, he bindeth up his wounds, poureth in oil and wine, setteth him upon his own beast, bringeth him with him unto an Inn, maketh provision for him, and when he should departed, diligently commendeth him to the host, and leaveth with him sufficient for expenses, none of which either the Priest, or Levite did. By the Priest the holy Fathers are signified, The Priest & Levite which passed by the wounded man which flourished before Moses. The Levite is a representation of the Priesthood of the old Testament. Now all these could do nothing by their works, but passed by like unto this Priest and Levite. Wherefore although I had all the good works of Noah, Abraham, yea and of all the faithful Fathers, they would profit me nothing. The Priest and Levite saw that miserable man lie wounded, but they could not help him any thing: they saw him lie half dead, but what was that to the purpose? they could not give him any remedy. The holy Fathers saw men drowned and plunged in sins even up to the ears, they also felt the sting and anguish of sin, but what could they do hereunto? they could make the case worse and not better. And those were the preachers of the Law, which show what the world is, namely that it is full of sin, and lieth half dead, and can not even any whit help itself with his strength, reason, and free will. But Christ is that true Samaritane, Christ the true Samaritane which helpeth the wounded man. Oil. who is touched with as great care of that miserable man as of himself. Neither doth the Samaritane call him unto him, for he hath no merit, but enjoyeth the mere grace and mercy of Christ, who bindeth up his wounds, and having great care of him, poureth in oil and wine, that is, the whole Gospel. He poureth in oil when grace is preached, when it is said: behold O miserable man, this is thy incredulity, this is thy condemnation, thus art thou wounded and sick: but abide, I will show thee a remedy for all this: Behold, join thyself to this Samaritane Christ the Saviour, he will best help and secure thee, and beside him nothing. The nature of oil, as he know, is to make soft and mollify: so the sweet and gentle preaching of the Gospel maketh my heart soft and tender toward God and my neighbour, so that I dare bestow my body and life, for Christ and his Gospel, if God and need so require. Wine. Sharp wine signifieth the holy cross or affliction, which forwith followeth. Neither is there any cause that a Christian should look far about and seek the cross, for it sooner hangeth over his head then he is aware of, as Paul witnesseth 2. Tim. 3: All that will live godly in Christ jesus, shall suffer persecution. This is the cognisance and badge of this king. He that is ashamed of this cognisance, pertaineth not unto him. Moreover that Samaritane putteth this wounded man upon his own beast: this is our Lord jesus Christ, who beareth us, we lie upon his shoulders, upon his neck & body. There is scarce a more amiable & comfortable history in the whole Gospel, then where Christ compareth himself to a shepherd, which carrieth again the lost sheep upon his shoulders unto the flock. The Inn whereunto the wounded man is brought, & the host to whom he is committed. The Inn is the state of Christianity in this world, wherein we must abide for a little time. The host is the ministers & preachers of the word of God, and of the Gospel, whose charge is to have care of us. This therefore is the sum: The kingdom of Christ is a kingdom of mercy and grace, where is nothing else but always to be borne and to bear. Christ beareth our defects and infirmity, he taketh our sins upon himself, and beareth our fall willingly, we daily lie upon his neck, neither is he wearied with that bearing of us. It is the duty of the preachers of this kingdom, to comfort consciences, to handle them gently, to feed them with the Gospel, to bear the weak, to heal the sick: Moreover they ought fitly to apply the word according to the need of every one. This is in deed is the duty of a true Bishop and preacher, not to proceed by violence and injury, as it is the custom of our bishops at this day, which vex, torment, and cry out: go to, go to, he that will not willingly, shallbe compelled to do it against his will. We must in no wise do so. But a Bishop or preacher ought to behave himself as a healer of the sick, who dealeth very tenderly with them, uttereth very loving words unto them, talketh very gently with them, and bestoweth all his endeavour about them. The same must a Bishop, or minister of any particular parish do, and think no otherwise, but that his bishopric or parish is as an hospital, wherein are such as are cumbered with diverse and sundry kinds of diseases. If Christ be thus preached, than faith and love come together, which fulfil the commandment of love. Now forasmuch as the knowledge of the Law and the Gospel, and of the difference between them is very necessary, I will entreat of them somewhat more at large. Of the Law and the Gospel. I have very often admonished your brotherly charity, The wlole Scripture divided into the Law & the Gospel. that the whole Scripture divideth itself into two parts: into the Law, and the Gospel. The Law is that which teacheth what we must do, what the will of God requireth of us. The Gospel teacheth where that is to be received, which the Law commandeth. Even as if I seek to take physic, it is one art to tell what the disease is, & an other to minister that which is good and wholesome to remedy it. So standeth the case here: The Law revealeth the disease, the Gospel ministereth the medicine. Which is manifest even by the text whereof we have already entreated: The Lawyer cometh, and being very desirous of eternal life, asketh what he must do. The Law declareth it unto him, saying: The office of the Law. Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all thine heart, with all thy soul, with all thy strength, and with all thy mind, and thy neighbour as thyself. He that readeth these works after a bare and slender sort only, as this Lawyer did, understandeth them not. We must pierce into the Law, and every one behold his face and heart therein. God must be loved of me from the bottom of my heart: Again, I must love him with all my soul, that is, from the depth of my soul, so that I thoroughly feel in myself that I love him. For to love with the soul signifieth in the Scripture such love as a young man beareth toward a maid, which he feeleth thoroughly in his mind, Moreover, with all my strength, that is, with all my members. Also with all my mind, that is, all my senses, cogitations & thoughts must be directed unto God: Now I find in myself that I do none of these. For if I must love God with all my heart, soul, strength and mind, it is requisite, that mine eyes show no angry twinkling or motion, that my tongue speak no angry word, that my feet, hands, ears, etc. show no sign of wrath, that my whole body even from the crown of the head to the soles of the feet, & all things belonging thereunto, do walk in charity, be as it were ravished with love and pleasure toward God, & always serve & worship him. Wherefore who is he which by the pleasure & love of virtue is chaste & righteous? there can not be one such found in the earth. For we always find ourselves readier to wrath, hatred, envy, worldly pleasure &c: then to meekness & other virtues. I find in me not only a spark, but even a fiery furnace of wicked lust: for there is no love in mine heart, no not in all my members. Wherefore here in the Law as it were in a certain glass I see whatsoever is in me, to be damnable and cursed. For not one jot of the Law must perish, but all must be fulfilled, Matth. 5 18. as Christ saith: Truly I say unto you, till heaven & earth pass, one jot or title of the Law shall not scape, till all be fulfilled. Now thou findest not this in thee, that thou dost with all thy soul and heart, with cheerfulness and pleasure, whatsoever the Law exacteth and requireth of thee. Hereupon thou art damned and under the dominion of Satan. The Law therefore serveth us thus far, to teach us, that we are condemned: for by it we find all wicked desires in us, and yet not so much as a spark of them ought to be in us. Howbeit our Schoolmen not marking this, have taught, that if one do according to his ability, God doth give his grace unto him. They are blind guides: They grant themselves, that a man is carried with no pleasure or cheerfulness to that which is good, and yet do they also teach, if one worketh, although it be with grief, difficulty, and slothfulness, that it is well with him before God. But Christ hath taught otherwise in this place, that we should work that which is good with pleasure and love, readiness and facility. Whom therefore shall we rather believe, Christ or the Schoolmen: but I leave that to your judgement. Of such corrupt and evil understanding of the Law, Monasteries afterwards came, whereby entered in this opinion, that it was thought to be sufficient to salvation, to live in a Monastery, and to follow the orders thereof, although that were done even with grief of mind. We must work with pleasure and cheerfulness, not with grudging or grief. So they taught: But Christ will have us to work with pleasure and cheerfulness, so that if any thing be done with burden or grief of conscience, it is sin: remove thyself therefore quickly from such a work. Wherefore thus it might be said unto them: Behold O man, thou miserable creature oughtest to be carried with a certain delight to the doing of the law of God, but thou comest with no pleasure or cheerfulness hereunto, now see that thou show thy pleasure and love herein, otherwise thou shalt be the enemy of God, and the friend of Satan: thus men leaving their own rashness, might come to the knowledge of themselves, and might then say: Therefore, O God, am I condemned, and that not unjustly. Hereupon it followeth, that we are all under Satan, as long as we feel in us this difficulty and hardness to do that which is good. Wherefore if I should speak the truth, I should say thus, I find in deed something that is good in the law of God, but it is my death, and if it could be, I would wish that it were not. So are all men affected in their heart, as S. Paul plainly teacheth Rom. 7. If we should remain in such condemnation, we must needs perish for ever. There is therefore an other part, that is, the Gospel, The office of the Gospel. which showeth comfort and salvation, declaring where that is to be had, whereby the Law is fulfilled. When therefore I know by the Law that I am a condemned man, then lie I half dead among thieves, Satan hath spoiled my soul, and hath moreover in Adam taken away all faith, all righteousness, and hath left nothing but bodily life, which is also qulckly extinguished. Then come levites and Priests, which teach this and that, but can help nothing, and so pass by. But when the Samaritane cometh, he helpeth: that is, when Christ cometh, he showeth his mercy unto us, saying after this sort: Behold thou oughtest in deed to love God with all thine heart, but thou dost it not, now believe only in me, & thou shalt enjoy my obedience as thine own: this only helpeth me: Then he putteth me on his own beast, that is, on himself, and carrieth me into the Inn, that is, into the Church of the faithful, than he by and by poureth his grace into me, that is, oil, that I may feel myself to be laid upon his shoulder, that at the last maketh me to be of a good cheer, & quiet & well affected in conscience. Afterward he poureth in wine also, which with his sharpness may abate & tame the force of old Adam. And yet am I not so wholly restored unto health, health is in deed poured in & begun, but not yet wholly finished: then Christ hath care of me, & by his grace poured into me, doth purify me, that from day to day I may become more chaste, meek, gentle, faithful, &c: until I wholly die, for than I shallbe altogether made perfect. So when we shall come to God the father, and be asked of him, whether we believed in God, whether we loved him, &c: the Samaritane Christ our Lord, who hath laid us on his own beast, will come forth and say: Lo Father, although they have not wholly fulfilled thy Law, yet have I fulfilled it, suffer thou that to turn to the commodity of them that believe in me. So is it needful that all the Saints albeit very holy, be laid upon the back of Christ. If so be that the holiest of all, as the Priests and Levites could not satisfy the Law, how shall we go about with our feigned works, as with shaving, habit etc., to fulfil the same? O wretched & miserable calamity. These things shall now suffice to have been spoken concerning this text: Let us pray unto God, that he will give us his grace. **** A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER, CONCERNING THE EXERCISE AND INCREASING OF FAITH. john 4. Verse 46. THere was a certain ruler, whose son was sick at Capernaum. 47. When he heard that jesus was come out of judea into Galilee, he went unto him, & besought him, that he would go down, & heal his son: for he was even ready to die. 48. Then said jesus unto him, Except ye see signs and wonders, ye will not believe. 49. The ruler said unto him, Sir, go down before my son die. 50. jesus said unto him, Go thy way, thy son liveth: and the man believed the word that jesus had spoken unto him, and went his way. 51. And as he was now going down, his servants met him, saying, Thy son liveth. 52. Then inquired he of them the hour when he began to amend. And they said unto him, yesterday the seventh hour the fever left him. 53. Then the father knew that it was the same hour in the which jesus had said unto him, Thy son liveth, and he believed, and all his household. 54. This second miracle did jesus again, after he was come out of judea into Galilee. AN excellent example of faith is set forth in this text, of what sort it is, of what nature and quality, namely, that it is not a resting or idle thing, but lively and void of idleness, A true faith is not idle, but increaseth more and more. which goeth not back, but proceedeth on, and still more and more increaseth. Which if it be not done, it is no faith, but only a dead opinion of God in the heart. For a true and sincere faith, which the holy Ghost poureth into the heart, can not be idle: which I say for this cause, that no man be therefore secure, albeit he hath obtained faith, neither that he stay there. It is nothing to begin, unless we increase by continual going forward, and come to greater knowledge of God. For on the contrary side it is the nature and quality of our adversary Satan, not to be idle, as S. Peter saith: Satan sleepeth not, but goeth about as a roaring Lion, seeking whom he may devour. If so be that the Devil is neither idle, neither sleep cometh upon him, neither shall it be meet for a Christian to be idle or put his hands in his bosom, forasmuch as he hath the Devil his enemy, who is stronger than himself: for he is called the prince of the world, as it is mentioned in the Epistle appointed to be read in the Church on this day: Ephes. 6.12. We wrestle not against flesh and blood, but against principalities, against powers, & against the worldly governors, the princes of the darkness of this world, against spiritual wickednesses, which are in high places. This prince governeth the world, furiously and fiercely rageth, and can not suffer the prosperous success of a Christian. Neither is it for his profit to be suffered of him, for an entry being made hereby, his kingdom is burst into, and his net torn in pieces, out of which as much as he is able, he suffereth no Christian to escape. Moreover when the fire of faith is kindled, and the flame fostered, and Satan trieth and marketh that, by and by he practiseth deceit against it, for he knoweth how much hindrance his kingdom shall take thereby, wherefore as earnestly as he can, even with all his power, he defendeth his kingdom, & laboureth to keep all in obedience to him. True Christians are not free from tentation, for the devil bendeth his force especially against them. Wherefore it is most certain, that when a Christian hath begun to believe, by and by tentation and persecution will assail him. Which if it come not to pass, it is a sign that his faith is not yet sound, and that he hath not as yet truly received the Gospel. For wicked Satan hath a very sharp sight, he by and by spieth out where is a true Christian, wherefore he applieth himself wholly unto this, that he may enforce him to fall, and may besiege him, and assail him on every side: for he can not suffer that any should revolt from his kingdom. It is perilous therefore for a man to believe, for the Devil is ready that he may set upon him, and overthrow him, which sometime chanceth even to very holy men, which understand the word of God well, The Saints of God do sometimes fall even grievously. when they stand upright, and think themselves safe, that privy wicked fiend cometh upon them by little and little, and wrestleth with them so long, till he overthrow them, and cast them to the earth. Set before thine eyes Moses and Aaron, who were guides of the jews, they had an excellent faith, when they brought the people out of Egypt, and all the people in faith passed through the red sea, death, the wide wilderness, and many other marvelous things, whereby they showed their faith, but at the last they fall grievously, they fear that they shall perish with hunger. Is it not a thing most miserable, that by so great signs they show their faith, they go into death and through death, wrestle with it, and overcome it, and yet while they think themselves surest, they fall, and suffer themselves to be overcome of the belly, murmur against God, and are so grievously tempted, that they fall all together. Wherefore it is not certain and sure, if one begin to believe, and doth not always more and more increase in faith. Yea that godly man Moses, who had so great and so strong a faith, did fall also, when as he should bring water out of the rock with a staff, he doubted, and talked thus to the people: Come let us see whether we can bring water out of the rock. That good Moses, which had showed so many and so great signs, falleth into reason and carnal understanding, fearing lest the incredulity of the people would hinder so great a miracle & sign. But it had behoved him to cleave fast to the word of God, and to think it higher, greater, stronger, and mightier, than the unbelief of the people: that great man was tempted, he stumbled, and was overthrown. We have like examples in the new Testament: Let him that thinketh he standeth take heed lest he fall. Peter was hardy, and firm in faith, when he beheld Christ upon the water, he said unto him with a strong faith: Lord suffer me to come unto thee, committing himself to the water even as to the ship, he thought assuredly that the water would bear him. Then was there an excellent faith in Peter, and great courage, which durst commit himself wholly unto death in the midst of the sea, reposing his hope freely & boldly in Christ. But when he thought himself most safe, a storm and tempest ariseth, he forgetting the word, suffereth his faith to fail, and he himself also falleth, suffering Satan to pluck faith out of his heart. Faith truly is a subtle and delicate thing, a small thing maketh us to stumble and fall. Satan is always watchful, and circumspect, and doth by & by obtain his purpose, if we do not diligently watch. How earnestly did the common people follow Christ? they thought that he was a Prophet, and did so cleave unto him, and so defend him, that the Princes of the people were made astonished, neither durst they so much as lay hand on him. But when they apprehend him, proceed against him, fasten him to the cross, the people forsake him all that they may, and come no more at him. A Prophet is present, and no man any more assisteth him, but they rather cry out against him, crucify him, crucify him: and that which is most detestable of all, his own Disciples revolt from him. What is become now both of their faith and holiness? So is it at this day in our time: at the first when the Gospel began to shine, the preaching thereof was acceptable and pleasant, than many seemed willing to embrace it, but when monks. sacrificing Priests, Nuns, etc. began to be spoken against, and the Mass to be confuted, all (a marvelous thing to be spoken) fell away as leaves of trees. Again, when Princes also were touched, the Gospel suffered greater persecution, and did by little and little daily decrease. Moreover Satan is not idle, whereupon he stirreth up heresies and schisms, for how many sects have we hitherto suffered? he sleepeth not, he will stir up greater mischiefs also, he never resteth, but looketh about, and trieth every way, that he may bring the matter to that pass, and prevail so far, that no sound doctrine may remain in the church, but that if all Germany be diligently viewed, a sermon may no where be found, wherein the word of God is truly preached, as it was before. He goeth about to extinguish and abolish all the doctrine of Christ now increasing, for he can not abide it. It is not an easy thing to avoid so great an enemy, he lieth in wait, and vieweth all places, and so diligently bestirreth himself, that even the learned fall, and the elect stumble, as Moses, S. Peter, with the rest of the Apostles. We think ourselves safe, and live securely, no man considereth, no man hath a care of the word, we should pray & beseech God, that he would vouchsafe to preserve the Gospel, and make his holy name to be spread and published more abroad. But no man is touched with care hereof, no man prayeth that it may have good success. Wherefore it is to be feared that at the last it will come to pass, that God will suffer Satan and us to run together into one, then shall we be in a desperate case, for he will easily throw us to the ground, when we are come into so great misery by our own slothfulness and default. Satan moreover can so set forth the matter by seditious spirits, We must not trust to our own strength but to the help & assistance of God. that men shall think it to be just. As the Arrians were persuaded that their opinion was sound. But a Christian humbleth himself, taketh nothing rashly upon himself, but with an humble heart saith thus unto God: Most gracious God, albeit I know that the cause which I favour is not unjust, yet without thy help I am not able to maintain it, thou therefore help me, otherwise I shall be cast and overthrown. He is in deed certain of his cause, even as S. Peter was on the water, who could not be surer, when the water did bear him. For he knew no let or hindrance, but when the wind was great, and the water troubled, be perceived what was wanting in him: Which is thoroughly to be received into our mind, and considered of us. For albeit the certainty of our cause be confirmed, strengthened, and ratified with plain sentences of the Scripture, yet is it by the might, counsel, and power of God, that we are defended, and Satan our chief adversary and enemy repressed. Which is therefore done, that God may stir us up to watch, and keep us in awe, that we may always be watchful, and cry unto him: Lord help us, & increase our faith, for without thee we are able to do nothing. Our heart must be always so disposed, as though we began to day to believe, and always so affected, that we desire and labour to go more and more forward. For that is the nature, force, and quality of faith, that it always increaseth and waxeth stronger. Satan, as it is a little before mentioned, neither is idle, nor resteth, if he be once overthrown he riseth again, if he can not enter in by the door, he endeavoureth to steal in on the back side, & if this be not permitted him, he breaketh in through the roof, or entereth in through a hollow place digged under the threshold, for he doth so long earnestly follow his work, until he come in, he useth many deceits and practises, if he prevaileth not by one, he taketh in hand an other, and doth that so long, until he hath obtained his purpose. Man is a weak and a miserable thing, as S. Paul saith 2. Cor. 4: We have this treasure in earthen vessels. I am more frail than a pot compared to the potter, and a pot is a very weak thing, inasmuch as it is easily broken, and whatsoever is in it, is spilled. Now Satan when he marketh how great a treasure faith is, kept in a frail pot (that I may so speak) he is in a great rage & fury, and saith thus unto us: I will touch thee, I will break thy pot, thou hast a great treasure, which I will spill. Though we be of ourselves most frail and weak, yet God setteth us in the midst of most strong enemies, that it may appear that we stand not by our own strength, but by the singular help & assistance of God. So God setteth the silly pot in the midst of enemies, which should utterly perish even in a moment, if he did not defend it, for it may quickly be shaken and broken in pieces, yea if it be but bitten of a viper, it perisheth. And it is not hard from Satan even in one moment to waste and destroy a whole country. Wherefore that vexeth him, that God dealeth with him so simply, setting a silly pot against him, when as he notwithstanding is so great a Prince and the most mighty ruler of this world. Now it would grieve me, if I being strong and valiant, any man should set upon me with a reed, surely I being moved with anger would break the reed in pieces: for I had liefer that he would set upon me with a spear, sword, and armed on all parts. It grieved stout Goliath, that David durst come unto him unarmed only with a staff. So it greatly grieveth the devil, that God will suppress him by flesh & blood, if some stout spirit should resist him, it would not grieve him so much, for that troubleth him above measure, that a silly worm, a frail pot should come to despise him, an earthen vessel against a most mighty Prince. God hath laid up this treasure, saith Paul, in a miserable and weak vessel: for man is a weak creature, by and by moved to wrath, to covetousness, to pride, etc. so that Satan may easily shake and break the vessel: for if God would permit him, he would forthwith break it all to pieces. Now all this is done, saith Paul, that we may know, that not by our own power, but by the power of God we are preserved from all evils, and especially from the force and fury of Satan, who goeth about like a roaring lion, desiring to bruise and break the weak vessels and frail pots: and that we may hereby also be stirred up to be watchful and to lift up our eyes toward heaven, and pray unto God that he will vouchsafe to increase and defend our faith, and preserve the vessel by his strength. Thus have we an entrance unto our text, it remaineth that we do now consider the same in order: The Evangelist saith thus: There was a certain ruler, whose son was sick at Capernaum. It falleth out with many other men also, that they have their children sick: but that which he saith afterward is to be marked: When he heard that jesus was come out of judea into Galilee, he went unto him, and besought him that he would go down, and heal his son: for he was even ready to die. Here faith beginneth and trusteth in Christ. Now that he had faith the Gospel declareth: for he heard of Christ how he healed the sick, thereupon his heart was set upon him, and he resorteth unto him, thinking thus: If he helpeth all men, he will also help me, and will heal my son. He counteth Christ for such a man as is able to help men, and hopeth and promiseth to himself all goodness from him: and that in deed is a true Christian heart, which cleaveth fast unto God. If that this ruler had stood in a place or way having two paths, doubting with himself, he had not gone unto Christ, but his heart would have been thus affected: He helpeth others in deed, but who can tell, whether he will help me also? Howbeit he doth not thus doubt of Christ, but riseth, and maketh haste unto him. This is the beginning of faith, now ye shall see how Christ meeteth him on the other side, and answereth otherwise then he thought for, that his faith might be tried, and thus he saith unto him: Except ye see signs and wonders ye will not believe. Christ said also to S. Peter Matth. 14: Why dost thou doubt, O thou of little faith? Peter undoubtedly had faith, & did believe in Christ, whereupon he committed himself to the water, but when he saw the wind, he was afraid, and began to be drowned: so in this place, that good man heareth a good report of Christ, that he helpeth every man, which he believeth and therefore resorteth unto him. But when he heareth that Christ denieth to come, he stumbleth, and his faith faileth, fearing that Christ would not come unto him. This is as it were an assault & sore blow, here his new begun faith beginneth to be tempted. It was a hard saying: except ye see signs and wonders, ye will not believe: which saying doth so tempt him, and bring him into doubt, that he almost falleth. Satan standing at his back, saith unto him: get thee home and look to thy business, for he will not help thee. Notwithstanding the ruler did not by and by leave of, but prayed the Lord moreover: Lord come down before my son die. Here his faith began to be in danger & to fail, but God doth not forsake him, but lifteth him up again, and saith unto him: Go thy way, thy son liveth. If the ruler had not had faith, he would not have requested Christ to come to his son. What therefore doth he want? even this: he believed if Christ came to his house, he could then help his son, if he did not come, he could not help him. Neither did his faith extend so far, as to believe that Christ even being absent could heal the sick: but it behoved that he should have a higher faith. Wherefore Christ lifteth him up, and setteth him in a higher state, and saith unto him: Go thy way, thy son liveth. Here he first ascendeth from his former faith, whereby he believed that Christ could heal being present, and cometh to a higher faith, so that now he believeth the word. For if he had not believed the word, he would not have left Christ, neither would have departed from him, until he had come with him to his house. But having laid hold on the word, he cleaveth unto it by faith, for his son is at home, and Christ is with his father. Wherefore the Father receiveth this word in his heart, and thinketh with himself after this sort: My son is sick, but I shall find him whole: which faith was contrary both to reason & experience. Reason would have thought thus: When I came from my son he was sick, True faith leaveth all wisdom and reason, and trusteth to the only word of God. as I did leave him, so shall I find him. But faith saith otherwise, it resteth only in the word & trusteth wholly unto it, neither doubteth it, that any thing will fall out otherwise then the word speaketh: Go thy way, thy son liveth. This is a right and a strong faith, when as man leaveth sense, wisdom, reason, and trusteth wholly to the word of God. Christ saith, thy son liveth: And he saith with himself, without doubt it is true, I shall so find it. So faith remaineth not idle, nor resteth, but increaseth and goeth forward. Thus Christ dealeth with us also, he suffereth us to be tempted, that we may increase in faith: if in the end of our life when we must die, we shall have but a spark of such faith, we shall be in a good case, as Christ saith unto his Disciples Matth. 17: If ye have faith as much as is a grain of mustered seed, ye shall say unto this mountain: Remove hence to yonder place, & it shall be removed: and nothing shall be unpossible unto you. A grain of mustered seed is but a small thing, but he that hath faith agreeable to the smallness of this grain, shall be saved. Neither must we so much consider this, that our faith is little, but we must look unto this, we must have regard unto this, that the grain of mustered seed do remain, and be not eaten up of the birds, that Satan pluck not faith out of our hearts. We must not look how little the faith is, but we must regard and take heed that faith be not taken away. Peter had faith upon the sea, and therefore was he carried of the water, that he should not be drowned, if he had so persevered in faith, he might well have walked an hundred miles upon the sea, but when he failed in faith, he began to be drowned. So Moses had a strong faith, but he fell from it. It consisteth not in the strength or slenderness of faith, that we do stand, but in persevering and remaining faithful. It may be that he shall persever in faith, which hath but a slender faith, and he that hath a strong faith shall fall and doubt. Moses and Peter had an excellent faith, so that Moses by faith did lead the people through the midst of the sea and death, and Peter without doubting went down out of the ship into the sea, but they fall from their faith, howbeit God raiseth them up quickly again. But the Thief on the cross having once laid hold of faith, continued constant. Now God therefore suffereth it to be thus, that he may bring down rash arrogancy, that we do not gloriously extol ourselves, but always remain in fear & awe. For when tentation cometh upon us, we do forthwith fall into error, if God do not assist & strengthen us, of which thing we may see a very goodly similitude in a tree, A proper & apt similitude. which in the spring time buddeth and openeth itself, so that it doth as it were become white by reason of the blossoms. A shower falling upon it, many of the blossoms are shaken of, & the frost also doth much more consume them. Afterward when the fruit beginneth to spring forth, some great wind blowing, much of it being newly come forth falleth down, and when it waxeth ripe, the caterpillar cometh, which with other worms gnaweth & spoileth it so much, that scarce the twentieth part, yea scarce the hundredth part many times remaineth. The same cometh to pass with the hearers of the Gospel, in the beginning thereof every one coveteth to be a true Christian, every one liketh of it very well, and the first fruits thereof are very pleasant. But when wind, a shower, or tentation cometh, all fall away from it by companies: afterwards sects and seditions arise, which like unto worms and kankers gnaw and infect the fruits of the Gospel, and so many false opinions spring up, that very few do persever in the true profession of the Gospel. We have here, thanks be given to Almighty God, the word of God plentifully taught, we are delivered out of deep & great darkness, but we forgetting the word are made weak, we live having no care of the word, for it is not savoury unto us. But when as hereafter false prophets shall break in with their corrupt opinions, and Satan also shall violently assail us, finding us idle, and the house swept and garnished, he will bring with him seven other spirits worse than himself, and the end shall be worse than the beginning. Which things if they so fall out, let us not therefore be quite discouraged, but let us rather instruct one an other, that we may learn to cleave unto God, and pray unto him, and say: Merciful God, thou hast given unto me to become a Christian, give unto me also that I may persever, and become daily richer in faith. Albeit the whole world did resist, and every one conspired to destroy the Gospel, yet will I be nothing moved, but by thy divine help will depend on the Gospel. But to return again to the Ruler, ye have heard that his faith was very notable and excellent, he heareth the word, thy son liveth, They which believe shall assuredly obtain all good things that they pray unto God for. he believeth it, and goeth away giving honour to God, he receiveth the only word, he trusteth wholly unto it. Hereupon God dealeth so graciously with him, that he restoreth health unto his son, raiseth him up, and strengtheneth him in faith, neither suffereth him to stick in doubt or infirmity, but establisheth him, and maketh him strong, and causeth him to go forward & increase. Neither doth God delay until he cometh home, but declareth unto him being yet in his journey the health of his son, sending his servants to meet him, that they might bring him good news, and say: thy son liveth. For God can not differre or delay, where there is a sincere heart, which trusteth in him alone, all other things being left, looking only unto the word of God, there God can not hide himself, but revealeth himself, & cometh unto such a heart, & maketh his abode there, as the Lord saith joh. 14. Now what can be more joyful, than for a man to give credit to the word of God, & to be plucked from it by no affliction or tentation, but to shut his eyes against every assault of Satan, to lay aside human sense, understanding, reason, & wisdom, and to say daily in his heart: God hath spoken it, he can not lie. I say nothing is more joyful than such a faith. For whatsoever we ask of God with such a faith, we receive it more abundantly of him, than ever we desired it, and God is sooner present with us, than we had thought. Hereupon the Evangelist useth so many words even unprofitable, as it appeareth unto us, as these: The man believed the word that jesus had spoken unto him, and went his way. And as he was now going down, his servants met him, saying, Thy son liveth. Then inquired he of them the hour when he began to amend: and they said unto him: Yesterday the seventh hour the fever left him. Then the father knew, that it was the same hour in the which jesus said unto him: Thy son liveth. All which tend unto this end, that we should know that if we believe in the Lord he will give us abundantly, whatsoever we shall pray unto him for. The conclusion the Evangelist maketh as followeth: And he believed, and all his household. He so increased in faith, that he did not only ascend from a low state to a higher, but he brought others also unto faith. He had surely an effectual faith, which did not rest idle and slothful in the heart, but did break forth, so that whosoever were in his house were brought unto faith. The nature and quality of true faith. For this is plainly the nature of faith, this is the quality of it, to draw others unto it, to burst forth, and apply itself even unto the work of love, as S. Paul witnesseth Galat. 5: That faith which worketh by love, is effectual. For it can not keep silence or be idle, as David saith Psal. 116, which place Paul applieth to the faithful 2. Cor. 4: I believed, & therefore have I spoken. Faith can do no other, for it is enforced to speak, neither can it keep silence, inasmuch as he that is endued with it, endeavoureth to profit his neighbour. This ruler had faith for himself, but it doth not remain in him alone, but breaketh forth. For without all doubt he declared to his family, how he came unto Christ, and received comfort of him, which they also believed. So we also, when we believe must open our mouth, and confess the grace, which God hath showed unto us. The most excellent work of faith. Which is the chief and most excellent work of faith, that one instruct an other in the word. For Paul saith Rom. 10: With the heart man believeth unto righteousness, and with the mouth man confesseth to salvation. If we be ashamed of this word, it is a certain argument of a very light & uncertain faith. We see therefore that there is no difference with Christ between the strong and the weak in faith: for a little faith is faith also. He therefore came into the world that he might receive to himself, bear and sustain the weak. If he were so impatient as we be, he would by and by say unto us: Get thee from me, I will none of thee, because thou believest not in me. But this is a thing greatly to be commended, when one can handle that weak gently, and doth not deal rigorously with them, and repel them by impatiency. For although they be weak to day, the hour may come, when they shall receive the word more abundantly than we. Thus we ought to instruct and teach one an other, that we may depend on that word of God. For if we continue in sticking to the word, we shall be strong enough for the devil: for we glory of the word, albeit we be but weak. Unto Satan, who is able even in one hour to overthrow us all, all men should be even as a feather, which he would be able to remove away how and when he will, yea even with his breath, but if we believe, that feather is made more heavy unto him then the hill Olympus. For a Christian beareth Christ in himself, and Christ is heavier than heaven and earth. Thus much may suffice concerning this text. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER, CONCERNING FREE REMISSION OF SINS TO THE CONTRITE AND BROKEN IN heart, and terrible judgement to the indurate and obstinate. Matth. 18. Verse 23. Jesus said unto Peter & to the rest of the Disciples: The kingdom of heaven is likened unto a certain King, which would take an account of his servants. 24. And when he had begun to reckon, one was brought unto him, which owed him ten thousand talents. 25. And because he had nothing to pay, his Lord commanded him to be sold, and his wife, & his children, and all that he had, and the debt to be paid. 26. The servant therefore fell down, and worshipped him saying: Lord refrain thine anger toward me, and I will pay thee all. 27. Then that servants Lord had compassion, & loosed him, and forgave him the debt. 28. But the same servant went out, & found one of his fellow servants, which owed him an hundred pence, and he laid hands on him, and throttled him, saying: Pay me that thou owest. 29. Then his fellow servant fell down at his feet, and besought him, saying: Refrain thine anger towards me, and I will pay thee all. 30. Yet he would not, but went and cast him into prison, till he should pay the debt. 31. And when his other fellow servants saw what was done, they were very sorry, and came, and declared unto their Lord all that was done. 32. Then his Lord called him unto him, and said to him: O evil servant, I forgave thee all that debt, because thou prayedst me. 33. Oughtest not thou also to have had pity on thy fellow servant, even as I had pity on thee? 34. So his Lord was wrath, and delivered him to the tormentors, till he should pay all that was due to him. 35. So likewise shall mine heavenly Father do unto you, except ye forgive from your hearts, each one to his brother their trespasses. CHrist brought forth this parable unto that answer which he had made to Saint Peter, unto whom he had before committed the keys of binding and losing. For when S. Peter asked him, how oft he should forgive his brother his offence, whether it were enough to forgive him seven times, & he answered, not seven times, but seventy times seven times, he then added this similitude, by which he inferreth, that his heavenly father will do likewise unto us, if we do not forgive our neighbour, even as the King did here unto the servant, which would not forgive his fellow servant a small det, when as his Lord had forgiven him so much. We have often times taught that the kingdom of God wherein he reigneth by the Gospel, is nothing else, but such a state or government, wherein is mere forgiveness of sins: so that where such a government is not, wherein sin is pardooned, neither is there the Gospel nor kingdom. Wherefore those two kingdoms are to be separated: one, wherein sins are punished, & an other wherein they are forgiven, or wherein the law is exacted, & wherein that which is due by the law, is remitted. The kingdom of grace. In the kingdom of God, where he reigneth by the Gospel, there is no exacting of the law, neither any dealing by the law, but only remission and forgiveness, neither wrath nor punishing, but brotherly service and well doing one to an other. Notwithstanding the civil law or Magistrate is not taken away, for this parable speaketh not any thing of worldly government, but of the kingdom of God only. Wherefore he that is yet governed only by the regiment of the world, is yet far of from the kingdom of heaven, for worldly government pertaineth wholly to inferior things. As if a Prince govern his people so, that he suffer injury to be done to none, punishing offenders, he doth well, & is therefore commended. For in that government this sentence flourisheth: Civil government. Pay that thou owest: which if thou do not, thou shalt be cast into prison. Such government we must have, howbeit we come not to heaven by it, neither is the world therefore saved, but this government is therefore necessary, that the world do not become worse. For it is only a defence & fortification against wickedness, which if it were not, one would devour an other, neither could any man keep in safety his own life, wife, goods, children, etc. That therefore all things should not fall, come to ruin and perish, God hath appointed the sword of the Magistrate, whereby wickedness may be partly repressed, peace and quietness among men maintained, & one may not do an other injury, wherefore this is in any wise to be kept. But, as I said, it is not ordained for them that are in the kingdom of grace, but therefore only, that men be not more deeply plunged in wickedness, and become worse. Wherefore no man that is only under the regiment of the world, aught to glory, that he doth therefore well before God, before whom all is yet unrighteous. For thou must come so far, that thou do resign that which is just before the world, & yield of thine own right. This the Gospel doth here require, As the Lord forgiveth us, so must we also forgive our neighbour. which on either side setteth forth unto us only forgiveness. First the Lord forgiveth the servant all the debt: then he requireth of him, that he forgive his fellow servant his, and remit his offence. These things God requireth, and so must his kingdom be ordered: that no man be so wicked, neither suffer himself so to be moved, that he can not forgive his neighbour. And as it is a little before this text taught in the Gospel, if he should provoke thee to anger even seventy times seven times, that is as often as he can offend against thee, thou must yield of thine own right, and cheerfully forgive him all things. Why so? because Christ did the same. For he set up & erected such a kingdom, as wherein is only grace, which must at no time cease, so that if thou repent all things may wholly be forgiven thee, as often as thou shalt offend, forasmuch as he hath ordained the Gospel, that it might preach no punishment but only grace & forgiveness of sins. This kingdom standing, thou mayst always rise again, how deeply soever thou fallest, & so often as thou fallest, so as thou repent. For albeit thou fallest, yet this Gospel & mercy seat always continueth. As soon as therefore thou hast risen again & returned, thou hast grace restored. Howbeit he requireth this of thee, that thou also forgive thy neighbour all things, which he hath committed against thee, otherwise thou shalt not be in this kingdom of grace, neither shalt become partaker of that which the Gospel preacheth, that thy sins may be forgiven thee. This briefly is the sum & meaning of this text. Moreover, we must not here omit, to declare who they be that receive the Gospel, and unto whom it is acceptable. For surely that kingdom and government, wherein God reigneth and ruleth by the Gospel, is most excellent and gentle, forasmuch as in it mere forgiveness of sins is preached, howbeit it pierceth not into the heart of every one, neither is it considered or esteemed of all. For thou mayst find many light and unconstant men, Abuse of the Gospel. who abuse the Gospel, and lead their life dissolutely and loosely, doing what they list, who think that they should be rebuked of none, seeing that the Gospel teacheth nothing but forgiveness of sins. The Gospel is not preached to these, who do so vilely esteem of a precious treasure, and deal lightly with it. Wherefore neither do they pertain to this kingdom but to worldly government, that they may be stopped & let from doing whatsoever they like and list. To whom the Gospel is preached. To whom then is it preached? to them which thoroughly feel such misery, as this servant did here. Wherefore consider what happeneth unto him: The Lord taketh pity of his misery, forgiveth him more than he durst desire. But before this is done, the text saith, the Lord first took account of his servants, and when he began to reckon, one was brought unto him, which owed him ten thousand talents: and because he had nothing to pay, his Lord commanded him to be sold, and his wife, and children, and all that he had, and the debt to be paid. Which truly were no pleasant words, but even exceeding severity and most terrible judgement, then is he brought into so great perplexity and distress, that he falleth down on the ground, and asketh mercy, and promiseth more than he hath, or is able to pay, saying: Lord refrain thine anger toward me, and I will pay thee all. Here is set forth unto us, who they be, unto whom the Gospel is acceptable. For so cometh it to pass between God and us. When God will take an account of us, he sendeth forth the preaching of his law, The preaching of the law. whereby we learn to know what we ought to do: as when God saith to the conscience: Thou shalt worship no other God, but shalt acknowledge me alone for God, shalt love me with all thine heart, and repose thy trust and hope in me only. This is the book of accounts, wherein is written what we own, which he taking into his hands, readeth before us, and saith. Lo, this thou oughtest to have done, thou oughtest to fear, love, and worship me alone, thou oughtest to trust in me alone, and from me to promise to thyself all good things. Howbeit thou dost otherwise, thou art mine adversary, thou believest not in me, but reposest thy trust in other things: and in a sum, thou feast here, that thou dost not observe so much as the least point of the law. When the conscience hath heard these things, and the law hath touched one well, he seeth then what he ought to do, and what he hath not done, and findeth that he hath not kept so much as a letter of the law, and is compelled to confess, that he hath not performed that obedience and duty which God justly requireth of him. What doth the Lord now? When the conscience is thus touched, and feeleth itself condemned, and is distressed with exceeding great misery, he saith: Sell him, and whatsoever he hath, and let him pay the det. This is the judgement, which forthwith followeth, when the law hath revealed sin, and said: This thou must do, that thou oughtest to have done, and thou hast done nothing thereof: for to sin is required punishment, that man may be compelled to pay. For God hath not so made his law, that he doth not punish them that transgress it. It is not sweet & pleasant, but bringeth bitter and horrible pain with it, it delivereth us to Satan, it casteth us down to hell, and leaveth us wrapped in tentation, until we have paid the utmost farthing. This S. Paul hath notably well declared Rom. 4, where he saith: The law worketh nothing but wrath. That is, when it revealeth unto us, that we have done unjustly, it setteth nothing before us, but wrath & indignation. For when the conscienee seeth that it hath committed evil, it feeleth that it hath deserved eternal death, after which followeth punishment, whereupon it is compelled to despair. This is that that the Lord commandeth this servant together with all his substance to be sold, forasmuch as he is not able to pay. But what doth the servant say? the foolish fellow thinketh yet, that he shall pay the debt, he falleth down and prayeth that he will have patience with him. This is the wound and cross of all consciences, that when sin biteth them so, that they feel in how evil case they are before God, there is no rest in them, but they run hither and thither, seeking about, that they may be delivered from sins, & rashly take upon them as yet to do so great things, as wherewith they shall pay God, Superstitious means invented by men to be delivered from sin, and to purchase God's favour. as we hitherto have been instructed, whereupon came so many pilgrimages, collegiate houses, Monasteries, Masses, & other trifles. We pined ourselves with fasting, we scourged ourselves with whips, we were made Monks and Nuns, therefore only, for that we went about to lead such a life, and to do such and so many works, as whereunto God might have respect, and thereby be pacified, thinking so to appease and make quiet our consciences, so we committed the same things that this foolish fellow did. Such a heart as is touched with the law, & thoroughly feeleth it own misery and calamity, is humbled truly and in deed. Whereupon it falleth down before the Lord and craveth mercy, Howbeit it is yet defiled with this vice, that it striveth to help itself, which thing can not be taken away from nature. When as the conscience feeleth such misery, it dareth presume to promise more than all the Angels in heaven are able to perform. Then is it an easy matter to persuade it to apply itself to do, whatsoever can be required of it. For it findeth itself always in such a case, that it hopeth that it is able by works to satisfy for sins. Consider those things which have been hitherto of long time done in the world, then shalt thou find these things to be so: For thus was it preached: Give somewhat to the building of a Church: Get to be admitted into an holy Monastery, institute Masses, and thy sins shall be forgiven thee. And when consciences were urged in confession, they would not stick to say: Whatsoever was enjoined us, we have omitted nothing of it, yea we have given more than we were commanded. Miserable men rejoiced that by this means they might provide for themselves, and therefore they pined and afflicted themselves, that they might be unburdened of their sins, yet did it prevail them nothing. For the conscience remained in doubt as before, that it knew not how it stood before God. But if it were secure and quiet, it fell into that which is worse, to think that God hath respect unto works, neither can reason do any other but depend of works. The Lord therefore is touched with affection of mercy toward that misery, wherewith the servant so entangled & snared with sins, is holden, & taking pity upon him, doth forgive and dimisse him. Here is now set forth unto us, what is the special office & quality of the gospel, & how God dealeth with us. When thou art so drowned in sins, & weariest thyself, that thou mayst deliver thyself from them, the Gospel cometh to thee, The preaching of the Gospel. & saith: Do not so dear brother, it prevaileth nothing, although thou afflict and torment thyself even till thou be mad, thy works do not profit, but the mercy of God shall deliver thee, who is touched with thy misery: for he seeth thee wrapped in calamity, & wearying thyself, that thou mayst deliver thyself out of the mire, & yet art not able: he, I say, hath regard unto this, that thou art not able to pay, whereupon he forgiveth thee all, and that of his mere mercy. For he doth not forgive thee the debt either for thy works or merits, but for that he taketh pity upon thy cry, complaint and mourning, and thy falling down before his knees: that is, God hath respect to an humbled heart, as the Prophet saith Psal. 51: The sacrifice of God is a troubled spirit: a broken & contrite heart, O God, shalt thou not despise. Such a heart he saith, as is broken and humbled, which is not able to help itself, but craveth the help of God, and rejoiceth in it, such a heart is an acceptable sacrifice to God, and he that hath it is in the right way to heaven. Now God having showed this mercy unto him, and taken pity on his misery, ceaseth to follow his right, and abrogateth it, and saith no more: Sell whatsoever thou hast and pay the debt: although he might go forward and say: Thou must pay, for this my law requireth, which I will not have abrogated for thy sake: yet will he not deal with him by the law, but changeth the law into grace and favour, taketh pity on him, and dimisseth him with his wife, children, and all his substance, and doth also forgive him the debt. This is that which God suffereth to be preached by the Gospel: unto him that believeth is remitted not only the fault, but also the punishment, and that of mere mercy, not for any works sake. For he that preacheth, that by works the fault and the punishment may be put away, hath even then denied the Gospel, Mercy and merit can not agree together. forasmuch as these two can not agree together, that God hath mercy on thee, and yet that thou dost merit some thing. For if it be grace, it is not merit: but if it be merit, then shall it not be grace, but debt: for if thou pay thy debt, he showeth thee no mercy: but if he showeth thee mercy, thou dost not make payment. Wherefore we must needs acknowledge his mercy toward us, we must receive of him, and believe in him, which the Gospel here requireth. After therefore that this servant is thus humbled with the knowledge of his sin, the word is exceeding comfortable unto him, wherein the Lord pronounceth him free, and forgiveth him both the fault and the punishment. Whom the preaching of the Gospel profiteth. Whereby is also declared, that it toucheth not sluggish hearts, that feel no sin, neither those that are carried with rashness, but only such afflicted consciences, as are pressed with the heavy burden of their sins, which do greatly desire to be delivered from them, of them God hath mercy, and forgiveth them all. Wherefore it behoved this servant to receive the word, for unless he had received it, forgiveness had profited nothing, nay there had been no forgiveness at all. It is not therefore enough, that God suffereth remission of sins, and a golden year full of grace to be preached unto us, but it is necessary that we receive and believe it in heart. If thou believe, thou art free from sins. This is the first part of a Christian life, which both this place and divers other in the Gospels do teach us, which consisteth properly in faith, which alone hath to do before God: whereby also is showed that the Gospel can not be received but of a troubled and miserable conscience. hereupon now may be inferred that they are plain delusions, whatsoever things are any otherwise taught concerning our works, and free will, to wit, that they put away sins, and obtain grace. For the divine majesty alone, beholding our misery, hath pity upon us, for the text showeth manifestly, that God pardoneth and forgiveth them, that have nothing, and concludeth that we have nothing left, wherewith we may pay God. Howsoever therefore thou hast free will in temporal matters, yet thou hearest here that it is nothing before God. Wherefore if thou desire to be delivered from thy sins, thou must cease to trust in any of thy works, and must plainly despeire concerning them, and fly unto Christ, pray unto God for grace, finally receive the Gospel by faith. Now followeth the other part, wherein the fellow servant also is dealt with. This servant now hath enough, he saveth his body, goods, wife, children, etc. and hath his Lord favourable unto him. Wherefore he should surely be very foolish, if he should now departed, and do what he is able for the reconciliation of his Lord, for his Lord might worthily say that he is mocked of him. He hath need therefore of no work, but that he receive such grace & favour as is offered him, so may he be of a good cheer, giving thanks to his Lord, and dealing so with others as his Lord hath dealt with him. After the same sort is it with us, for when we believe, we have God favourable & merciful unto us, neither do we need any thing more, We must endeavour by our works to profit our neighbour, & not seek to obtain God's favour but now it were time that we should forthwith die. Notwithstanding if we must as yet live still in the earth, our life ought to be ordered so, that we seek not to obtain the favour of God by works. For he that doth this, doth mock & dishonour God, as it hath been hitherto taught, that God is to be solicited so song by good works, prayers, fastings, & such like, until we obtain his grace and favour. We have obtained grace, not by works, but by mercy, now if thou must live, thou must have what to do, and wherewith to occupy thyself, and it is meet that all this be referred to thy neighbour. The servant went out, as Christ saith, and found his fellow servant, whom he taketh by the throat and dealeth rigorously with him, and will be wholly paid of him, showing him no mercy or favour at all. I have said elsewhere, that Christians must burst forth by works, & by their deeds before men witness that they have a sincere faith. God needeth no works, but faith sufficeth him, howbeit he therefore requireth them to be done of thee, that by them thou mayst show thy faith, both before thyself and also before the whole world, for he knoweth thy faith very well, but thou thyself and men do not yet thoroughly see it. Thou therefore must direct such works so, that they may profit thy neighbour. Now whereas this servant should thus have done, what doth he? even the same that we do, who seem unto ourselves to believe, and partly have faith, and are glad that we have heard the Gospel, whereof we can dispute and talk many things, busy talkers & slow walkers. but no man goeth about to express it in his life. We have brought the matter so far, that the doctrine and trifles of Satan are some what abated and laid aside, that we do now see and know, what is just, and what unjust: that we must have to do with God by only faith, and by works with our neighbour. But we can not bring it to this pass, that love may begin, and do that to an other which God hath done unto us, as we ourselves complain, that many of us are become worse than they were before. As therefore this servant refused to remit his neighbour the debt, and dealt extremely with him, so also do we, saying: It is not meet that I should give that that is mine to an other, neglecting mine own right. If this man hath provoked me to anger, it is his duty to pacify me, & to labour by entreaty to put away mine anger. Truly thus the world teacheth and doth, for it affirmeth it to be just and right. Neither will any Prince or magistrate enforce thee to give that which is thine to an other, but will suffer thee to do what pleaseth thee with thine own goods. The magistrate in deed restraineth thee from doing what thou list with the good of an other, but he constraineth thee not to give thine own substance to an other, for that is against the Law of nations, which even reason pronouncing it, giveth to every one that which is his own: wherefore he doth not unequally or unjustly, which useth his own things at his will, & taketh not away wrongfully the goods of an other. But what doth the Gospel say? If God also had held his own right, and said: I do well in that I punish offenders, and take that which is mine own, who shall let me? what I pray you should become of all us? We must be merciful to our brethren as God is merciful to us. We should be thrust down to Satan. Wherefore, whereas he hath left his right toward thee, he will have thee do the same toward other: and therefore thou abrogating thine own right, think thus with thyself: If God hath forgiven me ten thousand talents, why should not I forgive my neighbour an hundred pence? God might have exacted his own right, nevertheless he doth not so, but becometh a favourable Lord unto thee, taketh pity upon thee, and forgiveth thee: why therefore shouldest not thou do likewise to thy neighbour? Wherefore if thou wilt have to do in his kingdom, thou must do as he doth: but if thou hadst rather remain in the kingdom of the world, thou shalt never enter into his kingdom. Hereunto pertaineth that sentence, which Christ in the last day shall pronounce upon the unbelievers: Matth. 25. I was an hungered, and ye gave me no meat: I thirsted, and ye gave me no drink, etc. But if thou contend here against: Notwithstanding ye say, that God will not have respect unto works, neither will save any because of them. I say he will have them done frankly and freely, not that we may merit any thing thereby, but that we may do them to the profit of our neighbours, and witness our sincere faith by them. For what hast thou that thou mayst give him, and whereby thou mayst deserve that he should pardon whatsoever thou hast committed against him? Or what doth he get thereby? nothing truly, but that thou givest unto him praise and thanks. And this is the other part of a Christian life, the name whereof is love. They therefore that show not their faith by the works of love, are such servants, as will have themselves forgiven, when as they notwithstanding do not forgive their neighbour, neither yield of their own right, They that will show no mercy shall themselves find none. with whom it shall likewise fall out as it did with this servant. For when the other servants (that is, the ministers and preachers of the Gospel) shall see it, that God hath forgiven them all, and yet they will not forgive any, they are troubled, that they are compelled to see such things, and it grieveth them very sore, that men do so undiscreetly apply themselves to the Gospel, and not rightly receive it. What do they then? They can do no other, but come to their Lord, and complain unto him of such things, and say: Lord, thus it is: thou forgivest them both the fault and the punishment, yea pardonest them all things, and yet we can not bring them so far, as to deal so with others as thou hast dealt with them. This is the complaint: the Lord therefore will cause them to come before him in the last judgement, and will lay these things against them saying: when thou wast afflicted with hunger, thirst, misery, &c: I did help thee: when thou didst lie drowned in sins, I having mercy upon thee, did forgive thee. Hast thou done the same to thy neighbour? Then he shall pronounce this sentence on him: Thou wicked one, I was touched with mercy toward thee, yea I yielded of mine own right, but thou wouldst not take pity on others, nor forgive them their offence, wherefore thou shalt now pay thy debt. Here is no grace and mercy, but most grievous wrath and eternal condemnation, than no prayers do help, wherefore he is compelled to hold his peace, and is thrown headlong into pain, until he pay the uttermost farthing. This is that which Saint Peter hath spoken of them, 2. Pet. 2.21. which after they have heard the Gospel, notwithstanding go back, that it had been better for them, if they had never acknowledged the way of righteousness, then after they have acknowledged it, to turn from the holy commandment given unto them. Why had it been better? Because while they go back, it becometh worse with them than it was before thy herd the Gospel, as Christ saith of the unclean spirit Matth. 12, which taketh unto himself seven other spirits worse them himself, with which he cometh, and dwelleth in that man, out of whom he before had gone, and so the end of that man is worse than the beginning. After the same manner cometh it to pass with us, and shall hereafter also be usual: so also hath it fallen out with Rome. In the time of the Martyrs she was in her best flower, but afterward she fell, and abomination was there erected, that Antichrist might reign there, yea she became such a one, that worse she can not be. The grace of God, which is revealed and preached by the Gospel, was hidden, that men might not attain unto it: wherefore it could not be but a great and grievous scourge and plague should follow. So we also shall try that great vengeance will come upon us, for that we do not believe nor obey the Gospel, which we have, and know. For as often as God would send an horrible scourge and plague, he hath first set up a great light: As when he would send the jews out of their own country into captivity in Babylon, God useth lenity before he executeth severity, & first warneth before he harmeth. he first raised up the godly King Hosia, who should again restore the law, that the people might amend their life, but when they did again revolt, God punished them according to their desert. So when he minded to destroy the Egyptians, he made a light to be set up, and preached unto them by Moses and Aaron: Moreover when he would drown all the world by the flood, he sent the Patriarch Noah, but when men did not amend, but became worse and worse, such a sore and grievous plague did follow. Likewise the five cities Sodom and Gomorra together with the rest were destroyed, for that they would not hear Lot, who feared God. Wherefore as sharp vengeance shall light upon them also, which hear the Gospel, but do not receive it: even as the servant here in the Gospel, is delivered to the tormentors till he should pay all the debt: which is as much in effect as, that he is compelled to suffer punishment for his fault, and is never saved. For unto sin is required death, and when he dieth, he dieth always, neither is there any help or deliverance remaining. Wherefore let us receive these things for our own admonition: as for them that will not hear, being hardened and indurate, let them beware of the evil that hangeth over them. This is a very comfortable text, and sweet to troubled consciences, inasmuch as it containeth in it mere forgiveness of sins: Again it setteth forth terrible judgement to the unmerciful & hard hearted, especially seeing that this servant is not an Heathen, but had heard the Gospel, in that he had faith: inasmuch as the Lord took pity on him, and forgave him his offences, without doubt he was a Christian. Wherefore this is not the punishment of Gentiles, nor of the common sort that hear not the Gospel, but of them that with their ears hear the Gospel, and with their tongue talk of it, but will not express it in their life. We have therefore the sum of this text. Whereas the Schoolmen dispute here, whether sin cometh again, which was before remitted, I let it pass, for they are ignorant what remission of sins is: they think it is a thing that cleaveth to the heart, and lieth quietly, when as notwithstanding it is plainly the kingdom of Christ, which endureth for ever without ceasing. For as the sun nevertheless shineth, although I shut mine eyes: so this mercy seat or forgiveness of sin standeth always, albeit I fall. And as I again behold the sun when I open mine eyes: so I again have forgiveness of sins, if I rise again, and return unto Christ. Wherefore let no man bring forgiveness into such a strait, as these made men dream of. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER, TEACHING THAT WE must CLEAVE WHOLLY to Christ, and look to obtain all good things through him. Matth. 9 Verse 18. WHile jesus spoke unto the people, behold there came a certain ruler, and worshipped him, saying: My daughter is now deceased, but come and lay thine hand on her and she shall live. 19 And jesus arose and followed him with his disciples. 20. And behold, a woman which was diseased with an issue of blood twelve years, came behind him, and touched the hem of his garment. 21. For she said in herself, if I may touch but his garment only, I shallbe whole. 22. Then jesus turned him about, and seeing her, did say: Daughter, be of good comfort, thy faith hath made thee whole. And the woman was made whole in that same moment. 23. Now when jesus came into the ruler's house, and saw the minstrels and the multitude making noise, 24. He said unto them, Get you hence: for the maid is not dead, but sleepeth. And they laughed him to scorn. 25. And when the multitude were put forth, he went in, and took her by the hand, and the maid arose. 26. And this bruit went throughout all that land. dearly beloved, ye know that the Gospel is nothing else, but a treatise of the only person, whose name is Christ. And albeit there be extant many books & sundry treatises concerning divers men, as well of the Gentiles as Christians, yea and of the mother of God, S. Peter, the Angels, and of many other Saints beside: yet be they not Gospels, but that only is the sincere Gospel, which setteth forth Christ unto us, and what good we must hope for from him. Sometime in the Gospel there is mention made of john the Baptist, Marie, and the Apostles, howbeit this is not properly the Gospel, but therefore is it written of them, that it might be more perfectly declared, from whence Christ should come, and what is his office. So Luke describeth the history of john the Baptist even from the beginning, what was done both in his conception and in his nativity, he writeth also of the virgin Marie. All which things were committed to writing not because of their person, but because of Christ's person only. In the Epistles of S. Paul there is nothing committed to memory of the Saints, but all things sound plainly of Christ. For God hath so ordained, that all men must depend on that one man Christ, must hope in him, All that will be saved must depend on Christ, & put their hope and trust in him. must repose their trust in him, if they desire to be saved, for he alone is set forth of God to be a reconciliation for us, as Paul saith Rom. 3. Hitherto one hath cleaved to this saint, an other to that, one chose to himself S. Marry, an other S. Barbary, and divers sects and sorts of religion did flourish. But Christ was in no price, for his name only remained. We had many intercessors, all which being neglected we ought to have cleaved only to Christ. Hereupon S. Paul saith, that the Gospel was promised of God by the Prophets concerning his son. He reduceth and bringeth it into such a straight, that in the Gospel nothing is of any importance which concerneth not jesus Christ. He that knoweth this, let him give thanks to God, that he knoweth where he may seek for consolation and help, and in whom he may repose his trust. Christ in this days Gospel is set forth unto us, that he is conversant in the midst of the people, and draweth all the world unto himself with his gentleness and sweet doctrine, that they may cleave unto him in their heart, that they may commit themselves to his goodness, and hope that they shall obtain of him both spiritual and corporal good things. Neither doth he receive any thing of them, upon whom he bestoweth benefits, nay he obtaineth nothing of them but ignominy and scorning, as is declared in this text. A benefit proceedeth from him, for which he receiveth a mock and reproach. Why the Gospel is preached. Now the Gospel is preached and offered to the whole world, that we may learn to know this man well, and how we must be made Christians, and not how we must be made good. Other treatises beside the Gospel teach of those things, whereby men may be made good, as the writings of the Philosophers and the rules of the civil law. The lives also of the Saints have especial respect unto this, that men may imitate them. It belongeth not to the Gospel to make good men, but to make Christian men. For it is far more excellent to be a Christian, than an honest and good man. A Christian can say nothing of his own goodness or righteousness, for he findeth in himself nothing either good or righteous, but he must fly to the righteousness which is an others, and which cometh unto him from an other. Hereupon Christ is set forth unto us, as a continual fountain, which always overfloweth with mere goodness and grace, for which he receiveth nothing of us, but that the godly do acknowledge so great goodness and grace, do give him thanks for the same, do praise and love him, others in the mean season mocking him, such a reward he receiveth of them. A Christian whereof so called. Wherefore one is not therefore called a Christian, for that he worketh much, for there is an other thing, which is cause hereof, namely for that he receiveth and draweth from Christ. If one receiveth nothing any more of Christ, neither is he any more a Christian, so that the name of a Christian cometh only by receiving, and not by giving or doing. If thou think that because of thy works and deeds thou art a Christian, thou hast even then lost the name of Christ. Good works in deed are to be done, counsel thereunto is to be given and received, but no man is therefore called a Christian, neither is any therefore a Christian. Wherefore if any will more inwardly weigh this name, in this respect only a Christian is to be acknowledged, inasmuch as he receiveth of Christ alone. Even as one is called white of the whiteness that is in him, black of the blackness, great of his stature: so a Christian is called of Christ, whom he hath in himself, and of whom he receiveth that which is good. Now if one be named a Christian of Christ, he taketh not that name of his own works, whereupon it plainly also followeth, that no man is made a Christian by works. Which if it be true, as it is true and certain, it shall follow that Orders and Sects do nothing pertain to the name of Christ, neither do make a Christian. Wherefore they which preach or teach in the Church, and ordain precepts, works, and decrees, are deceivers, who albeit they pretend a Christian name, yet profit they nothing, for under the colour of that name they endeavour to burden and oppress us with commandments and works. Of works, giving thyself to fasting and prayers, thou mayest be called abstinent and temperate, but by no means a Christian. For although thou diddest lay all thy works together, yea and joinedst the works of all other to thine, yet neither so hast thou Christ, neither art thou therefore called a Christian. Christ is a certain other more excellent thing, then either the law or man's tradition. He is the son of God, who is ready to give only, not to receive: when as I am such a one that I do receive of him, I have him also, whom if I have, I am by good right called a Christian. Moreover, the Gospel preacheth Christ also to be the greatest and most highly exalted person in the world, not that he doth terrify men, but that he poureth forth all earthly and heavenly good things, so that all men must trust in him, must have their hope reposed in him, and always receive only of him. If any sin terrify me in my conscience, and the preachers of the law endeavour to help me with their works, they shall prevail nothing with me. For then Christ alone can help and none beside him, yea others make the case worse, whether it be Peter, or Paul, or the blessed virgin Marie herself the mother of God. For Christ only performeth all things, who in his word, declareth that if I believe, my sin is forgiven me freely, without all both work and merit, by pure grace through faith in Christ. Which word when I shall receive, I receive also comfort, that my sins be forgiven me as well before God as before men, and I therefore give thanks to God through Christ, which giveth the holy Ghost and his grace unto me, that sin may not hurt me, neither here, nor in the last judgement. If I fear death, and would not die willingly, in this Christ I shall find comfort and remedy, that I shall not greatly pass for death. If because of the wrath of God I be afraid, he is my Mediator. And to be brief, he that hath not this Christ, the wrath of God always remaineth over him, and in that state he standeth. Wherefore he that desireth to have a glad conscience, A glad conscience how it is obtained. which is not afraid of sin, death, hell and the wrath of God, must take heed that he repose his trust in this Mediator Christ. For he is a fountain abounding with grace, which giveth both temporal and eternal life. Endeavour thou to think and feel him even in thy heart to be such a one, then shalt thou obtain all things, for he aboundeth and overfloweth, neither can he but give, flow, and abound, if that thou canst believe. Then also shalt thou be a right Christian, howbeit by receiving only of Christ, and not by giving. It is a very rich and precious word, which Paul praiseth so greatly, neither can he ever praise it sufficiently, whereby God so gently offereth his son, that he may pour forth his grace upon all, which do not refuse to receive it. Hereupon it moreover followeth: If so be that a Christian doth good works, whereby he showeth love to his neighbour, he is not therefore made a Christian or righteous, but he must needs be a Christian and righteous before. He doth good works in deed, but they do not make him a Christian. The tree bringeth forth and giveth fruit, and not the fruit the tree. So none is made a Christian by works, but by Christ. Hereof now ye may understand, what kind of people Christians be, namely, that they be a company which cleave unto Christ, Christians what they are. and are of one spirit and gift with him. Hereupon it is that all Christians are alike, neither hath one more of Christ then an other. S. Peter is not better than the Thief on the cross: Marry the mother of God doth not excel Marie Magdalen the sinful woman. There is in deed a difference in outward things and doings, so the work of the holy virgin Marie was greater, than the work of Marie Magdalen: Peter had a greater work than the Thief, if thou consider the works, but we are not therefore Christians. The holy virgin Marie is not a Christian because of her great work, for that she did bear Christ so unspeakable a treasure in her womb, as Christ himself said to the woman, which cried unto him from among the people, Luke 11: Blessed is the womb that bore thee, and the paps which thou hast sucked: yea rather, saith he, blessed are they that hear the word of God and keep it. In which place thou seest, that he preferreth the faithful even above his mother. For Christians do therefore bear their name, because they believe in Christ. A virgin and a mother are two notable names, howbeit they are nothing being compared to the true name of the faithful. Wherefore we are all alike in Christ through faith, albeit S. Peter have a stronger faith than I, yet mine is as well faith in Christ as his. For the same Christ is offered of God the father unto all companies and people, whom he that hath obtained, hath him whole, whether he be strong or weak, for that skilleth not. The woman mentioned in our text, which was troubled so many years with her disease, doth receive and apprehend Christ as well as the virgin Marie his mother. Wherefore there is one Christian spirit, one excelleth with an other in the nobleness of birth, S. Peter is enforced to call me his brother, and I again dear be bold to call him my brother. Yea Christ himself is touched with care of us, and counteth us for his brethren, as he said after his resurrection to Marie Magdalen, joh. 20: I ascend unto my Father and to your Father, and to my God and your God. And S. Paul calleth Christ the first borne among many brethren. Whereof also he writeth excellently in the first Epistle to the Corinthians, where entreating of false brethren he speaketh thus: 1. Cor. 8.9. Take heed lest by any means this power of yours be an occasion of falling to them that are weak. For if any man see thee which hast knowledge, sit at table in the idols temple, shall not the conscience of him which is weak, be boldened to eat those things which are sacrificed to idols? and so through thy knowledge shall the weak brother perish, for whom Christ died. Now when ye sin so against your brethren, and wound their weak conscience, ye sin against Christ. Here thou seest, if a Christian be offended, or evil be done unto him, the same is done unto Christ. This therefore is the sum of the whole Gospel, The sum of the Gospel. that we may learn so to know Christ, that the name only do not remain, but that we may know that all that we have, we have it from him. If we be Christians, we have all things, than God is our father, and we are Lords of all both heavenly and earthly things, which is gotten of us by no work be it never so great. Thou seest now how far they be from the name of Christ, which be under the kingdom of the Pope. They that will preach the Gospel must preach nothing else, beside the only person, which is Christ, not Marie, so far must they be from preaching the Pope or any work albeit precious, they must preach & offer Christ only unto us, & none beside him. When now he is preached unto thee as a judge (as he shall come in the last day) and how that good works are to be done of thee, for which thou mayst be rewarded of him, & thou shalt so receive it, surely without all doubt he shallbe unto thee a judge and not a saviour. And if he be so set forth unto thee, as he was wont to be painted, that his mother showeth him her paps, that is properly to preach Satan and not Christ, who giveth only, and receiveth not. This is certain, when thou shalt have received of him, then good works do flow forth of their own accord, being not compelled, as is set forth in this days Gospel: wherein moreover is declared that Christ preacheth the Gospel to the people: now it is not a common work to preach. For it is a great benefit unto us, that he is become our master and instructor, that he teacheth us by what means we may come to the knowledge of him, this is a part of his great goodness and grace. For as long as he was here in the earth, he cess not to teach, that we might altogether receive him for the Messiah and Saviour: and by his works also did help and relieve every one, when the case so required. The exceeding gentleness and bountifulness of Christ. Thou findest no man in the Gospel, to whom help was denied, or which at any time asked any thing of the Lord, which was not given him. For how many soever went unto him, that were blind, deaf, lame, sick of the palsy, had the dropsy, he received all, and helped them all according to their desire, and healed them of all kinds of diseases, Luke 6.19. as Luke saith: All the whole multitude sought to touch him, for there went virtue out of him, and healed them all. So doth he also to this woman. The woman heareth him preaching, and perceiveth him to be a bountiful and gracious man, which showeth himself gentle to the whole world, whereupon she hath an affection both to love him, and to cleave unto him. For she maketh account, forasmuch as he putteth away none from him, that he would not deny her his goodness, wherefore leaving all the Apostles, she casteth both her heart and confidence upon Christ alone, and thinketh thus with herself: If I may touch but the hem of his garment, I shallbe whole. She thought no other thing in her heart, but, certainly he will help me, if so be that I shall touch his garment with mine hand, yet hath she not so good a courage, that she dare come before his face, she judged herself more unworthy, then that she might either talk with him, or look upon him, for she knew that she had deserved nothing, and that she had bestowed no good thing upon the Lord, hereupon it is that she so behaveth herself, she cometh behind his back, she falleth down at his feet, and toucheth only the hem of his garment. In a sum, here is nothing but mere bashfulness and want of merit: here is no preparation, here is no work, and yet the miserable woman promiseth herself much goodness from the Lord, namely that he would heal her. She had been diseased with an issue of blood twelve whole years, what could she merit thereby? how could she therefore be worthy of any thing? Nevertheless being unworthy, and having merited nothing, she notwithstanding looketh for help of Christ, feeling herself to have great need thereof. And this is a true preparation, both to the grace and goodness of Christ, when I feel myself to stand in need thereof, and then doth it very well fall out, when these two come together, the rich and the poor, Christ and the sinner. But it is no small matter for men to be persuaded, that they are poor, and stand in need of grace. For that cometh to pass very hardly, Satan also doth not suffer it, but always draweth men back to works, that they may not come so far, as to think that they have need either of the grace or mercy of Christ. The text affirmeth that the woman was diseased with an issue of blood twelve whole years, The woman diseased with an issue of blood. and had spent all her substance upon physicians, and that the more medicines she took, the worse always she was. Luke and Mark do not a little exaggerate and amplify it, whereby they both signify, that the more works be preached, so much the worse is it with us, and that there cometh nothing unto us thereby, but a continual multiplying of our evil. Our conscience can not be quieted with works, for albeit some sin be driven out of the conscience, forthwith there is an other, yea the remedy and work oftentimes do make sin in us, where there is no sin, until such time as we come to Christ, even as it was with this woman, which had been sick so long, neither had she been ever helped, if she had not come to Christ, of whom she obtaineth health without any works, giving him nothing, but receiveth only of him, Continual preaching of the word of God very necessary. and suffereth to be given unto her. Now here is also declared, how the word of God is daily to be handled, and without ceasing to be urged, for there are as yet always found such men, as have very troubled and afflicted consciences. For this woman is a type or figure of all men, which are diseased with an issue, that is, which feel there sins, the issue whereof doth always run, neither can it be stayed, for flesh and blood doth no otherwise, than it is carried with it own lust and desire. Now if that feeling of sin be great, those wretches come forth and endeavour to help themselves, than one taketh this work in hand, an other that, and yet prevail they nothing from hence so many orders, so many monasteries have sprung, hereupon so many and so great works have been invented, that they are almost without number. What was the cause of all these? surely even the sinful conscience. For we have thought to save our souls by these, and to be delivered wholly from all sins. But Christ was not there present, for we would give and not receive. Wherefore our case became always worse, as it fell out also with this woman, who if she had tried the help of all Physicians, neither yet so could she find, whereby she might be helped. So we also believed all Physicians, for whatsoever every one brought, that we by and by received. And was it any marvel? for we desired to be healed and to have a glad conscience. The Physicians are the preachers of the Law: now if any desired to be delivered from sins, what did they unto him? they gave him, whereby he became only weaker and feebler, which surely we have seen and felt to our great evil, namely, how they would have men to be justified by works, & by them to be delivered from sins. But it profited nothing, for we were always made more weak against sin and death, so that there is never found in the earth a more desperate sort of people, then Sacrificing Priests, Monks and Vestal virgins, and they whatsoever they by that trust in works: if there did but a little bile arise upon them, by-and-by they must run to the apothecary, then is such trying of medicine, such running and haste, as though they had now breathed their last. Neither is any so afraid of the last judgement as this people. Which then they very well show, when they so deal with works, that they rest only upon them, neither do persever constant in any work, and the more works they do, so much worse is their case, so much more are they cast down in mind and become more desperate, so that it falleth out with them as with this woman. It is a very goodly similitude, which may most fitly be applied to us: for we do not only bestow temporal things, but our body also by fasting, chastising, and bearing other hard and intolerable burdens, so that some have thereby become mad, and destitute of all strength, yea & at the last lost their life. And I my self have been such a one, and have without doubt more resorted to medicines then many other. I could not attain so far, as to leave the Pope's law. It seemed a hard and a sore matter unto me to eat flesh on the friday, O good God, A hard thing to forsake papistry being once entangled therewith. how hard a thing was it to me, before I durst attempt to do that? Wherefore if any will be delivered from such things, and contemn the traditions of the Pope, truly he must have a strong foundation of faith, which if he shall not have, let him look about him again and again before he attempt it. For if faith be wanting, it will fall out with us as with this woman, who had spent all her substance upon Physicians, amending nothing, but rather waxing worse and worse: In like manner all our works, labours & endeavours shall be lost, all our obedience, with all orders or religions, and whatsoever we have bestowed therein shall be in vain. Howbeit if we have faith, we shall at the last see the decrees of the Pope and popish Bishops to be nothing, because of which before we trembled and were troubled, all which did help us so much, as the Physicians did that good woman, which had bestowed all her substance and riches, yea and her body also, that she might be healed. How many kinds of medicines and syrups thinkest thou did that woman use? how weak, feeble, & sick was she oftentimes made with them? yea if she might have been healed, it may seem she would have taken any medicine, howbeit it profited her nothing, she was afflicted with her disease the space of twelve years. How therefore is this miserable woman at the last helped? When she did light upon a man whose name is Christ, and put her hope and trust in him, she was healed. But who led her to that man? without doubt not the Physicians. For if our Preachers should preach Christ, the merchandise of the Pope together with his decrees would be nothing set by, but rather she heard it of some that was also restored to health, who told her without doubting, that the●e was a certain man, whom his parents had named jesus, which is a gentle and good man, which helpeth every one, and sendeth away none from him whom he helpeth not, and therefore is without doubt sent of God, that he may help all. Which the woman having heard, she leaveth the Physicians, and maketh haste unto Christ. So also at this day it falleth 〈◊〉 Not Christ, but works only are preached, do this or that, nevertheless it is spread among the people what Christ is, what we must look for of him, & that he alone must do all things without our works or merits. The true preaching of Christ calleth from the traditions of men to faith & trust in him alone This report being heard, we follow him, and lay up these words in the depth of our heart, we leave the physicians, nothing regarding the Preachers of the law and works, or their commandments and traditions, but run with all desire of heart to this man, which is Christ, saying to the Pope: if I must receive only of Christ, how unwisely have I dealt, that I have turned so much unto thee? farewell therefore O Pope, farewell ye beloved Bishops, I need no more your medicine, works and merits, precepts and laws, ye have grieved me long enough with them, I have gotten one, which bestoweth upon me freely, whatsoever I paid full dear for unto you before: he giveth that unto me without works and merits, for which I was feign before to bestow my body, strength and health, and yet could not obtain it. Far ye well, I mind to come no more to you hereafter. Christians therefore are made, not by the decrees of the Pope, not by works, not by the ordinances of men, but by the grace and goodness of Christ. We must fly unto Christ in our distress. Wherefore if thou hast a disquieted and a troubled mind and conscience, so that thou art afraid of sin, dreadest death, or hast some defect otherwise, get thee to that man, & confess what thou wantest, call upon him, then surely he will help thee: pour out thy heart before him, as the 62. Psalm saith, and say thus unto him: behold here is an empty vessel which greatly needeth wherewith it may be filled, I beseech thee, O my Lord vouchsafe to fill it, I am weak in faith, I pray thee to strengthen me, I am cold in charity, do thou make me hot, and fervent, that my love may extend unto my neighbour, I have no firm faith, neither can I sometime trust in God, O Lord help me, and increase my faith and confidence: in thee have I reposed the treasure of all good things, I am poor, thou art rich, and therefore didst thou come, that thou mightest have mercy on the poor▪ I am a sinner, thou art righteous, yea I have abundance of sins, but in thee is all fullness and grace. When thou shalt once have learned this, the Pope's ordinances shall not snare thee, by which thou gettest nothing, but consumest all that thou hast, like as this woman did. Then wilt thou say: I will choose to myself him, of whom I may receive, unto whom I ●eede not give any thing. The other Evangelists writ concerning this woman, that after she was healed, Christ perceived virtue to have gone out of him, and turned him about in the press, and asked who had touched him, and that his Disciples made answer, that the multitude did throng & thrust him, but that the Lord would not be content with that answer, but said: some one hath touched me: for I perceive the virtue is gone out of me, I know that some one hath received some thing from me. All which the Lord therefore did, that the faith of the woman might be thankful unto him, which he would therefore have made manifest before all the people, for that nothing is more acceptable unto him, then that we believe and trust in him & also that the Lord might by this miracle confirm the faith of the Ruler. Wherefore Mark saith, that when the woman understood that the Lord knew of her, she feared and trembled, and came and fell down before him, and told him the whole truth, how it fell out with her: whereupon the Lord doth deliver her and saith: Go in peace, & be whole of thy disease. Were not these loving words? what great joy did the woman take here, when as Christ had dealt so bountifully with her? The fruit of true hope in Christ. This joy and peace all they obtain, which repose their whole hope and trust in Christ jesus. Where this joy shall be, forthwith works must needs follow, which may show forth this joy: as also the faith of this woman must needs come to light. For as soon as she had received of the Lord, she confessed before all the people, neither was she ashamed to declare, that she had received something of him, for which notwithstanding she had given nothing. Now, God requireth of us these works & this giving of thanks, to wit, that we confess & declare before all men such good things, grace and benefits, that others also may be brought unto him, & suffer a benefit to be bestowed upon them, as it was here done. Wherefore Christian life enforceth me to do good unto others also, even as God through Christ hath done good unto me, but thereby am I not made a Christian, as the woman here is not healed by her confession, for she was healed before any work and confession, but after she had recovered her health, she confesseth Christ, and praiseth him, even to the commodity and converting of others. We also inasmuch as we are Christians, do so live, that one helpeth and pleasureth an other in what thing soever he is at any time able. And as this woman was healed before all works, so we must be made Christians before we do any work. As the Gospel is set before our eyes in this woman: so is it also set forth in the Daughter of this Ruler. This chief ruler of the Synagogue, whom Mark calleth jairus, had a strong faith and confidence, that Christ would raise up his Daughter. For unless he had been of that mind concerning Christ, he had not come unto him, neither had desired such a thing of him which exceeded the power & strength of nature. Wherefore by this prayer he showed his faith, which faith being perceived, the Lord could not but grant his desire, wherefore rising forthwith, he went with him, & in this going this history of the woman came to pass, which had been diseased of an issue of blood twelve years, as we have now heard. When therefore the Lord was entered into the Ruler's house, he saw the minstrels and the multitude making noise, which were there according to the law of Moses, and did sound the trumpet and pipes as in our country they ring the bells to gather the people together. But he commanded the multitude to go forth, saying: The child is not dead but sleepeth. And they laughed him to scorn and mocked him. Which giveth us to understand, The preaching of the Gospel is contemned and counted foolishness, of the world that when it is preached, that Christ is he which saveth, that our works prevail nothing, than the world can not contain itself, but that it scorneth & mocketh, for it can not be persuaded, that Christ doth help and succour, even as this people without all doubt said after this sort: Behold what an excellent Master and a goodly Physician he is, what could he have helped, which knoweth not yet, what it is to sleep, and what to be dead? This title must needs remain to the Gospel in the world, that the preaching thereof is counted foolish and contemptible. For Satan can not abide, that honour should be given to this Gospel before the world, for it bringeth but small commodity to his kingdom, which forasmuch as he perceiveth full well, he practiseth all crafts and wiles, that he may either altogether hinder it, or at the least make it to prevail little with them that be his, whose hearts he hath wholly blinded and possessed, that the light of the glorious Gospel of Christ should not shine unto them, as S. Paul saith 2. Cor. 4. Neither yet can it be, that this preaching of Christ should not be fruitful, forasmuch as it is not uttered in vain: for albeit it be received but of a few, that doth not greatly skill. When therefore Satan perceiveth any thing to be taken from him, and that that preaching is ordained plainly against his kingdom, Satan a most grievous enemy to the preaching of the Gospel. he doth without delay pursue it, contemn it, and assail it on every side, that even now he is fierce and rageth in the whole world. For the Gospel of Christ overthroweth whatsoever the world and Satan delight in, and whatsoever to the world seemeth most holy & goodly. For the world imagineth to itself such a God, as hath regard to our good works, and will be pleased with the erecting of Masses and vigiles for them that are departed, with Rosaries as they call them, habit, shaving, and whatsoever other trifles are used in the Papacy. Now if there come any which bringeth the Gospel, and inveigheth against these vain toys of the Pope, and saith that they are nothing worth, but are mere delusions, inasmuch as they are repugnant to Christ and the Scripture, he is counted a most wicked fellow, and therefore must be punished, he is reproved as an heretic and a seducer of the people: so that they burst forth into great words and say: wilt thou govern all the whole world? dost thou think thyself the wisest man that is? and were our forefathers foolish and without all understanding? many holy men have done these works, and have preached of them, and wilt thou come, and turn them all to nothing? thou shalt not do it. Then rage and fury beginneth, yea persecution, slaying and murdering, and the Devil will seem to have a just cause, howsoever the matter goeth. Thus much shall suffice at this time concerning this text. Now ye must take especial heed, that out of the Gospels ye learn thoroughly, how all things consist in the only person, whose name is Christ, and lay up this in the depth of your heart, that a Christian hath his name of Christ. For I know how much it availeth both in tentation and in adversity to hold that fast. Let us now by prayer call for the grace of God, that at the last we may with most earnest zeal and hearty affection embrace true Christianity, Amen. **** A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER UPON THE GOSPEL ON SAINT THOMAS DAY, CONCERNING THE WORKS WHICH Christ hath wrough for us, wherein is contained a most sweet consolation against the Law, Sin, Death, and Satan. joh. 20. Verse 24. THomas one of the twelve, called Didimus, was not with them when jesus came. 25. The other Disciples therefore said unto him, we have seen the Lord: but he said unto them: Except I see in his hands the print of the nails, and put my finger into the print of the nails, and put mine hand into his side, I will not believe it. 26. And eight days after again his Disciples were within, & Thomas with them. Then came jesus when the doors were shut, and stood in the mids, and said: Peace be unto you. 27. After said he to Thomas, Put thy finger here, and see mine hands, & put forth thine hand, and put it into my side, and be not faithless, but faithful. 28. Then Thomas answered and said unto him: Thou art my Lord and my God. 29. jesus said unto him: Thomas because thou hast seen me, thou believest, blessed are they, that have not seen and have believed. The sum of this Gospel. 1 THomas doth not believe that Christ is risen from the dead, but when he seeth and feeleth him. 2 The Disciples believe not without manifest signs. But blessed are they that have not seen, but do believe the word only. 3 It is a great matter to know Christ God and man. He which attaineth to this knowledge of Christ, feareth neither sin nor death, neither the devil nor hell: briefly he is quiet from all anguish & tentation. For he hath a greater and mightier than he which is in the world, as john saith in his first Epistle chap. 4. The exposition of this Gospel. I Know nothing more certain concerning S. Thomas, then that which this Gospel mentioneth of him. Other things which are written of him in the book of Legends, are most impudent lies. And albeit they were partly true, yet have they no authority, neither make us any thing the better. Wherefore we will leave them untouched, & speak something of this Gospel, which shall be more profitable & necessary for us then all those Legends. The former part of this Gospel fell out about the eventide of the passover, when two had returned from Emmaus, & showed unto the other Disciples, that the Lord was risen again. The latter part fell out the eight day after the passover. It is marvelous how comfortable this Gospel is, showing unto you, the fruits of faith, namely peace, and joy, as Paul saith Rom. 5: being justified therefore by faith, we have peace toward God, through our Lord jesus Christ. But now we will entreat in few words, what this is that the Lord showeth to his Disciples his hands and his feet, whereby is declared unto us, what commodity we have by Christ, whereunto he profiteth us, and what we must look for of him. It is engrafted in the hearts of all men as it were by nature, to have a certain will to be honest & godly, & every one thinketh how he may come to salvation, whereby it hath come to pass, that one hath invented this thing, an other that, being verily persuaded, that thereby he should make God favourable unto him, and obtain heaven, but none such at any time hath stood in the right way, forasmuch as all have had this drift, that they might procure God's favour by deeds and good works. Notable Doctors also and holy fathers have written & taught many things, how we might attain unto godliness. About this they have miserably troubled themselves, but as we see, and to our notable loss have felt, they have done little. Wherefore it is exceeding necessary, that some sound knowledge be had hereof, whereby we must endeavour to true godliness, forasmuch as it is a thing of no small importance. For he that is deceived here, lozeth the sum and chief point of all Christianity: hereof therefore we must now speak somewhat. True righteousness is obtained, not by our own works, but by the works which Christ hath wrought for us. True & sound righteousness consisteth not in our own works, but in the works of an other. Take an example hereof: One buildeth temples, an other for religions sake goeth to S. james, to Aquisgrane, to Rome, to the holy sepulchre, the third pineth himself with fastings, prayeth, weareth a cowl, goeth bare foot, or worketh some other such work whatsoever it be, these are our own works. God hath not commanded them, but men and hypocrites, justifiers of themselves have invented them, and have thought that they are precious good works, and greatly esteemed of God, sweetly persuading themselves, that they are by them delivered from sins, and that God is pacified towards them. But these works chosen of their own proper will, are nothing worth at all, neither can stand, forasmuch as they proceed not of faith, yea they are sins, as Saint Paul saith Rom. 14: Whatsoever is not of faith, is sin. These our works therefore are defiled and unclean in the sight of God, yea he doth abhor and loath them. Wherefore if we will have to do with God, we must not ascend trusting to our own works, but to the works of an other. But which are those works of an other, that are allowed of God? Truly the works of our Lord jesus Christ, whom God the father sent down from heaven, that by his death and passion he might satisfy for our sins. This satisfaction fell out upon this occasion: We were subject to great danger, The miserable case wherein man was before he was delivered by Christ. grievous tyrants had power over us, which day and night without ceasing did vex us. The law which God gave unto man, did urge us, and required many things of us, which we were not able to perform, and therefore it condemned us. Sin also did lie upon us as a heavy burden which the law did oft times make greater & greater. Death went about to devour us, inasmuch as it is the wages of sin, Satan also endeavoured to throw us down headlong to hell, inasmuch as he would punish us for our sins committed: all things were full of trembling and anguish. God taking pity upon this so great calamity, sent his only begotten son, and that of his mere grace & goodness, without our desert, that he might deliver us out of so great tyranny, which he mightily did after this sort: He satisfied the law, Christ hath fulfilled the law, prevailed against sin overcome death and vanquished Satan. and fulfilled it perfectly. For he loved God with all his heart, and with all his soul, & with all his strength: he loved his neighbour also as himself, in these the whole law and the Prophets do consist. Now whatsoever Christ did, it consisted in these two. He loved God, inasmuch as he obeyed his will, he took upon him the nature of man, and performed in all obedience those things that were enjoined him of the father, as Paul saith Phil. 2: He became obedient to the father unto the death, even the death of the cross. Secondly, he loved his neighbour: for all the works which he did in the earth, tended unto this end, that he might thereby profit his neighbour, and therefore he so loved his neighbour, that he even died for him, as he saith himself to his disciples joh. 15: Greater love then this hath no man, when any man bestoweth his life for his friends: S. Paul doth more set forth this, saying, for his enemies, when he writeth thus Rom. 5: But God setteth out his love towards us, seeing that while we were yet sinners Christ died for us. Forasmuch then as Christ hath so fulfilled the law, it could not accuse him, neither was sin of any force with him. He set upon it, and did prevail over it, and swallowed it up, it was enforced to be extinguished of him, no otherwise then a spark of fire in the most wide sea. For in him was nothing but mere righteousness. Death also came, and went about to devour him, it devoured him in deed, but it could not digest him, it was enforced to yield him up again, yea and this devouring was an utter discommodity to death, for the case being quite altered, Christ devoured death itself. For it had set upon him, against whom it had no right, forasmuch as not a whit of sin did appear in him. Where sin is not, there death hath nothing to do, as Saint Paul saith 1. Cor. 15: The sting of death is sin, with this it killeth, otherwise it should be dull, and have no strength. Satan also made a trial of his strength in him, but in vain, and to his own grief, for he laid hands on him, with whom he had nothing to do. The wretch was overcome in this conflict, and went away with shame, as Christ saith, joh. 14: The Prince of this world cometh, and hath nought in me. Hell also did open his mouth, and would have devoured Christ, but contrariwise it was devoured of him. And so in this conflict the Law, Sin, Death, Satan and hell were vanquished, over all which he triumphed & gloried with great pomp, as Paul saith Col. 2. The believers by faith enjoy the works of Christ as their own. All these things were not only done for our commodity, but also if we believe in this Lord Christ, they are given unto us. For whatsoever he hath, it serveth for us, yea he himself is ours, as Paul saith Rom. 8. God spared not his own son, but gave him for us all to death, how shall he not with him give us all things also? So that I may boldly glory of all victory, which he obtained over the law, sin, death, the devil, and may challenge to myself all his works, even as if they were mine own, and I myself had done them, so that I believe in Christ. Otherwise his works shall profit me nothing at all, if they were not given unto me. These are the works of an other which do commend us before God, and save us. Our own works shall do nothing, we are weaker, then that we can resist even the least sin, so far is it of that we are able to encounter with death, How a Christian may notably comfort himself against the law, sin, death, Satan. Satan, and hell. Wherefore when the Law shall come, and accuse thee, that thou dost not observe it, send it unto Christ, and say: There is that man which hath fulfilled the law, to him I cleave, he hath fulfilled it for me, and hath given his fullfilling unto me: when it heareth these things, it will be quiet. If sin come, and would have thee by the throat, send it unto Christ, and say: As much as thou mayst do against him, so much right shalt thou have against me: for I am in him, and he is in me. If death creep upon thee, and attempt to devour thee, say unto it: Good Mistress' death, dost thou know this man? come and bite out his tooth, hast thou forgotten how little thy biting prevailed with him once? go too if it be a pleasure unto thee, encounter with him again. Thou hadst persuaded thyself, that thou shouldest have prevailed somewhat against him, when he did hang between two thieves, & died an ignominious death, which was counted cursed both before God and the world. But what didst thou gain thereby? Thou didst bite in deed, but it turned worst to thyself. I pertain to this man, I am his, and he is mine, and where he abideth, there also will I abide. Thou couldst hurt him nothing, wherefore also let me alone. After the same sort if the Devil, if hell come violently upon thee, and trouble thee, send them unto Christ, and thou shalt easily make them to cease. And thus ye see what Christ is unto us, The inestimable commodity which the faithful enjoy through Christ. namely such a man as is given unto us of God, that he might extinguish sins, vanquish death, destroy hell, overcome the Devil, and all these for our commodity. If he had not done this, nor given unto us these things, we had been for ever under the curse of the law, under sin, under death, under the devil, and under hell. God hath delivered us from these by that Christ. Wherefore S. Paul saith out of the Prophet Osee 1. Cor. 15: Death is swallowed up into victory. O death where is thy sting? O hell where is thy victory? The sting of death is sin, and the strength of sin is the law. But thanks be unto God, which hath given us victory through our Lord jesus Christ. We are justified before God by no works or merits of our own, but only by the works of Christ. Hereof we may easily understand, what kind of works those be, which do make us entire and righteous before God. Surely they are the works of an other, and not our own works chosen of ourselves. Wherefore the whole Papacy falleth here, with all the most precious and holy works thereof, which hath this drift only, that miserable, wretched, and blinded men may be persuaded, that they obtain heaven by their merits, and their own works. hereupon have sprung so many orders, that they can not almost be numbered, of which one strived to be holier than an other, according as they exercised harder, greater, and weightier works. But this their miserable labour, anguish, prayers, fastings, chastising of the body, and such like, were vain works, and of no value at all, neither had they so much power, that they were able to take away so much as even the least sin, which they call venial. They were altogether unmindful of this saying Esay 29, which the Lord repeateth Matth. 15: This people draweth near unto me with their mouth, & honoureth me with their lips, but their heart is far of from me. But in vain they worship me, teaching such doctrines, as are nothing else but the precepts of men. Hereupon now thou mayst gather with thyself, that all holy men, although they be exceeding holy, yet do obtain salvation, not by their own holiness, merits or works. And not so much as Mary herself the mother of God, was made righteous & holy in respect of her virginity, or in that she was the mother of God, but salvation hath come unto all by jesus Christ, as by the works of an other. Wherefore this is diligently to be noted, that our felicity doth not consist in our own works, but in the works of an other, namely of Christ jesus our Saviour, which we obtain through only faith in him. This also the history of this Gospel seemeth to signify, when as the Lord showeth to his disciples, but specially to Thomas, his hands & feet. By which deed he declareth, that it was necessary, that those hands and feet should do these things, & that no other works, that is, their own, & not the works of an other, do pertain unto salvation. Hands and feet what they commonly signify in the Scripture. For in the Scriptures by hands and feet works & conversation are signified. These hands and feet Christ doth as yet eftsoons show to us & say: Behold, I am that only man, whose works & conversation are of force with God, thou shalt labour in vain with thine own works, thine own righteousness maketh nothing hereunto, it hath an other end. If thou be righteous, it is profitable to thee among men, here in eart thou hast the glory & praise thereof, as Paul saith Rom. 4. But before God this thy righteousness is of no estimation, thou must set in place thereof an other, namely mine, this God my father doth allow. For I have delivered thee from sins, death, the devil, hell, & from all evil, thou shouldest never have escaped out of these by thine own power, but hadst lain as yet most deeply drowned in them. I have appeased the wrath of God, and of an angry judge, have made him, a gentle, merciful and gracious father, believe this and it goeth well with thee, thou art then safe, entire, and righteous. Beware that thou presume not to deal before God with thine own works, but if thou wilt do any thing with him, creep into me, put on me, and thou shalt obtain of my Father, whatsoever thou desirest and askest, as he himself saith unto his Disciples joh. 16: Verily, verily I say unto you, whatsoever ye shall ask the Father in my name, he will give it you. Wherefore as from the beginning sin which was an others, hath been derived unto us from Adam, for neither I, nor thou have eat of the apple: so also by the righteousness of an other we must be restored unto righteousness and integrity. This other is Christ jesus, by whose righteousness and works we are all saved, as I have now sufficiently declared. This S. Paul hath very pithily comprehended even in one sentence, where 1. Cor. 1. he saith thus: Christ jesus is made unto us of God, wisdom, and righteousness, and sanctification, & redemption, that, according as it is written, he that rejoiceth, let him rejoice in the Lord. And Rom. 4. he saith: jesus Christ was delivered to death for our sins, and is risen again for our justification. In these two little sentences are briefly comprised, and joined together, whatsoever things we must look for from Christ. Howbeit all these things are enjoyed by faith, for he that is without faith, to him they are unpossible to be comprehended, The preaching of Christ is counted foolishness of the unbelievers, but of the faithful the power and wisdom of God. yea they are counted foolishness to reason & to the world, as Paul saith 1. Cor 1: Christ unto the jews is even a stumbling block, and unto the Grecians, foolishness, that is, when Christ is preached, that he is our righteousness, that salvation cometh unto us by him, and that by him we are made the children of everlasting life, without our own works and righteousness, than those holy men, and justifiers of themselves are offended, no otherwise then the jews. Moreover to the prudent and wise men of this world, it seemeth foolishness and a certain ridiculous thing, that a man being fastened to the cross and put to death, doth perform these things. Whatsoever therefore is counted righteous, holy, wise and prudent in the eyes of the world, it is offended and stumbleth at this Christ. But, saith Paul moreover, Unto them which are called, both of the jews & Grecians, we preach Christ, the power of God, and the wisdom of God. He saith also Rom. 1. The Gospel of Christ is the power of God unto salvation to every one that believeth, to the jew first and also to the Grecian. For by it the righteousness of God is revealed from faith to faith, as it is written Haba. 2: The just shall live by faith. Wherefore the Lord saith very well to the Disciples of john: Blessed is he that shall not be offended in me. So thou seest now plainly, that this faith which we have in Christ, cometh by the preaching of the Gospel, as Paul affirmeth Rom. 10: Faith is by hearing, and hearing by the word of God. Here, here I say doth all the force consist, by the word of God, not by the word of man. The word of God doth these things, not when we publish indulgences, or preach of works, as hitherto (alas) it hath been done, to our exceeding loss, as well in the good things of the body as of the soul. We made no account of goods which we bestowed plentifully, unless we had afflicted our body with fastings, chastisement, pilgrimages, and such like trifles. In deed these things had been to be granted and borne, if they had not with a false confidence in such doing, so miserably and lamentably led us away & seduced us from a true faith & confidence in God through Christ. But praise be unto God, that we have for the most part perceived such delusions. For the world was so full of this misery and preaching, that it did almost overflow, which surely came by the vengeance and wrath of God, for that we contemned his word, and followed men's fables, yea our own wits and opinions. Then we were in so great blindness, that we did almost without difference believe every man, what kind of work soever he brought and gloriously set forth. From these deceitful follies our consciences are now delivered and set free, but no man doth so much as once give thanks to God therefore. If we shall be contemptuously negligent, a more grievous misery shall light upon us then this was. Neither should that come unto us undeservedly, forasmuch as we do greatly procure these evils against ourselves by our unthankfulness. When as before we gave with so great abundance and plenty, that by our liberality they were made almost Lords of the world, now hardly six or seven poor men are maintained in a city, yea now the Minister of a Parish Church hath not sufficient wherewith to live. Howbeit do not impute this perverse kind of living to the Gospel, as our adversaries now impudently do. It is not meet, that thou suffer thy poor neighbour by thee to need: Yea rather the whole Gospel doth specially urge this, that thou have a care of thy neighbour, and that thou be serviceable toward him, that thou help him both with thy counsel, and substance, even as God hath helped and instructed thee. Such a one without doubt he that is endued with true faith showeth himself: for he bursteth forth, The faithful man exerciseth charity toward his neighbour. and behaveth himself so toward others, as he hath tried God towards himself, and as he desireth to be done to himself, if he were pressed with poverty, anguish, and necessity. God needeth not our good works, our prayers, fastings, and buildings of temples, founding of Masses, do displease him, he requireth not our sacrifices, but rather as Esay saith, hateth and abhorreth them. He is content with this one thing, that we acknowledge him for our God, trust in him, & give him thanks, as he saith Psal. 50: Hear, O my people, & I will speak, I myself will testify against thee O Israel: for I am God even thy God. I will not reprove thee, because of thy sacrifices, or for thy burnt offerings: because they were not always before me. I will take no bullock out of thy house, nor he goats out of thy folds. For all the beasts of the forest are mine, and so are the cattles upon a thousand hills. I know all the souls upon the mountains, and the wild beasts of the field are in my sight. If I be hungry, I will not tell thee: for the whole world is mine and all that is therein. Thinkest thou that I will eat bulls flesh, and drink the blood of goats? Offer unto God thanks giving, and pay thy vows unto the most highest. And call upon me in the time of trouble, so will I deliver thee, and thou shalt praise me. But God sendeth us downwardly with out works to our neighbours, to the miserable, afflicted, & them that be void of comfort. It is our parts to help them, to comfort them, to teach and instruct them. And whatsoever benefit we shall bestow upon them, that we shall bestow upon God & his Christ, as he shall say in the last day: Matth. 25.40 Whatsoever ye have done unto one of the least of these my brethren, he have done it unto me. Thus ye now have heard, that we are justified and made righteous by the works of an other, namely, by the works of Christ, which we enjoy only by faith: the same faith charity doth naturally accompany, whereby we do so to our neighbour, as we acknowledge that God hath done unto us. Hereof ye have elsewhere heard more: here we will now make an end, and call for the grace of God. A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER UPON THE GOSPEL ON SAINT MATHIAS DAY. Matth. 11. Verse 25. AT that time jesus answered and said: I give thee thanks O Father, Lord of heaven & earth, because thou hast hid these things from the wise and men of understanding, and hast opened them unto children. 26. It is so, O Father, because thy good pleasure was such. 27. All things are given unto me of my Father: & no man knoweth the Son but the Father: neither knoweth any man the Father but the Son, and he to whom the Son will reveal him. 28. Come unto me all ye that are weary & laden, & I will refresh you. 29. Take my yoke on you and learn of me: for I am meek and lowly in heart: and ye shall find rest unto your souls. 30. For my yoke is easy, and my burden is light. The sum of this Gospel. 1 REason is not capable of the Gospel. For as Paul 1. Cor. 2. saith: The natural man perceiveth not the things of the Spirit of God: for they are foolishness unto him: neither can he know them, because they are spiritually discerned. Wherefore when reason seeketh salvation in worldly wisdom and foolishness, it findeth it not. 2 Christ calleth them children here, which trust not to their own wisdom and righteousness, but do believe only. 3 As children only do obtain salvation, so the Father also can not be known, unless he be revealed by Christ: that is, our wisdom doth not know God the father. But when as through faith we are taught and instructed in bearing the cross, than the power of God becometh known unto us. Therefore also he afterward comforteth them, upon whom the cross is laid, saying: My yoke is easy, and my burden light. The exposition of the text. THis text toucheth as it were, the very pith and marrow of the Gospel. Other places of Scripture wherein the miracles and doings of Christ are rehearsed, have not so much comfort as those, in which those sermons of Christ to the people are contained, wherein he doth so lovingly teach us, and allure us to himself. I am not so certain of the favour, which I see showed to others in working miracles, as if I have the plain words before mine eyes. It is a far greater comfort also unto me, to hear such loving admonitions and allurements, than the preaching of miracles: Albeit they also confirm my faith, and are examples, that, as he hath helped them, so also he will help me. Moreover this Gospel entreateth of the knowledge of God the father, and of Christ his son, showing also whereof such knowledge doth consist. Now that the meaning thereof may be well known, it is requisite to understand aright these two words, wisemen, and children or babes. But lest when we hear it, we say: this pertaineth nothing to us, it is spoken to others, as the jews said to the Prophets, which referred all things to the Gentiles, the words going before do sufficiently show, unto whom, or of whom these words of Christ are spoken. For before he speaketh of them that contemn the Gospel, not vouchsafeing to embrace it, whose duty notwithstanding especially was to embrace it, inasmuch as they would seem alone to be them, that were occupied in the word of God, and were to be counted for the people of God. Of such he sayeth thus: Whereunto shall I liken this generation? it is like unto little children which sit in the markets, and call unto their fellows, and say: we have piped unto you, and ye have not danced: we have mourned unto you, and ye have not lamented. Which the Lord applieth to himself, and unto john the Baptist: as if he would say: we have preached unto you the Gospel: john with a certain severity and austerity, but I with very great clemency and gentleness. But ye contemn our preaching and will not receive it, ye shall at the last feel without doubt to your great evil, what it is to despise the word of God. This is very true, howsoever thou preachest to the people, whether thou be fair spoken or severe, gentle or ungentle, they will always seem to have some cause or other to complain of thee. These the Lord calleth here wise, and men of understanding, to these the Gospel is hid. He meaneth not here those wise men, which are truly wise in divine matters. For it is a great commendation, if one be worthy to be called wise and prudent. True wisdom is nothing else but the knowledge of God, True wisdom what it is. Prudence. to wit, when as I know what we must think of God, and do understand his will. But prudence signifieth ability and knowledge to judge of worldly things, what is right or wrong, which Paul often joineth together, especially in his Epistle to the Ephesians chap. 1. and in his Epistle to the Colossians chap. 1. Of such wisdom Christ speaketh not here, but of worldly wisdom, which puffeth up men, and excludeth the true wisdom of God. We are all of this disposition by nature, eftsoons to rise against the wisdom of God. human or worldly wisdom. That is called good, by the instinct of human wisdom, which bringeth pleasure, honour, and profit, but those things that are contrary to these, as affliction, dishonour, loss, those are called evil. For man's nature can seek nothing else at all, but those things that are his own, that which pleaseth and profiteth him, that he doth especially like: But that which displeaseth him, he counteth the worst of all things, although it be the best. Wherefore as I have said, the Lord speaketh here of those wise and prudent men, which with their own wisdom strive against the wisdom of God. Worldly wisdom seemeth to itself to be so great, that is it not content to rule only these worldly and temporal things, but taketh also upon itself to have the oversight of heavenly things, it always searcheth out and imagineth some new thing, even in spiritual and divine matters. So man's own wisdom hath invented shaven crowns and cowls, & almost all that, wherein the papacy consisteth, every one hath chosen his proper work to himself, this man hath invented this, an other hath invented that, and if this be abolished, and doth not greatly please, by-and-by they find out some other thing, as (alas) we have seen, and do as yet see, neither is there any measure in these trifles, whereupon it cometh, that we can hardly away with the word of God and the truth, but are always delighted to invent some new thing. For truly this is certain, as often as we ordain a new worship of God contrary to the word of God, we are by-and-by blinded, and fall from error to error, than which calamity none greater can come unto us. Wherefore Paul 2. Thess. 2. saith: Therefore God shall send them strong delusion, that they should believe lies, that all they might be damned which believed not the truth, but had pleasure in unrighteousness. Yea and at the last they become so blind, that they understand nothing at all of God, as it is in the 14. Psal.. The fool hath said in his heart, there is no God. For it can not be that the natural man, which consisteth of flesh & blood, and is not instructed by the spirit of God, should judge and understand those things which are of God, as Paul 1. Cor. 2. witnesseth: The natural man perceiveth not the things of the Spirit of God: for they are foolishness unto him: neither can he know them, because they are spiritually discerned. He which will read more hereof, let him peruse the first chapter of the Epistle of Paul to the Romans, there shall he plainly enough perceive, what blindness is, and what punishment doth ensue, if the word of God being neglected, we follow our one inventions and counsels. All which we see in our spiritual monks, nuns, and sacrificing priests, and do too truly try it. God grant that they may at the last repent, and give unto God his glory. S. Paul saith there of the Gentiles, that they turned the glory of the incorruptible God to the similitude of the image, not only of a corruptible man, but also of birds, and four footed beasts, and of creeping things. So do our Papists also, yea and much more foolishly and madly then the Gentiles: for they make unto themselves a good which is delighted with a shaven crown, with towels, with eating of flesh and fish, etc. Wherefore God hath given them up through their hearts lusts unto uncleanness, as he did the Gentiles, and that so filthily, that it is better to conceal it, then to rehearse it. For if such filthy and wicked things were committed among the Gentiles, which had many wives and many concubines, what would not these spiritual men com-Briefly which have forbidden the use of women and matrimony? mit, so is it wont to come to pass, where Satan beareth the sway, and the word of God is wrested to serve men's affections, which every man may assuredly persuade himself to be so, yea these things are so known and undoubtedly true, that children in the streets speak and sing of them. Now this is not to be understood of spiritual men only, but even the vulgar sort and common multitude do live so, when the word of God is not admitted. As we see citizens to utter counterfeit wares, merchants to deceive in selling ambergris, and so many crafty practises, so many deceits in subtle dealing, so much regard of usury and private profit, that it can not be rehearsed. As yet they endeavour again to bring in the Mass, to set up their tapers &c: being persuaded that God is pacified with such trifles, revolving this only in their minds, that their fame may remain untouched and unhurt in the world, howsoever they agree with God. Of such wise and prudent men Christ speaketh here in the Gospel, which hear the Gospel in deed, and see miracles, but it profiteth them nothing, forasmuch as their heart is not touched. Now Christ saith thus: Verse 25. I give thee thanks O Father, Lord of heaven and earth, because thou hast hid these things from the wise and men of understanding, and hast opened them unto children: Verse 26. It is so, O Father, because thy good pleasure was such. Christ speaketh not here of very children: there may be some notable doctor, whom he calleth a child in this place. Contrariwise there may be a rustical fellow, whom he calleth here wise and prudent. In the eight Psal. David also calleth these infants and children, when he saith: Out of the mouth of babes and sucklings hast thou ordained strength because of thine enemies. They surely by whom God ordained strength against his enemies, which should extol his glory through the whole world, were not babes or children in very deed. Those therefore the Lord calleth children here, which count their own works for nothing, attribute nothing to their own wisdom, Whom the Lord calleth here children or babes. make nothing of themselves, but think God only to be wise and of understanding. Wherefore they are humble and lowly, and how great soever they are, do submit themselves to God, of whom only they suffer themselves to be taught. Now other be over wise, and will learn nothing of God, yea they presumptuously take to themselves judgement and censure over the doctrine and works of God, whereof thou mayst read in the first and second chapter of the Epistle to the Corinthians. Wherefore Christ saith Luke 16: The children of this world are in their generation wiser than the children of light. But the foolish children of light are of greater estimation before God, than the wise children of this world. Of these children the Lord speaketh: Thou hast hid them from the wise and men of understanding, and hast revealed them to babes. For the wise and prudent know not these things, but the children and fools know them. How cometh it to pass that the wise know them not? because thou hast hidden them from them. How do the children know them? because thou hast revealed them. What he meaneth hereby, we may gather of those things that were spoken before, to wit that he had preached the Gospel of the kingdom of God in many cities of judea, as in Chorazin, Bethsaida, and in his own city Capernaum, which cities their own wisdom being a hindrance and let unto them, did not receive the foolish preaching of the Gospel. The Gospel is a good and joyful message, which teacheth me to know the glory of God, by which knowledge I obtain pardon of my sins, and life eternal: The Gospel a joyful message. As Christ saith to his father in the Gospel of john chap. 17: This is life eternal, that they know thee to be the only very God, and jesus Christ whom thou hast sent. He saith also in this Gospel: No man knoweth the Son but the Father, neither knoweth any man the Father but the Son, and he to whom the Son will rereveale him. Here he speaketh of the knowledge both of the Father and of the Son. To whom this is revealed, he knoweth, and obtaineth eternal life. But the Father hath hid these things from the wise and prudent, that they may not know neither the Father nor the Son, and hath revealed them to children, they have the knowledge both of the Father and the Son, and so do obtain everlasting life. Moreover, if these things be thus, as they be in deed, what shall become of free will? Seeing thou seest such heinous and wicked things to be committed in the bodies, as it is written Rom. 1. go thy ways now, and glory of free will. But this is a goodly free will, to live in such a filthy life, which is altogether unworthy of a man, which is unknown even among beasts that are without reason. Howbeit it is wont so to come to pass, when God forsaketh us. What state they come into, whom God forsaketh. As soon as we are forsaken of God, by-and-by Satan cometh, and erecteth his kingdom in us, wherein nothing else but such wickednesses are committed, which notwithstanding are so craftily coloured, and commended with such a pretence of honesty, that it seemeth to be a most holy, yea and an angelic life. What I pray you can man's strength do here? whereby some go about to bring to pass many things, sweetly persuading themselves that they shall ascend up into heaven thereby. But thou hearest here that Christ affirmeth, that the Father doth reveal these things: also that it is the good pleasure of the Father that it should be so. Whereby truly he taketh away all the merits of man, here no satisfactions profit, here is no respect of works, it is done by the will and good pleasure of the Father. For he respecteth not the person, as it appeareth before the world. He doth not contemn and reject the sinner, albeit he come laden with sins. After the same sort Christ saith to his disciples Luke 12: Fear not little flock, for it is the Father's pleasure to give you the kingdom. This the hypocrites and iustitiaries can not abide, yea they are driven unto fury, senssesnes, and madness, when they see simple receivers of custom and very publicans to go before them into the kingdom of heaven, they themselves with their holiness, & goodly and plausible works to the world, being excluded: whom would not this drive unto madness? who would not take it grievously, that he himself and his things should be in such a case, and nothing at all counted of? But what shouldest thou do, or what shouldest thou murmur? The good pleasure of God is such, to whom he vouchsafeth to open, to him they shallbe opened: and from whom he hideth, from him they are hidden, which count as undoubtedly true: And mark well that Christ saith here, It is so, O Father, because thy good pleasure was such, thy good pleasure I say, before the world was made, as S. Paul saith Ephes. 1: God hath chosen us in Christ before the foundations of the world were laid, that we should be holy and without blame before him in love, who hath predestinate us, to be adopted through jesus Christ in himself, according to the good pleasure of his will, to the praise of the glory of his grace, wherewith he hath made us freely accepted in his beloved. Here all merit is excluded, wherefore let it not come into thy mind, that thou shalt obtain any thing here by thy deserts, neither let thy works, wisdom, and merits puff thee up. Here all rejoicing is taken away, that he that rejoiceth, may rejoice in the Lord, as Paul saith 1. Cor. 1. It followeth moreover in the Gospel: Ver. 27. All things are given unto me of my Father: & no man knoweth the Son but the Father: neither knoweth any man the Father but the Son, and he to whom the Son will reveal him. Here thou seest the safety, which is in the kingdom of Christ, by whom we have knowledge and light. If therefore Christ holdeth all things in his hand, and hath power over all things as the Father hath, no man can pluck any thing out of his hands, which he himself also witnesseth in john: joh. 10.28. I give eternal life to my sheep, and they shall never perish, neither shall any pluck them out of my hand: my Father which gave them me, is greater than all, and none is able to take them out of my Father's hand. I and my Father are one. Christians have cause to rejoice although they be divers ways assailed of Satan, for that they be under the tuition of Christ, who will defend and preserve them. Wherefore every Christian, when he hath received the Gospel, may worthily rejoice, that he is now under the tuition of Christ, and is not any thing troubled because of his sins. If he hath embraced the Gospel, Christ under whom he fighteth will guide the matter excellently well. Satan in deed will tempt him with this and that vice, as, with adultery, whoredom, theft, slaughter, envy, hatred, wrath, and other like sins. But let him not therefore be discouraged, he hath a king, that is strong & mighty enough, of whom he shallbe easily defended. Notwithstanding it willbe very hard to stand strongly, and nothing to yield, wherefore prayer in this case is very needful, others also may by their prayers entreat for thee, that a stout courage and manly heart may be given unto thee, to withstand Satan. But it is certain, that thou shalt not be destitute, Christ will easily preserve thee, be not disquieted in mind, let it only be thy care, that thou fallest not from his kingdom. Moreover in this Gospel thou seest, that Christ is both God & man: Man, inasmuch as he praiseth God, and giveth him thanks: God, inasmuch as all things are given unto him of the Father. Which ought to be great comfort unto us in all things that do trouble and afflict us. Whereas he saith: No man knoweth the Son but the Father: neither knoweth any man the Father but the Son, and he to whom the Son will reveal him: he in these words overthroweth free will, which will know God and Christ, when and how it pleaseth it. Here thou hast plainly, from whence the knowledge of God and of Christ is: the Father, saith he, knoweth the Son, and the Son the Father, but how do we know, by this or that preacher? no truly, these are only certain middle instruments, but he only knoweth, to whom the Son will reveal. A little before he said that the Father doth reveal or open, here he attributeth the same to the Son. Surely both the Father and the Son do reveal, and as the Father revealeth, so also doth the Son: and Christ also saith in john chap. 14: The holy Ghost shall teach you all things. Wherefore as the Father teacheth, so teacheth the Son, likewise also teacheth the holy Ghost. And where God the Father, and the Son, and the holy Ghost do not teach, there all things remain void of knowledge. It followeth moreover in the Gospel. Verse 28. Come unto me all ye that are weary and laden, and I will refresh you. Verse 29. Take my yoke on you, and learn of me: for I am meek and lowly in heart: and ye shall find rest unto your souls. Verse 30. For my yoke is easy, and my burden is light. Hitherto we have heard how the Lord dealeth with the wise and prudent, namely that he blindeth them, and hideth the Gospel from them. Likewise how he is delighted in children and simple ones, to wit, that he endueth them with right knowledge of himself, and openeth the Gospel unto them. But some man may here say and complain: If the matter be so, surely my conscience shallbe in great danger, before I hear and know that the Gospel doth pertain unto me. I am a wretched sinner, and perhaps the Gospel pertaineth not unto me, what if I be unworthy? Christ, that he may comfort these weak, dismayed, and troubled consciences, saith: Come unto me all ye that are weary and laden, and I will refresh you. What soever burden we are laden with, we may find ease & comfort in christ, if we fly to him for succour. Here are we called unto comfort. Here forget all thy merit and worthiness, for that he plainly saith: ye that are weary and laden, to wit, with the burden of the law, the anguish and affliction of sin, and wherewithal soever the conscience may be troubled. Therefore he doth not express it by name: for he saith not, ye that are troubled with this or that calamity, but simply, ye that are weary and laden. Neither will he have any here excluded, forasmuch as he saith, All, which is a singular and special comfort, if any thing trouble us, what kind of tentation soever it be. Who soever therefore is stricken with the feeling of his sin, and knoweth his one weakness to fulfil the law of God, let him come hither with a cheerful and bold courage, and he shall certainly receive comfort. I will refresh you, saith Christ, as those that are pressed and burdened with sore labour and grief. Let this only be thy care, that thou believe such a loving bidding and promise. After this sort Christ cried in the temple at Jerusalem at a certain feast: If any man thirst, joh. 7.37.38.39. let him come unto me, and drink. He that believeth in me, as saith the Scripture, out of his belly shall flow rivers of water of life. This spoke he of the Spirit, which they that believed in him, should receive. Which so cometh to pass: He causeth the Gospel to be preached unto us, which he that believeth, is endued with the holy Ghost, and obtaineth pardon of all his sins. This is truly to refresh him, whose conscience is troubled, to wit, when he feeleth that his sins be forgiven, and that he is become heir of the kingdom of God. Neither doth he refresh us only in the anguish and tentation of sin, but he will also be present with us in other calamities and miseries, in famine, war, dearth of victuals, and whatsoever such like can come, in all these he will not leave us destitute of his help, as he cared for the Patriarch joseph, even in a strange country, with whom he was continually present, as well in prosperity as in adversity. Now sin is a grievous burden, whereof no man is eased, but he whom Christ the son of God delivereth, and that by the holy Ghost, whom he hath merited for us of the Father, which maketh our hearts cheerful, and ready to do all things which God requireth of us. But what is this that he saith? Take my yoke on you. Is this to refresh, if I take one burden from one, and lay upon him an other? The yoke of Christ why so called. This is that, whereof we have oftentimes spoken, the Gospel doth first make astonished and discourage, and is grievous to the flesh, for it telleth us that all our own things are nothing, that our own holiness and righteousness are of no importance, that all things which are in us are damned, that we are the children of wrath and indignation. This is very hard, and an intolerable burden to the flesh, and therefore he calleth it a burden or yoke. But lest he should terrify or make afraid any, for that he is of great authority, high, and mighty, and therefore can not suffer sinful and wretched men, or for that he may seem to be tyrannical and ungentle, he before cutting of this suspicion, saith: Learn of me: for I am meek and lowly in heart. Christ will here lovingly allure us to his doctrine, for he had spoken before of the knowledge of the Father, as if he would say: flesh and a fearful nature counteth me for an austere, severe, and rigorous man, but I am not of such a nature, yea I am humble and meek in heart. Christ humble & meek. I do not terrify men as Moses doth, I do not preach: do this or that, but I preach forgiveness of sins, neither do I preach that they should give any thing, but rather that they may receive. There is not in me ambition and loftiness, as is in the Pharisees, which desire to be magnified, but I am altogether gentle and lowly in heart, ready to receive sinners. If so be that they fall again into sins, notwithstanding I do not yet cast them from me, if they fly unto me for succour, and do with a sure confidence look for comfort and help of me. I do not curse men as the Pharisees do, which curse them even for their own ordinances, and for men's devices, and will sooner suffer all the commandments of God to be neglected, than one of their decrees and ordinances not to be observed. As we see in the Papacy, where it is counted a greater offence to eat flesh on the friday, or for a sacrificing Priest to marry, them to commit twenty adulteries or ten homicides. But here thou seest that God doth abrogate even his own law, that he may so much the sooner procure sinners unto him. Christ in a singular signification saith here, that he is meek, as if he said: I know how sinners are to be handled, I have tried what a fearful and an afflicted conscience is, as the Epistle to the hebrews chapter 5. witnesseth, that he was in all things tempted in like sort, except sin. Wherefore let no man be afraid of me, I will handle all easily and gently, I will say nothing with a sour countenance, I make no man afraid, so as they come boldly unto me, they shall find rest to their souls with me. To their souls he saith, They that believe in Christ find rest to their souls, though in their bodies they suffer affliction. as if he would say: outwardly in the body there may be affliction and trouble, and calamities may overwhelm you, but ye ought to bear all these things lightly, as he also saith to his disciples in the Gospel of john: In me ye shall have peace, but in the world ye shall have affliction. Wherefore although outwardly all things fall out against us, as though they would suppress and devour us, yet are they nothing to be esteemed of: For we have the feeling of peace inwardly in our conscience. And this is the first fruit of faith, as Paul saith Rom. 5: Therefore being justified by faith we have peace toward God through our Lord jesus Christ. Now when our conscience is quieted, and we have peace with God, nothing is able to move us, no nothing shall hurt us, albeit it be evil and against us. Let no man think thus, and say: this is not to amend one's state or case, if I take one burden from his neck, and lay on an other, as it is before said. For Christ saith: My yoke is easy, and my burden is light, as if he would say: the yoke of the law, under which ye lived before, was grievous to be borne, but my burden is not so grievous, it is light, and tolerable, ye may easily bear it. Our wisemen say now, that the yoke of Christ is more grievous, than the yoke of the Law was, and they allege the fift chapter of Matthew. But Christ doth there interpret the Law, how it ought to be understood, he doth not make laws, but saith, that murders and adulteries proceed from an evil and unclean heart. And so he doth only expound the Law of Moses, and prescribeth not any laws there. Why the yoke of Christ is said to be easy. But the yoke of Christ is therefore easy, and his burden light, because he taketh away, not only ceremonial and man's laws, but even the whole law, the curse, sin, death, and what soever may come unto us from the Law, all this Christ taketh away from me, and endueth me with his spirit, by the motion and instinct whereof, I do gladly, willingly and with pleasure perform all the duties of the Law. It is therefore also called easy, sweet, and light, for that he himself helpeth us, and taketh part of the burden, if we be not of strength sufficient. It appeareth in deed grievous and intolerable to the world, but it is otherwise when there is one ready to ease the burden. It is a common saying: it is good to sing with a fit compainon, you two will easily bear the burden, although one alone were not of strength sufficient to bear it. Thus much shall suffice for the exposition of this Gospel. **** A SERMON OF D. MARTIN LUTHER UPON THE GOSPEL ON THE FEAST OF S. PHILIP AND JAMES. john 14. Verse 1. Jesus said unto his disciples: Let not your heart be troubled: ye believe in God, believe also in me. 2. In my Father's house are many dwelling places: if it were not so, I would have told you: I go to prepare a place for you. 3. And if I go to prepare a place for you, I will come again, and receive you unto myself, that where I am, there may ye be also. 4. And whither I go, ye know, and the way ye know. 5. Thomas said unto him, Lord, we know not whither thou goest, how can we then know the way? 6. jesus said unto him, I am the Way, the Truth, and the Life. No man cometh unto the Father but by me. 7. If ye had known me, ye should have known my Father also: and from hence forth ye know him, and have seen him. 8. Philippe said unto him, Lord, show us thy Father, and it sufficeth us. 9 jesus said unto him: Have I been so long time with you, and hast thou not known me? Philip, he that hath seen me, hath seen my Father: how then sayest thou, Show us thy Father? 10. Believest thou not that I am in the Father, and the Father is in me? The words that I speak unto you, I speak not of myself, but the Father that dwelleth in me, he doth the works. 11. Believe me that I am in the Father, and the Father is in me: at the least believe me for the very works sake. 12. Verily, verily I say unto you, he that believeth in me, the works that I do, he shall do also, and greater than these shalhe do: for I go unto my Father. 13. And whatsoever ye ask in my Name, that will I do, that the Father may be glorified in the Son. 14. If ye shall ask any thing in my name, I will do it. The sum of this Gospel. 1 IN this Gospel is contained a comfort against offence that tempteth us through the cross and persecution. 2 Without the merit of Christ no man cometh to glory. Therefore he saith: In my Father's house are many dwelling places. For many are elect from everlasting of God the Father, which notwithstanding can not come unto glory without Christ. 3 The Disciples believed in Christ, yet did they not understand, that he should come unto glory by death. Wherein we must mark, that faith being unperfect in the Apostles and Disciples of Christ, is a comfort unto us, if we rest upon the foundation Christ. 4 In Philip we see a very gross faith, for he will see and know by experience. Wherefore Christ saith: If ye will not believe my words, at the last believe the works, that the Father is in me, and I in the Father. 5 These words: I say unto you, he that believeth in me, the works that I do, he shall do also, etc. show that Christ shall reign in us, when he is glorified with the Father. 6 And thus we see that in all this Gospel, Christ requireth nothing else of them that be his, but faith. The exposition of this Gospel. IN the beginning of this Gospel Christ declareth wherefore he came, and what office he executeth, which is properly the preaching of the Gospel: to wit, that he is he which prepareth dwelling places with the Father, and will when he cometh again, receive us unto himself. Moreover he saith, that he is the way, the truth, and the life, which he afterward more plainly expresseth when he saith: No man cometh unto the Father but by me. Also when he saith: If ye had known me, ye should have known my Father also. Hereunto moreover pertaineth that which he saith unto Philip: He that hath seen me, hath seen my Father. This is the chief and the greatest thing in this Gospel, unto which all are to be referred. Hereof we ought to learn, that we are not justified by our own strength, neither saved by our own merits, but are sanctified by the spirit of Christ, and saved by grace, & that Christ is the way leading to salvation. We will discuss and examine this Gospel throughout, as God shall give us grace. These words the Lord spoke unto his Disciples after his Supper, when he was now about to departed from them. Forasmuch as he had said many things unto them of his departure and passion, they were after a sort troubled and terrified, wherefore the Lord beginneth lovingly to comfort them, saying: Let not your heart be troubled. As if he would say: I perceive that my departure doth grieve you, and that ye are therefore troubled: But seeing it can not be otherwise, be not discomforted, there is no cause why ye should therefore be troubled, I will come again unto you. Notwithstanding ye shall see many things in me before, whereat ye willbe offended, they shall crucify me and unworthily handle me. But be not ye troubled because of these things, be not afraid, it willbe better shortly after, the will of the Father is such. Howbeit flesh can not do otherwise but be offended, if it seeth Christ to be crucified, it by-and-by revolteth from him, it believeth him not neither counteth him for a Saviour. Which also it doth, when it seeth holy men suffer persecution, to be afflicted and tormented, for than it thinketh that God hath no care of them. Against this offence Christ aforehand confirmeth his Disciples, and saith: Ye believe in God, believe also in me. That is, ye believe that God loveth you and will glorify you, believe that he will do it after that sort, that ye see me glorified, and believe that this my death is life, to the glorifying both of me, and of my whole body, that is, of all Christians, and that this death satisfieth for the sins of the world, as the Apostles afterward witnessed of him in their writings. 1. john 2.2. Thus john saith: Christ is the reconciliation for our sins: and not for ours only, but also for the sins of the whole world. Wherefore thou seest that Christ here will have hearts confirmed by faith, and by no other outward thing. He saith moreover: In my Father's house are many dwelling places. These dwelling places have been prepared from everlasting, neither is there any need that they should be prepared of him. Why therefore doth he say: I go to prepare a place for you? This is nothing else but that he goeth and is made Lord of all, whereby he may prepare us unto such dwelling places. For as long as we are not prepared, neither are the dwelling places prepared for us, although they be ready by themselves. Wherefore Christ meaneth thus much: There are dwelling places, but not yet prepared rightly and as they must be. Howbeit then shall they be rightly prepared and appointed, when as I have taken away the kingdom of death by my death, and am now gone to reign, and that by the holy Ghost: which by faith shall prepare and wholly make ready you also unto such dwelling places. So that this is the simple and plain meaning of these words: There are dwelling places, to wit, where the Father glorifieth, but those dwelling places are not yet prepared, for that the kingdom of death is not yet taken away. This Christ signifieth when he saith: If it were not so I would have told you: I go to prepare a place for you. And if I go to prepare a place for you, I will come again, and receive you unto myself, that where I am, there may ye be also. In these words the Lord declareth how these dwelling places be prepared, namely, by the death of Christ as it is said, by which he came unto glory, and ruleth over all things, which are in heaven and earth. By which death he hath obtained the holy Ghost for us, which as is before said, may prepare us unto these dwelling places. For through his operation and working in us, he maketh us believe the Gospel, by which believing or faith we are prepared. Which could not be done if Christ should not departed and die, and so possess a kingdom over all. This therefore is the sum of this text: They are foreseen, whom the Father will glorify, but they can not be glorified but by Christ, who unless he take away death and sin, all shall be in vain. Here thou seest that all tend unto this, that Christ is he which prepareth the dwelling places, and that we can not be glorified but by Christ, so that the whole drift of this text is, that we are not justified by man's strength, nor by our own merits, but by Christ, which the whole Epistle to the Romans effectually declareth, as also that which is written to the Galathians, & almost all that Paul doth in his Epistles, tendeth to the same end. It followeth moreover: And whither I go ye know, and the way ye know. For ye believe in me, and have showed signs in my name, whereby ye ought now to be certain who I am, and what I do, and wherefore I am come. Ye have also seen and heard the testimony of the Father of me. Wherefore ye may now know that the Father will glorify me, and believe that I and the Father are one, it should be therefore superfluous to speak more of these things. But the Disciples albeit they were well instructed of the Lord himself, and had seen his miracles, yea and they themselves also had preached the Gospel and wrought miracles, were notwithstanding as yet somewhat gross in understanding, neither did they perceive whereof he here spoke, and what was that way, and whither the Lord did prepare to departed. Wherefore Thomas bursteth forth into open words and confesseth freely, that he is ignorant hereof, and saith thus unto the Lord: Lord we know not whither thou goest: how can we then know the way? Here ye hear and see, that albeit there was faith in the Disciples, notwithstanding they were not as yet persuaded that Christ should be crucified, and by his death should enter into his kingdom, and that the same kingdom should be spiritual, which they did not understand even after the resurrection of the Lord: Act. 1.6. Lord, say they, wilt thou at this time restore the kingdom to Israel? Those good men were as yet persuaded, that it should be a carnal & worldly kingdom. Such gross things may here and there be found in the Gospels, by means whereof the Disciples did sometime notably stumble and err. Comfort for them that be weak in faith and sometime through infirmity fall. All which were committed to writing for our comfort & confirmation, that we should not be by and by discouraged, when we have sometime stumbled in faith, and can not at the first apply ourselves to the works and word of the Lord. If this happened to these great men, which afterward should become pillars of Christianity, there is no cause truly that any should marvel, if we also sometime faint in faith, yea, and let no man be afraid, although it falleth out that sometime through infirmity he so do. It is the work and matter of the Lord, he will amend these things when it seemeth good unto him. Now of the words we mind to entreat somewhat at large. Not much before, when Christ would confirm his Disciples in faith, he promised them that they should be glorified. Here he addeth and declareth how and by what means they must be glorified, affirming that that must be by his departure, that is, by his death, & that by that mean he must obtain his kingdom. This he had often repeated unto them, so that now it did become them to know and understand it. Therefore he saith: Wither I go ye know, and the way ye know, but they did not yet thoroughly understand it, as the words of Thomas do declare. Now, it is certain that there was faith in the Disciples, which the words of Peter prove, who answered Christ in steed of the rest, when he asked them, whether they also would go away: Peter said: Master to whom shall we go? joh. 6.68. Thou hast the words of eternal life: and we believe and know that thou art Christ the Son of the living God. This appeareth also by the words of the Lord, which he had said to them a little before at his supper: Ye are clean, which he would not have said, if they had not believed: they knew Christ therefore that he is the way to the Father. So they knew the Father also, for that they had seen the miracles whereby he gave testimony of the Son, and had heard the voice of the Father from heaven: This is my beloved Son, in whom I am well pleased, hear him. All these things did greatly increase faith in the Disciples hearts, notwithstanding they did not yet understand, what they should do, and what end concerning the matters of Christ was to be hoped for. Set before you an example hereof in Abraham. Although in faith a son was conceived unto him, nevertheless he was yet ignorant, that he must be offered: Neither did faith manifestly show itself, when a son was given unto him. So was it also with the Disciples: although they had faith, notwithstanding they wanted as yet trial of their faith: Now nothing trieth faith better than the cross and persecution. If Abraham had not been commanded to offer his son, he had had no trial of his faith. When as the Apostles did suffer persecution, they then had a taste and trial of their faith. As long as we may live without tentation, we think that we are endued with a strong faith, but if any adversity cometh to us on any side, we by-and-by try what faith we rested upon. Wherefore S. Paul saith Rom. 5: We rejoice in tribulations, knowing that tribulation bringeth forth patience, & patience experience, & experience hope, and hope maketh not ashamed. After the same sort Solomon also saith in the Proverbs: As silver is fined, and gold tried in the furnace, Pro. 17.3. so doth the Lord try the hearts. Such a trial is made by the cross and persecution, when we are as it were crucified according to our old Adam, by which crucifying our faith is tried, and according to this trial of faith our flesh mortified, the spirit increasing in the knowledge of Christ. And then is our flesh truly mortified, when we suffer the will of God to bear rule in us, which is then done when we submit ourselves to his will howsoever he dealeth with us, renouncing our own. This S. Paul will have us to do, when he saith thus Rom. 12: I beseech you brethren by the mercies of God, that ye give up your bodies a living sacrifice, holy, acceptable unto God, which is your reasonable serving of God. And fashion not yourselves like unto this world, but be ye changed by the renewing of your mind, that ye may prove what that good, and acceptable, and perfect will of God is. When Thomas thus confesseth that he is ignorant whither the Lord goeth, neither knoweth the way, the Lord doth not rebuke him with a stern countenance, neither by and by casteth him of, nor driveth him from him, he calleth him not either a gross ass or ox, as we are wont to handle the weak, but answering him very gently, Christ the way, the truth, and the life. saith: I am the way, the truth, and the life. I, saith the Lord, am the way, by which the father is gone unto, albeit I be slain: I carry them that believe and are my sheep, on my shoulders to the Father: no other way beside this leadeth unto heaven. He that walketh not this way, goeth out of the way from the Father. I also am the truth. For I am the light which lighteneth the world, and I teach true doctrine, and make true Christians. Moreover, I also am the life, for it is I that quicken, he that believeth in me shall not die. This, as I said before, is to teach the Gospel rightly, that is, to show the true and right way, which leadeth unto eternal life. When the Disciples knew not the way that leadeth unto glory, the Lord making no delay, affirmeth unto them that he is that way. As if he should say: If ye desire to know the way to glory, seek not the strength, light, and righteousness of creatures, but look unto me: for I am the way, the truth, and the life, although I must be put to death, although I am vile and of no reputation according to the outward appearance: neither let this offend you, that they which be mine, are subject to persecutions. The right way to the father is found in me, let none remove you from this persuasion. Therefore he saith moreover: No man cometh unto the Father but by me. As if he should say: No man can come to the Father by his own strength or merits: The law terrifieth the conscience that it can not go to the Father: the word of Christ, which justifieth us by the righteousness of Christ, bringeth us to the Father. Whereupon followeth that which he afterward saith: If ye had known me, ye should have known my Father also. For as no man cometh to the Father, but by the Son, so no man knoweth the Father but by Christ the Son. First the Father's will is not known, to wit, that he will save us, unless we see it in Christ. He which is in the bosom of the Father, hath revealed it unto us. Secondly the Father is not believed. For reason by itself doth not understand, that it receiveth any thing of God. Wherefore it is needful that Christ declare that bountifulness and goodness unto us. A troubled conscience flieth the Father, neither can it abide to commit itself unto him. But they that are justified by the word of Christ, do not any more contemn the Father, neither fly him, as the Israelites did, but stand before him as Moses, and are enlightened with divine light, that they may know the power of God and mercy of the Father. Hereupon cometh trust and confidence in him: hereby we know that we receive all things at his hands, and look for all as well spiritual as corporal things of him. All these we must acknowledge to be received by faith, reason can not attain unto them. For it endeavoureth to obtain God by her own strength and merits, but that endeavour is in vain. Wherefore when it is not able to come to the knowledge of God by her own strength, it utterly denieth God, and saith that there is no God. After when it seeth uncleanness in her works, it despeireth, and is in most great distress. But when we are justified by foolish preaching, we come to the knowledge of God the Father, as soon as we believe the word of Christ, and so we try the power of the Father in afflictions and adversities, although they be even great. This was shadowed forth in that, that the people of Israel could not abide to hear the voice of God, but desired that Moses might speak unto them. Where Christ also was figured, that he should make intercession for us to the Father, and be our mercy seat. For nature is more weak & frail, then that it can abide to talk with God. Wherefore he hath given unto us this his Son a Mediator, in whom and by whom we must have to do with him. When as the Lord so lovingly and gently dealeth with Thomas, and showeth unto him, how he must come to the Father, to wit, by the Son, and that the Father is known in the Son, there doth yet happen a grosser thing in Philip, who bursteth forth and will not be content with faith, but will know the thing assuredly by feeling and seeing. Wherefore he saith unto the Lord: Lord, show us thy Father, and it sufficeth us. As though he would say, if thou wilt also show unto us a sign, then will we believe. Philip counteth it not sufficient to believe the word, but goeth about to come to the knowledge of the Father by an other means then by the word. For seeing that reason can not believe, he requesteth to be certified by an other means and way. By the interrogation therefore of Christ that followeth it is showed, that the conscience is made certain and quiet by no other thing, then by faith, for that we must cleave to the bare word, and look for no other sign. But Philip thought here that he should be much more certified, if he did see the Father, then if he believed the simple and bare word. This incredulity Christ reproveth somewhat sharply, and saith: Have I been so long time with you, & hast thou not known me? As though he should say: I teach and preach, and yet thou knowest me not. Dost thou not know that the Father will be known by me, that my word is the word and power of the Father, by which alone he will be known, and by nothing else? For thou hast heard the voice of the Father from heaven after this sort: This is my beloved Son, in whom I am well pleased, hear him. Dost thou not yet understand how the Father is known? The Father is not seen with carnal eyes, as john in his first chapter saith: joh. 1.18. No man hath seen God at any time: the only begotten Son, which is in the bosom of the Father, he hath declared him. Wherefore the Lord saith to Philip: Philip, he that hath seen me, hath seen the Father. This saying is like unto that former when he saith: If ye had known me, ye should have known my Father also. That is, forasmuch as the Father will be known by me, seek no other way to know him, but believe my word, that I am he, which showeth unto you the Father, and will make you to know him in me. Believe that by me thou hast access to the Father, by this means thou shalt know the Father, by faith thou shalt understand the power and mercy of the Father, and shalt feel him to be comfortable and gracious. The Father will have my word to be believed, and them that believe it, to be saved and obtain eternal life. Seeing therefore that these things be thus, that we can not know the Father but in the Son, and when we know the Son, we know also the Father: the Lord saith moreover unto Philip: How then sayest thou: Show us thy Father? Believest thou not that I am in the Father, and the Father is in me? As if he would say: Forasmuch as there is no other way to know the Father, but that which I have showed, why I pray thee, dost thou not believe my words, seeing that I have taught that I am the way, the truth, and the life? Dost thou not believe that I am in the Father, and the Father in me? Believest thou not that my divinity and the divinity of the Father is one? and that the Father will be known by me? But why is the Father known by the knowledge of the Son? even therefore, for that the Son is in the Father, and the Father in the Son. For the word by which the Son is known, is the power of the Son and of the Father. Wherefore seeing the Son is known by his word, it necessarily followeth, that the father also is known thereby. Believe me, that I am in the Father, and the Father is in me: at the least believe me for the very works sake. Here he doth as it were appeal to works, that they may give testimony of the word. As if he should say: Seeing that ye can not be content to believe the word, at the least believe the signs which bear witness of the word, and whereby the Father hath given testimony of me. For the works and signs are testimonies of the word. By these words Christ meaneth nothing else but to confirm the consciences of his Disciples, and of all us against the offence of the cross. For consciences will know and not believe the bare words of God, but do always doubt and say: What if God careth not for thee? and have such like cogitations. Holy & godly men seem for the most part to be neglected, as abjects and most contemptible men, inasmuch as the world according to the will & lust thereof, rageth and practiseth tyranny against them, and doth almost what it list. Hereupon they are in anguish & in danger of faith, & desire to know the will of God toward them. These Christ comforteth, that they may seek no other comfort but in him and in his death, and believe that he is life, that he beareth rule, and maketh alive them that be dead. And that they should nothing doubt hereof, he maketh them yet more certain, and saith: Verily, verily I say unto you, he that believeth in me, the works that I do, he shall do also, and greater than these shall he do. As if he should say: Doubt not any thing but that ye shall know the Father by me, and that my word is the power of God, & that by my word ye shall be sustained, although I be even crucified. Ye shall have trial hereof in yourselves, for if ye believe in me, ye shall not only work such works and show such signs as I do, but even greater. Which came to pass after the ascension of Christ, when the Apostles wrought greater miracles as well among the jews as Gentiles, than Christ himself. But what is the cause hereof? The Lord himself addeth it saying: For I go unto my Father. That is, I will begin a kingdom, where I will fulfil all things. Here the Lord annexeth the conclusion of all the questions and consolations going before. For a little before Christ had taught, that the Father is known by him, and that is because he is in the Father, he therefore is showed by that word, by which the Father is showed. But that he might confirm this, to wit, that his word is the power of the Father, he added and said: He that believeth in me, the works that I do, he shall do also. That is, by faith in me ye also shall do those works, and know that my word is the virtue and power of God. But why doth he say: I go to the Father? I answer: Because Christ is in the Father, therefore doth he the works of the Father, but we do them not also therefore, but for that Christ who is in the Father, is now in us. For to go to the Father is to fulfil all things, & as Paul according to the saying of the Psalm declareth, to give gifts unto men, to lighten and to sanctify. For this is the kingdom of Christ, whereby he reigneth in earth in the hearts of the believers, and sitteth upon the throne of his Father David. The Lord also speaketh these words: I go to the Father, to comfort his Disciples. For as he did before begin to confirm them, that they should not be troubled and offended, although he should die, but courageously cleave to him, and believe in him: So here he promiseth them that they shall be glorified, for he goeth to the Father, who shall deliver all things into his hands, that he may mightily obtain a kingdom over all things that are in heaven and earth. Wherefore they ought nothing at all to fear. He yet comforteth them more and saith: And whatsoever ye ask in my name, that will I do. As if he should say: As soon as I come to the Father, there is no cause why ye should be careful. For those things that ye have need of and ask, ye shall obtain, I will do this for you, because I obtain a kingdom. And he peculiarly addeth, in my Name, whereby he excludeth all our merits. For by Christ we are heard, as also in Christ we are loved, by whom also we are Priests, as Peter saith, to offer up spiritual sacrifices, and acceptable to God. All these things saith Christ, I will do for this cause: That the Father may be glorified in the Son. The Father is then glorified, when glory is given and ascribed unto him, not unto us. That is, when we acknowledge the we are saved not by our own merits, not by our own wisdom and righteousness, but do put our trust in his mercy. For he hath given his Son for our sins, and whatsoever we purpose to ask, we must ask it by this Son, and we shall obtain it. Wherefore he repeateth these words, and saith: If ye shall ask any thing in my Name, I will do it. These words tend to this end, that he may make us certainly believe his words, and cleave unto him. This therefore is the sum of this conclusion: He biddeth his Disciples and us therefore believe, for that he goeth to reign. Before he affirmeth, that he will show forth a sign and testimony of his kingdom, & so reign, that he will declare a notable token of his government, that we may feel and perceive it: to wit, that he will do so great works by us, as he himself hath done, yea and greater also. Also, that he will hear us when we pray, and whatsoever we pray for unto the Father in his name. By these promises the heart must be confirmed & made courageous against the gates of hell. For Christ reigneth by his word, wherefore it is needful that we exactly know the virtue of the word: for the kingdom of Christ is the power & virtue of God. These things I thought good to entreat of concerning this Gospel: Let us call upon God for the aid of his grace, that we may be able to understand them, & by them to strengthen our weak faith. **** FINIS.